<?xml version="1.0"?>
<feed xmlns="http://www.w3.org/2005/Atom" xml:lang="en">
	<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/api.php?action=feedcontributions&amp;feedformat=atom&amp;user=Oddmoonlight</id>
	<title>Baka-Tsuki - User contributions [en]</title>
	<link rel="self" type="application/atom+xml" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/api.php?action=feedcontributions&amp;feedformat=atom&amp;user=Oddmoonlight"/>
	<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Special:Contributions/Oddmoonlight"/>
	<updated>2026-04-30T15:07:59Z</updated>
	<subtitle>User contributions</subtitle>
	<generator>MediaWiki 1.43.1</generator>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Unlimited_Fafnir&amp;diff=530462</id>
		<title>Unlimited Fafnir</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Unlimited_Fafnir&amp;diff=530462"/>
		<updated>2017-11-10T15:50:59Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;[[File:UnlimitedFafnir v01 Cover.jpg|thumb|300px]]&lt;br /&gt;
Unlimited Fafnir (銃皇無尽のファフニール, Juuou Mujin no Fafnir) is a light novel series written by Tsukasa (ツカサ) and illustrated by Korie Riko (梱枝りこ). The series is serialized in Kodansha Bunko with 15 volumes published so far. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Produced by Diomedia, an anime adaptation aired during the Winter 2015 anime season, covering the first three volumes of the light novel but started introducing significant deviations in the events of Volume 2.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Unlimited Fafnir&#039;&#039; is also available in the following language(s):&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Unlimited_Fafnir_(Indonesia)|Unlimited Fafnir (Bahasa Indonesia)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Story Synopsis ==&lt;br /&gt;
With the sudden appearance of the monsters that came to be called dragons, the world had completely changed. Before long, supernatural girls with the power of the dragons, called &amp;quot;D&amp;quot;, were born within the human race. The secret existence of the only male &amp;quot;D&amp;quot;, the boy Mononobe Yuu, was forcefully thrown into the school where the girls of &amp;quot;D&amp;quot; gathered - Midgard, where he saw the naked body of one of the students, Iris. Furthermore, upon meeting his long lost sister Mitsuki, Yuu seems to have been enrolled into this school...!? &amp;quot;When there&#039;s really no other choice, Iris, I will&amp;amp;mdash;kill you.&amp;quot; &amp;quot;Can I really... believe you?&amp;quot; The curtains open as the &amp;quot;one and only story&amp;quot; about the boy who was supposed to become the strongest assassin and the poorly performing girl unfolds&amp;amp;mdash;! Unlimited School Battle Action! &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-- Back Cover of Volume 1&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Translation ==&lt;br /&gt;
=== [[Unlimited Fafnir:Registration Page|Registration]] ===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Translators are asked to [[Unlimited Fafnir:Registration Page|register]] for chapters they want to work on.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Format Standards ===&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Every Chapter (after editing) must conform to the general format guidelines.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Format guideline|General Format/Style Guideline]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Feedback ===&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;If you enjoyed the translation, why don&#039;t you tell us in the [{{SERVER}}/forums/viewtopic.php?f=23&amp;amp;t=7921 Feedback thread]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Updates ==&lt;br /&gt;
{{:Unlimited Fafnir:Updates}}&lt;br /&gt;
*28 September 2016 - Volume 12 completed&lt;br /&gt;
*8 May 2016 - Volume 11 completed&lt;br /&gt;
*21 December 2015 - Volume 10 completed&lt;br /&gt;
*8 October 2015 - Brynhildr Valkyries completed&lt;br /&gt;
* 31 August 2015 - Volume 9 completed&lt;br /&gt;
* 20 August 2015 - Volume 8 completed&lt;br /&gt;
* 20 May 2015 - Volume 7 completed&lt;br /&gt;
* 29 April 2015 - Volume 6 completed&lt;br /&gt;
* 17 April 2015 - Volume 5 completed&lt;br /&gt;
* 6 April 2015 - Volume 4 completed&lt;br /&gt;
* 30 March 2015 - Volume 3 completed&lt;br /&gt;
* 19 March 2015 - Volume 2 completed&lt;br /&gt;
* 13 March 2015 - Volume 1 completed&lt;br /&gt;
[[Unlimited Fafnir:Updates|Past updates]].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== &#039;&#039;Unlimited Fafnir&#039;&#039; by Tsukasa ==&lt;br /&gt;
Please visit the [{{SERVER}}//forums/viewforum.php?f=73 forums] if you wish to request or post downloadable versions of completed volumes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v01_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 1 - Dragon&#039;s Eden ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 1|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 1 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 1 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 1 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Dragon Garden Midgard]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 1 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Witch of Silver Explosions]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 1 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - &amp;quot;White&amp;quot; Leviathan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 1 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Roaring Fafnir]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 1 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 1 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v02_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 2 - Scarlet Innocent ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 2|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 2 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 2 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 2 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Tia the Dragon Girl]]&amp;lt;!--Yes, it says &amp;quot;Tear&amp;quot; in the illustrations, but the reference to Tiamat is more important--&amp;gt; &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 2 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Innocent Pursuit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 2 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Calamitous Flames of Muspelheim]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 2 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Red-Winged Tiamat]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 2 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 2 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v03_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 3 - Crimson Catastrophe ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 3|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 3 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 3 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 3 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - The Invading Basilisk]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 3 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Frontline on Distant Waters]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 3 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Mistilteinn Falling from Heaven]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 3 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Crimson Catastrophe]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 3 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 3 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v04_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 4 - Spirit Howling ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 4|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 4 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 4 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 4 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - The Princess Who Fights Dragons]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 4 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Silver-Armored Hreidmar]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 4 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - &amp;quot;Yellow&amp;quot; Hraesvelgr]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 4 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Noah of Soul Destruction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 4 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 4 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v05_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 5 - Midgard&#039;s Carnival ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 5|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 5 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 5 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 5 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Unreturned Memories]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 5 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Bubble Engagement]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 5 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - The Disappeared Green Dragon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 5 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - The Awakened Red Code]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 5 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 5 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v06_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 6 - Emerald Tempest ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 6|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 6 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 6 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 6 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Silent Genius]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 6 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Heart to Heart at a Park]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 6 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Invading Tempest of Green]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 6 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Ether Wind of Gold]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 6 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 6 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v07_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 7 - Black Nemesis ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 7|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 7 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 7 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 7 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Fictional Nostalgia]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 7 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Boy Meets Girl at Dusk]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 7 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Newborn Predator]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 7 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - &amp;quot;Black&amp;quot; Vritra]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 7 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 7 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v08_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 8 - Amethyst Rebirth ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 8|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 8 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 8 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 8 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Deep Forest Vacation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 8 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Transformed Awaker]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 8 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - &amp;quot;Purple&amp;quot; Kraken Zwei]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 8 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Neun of Blue-Nine]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 8 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 8 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v09_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 9 - Cerulean Engage ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 9|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 9 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 9 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 9 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Blue Stigma]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 9 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Niflheim&#039;s Circle of Hell]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 9 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Future Contract]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 9 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Reversed Athena]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 9 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 9 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v10_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 10 - Invisible Successor ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 10|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 10 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 10 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 10 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Midgard in Tumoil]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 10 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Aegis&#039; Blitzkrieg]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 10 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Inherited Lost Code]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 10 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Successor of Genocide]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 10 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 10 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v11_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 11 - Prismatic Garden ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 11|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 11 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 11 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 11 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Room Wars of Chaos]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 11 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - White Knight of Elegance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 11 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Festival of Vivid Colors]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 11 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Full Moon of Heavenly Rites]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 11 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 11 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v12_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 12 - Darkness Disaster ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 12|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 12 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 12 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 12 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Marduk of Mechanized Aviation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 12 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Atlantis the Electronic Fairy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 12 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Bahamut of Eternal Longevity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 12 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Pitch-Black Disaster]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 12 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 12 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v13_001.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 13 - Stardust Cry ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 13 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 13 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 13 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - The Naglfar in Pursuit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 13 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Ragnarok of True Obliteration]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 13 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Nova of Heavy Tremors]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 13 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Stardust of Blue Light]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 13 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 13 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[image:UnlimitedFafnir_v14_000.jpg|right|180px|border|link=]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 14 - Rainbow Piece ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 14 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 14 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 14 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Turning Wheel of Shamash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 14 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - The Clear Dragon at Battle Again]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 14 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - The Eve of the Game Party]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 14 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - The Rainbow-Colored Piece]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 14 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 14 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 15 - Unlimited Shine ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 15 Illustrations|Color Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 15 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 15 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Crusading Jotunheim]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 15 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Powerless Blood Lord]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 15 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - &#039;Demise&#039; Angolmois]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 15 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Unlimited Fafnir]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 15 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 15 Afterword|Afterword]]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Unlimited Fafnir Prequel: Brynhildr Valkyries ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Brynhildr Valkyries|Full Text]])===&lt;br /&gt;
Chapters of &#039;&#039;Brynhildr Valkyries&#039;&#039; were bundled with the anime adaptation&#039;s blu-ray releases, Volumes 2, 4 and 6 respectively.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Brynhildr Valkyries Covers|Covers]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Brynhildr Valkyries Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Mononobe Mitsuki]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Brynhildr Valkyries Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Shinomiya Miyako]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Unlimited Fafnir:Brynhildr Valkyries Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Brynhildr Class]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Short Stories and Bonus Artwork===&lt;br /&gt;
Short stories were bundled with individual volumes when purchased through specific Japanese retailers such as [http://www.anibro.jp/ Gamers] or [http://www.toranoana.jp/ Toranoana].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Note: due to lack of availability, Chinese versions of images have been used as a substitute in certain cases.&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 1 ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 1 Gamers SS|Gamers]]) ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 1 Toranoana SS|Toranoana]])&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 2 ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 2 Gamers SS|Gamers]]) ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 2 Toranoana SS|Toranoana]])&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 3 ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 3 Gamers SS|Gamers]]) ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 3 Toranoana SS|Toranoana]])&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 4 ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 4 Gamers SS|Gamers]]) ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 4 Toranoana SS|Toranoana]])&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 5 ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 5 Gamers SS|Gamers]]) ([[Unlimited Fafnir:Volume 5 Toranoana SS|Toranoana]])&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Project Staff ==&lt;br /&gt;
* Project Administrator: [[User:Zzhk|zzhk]]&lt;br /&gt;
* Project Manager: [[User:Entropy|Entropy]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Translators ===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[User:Entropy|Entropy]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=====Teaser Only=====&lt;br /&gt;
* [[User:Jonathanasdf|jonathanasdf]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Editors ===&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Belatkuro|Belatkuro]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Series Overview ==&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 1 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール I　ドラゴンズ・エデン (July 2 2013, ISBN 978-4-06-375312-7)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 2 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール II　スカーレット・イノセント (October 2 2013, ISBN 978-4-06-375326-4)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 3 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール III　クリムゾン・カタストロフ (December 27 2013, ISBN 978-4-06-375351-6)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 4 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール IV　スピリット・ハウリング (April 2 2014, ISBN 978-4-06-375363-9)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 5 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール V　ミドガルズ・カーニバル (July 2 2014, ISBN 978-4-06-375379-0)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 6 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール VI　エメラルド・テンペスト (October 10 2014, ISBN 978-4-06-381406-4)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 7 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール VII　ブラック・ネメシス (December 26 2014, ISBN 978-4-06-381435-4)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 8 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール VIII　アメジスト・リバース (April 2 2015, ISBN 978-4-06-381453-8)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 9 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール IX　セルリアン・エンゲージ (July 2 2015, ISBN 978-4-06-381472-9)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 10 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール Ⅹ　インビジブル・サクセサー (October 30 2015, ISBN 978-4-06-381499-6)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 11 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール ⅩI　プリズマティック・ガーデン (April 1 2016, ISBN 978-4-06-381528-3)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 12 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール XII　ダークネス・ディザスター (August 2 2016, ISBN 978-4-06-381550-4)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 13 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール XIII　スターダスト・クライ (February 2 2017, ISBN 978-4-06-381582-5)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 14 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール XIV　レインボウ・ピース (June 2 2017, ISBN 978-4-06-381607-5)&lt;br /&gt;
* Volume 15 - 銃皇無尽のファフニール XV　アンリミテッド・シャイン (November 2 2017)&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Kodansha]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Light novel (English)]]&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Haken_no_Kouki_Altina&amp;diff=515511</id>
		<title>Haken no Kouki Altina</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Haken_no_Kouki_Altina&amp;diff=515511"/>
		<updated>2017-03-20T21:39:12Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Series Overview */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;{{Status|Active}}&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v01 cover.jpg|thumbnail|right|250px|Volume 1 Cover]]&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Haken no Kouki Altina&#039;&#039;&#039; (覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ), also known as &#039;&#039;&#039;Altina the Sword Princess&#039;&#039;&#039;, is a light novel series written by &#039;&#039;Yukiya Murasaki&#039;&#039; and illustrated by &#039;&#039;himesuz&#039;&#039;. It is ongoing with 10 volumes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Haken no Kouki Altina is also available in the following languages:&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Haken no Kouki Altina PL|Polski (Polish)]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://www.novelasligeras.com/p/haken-no-kouki-altina.html Spanish]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Haken no Kouki Altina ~Brazilian Portuguese~|Português (Portuguese)]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Haken no Kouki Altina (Indonesia)|Bahasa Indonesia (Indonesian)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Story Synopsis==&lt;br /&gt;
Regis is an incapable soldier, bad at both sword mastery and archery, who only reads books. He meets a girl at the remote region where he was transferred to. Altina, the red-haired and crimson-eyed princess who wields the supreme ruler’s sword. She was appointed to become the commander of the remote region&#039;s army despite being fourteen years old, simply for being the Emperor&#039;s illegitimate child. However, she is holding onto her big dream without being depressed in the environment she is in. “I trust you.” Regis, who was sought from her as a tactician, stands up to the obstacles together with her. The military fantasy interweaved by the bibliophagic boy and the princess with the supreme ruler’s sword.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
(&#039;&#039;Story Synopsis taken from Volume 1 cover.&#039;&#039;)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Series Information==&lt;br /&gt;
*Genre: Fantasy&lt;br /&gt;
*Original Title: Haken no Kouki Aruthiina (覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ)&lt;br /&gt;
*Author: Yukiya Murasaki (むらさき ゆきや)&lt;br /&gt;
*Illustrator: himesuz&lt;br /&gt;
*Series Status: Ongoing&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===[[Haken no Kouki Altina Registration Page|Registration Page]]===&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Translators are asked to [[Haken no Kouki Altina Registration Page|register]] the chapters they want to work on.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Feedback===&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;If you enjoyed the series, why don&#039;t you tell us in this [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=44&amp;amp;t=6004 forum]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Updates==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*August 12, 2013 - Teaser created (Chapter 1)&lt;br /&gt;
*October 8, 2013 - Hosted translation started by &#039;&#039;&#039;Skythewood Translations&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
*October 12, 2014 - Volume 1, Chapters 1-2 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*October 18, 2014 - Volume 1, Chapter 3 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*October 22, 2014 - Volume 1 (Chapter 4) completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*November 30, 2014 - Volume 2, Chapter 1 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*December 14, 2014 - Volume 2, Interlude completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*December 23, 2014 - Volume 2, Chapter 2 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*December 31, 2014 - Volume 2, Chapter 3 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*January 4, 2015 - Volume 2, Chapter 4 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*January 11, 2015 - Volume 2, Chapter 5 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*April 16, 2015 - Volume 3, Chapter 1 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Haken no Kouki Altina series by Yukiya Murasaki==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume I ([http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Full Text])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v01 cover.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Haken no Kouki Altina:Volume 1 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/10/ASP11.html  Chapter 1: The Girl with Red Hair and Crimson Eyes]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/10/ASP12.html  Chapter 2: Promise at Dawn]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/10/ASP13.html  Chapter 3: Altina&#039;s Resolve]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/10/ASP14.html  Chapter 4: The Thundering Sword]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume II===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v2 Cover.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Haken no Kouki Altina:Volume 2 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/11/ASP21.html  Chapter 1: The King of Barbarians]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/12/ASP215.html  Interlude]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/12/ASP22.html Chapter 2: To Rebel or Accede]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/12/ASP23.html Chapter 3: Under My Flag]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/01/ASP24.html Chapter 4: The Fifth Campaign against Fort Focker]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/01/ASP25.html Chapter 5: An Invitation into Darkness]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume III===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v3 Cover.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Haken no Kouki Altina:Volume 3 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/04/ASP31.html  Chapter 1: Towns and Stagecoach]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/04/ASP32.html  Chapter 2: Duel under the Moon]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/04/ASP33.html  Chapter 3: Founding Anniversary]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/05/ASP34.html  Chapter 4: The Silver Princess]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/05/ASP35.html  Chapter 5: The Freed White Wolves]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/05/ASP36.html  Interlude &amp;amp; Chapter 6: The Queen&#039;s Navy]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume IV===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v4 Cover.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Haken no Kouki Altina:Volume 4 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/07/ASP40.html  Prologue]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/07/ASP41.html  Chapter 1: Princess Elizabeth]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/07/ASP42.html  Chapter 2: Silent Week]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/08/ASP43.html  Chapter 3: Stone Bridge]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/08/ASP44.html  Chapter 4: The Burning Tower]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/08/ASP45.html  Epilogue: War War War]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume V===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v5 Cover.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Haken no Kouki Altina:Volume 5 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/12/ASP50.html  Recap]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/12/ASP51.html  Chapter 1: Flames of War in the Night]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/12/ASP52.html  Chapter 2: Sister of the Biblophile]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/12/ASP53.html  Chapter 3: The Seventh Imperial Army]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2016/01/ASP54.html  Chapter 4: The Beginning of Dusk]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2016/01/ASP55.html  Chapter 5: The Battle of Lafressange]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume VI===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v6 Cover.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Haken no Kouki Altina:Volume 6 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/03/ASP61.html  Chapter 1: On Le Lucé hill]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/04/ASP62.html  Chapter 2: Narissa from the West Coast]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/04/ASP63.html  Chapter 3: All Ships, Fire Broadside!]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/04/ASP64.html  Chapter 4: Battle of Épée Prière Bay]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume VII===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Haken no kouki altina 07.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2016/04/ASP70.html  Prologue]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2016/05/ASP71.html  Chapter 1: Today, Tomorrow]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/05/ASP72.html  Chapter 2: Battle of West Lafressange]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/05/ASP73.html  Chapter 3: Mercenary King Gilbert]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/05/ASP74.html  Chapter 4: The passing of the Emperor]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 7.5 (Short Beautiful Stories)===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Haken no kouki altina shokitan.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume VIII===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Haken no kouki altina 08.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume IX===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Haken no kouki altina 09.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Project Staff==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Translators===&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Active&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Teaser done by Code-Zero&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Series Overview==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina I 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ I (October 29, 2012, ISBN 978-4-04-728460-9)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina II 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ II (February 28, 2013, ISBN 978-4-04-728734-1)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina III 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ III (June 29, 2013, ISBN 978-4-04-728977-2)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina IV 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ IV (October 30, 2013, ISBN 978-4-04-729214-7)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina V 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ V (February 28, 2014, ISBN 978-4-04-729458-5)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina VI 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ VI (June 30, 2014, ISBN 978-4-04-729730-2)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina VII 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ VII (October 30, 2014, ISBN 978-4-04-729977-1)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina Shokitan 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ 小綺譚 (October 30, 2014, ISBN 978-4-04-729978-8)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina VIII 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ VIII (February 28, 2015, ISBN 978-4-04-730230-3)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina IX 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ IX (June 29, 2015, ISBN 978-4-04-730516-8)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina X 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ X (November 30, 2015 ISBN 978-4-04-730765-0) &lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina XI 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ XI (September 30, 2016 ISBN 978-4-04-734041-1)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina XII 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ XII (April 28, 2017 ISBN 978-4-04-734542-3)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Light novel (English)]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Famitsu Bunko]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Yukiya Murasaki]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Genre - Action]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Genre - Drama]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Genre - Fantasy]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Genre - Romance]]&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Haken_no_Kouki_Altina&amp;diff=515510</id>
		<title>Haken no Kouki Altina</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Haken_no_Kouki_Altina&amp;diff=515510"/>
		<updated>2017-03-20T21:37:20Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Series Overview */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;{{Status|Active}}&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v01 cover.jpg|thumbnail|right|250px|Volume 1 Cover]]&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Haken no Kouki Altina&#039;&#039;&#039; (覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ), also known as &#039;&#039;&#039;Altina the Sword Princess&#039;&#039;&#039;, is a light novel series written by &#039;&#039;Yukiya Murasaki&#039;&#039; and illustrated by &#039;&#039;himesuz&#039;&#039;. It is ongoing with 10 volumes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Haken no Kouki Altina is also available in the following languages:&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Haken no Kouki Altina PL|Polski (Polish)]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://www.novelasligeras.com/p/haken-no-kouki-altina.html Spanish]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Haken no Kouki Altina ~Brazilian Portuguese~|Português (Portuguese)]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Haken no Kouki Altina (Indonesia)|Bahasa Indonesia (Indonesian)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Story Synopsis==&lt;br /&gt;
Regis is an incapable soldier, bad at both sword mastery and archery, who only reads books. He meets a girl at the remote region where he was transferred to. Altina, the red-haired and crimson-eyed princess who wields the supreme ruler’s sword. She was appointed to become the commander of the remote region&#039;s army despite being fourteen years old, simply for being the Emperor&#039;s illegitimate child. However, she is holding onto her big dream without being depressed in the environment she is in. “I trust you.” Regis, who was sought from her as a tactician, stands up to the obstacles together with her. The military fantasy interweaved by the bibliophagic boy and the princess with the supreme ruler’s sword.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
(&#039;&#039;Story Synopsis taken from Volume 1 cover.&#039;&#039;)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Series Information==&lt;br /&gt;
*Genre: Fantasy&lt;br /&gt;
*Original Title: Haken no Kouki Aruthiina (覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ)&lt;br /&gt;
*Author: Yukiya Murasaki (むらさき ゆきや)&lt;br /&gt;
*Illustrator: himesuz&lt;br /&gt;
*Series Status: Ongoing&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===[[Haken no Kouki Altina Registration Page|Registration Page]]===&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Translators are asked to [[Haken no Kouki Altina Registration Page|register]] the chapters they want to work on.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Feedback===&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;If you enjoyed the series, why don&#039;t you tell us in this [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=44&amp;amp;t=6004 forum]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Updates==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*August 12, 2013 - Teaser created (Chapter 1)&lt;br /&gt;
*October 8, 2013 - Hosted translation started by &#039;&#039;&#039;Skythewood Translations&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
*October 12, 2014 - Volume 1, Chapters 1-2 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*October 18, 2014 - Volume 1, Chapter 3 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*October 22, 2014 - Volume 1 (Chapter 4) completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*November 30, 2014 - Volume 2, Chapter 1 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*December 14, 2014 - Volume 2, Interlude completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*December 23, 2014 - Volume 2, Chapter 2 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*December 31, 2014 - Volume 2, Chapter 3 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*January 4, 2015 - Volume 2, Chapter 4 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*January 11, 2015 - Volume 2, Chapter 5 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
*April 16, 2015 - Volume 3, Chapter 1 completed by Skythewood Translations&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Haken no Kouki Altina series by Yukiya Murasaki==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume I ([http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Full Text])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v01 cover.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Haken no Kouki Altina:Volume 1 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/10/ASP11.html  Chapter 1: The Girl with Red Hair and Crimson Eyes]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/10/ASP12.html  Chapter 2: Promise at Dawn]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/10/ASP13.html  Chapter 3: Altina&#039;s Resolve]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/10/ASP14.html  Chapter 4: The Thundering Sword]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume II===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v2 Cover.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Haken no Kouki Altina:Volume 2 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/11/ASP21.html  Chapter 1: The King of Barbarians]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/12/ASP215.html  Interlude]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/12/ASP22.html Chapter 2: To Rebel or Accede]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2014/12/ASP23.html Chapter 3: Under My Flag]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/01/ASP24.html Chapter 4: The Fifth Campaign against Fort Focker]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/01/ASP25.html Chapter 5: An Invitation into Darkness]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume III===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v3 Cover.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Haken no Kouki Altina:Volume 3 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/04/ASP31.html  Chapter 1: Towns and Stagecoach]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/04/ASP32.html  Chapter 2: Duel under the Moon]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/04/ASP33.html  Chapter 3: Founding Anniversary]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/05/ASP34.html  Chapter 4: The Silver Princess]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/05/ASP35.html  Chapter 5: The Freed White Wolves]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/05/ASP36.html  Interlude &amp;amp; Chapter 6: The Queen&#039;s Navy]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume IV===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v4 Cover.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Haken no Kouki Altina:Volume 4 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/07/ASP40.html  Prologue]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/07/ASP41.html  Chapter 1: Princess Elizabeth]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/07/ASP42.html  Chapter 2: Silent Week]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/08/ASP43.html  Chapter 3: Stone Bridge]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/08/ASP44.html  Chapter 4: The Burning Tower]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/08/ASP45.html  Epilogue: War War War]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume V===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v5 Cover.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Haken no Kouki Altina:Volume 5 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/12/ASP50.html  Recap]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/12/ASP51.html  Chapter 1: Flames of War in the Night]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/12/ASP52.html  Chapter 2: Sister of the Biblophile]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2015/12/ASP53.html  Chapter 3: The Seventh Imperial Army]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2016/01/ASP54.html  Chapter 4: The Beginning of Dusk]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2016/01/ASP55.html  Chapter 5: The Battle of Lafressange]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume VI===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:ALTINA v6 Cover.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Haken no Kouki Altina:Volume 6 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/03/ASP61.html  Chapter 1: On Le Lucé hill]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/04/ASP62.html  Chapter 2: Narissa from the West Coast]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/04/ASP63.html  Chapter 3: All Ships, Fire Broadside!]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/04/ASP64.html  Chapter 4: Battle of Épée Prière Bay]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume VII===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Haken no kouki altina 07.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;By [http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood Translations]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2016/04/ASP70.html  Prologue]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.sg/2016/05/ASP71.html  Chapter 1: Today, Tomorrow]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/05/ASP72.html  Chapter 2: Battle of West Lafressange]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/05/ASP73.html  Chapter 3: Mercenary King Gilbert]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.in/2016/05/ASP74.html  Chapter 4: The passing of the Emperor]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 7.5 (Short Beautiful Stories)===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Haken no kouki altina shokitan.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume VIII===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Haken no kouki altina 08.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume IX===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Haken no kouki altina 09.jpg|right|200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Project Staff==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Translators===&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Active&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[http://skythewood.blogspot.com/p/altina-sword-princess.html  Skythewood]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Teaser done by Code-Zero&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Series Overview==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina I 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ I (October 29, 2012, ISBN 978-4-04-728460-9)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina II 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ II (February 28, 2013, ISBN 978-4-04-728734-1)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina III 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ III (June 29, 2013, ISBN 978-4-04-728977-2)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina IV 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ IV (October 30, 2013, ISBN 978-4-04-729214-7)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina V 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ V (February 28, 2014, ISBN 978-4-04-729458-5)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina VI 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ VI (June 30, 2014, ISBN 978-4-04-729730-2)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina VII 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ VII (October 30, 2014, ISBN 978-4-04-729977-1)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina Shokitan 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ 小綺譚 (October 30, 2014, ISBN 978-4-04-729978-8)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina VIII 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ VIII (February 28, 2015, ISBN 978-4-04-730230-3)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina IX 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ IX (June 29, 2015, ISBN 978-4-04-730516-8)&lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina X 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ X (November 30, 2015 ISBN 978-4-04-730765-0) &lt;br /&gt;
*Haken no Kouki Altina X 覇剣の皇姫アルティーナ XI (September 30, 2016 ISBN 978-4-04-734041-1)&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Light novel (English)]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Famitsu Bunko]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Yukiya Murasaki]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Genre - Action]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Genre - Drama]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Genre - Fantasy]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Genre - Romance]]&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Ore_to_Kanojo_ga_Geboku_de_Dorei_de_Shuujuu_Keiyaku&amp;diff=406324</id>
		<title>Talk:Ore to Kanojo ga Geboku de Dorei de Shuujuu Keiyaku</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Ore_to_Kanojo_ga_Geboku_de_Dorei_de_Shuujuu_Keiyaku&amp;diff=406324"/>
		<updated>2014-12-18T11:06:18Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;Ok, SIMON! do u know how awesome a job u did!! this LN is awesome! i read v1 and 2. (read 2 last weeK) . this ln might seem pornish from the illustrations but it actually isnt (not until volume 2...well....whatever). in anycase, if you need proofreading then i can do it &#039;if i ever have the time&#039;....since, u know..my situation and all. Plus thanks to cautr for the tl&#039;s.&lt;br /&gt;
btw, if u need a summary then i can provide one. but u&#039;r gonna have to edit it afterwords into something readable. i can also make character profiles. [[User:Ways|&amp;lt;span style=&amp;quot;color:green;font:bold 10pt kristen itc&amp;quot;&amp;gt;TheCatWalk&amp;lt;/span&amp;gt;]] --nyaa~ 06:06, 24 April 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
 Thank you for your hard work. i hope you can stay with this series until it becomes a full project &lt;br /&gt;
then maby more translaters can pick it up. i have raws of this in a zip file to share.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Manager==&lt;br /&gt;
Stepping back from the position due to inactivity for the time being. As I was already approved once, I&#039;ll just automatically assume the position back, in case it hasn&#039;t been taken by someone else and something regarding the inactivity changes. [[User:Cautr|-cautr]] ([[User talk:Cautr|talk]]) 03:58, 25 August 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m not entirely sure but does the title roughly translate to &amp;quot;The Slave and Servant Contract Between Me and My Girlfriend&amp;quot;? [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 05:06, 18 December 2014 (CST)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari&amp;diff=399803</id>
		<title>Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari&amp;diff=399803"/>
		<updated>2014-11-13T22:35:13Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Rebuilding Arc and Beyond */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;{{Status|Active}}&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari / The Rising of the Shield Hero&#039;&#039;&#039; (盾の勇者の成り上がり) is a Japanese web novel written by Aneko Yusagi (アネコユサギ). The web novel was adapted into a Manga drawn by Aiya Kyuu (藍屋球) and published by MF Books. The Light Novel is illustrated by Minami Seira (弥南 せいら) with 7 volumes and ongoing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari series is also available in the following languages:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari (Indonesia)|Bahasa Indonesia (Indonesian)]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari (Italia)|Italia (Italian)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Synopsis==&lt;br /&gt;
Iwatani Naofumi was summoned into a parallel world along with 3 other people to become the world&#039;s Heroes. Each of the heroes were respectively equipped with their own legendary equipment when summoned. Naofumi coincidentally received the Legendary Shield as his weapon. Due to Naofumi&#039;s lack of charisma and experience, he ended up with only a single teammate while others have several. Unfortunately, on his third day Naofumi was betrayed, falsely accused, and robbed by the said teammate. Shunned by everyone from king to peasants, Naofumi&#039;s thoughts were filled with nothing but vengeance and hatred. Thus, his destiny in a parallel World begins...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===[[Tate_no_Yuusha:Registration_page|Registration]]===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Translators are asked to [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Registration_page|register]] beforehand to avoid confusions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Guidelines and Formats===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Format_guideline|General Format/Style Guideline]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Tate_no_Yuusha:Names_and_Terminology|Tate no Yuusha Names and Terminology]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Feedback &amp;amp; Discussion===&lt;br /&gt;
If you like the novel then please give us your [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=15&amp;amp;t=7641 feedback and/or thoughts]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Recent Updates==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{{:Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari: Updates||}}&lt;br /&gt;
Older updates can be found [[Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari: Updates|here]].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Light Novel Information==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The differences between the LN and WN can be found [[Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari:_Recommended_Read|here]].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Covers===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;gallery&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_1_Cover.png|Volume 1&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_2_Cover.jpg|Volume 2&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_3_Cover.jpg|Volume 3&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_4_Cover.jpg|Volume 4&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_5_Cover.jpg|Volume 5&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_6_Cover.jpg|Volume 6&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_7_Cover.jpg|Volume 7&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/gallery&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Illustrations===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Tate_no_Yuusha_ Illustrations| Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Web Novel Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There are differences between the light novel and web novel. The first four volumes follow more or less the progression in the web version, but start to really diverge in the fifth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These translations are based on the web novel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 1===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_1|[Web Novel 1] Chapter 1 - Royal Summoning]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_2|[Web Novel 2] Chapter 2 - Hero Introduction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_3|[Web Novel 3] Chapter 3 - Hero Discussion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_4|[Web Novel 4] Chapter 4 - Specially Arranged Gold]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_5|[Web Novel 5] Chapter 5 - Shield&#039;s Reality ]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_6|[Web Novel 6] Chapter 6 - The Trap &amp;amp; Arts of Betrayal]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_7|[Web Novel 7] Chapter 7 - False Charge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_8|[Web Novel 8] Chapter 8 - Fallen Fame]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_9|[Web Novel 9] Chapter 9 - Something Called a Slave]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_10|[Web Novel 10] Chapter 10 - Kids&#039; Lunch]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_11|[Web Novel 11] Chapter 11 - Slave&#039;s Accomplishments ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_12|[Web Novel 12] Chapter 12 - What&#039;s Yours is Mine]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_13|[Web Novel 13] Chapter 13 - Remedy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_14|[Web Novel 14] Chapter 14 - Taking a Life]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_15|[Web Novel 15] Chapter 15 - Demi-Human&#039;s Traits ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_16|[Web Novel 16] Chapter 16 - Preparations for the Wave]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_17|[Web Novel 17] Chapter 17 - The Barbarian&#039;s Armor ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_18|[Web Novel 18] Chapter 18 - Engraved Dragon Hourglass]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_19|[Web Novel 19] Chapter 19 - Memory/Black Beast]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_20|[Web Novel 20] Chapter 20 - Wave of Calamity ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_21|[Web Novel 21] Chapter 21 - Contradicting Actions]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_22|[Web Novel 22] Chapter 22 - What I Wanted to Hear]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_23|[Web Novel 23] Chapter 23 - Shared Pain]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 2===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_24|[Web Novel 24] Chapter 24 - Egg Gacha]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_25|[Web Novel 25] Chapter 25 - Gift of Life]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_26|[Web Novel 26] Chapter 26 - Filo]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_27|[Web Novel 27] Chapter 27 - Growth]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_28|[Web Novel 28] Chapter 28 - Exit by a Kick ]] [[http://pastebin.com/NuddPzZ0  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_29|[Web Novel 29] Chapter 29 - Those With Wings]] [[http://pastebin.com/zvzDhYEX  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_30|[Web Novel 30] Chapter 30 - Transformation Ability]] [[http://pastebin.com/RKBEUwHq  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_31|[Web Novel 31] Chapter 31 - 飴と鞭 Carrot and Stick]] [[http://pastebin.com/kB1n5bWG  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_32|[Web Novel 32] Chapter 32 - ご褒美 Reward (aka Riverside BBQ)]] [[http://pastebin.com/BRBdJnMS  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_33|[Web Novel 33] Chapter 33 - 行商 Peddling]] [[http://pastebin.com/iqjJ2dX5  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_34|[Web Novel 34] Chapter 34 - 馬車の旅 Journey on Carriage]] [[http://pastebin.com/3YtuVrta  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_35|[Web Novel 35] Chapter 35 - 勇者達の噂 Rumors of Our Hero]] [[http://pastebin.com/1gXK85Zh  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_36|[Web Novel 36] Chapter 36 - 命以外の全てを奪う To Take Everything But Your Life]] [[http://pastebin.com/bBAKPpja  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_37|[Web Novel 37] Chapter 37 - 魔法習得 Magical Study]] [[http://pastebin.com/JjS4VuLQ  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_38|[Web Novel 38] Chapter 38 - 封印された理由 The Reason it is Sealed]] [[http://pastebin.com/251SGJpZ  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_39|[Web Novel 39] Chapter 39 - 侵食植物 Plant Invasion]] [[http://pastebin.com/VKVLsf2d  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_40|[Web Novel 40] Chapter 40 - 品種改良 Selective Breeding]] [[http://pastebin.com/pH9VZP9v  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_41|[Web Novel 41] Chapter 41 - 将軍様…… Shogun-Sama]] [[http://pastebin.com/1qHiHWjS  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_42|[Web Novel 42] Chapter 42 - 疫病の村 The Village of Plague]] [[http://pastebin.com/4SqRZHzS  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_43|[Web Novel 43] Chapter 43 - カースシリーズ Curse Series]] [[http://pastebin.com/jmkfaPy1 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_44|[Web Novel 44] Chapter 44 - 憤怒の盾 Shield of Rage]] [[http://pastebin.com/maLEJtNn PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_45|[Web Novel 45] Chapter 45 - 行商の成果 The Results of Peddling]] [[http://pastebin.com/FxuQnG0E PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_46|[Web Novel 46] Chapter 46 - 蹴り逃げ、再び Exit By A Kick, Again]] [[http://pastebin.com/RV2qA2Td PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 3===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_47|[Web Novel 47] Chapter 47 - ウェルカム Welcome]] [[http://pastebin.com/jp48XpM8  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_48|[Web Novel 48] Chapter 48 - 成りすまし冤罪 Accusations of Identity Fraud]] [[http://pastebin.com/MhnD62cv PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_49|[Web Novel 49] Chapter 49 - 志願者 Volunteers]] [[http://pastebin.com/q8MK24Z5  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_50|[Web Novel 50] Chapter 50 - 嵐の前の Before the Storm]] [[http://pastebin.com/GXMvWepL PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_51|[Web Novel 51] Chapter 51 - 第三の厄災  Third Disaster ]] [[http://pastebin.com/C8k3qEDt PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_52|[Web Novel 52] Chapter 52 - グロウアップ  Grow Up]] [[http://pastebin.com/0zw1pBs5 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_53|[Web Novel 53] Chapter 53 - アイアンメイデン Iron Maiden]] [[http://pastebin.com/CjFLqYSe PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_54|[Web Novel 54] Chapter 54 - 決別 Farewell]] [[http://pastebin.com/vXY028GG PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_55|[Web Novel 55] Chapter 55 - 旅立ち Departure]] [[http://pastebin.com/ThPHwPzH PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_56|[Web Novel 56] Chapter 56 - 盾の悪魔 Shield Demon]] [[http://pastebin.com/GkTSr9wp PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_57|[Web Novel 57] Chapter 57 - 三勇教会 The Church of The Three Heroes]] [[http://pastebin.com/fxg8m967 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_58|[Web Novel 58] Chapter 58 - 指名手配 Wanted]] [[http://pastebin.com/BS5dSDXe PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_59|[Web Novel 59] Chapter 59 - フィーロの秘密 Firo&#039;s Secret]] [[http://pastebin.com/LX5DR78b PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_60|[Web Novel 60] Chapter 60 - 悪魔の所業 Deviltry ]] [[http://pastebin.com/05N8y6HU PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_61|[Web Novel 61] Chapter 61 - 説得 Persuasion]] [[http://pastebin.com/JQ6NKR7n PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_62|[Web Novel 62] Chapter 62 - 運命共同体 Common Destiny ]] [[http://pastebin.com/mB8F3aGe PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_63|[Web Novel 63] Chapter 63 - 影 Shadow]] [[http://pastebin.com/8c8vKrni PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_64|[Web Novel 64] Chapter 64 - 名前 Names]] [[http://pastebin.com/xZ7KSys7 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 4===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_65|[Web Novel 65] Chapter 65 - 伝説の神鳥 Legend of The Divine Bird]] [[http://pastebin.com/e5xAmgdr PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_66|[Web Novel 66] Chapter 66 - アホ毛 - Ahoge ]] [[http://pastebin.com/DybPD9h0 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_67|[Web Novel 67] Chapter 67 - 密林 - Jungle ]] [[http://pastebin.com/5S09eB0a PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_68|[Web Novel 68] Chapter 68 - 盾と槍の戦い - Battle between Spear and Shield]] [[http://pastebin.com/1A9dGgdm PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_69|[Web Novel 69] Chapter 69 - 裁き Judgement]] [[http://pastebin.com/eM507cQA PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_70|[Web Novel 70] Chapter 70 - 教皇 The Pope]] [[http://pastebin.com/ZDe2cXZt PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_71|[Web Novel 71] Chapter 71 - 複製品 - Replica ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-71-of-shieldbro-co-vs-the-pope-part-2/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_72|[Web Novel 72] Chapter 72 - ラースシールド - Wrath Shield]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-72-of-shieldbro-co-vs-the-pope-part-3/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_73|[Web Novel 73] Chapter 73 - 代償 - Price ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-73-of-shieldbro-co-vs-the-pope-part-4/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_74|[Web Novel 74] Chapter 74 - 女王 - The Queen ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-74-of-shieldbrotanukifiroand-melty/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_75|[Web Novel 75] Chapter 75 - 説教 - Sermon]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/27/chapter-75-badass-queen-edition/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_76|[Web Novel 76] Chapter 76 - クズとビッチ - Trash and Bitch]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/27/chapter-76-badass-queen-edition-part-2/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_77|[Web Novel 77] Chapter 77 - 土下座 - Dogeza]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/28/chapter-77-badass-queen-edition-part-3/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_78|[Web Novel 78] Chapter 78 - 契約 - Agreement]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/29/chapter-78-badass-queen-edition-part-4/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Calmira Island Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
At this point, the web and light novels start to diverge quite a bit.&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_79|[Web Novel 79] Chapter 79 - 晩餐 - Dinner]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/29/chapter-79-badass-queen-edition-part-5/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_80|[Web Novel 80] Chapter 80 - 活発化現象 - Invigoration]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/30/chapter-80-badass-queen-edition-part-6/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_81|[Web Novel 81] Chapter 81 - クラスアップ - Class Up]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/30/chapter-81-of-shieldbrotanukifiroand-melty/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_82|[Web Novel 82] Chapter 82 - 墓参り - Grave Visit]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/30/chapter-82-of-shieldbro-tanuki-firo-and-melty/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_83|[Web Novel 83] Chapter 83 - 伝承の魔法 - Magic Lore]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/01/chapter-83-shieldbro-tanuki-and-firo/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_84|[Web Novel 84] Chapter 84 - カルミラ島ジンクス・誕生編 Cal Mira Island Jinx - Origin Story]] [[http://anontranslator.wordpress.com/2014/10/02/tate-no-yuusha-ch-84/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_85|[Web Novel 85] Chapter 85 - 槍の勇者の仲間達 - The Companions of the Spear Hero]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/02/chapter-85-of-shieldbro-no-tanuki-and-firo-edition/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_86|[Web Novel 86] Chapter 86 - 愚痴 - Murmurs]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/03/chapter-86-of-shieldbro-woman-1-and-shadow/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_87|[Web Novel 87] Chapter 87 - 槍の勇者と仲間達 - The Spear Hero &amp;amp; My Companions]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/04/chapter-86-hero-of-the-spears-companions/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_88|[Web Novel 88] Chapter 88 - 直感と分析 - Intuition and Analysis]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/05/chapter-88-intuition-and-analysis/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_89|[Web Novel 89] Chapter 89 - カルミラ島スポーツ誕生 - The Birth of Cal Mira Island Sports]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/06/chapter-89-the-birth-of-cal-mira-island-sports/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_90|[Web Novel 90] Chapter 90 - 人員交換の意義 - The Significance of Personnel Exchange]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/07/chapter-90-the-significance-of-personnel-exchange/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_91|[Web Novel 91] Chapter 91 - 剣の勇者の仲間達 - The Companions of the Sword Hero]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/08/chapter-91-hero-of-the-swords-companions/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_92|[Web Novel 92] Chapter 92 - 剣の勇者と仲間達 - The Sword Hero &amp;amp; My Companions]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/09/chapter-92-being-companions-to-the-hero-of-the-sword// PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_93|[Web Novel 93] Chapter 93 - 酒場 - Tavern]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/10/chapter-93-bar/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_94|[Web Novel 94] Chapter 94 - 弓の勇者の仲間達 - The Companions of the Bow Hero]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/11/chapter-94-being-companions-to-the-hero-of-the-bow/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_95|[Web Novel 95] Chapter 95 - 正義の病 - The Disease of Justice]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/11/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-95/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_96|[Web Novel 96] Chapter 96 - 弓の勇者と仲間達 - The Bow Hero &amp;amp; My Companions]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/12/chapter-96-being-companions-to-the-hero-of-the-bow/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_97|[Web Novel 97] Chapter 97 - 虚言 - Lies]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/12/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-97/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_98|[Web Novel 98] Chapter 98 - 反省会 - Evaluation Session]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/13/chapter-98-evaluation-meeting/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_99|[Web Novel 99] Chapter 99 - カルミラ島ジンクス・流行編 - Karumira Island Jinx - Craze Chapter]] [[http://epithetic.wordpress.com/2014/10/15/shieldbro-99-calmira-island-jinx-craze-chapter/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_100|[Web Novel 100] Chapter 100 - 温泉 Hot Spring]] [[http://pastebin.com/F3umyv3i PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_101|[Web Novel 101] Chapter 101 - 勇者会議【上】 - Hero Conference (Start)]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/13/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-101/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_102|[Web Novel 102] Chapter 102 - 勇者会議【中】 - Hero Conference (Middle)]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/15/chapter-102-hero-conference-during/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_103|[Web Novel 103] Chapter 103 - 勇者会議【下】 - Hero Conference (End)]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/15/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-103/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_104|[Web Novel 104] Chapter 104 - １/４ ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/16/chapter-104-14/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_105|[Web Novel 105] Chapter 105 - ウェポンコピー - Weapon Copy]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/17/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-105/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_106|[Web Novel 106] Chapter 106 - カルミラ島の日々 - Days Spent on Karumira Island]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/18/chapter-106-days-on-cal-mira-island/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_107|[Web Novel 107] Chapter 107 - カルミラ島ジンクス・躍進編 The Karumira Island Revolution]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/18/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-107/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_108|[Web Novel 108] Chapter 108 - 冤罪、再び - False Charges, Again]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/19/chapter-108-false-accusations-again/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_109|[Web Novel 109] Chapter 109 - 解雇の理由 - Reason for Dismissal]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/19/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-109/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_110|[Web Novel 110] Chapter 110 - 幸薄少女 - A Girl Full of Joy ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/19/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-110/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_111|[Web Novel 111] Chapter 111 - 馬鹿にしか見えない王 - A King I Can Only See as an Idiot]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/20/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-111/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_112|[Web Novel 112] Chapter 112 - 倉庫 - Storage]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/21/chapter-112-warehouse/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_113|[Web Novel 113] Chapter 113 - 強くなる方法 - How to Become Stronger]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/21/chapter-113-a-method-on-becoming-stronger/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_114|[Web Novel 114] Chapter 114 - 流星盾 - Meteor Shield]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/21/chapter-114-meteor-shield/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Spirit Turtle Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_115|[Web Novel 115] Chapter 115 - 武器屋の好奇心 Weapon Shop Owner&#039;s Curiosity]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/22/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-115/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_116|[Web Novel 116] Chapter 116 - 青い砂音 - Blue Sand Sound]] [[http://pastebin.com/q0icNhPA PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_117|[Web Novel 117] Chapter 117 - ゲーム知識が牙を剥く時 When Game Knowledge Bares its Fangs ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/23/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-117/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_118|[Web Novel 118] Chapter 118 - ＶＳ霊亀、偵察戦 Versus the Spirit Tortoise, Scout Battle ]][[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/24/chapter-118-vs-spirit-turtle-recon-battle/#more-573 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_119|[Web Novel 119] Chapter 119 - 戦後への対策 Measures to End a Battle ]][[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/24/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-119/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_120|[Web Novel 120] Chapter 120 - 時間稼ぎ - Stalling for Time ]] [[http://pastebin.com/bijd18Ub PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_121|[Web Novel 121] Chapter 121 - 勇者の碑文 - The Inscription of the Heroes ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/25/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-121/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_122|[Web Novel 122] Chapter 122 - 探索 Exploration ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/26/chapter-122-exploration/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_123|[Web Novel 123] Chapter 123 - 青の砂時計 - Blue Hourglass ]][[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/27/chapter-213-blue-hourglass/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_124|[Web Novel 124] Chapter 124 - 霊亀の心臓 - Heart of the Spirit Tortoise ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/28/chapter-124-heart-of-the-spirit-turtle/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_125|[Web Novel 125] Chapter 125 - 可能性 - Possibilities ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/28/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-125/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_126|[Web Novel 126] Chapter 126 - ＶＳ霊亀　最終決戦 - Versus the Spirit Tortoise, The Final Fight]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/29/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-126/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_127|[Web Novel 127] Chapter 127 - 過保護 - Overprotective ]][[http://anontranslator.wordpress.com/2014/10/26/tate-no-yuusha-ch-127/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_128|[Web Novel 128] Chapter 128 - 勇者の処遇 - A Hero&#039;s Treatment ]][[http://pastebin.com/PR1Uu28w/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_129|[Web Novel 129] Chapter 129 - 地位 - Social Standing ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/31/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-129/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_130|[Web Novel 130] Chapter 130 - Ｌｖリセット - Level Reset ]] [[http://pastebin.com/Ykdk9zd2 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Rebuilding Arc and Beyond===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_131|[Web Novel 131] Chapter 131 - 出会った場所 - The Place We Met ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/01/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-131/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_132|[Web Novel 132] Chapter 132 - 知人達 - Acquaintances ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/01/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-132/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_133|[Web Novel 133] Chapter 133 - Ｅフロート - E Float]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/01/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-133/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_134|[Web Novel 134] Chapter 134 - バルーンシールド Balloon Shield ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/02/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-134/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_135|[Web Novel 135] Chapter 135 - 餌付け - Artificial Feeding ]] [[http://thedefend.wordpress.com/2014/11/03/chapter-135-artificial-feeding/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_136|[Web Novel 136] Chapter 136 - 夜食 - Nighttime Meal ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/03/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-136/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_137|[Web Novel 137] Chapter 137 - 海の男女 - People of the Sea ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/03/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-137/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_138|[Web Novel 138] Chapter 138 - 同性のみ可 - Same Sex Only ]] [[http://hatoken.wordpress.com/2014/11/04/chapter-138-same-sex-only/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_139|[Web Novel 139] Chapter 139 - 盾の看板 - Shield Billboard ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/04/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-139/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_140|[Web Novel 140] Chapter 140 - 脱走と発見 - Desertion and Discovery ]] [[http://pastebin.com/kA2Aj85z/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_141|[Web Novel 141] Chapter 141 - 槍の勇者捕獲作戦 - The Plan to Capture Spear Hero ]][[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/04/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-141/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_142|[Web Novel 142] Chapter 142 - ゲームが終わった日 - The Day the Game Ended ]][[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/05/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-142/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_143|[Web Novel 143] Chapter 143 - 魔物問題 - Demon Problem ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/06/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-143/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_144|[Web Novel 144] Chapter 144 - 決断 - Determination ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/07/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-144/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_145|[Web Novel 145] Chapter 145 - 報告 - Report ]] [[http://hatoken.wordpress.com/2014/11/08/chapter-145-report/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_146|[Web Novel 146] Chapter 146 - 獣人 - Beastman ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/08/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-146/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_147|[Web Novel 147] Chapter 147 - 旗、再び - Flag, Again ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/08/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-147/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_148|[Web Novel 148] Chapter 148 - 失敗作 - Failed Crafting]] [[http://ohanashimi.wordpress.com/2014/11/10/hero-of-shield-ch-148-failed-creation/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_149|[Web Novel 149] Chapter 149 - 錬金術師 - Alchemist ]] [[http://ohanashimi.wordpress.com/2014/11/11/hero-of-shield-ch149-alchemist/ PREVIEW ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_150|[Web Novel 150] Chapter 150 - 優遇も差別 Discrimination, Even in Hospitality ]][[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/11/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-150/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_151|[Web Novel 151] Chapter 151 - キャンピングプラント - Camping Plant ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/12/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-151/  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_152|[Web Novel 152] Chapter 152 - 御用 - Official Business ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/13/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-152/  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_153|[Web Novel 153] Chapter 153 - 本当はわかっている事 - An Understanding of the Truth ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_154|[Web Novel 154] Chapter 154 - 自主性 - Independence ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_155|[Web Novel 155] Chapter 155 - ゼルトブル - Zeltbur ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_156|[Web Novel 156] Chapter 156 - 正夢 - Dream Fulfillment ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_157|[Web Novel 157] Chapter 157 - 買い付け - Purchase ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_158|[Web Novel 158] Chapter 158 - 神木の薬 - Medicine of the Sacred Tree]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_159|[Web Novel 159] Chapter 159 - パーフェクト＝ハイド＝ジャスティス - Perfect Hidden Justice ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_160|[Web Novel 160] Chapter 160 - 村へ帰る - Return to the Village ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_161|[Web Novel 161] Chapter 161 - 王女来訪 - Visiting the Princess ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_162|[Web Novel 162] Chapter 162 - フィロリアルとドラゴン - Filorial and Dragon ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_163|[Web Novel 163] Chapter 163 - ヴィッチ - Witch ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_164|[Web Novel 164] Chapter 164 - 投げやり - Negligence ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_165|[Web Novel 165] Chapter 165 - 新たな目覚め - A New Awakening ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_166|[Web Novel 166] Chapter 166 - 孵化 - Hatching ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_167|[Web Novel 167] Chapter 167 - 変幻無双流 - Peerless Transformation ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_168|[Web Novel 168] Chapter 168 - アルプス - Alps]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_169|[Web Novel 169] Chapter 169 - 武器屋の弟子 - Weapon Shop Owner and Apprentice ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_170|[Web Novel 170] Chapter 170 - クズとハクコ - Trash and Hakuko ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_171|[Web Novel 171] Chapter 171 - ポータルシールド - Portable Shield ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_172|[Web Novel 172] Chapter 172 - 修行 - Training]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_173|[Web Novel 173] Chapter 173 - 盾を守る盾 A Shield to Protect Shields ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_174|[Web Novel 174] Chapter 174 - メルティのお仕事 Melty&#039;s Job ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_175|[Web Novel 175] Chapter 175 - ピンポンダッシュ - Bells and Away]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_176|[Web Novel 176] Chapter 176 - ヘタレ - Loser ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_177|[Web Novel 177] Chapter 177 - Ｌｖドレイン　- Level Drain ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_178|[Web Novel 178] Chapter 178 - 戦力把握 - Grasping Forces]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_179|[Web Novel 179] Chapter 179 - 煩悩の塊 - Lump of Desire]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_180|[Web Novel 180] Chapter 180 - 幸運 - Good Fortune]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_181|[Web Novel 181] Chapter 181 - 合唱魔法 - Chorus Magic ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_182|[Web Novel 182] Chapter 182 - ラースドラゴン - Wrath Dragon ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_183|[Web Novel 183] Chapter 183 - 変 - Odd]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_184|[Web Novel 184] Chapter 184 - 浄化 - Purification]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_185|[Web Novel 185] Chapter 185 - ニックネーム - Nickname ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_186|[Web Novel 186] Chapter 186 - 竜の怒り - Dragon&#039;s Anger]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_187|[Web Novel 187] Chapter 187 - 解除 - Release]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_188|[Web Novel 188] Chapter 188 - 敬礼 - Salute]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_189|[Web Novel 189] Chapter 189 - 秘密基地 - Secret Base]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_190|[Web Novel 190] Chapter 190 - 正式依頼 - Formal Request]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_191|[Web Novel 191] Chapter 191 - 大器晩成 - Late Bloomer]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_192|[Web Novel 192] Chapter 192 - 仮面の男 - Masked Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_193|[Web Novel 193] Chapter 193 - 七つの大罪 - Seven Sins]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_194|[Web Novel 194] Chapter 194 - ドラゴンサンクチュアリ- Dragon Sanctuary ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_195|[Web Novel 195] Chapter 195 - 強欲 - Greed]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_196|[Web Novel 196] Chapter 196 - 現実ＶＳ理想 - Reality VS Ideal]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_197|[Web Novel 197] Chapter 197 - 閃光 - Flash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_198|[Web Novel 198] Chapter 198 - 目的 - Purpose]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_199|[Web Novel 199] Chapter 199 - 盾の勇者の朝 _ Morning of Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_200|[Web Novel 200] Chapter 200 - 反省 - Evaluation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_201|[Web Novel 201] Chapter 201 - クズとアトラ - Trash and Atla]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_202|[Web Novel 202] Chapter 202 - 恩赦 - Amnesty]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_203|[Web Novel 203] Chapter 203 - 魔力の流れ - Flow of Magic Power]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_204|[Web Novel 204] Chapter 204 - 龍脈法 - Dragon Leylines]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_205|[Web Novel 205] Chapter 205 - 恋の季節 - Season of Love]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_206|[Web Novel 206] Chapter 206 - フィトリアの依頼 - Fitoria&#039;s Request]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_207|[Web Novel 207] Chapter 207 - レース - Race]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_208|[Web Novel 208] Chapter 208 - ショートカット - Shortcut]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_209|[Web Novel 209] Chapter 209 - 色欲 - Lust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_210|[Web Novel 210] Chapter 210 - 嫉妬 - Envy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_211|[Web Novel 211] Chapter 211 - 仲間割れ - Internal Discord]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_212|[Web Novel 212] Chapter 212 - 愛の狩人 - Love Hunter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_213|[Web Novel 213] Chapter 213 - 仮眠 - Nap]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_214|[Web Novel 214] Chapter 214 - 革命派 - Revolutionaries]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_215|[Web Novel 215] Chapter 215 - 蛮族の鎧＋２ - Barbarian Armor+2]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_216|[Web Novel 216] Chapter 216 - 複合所有権 - Complex Ownership]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_217|[Web Novel 217] Chapter 217 - 盾の勇者の攻略講座 - Shield Hero&#039;s Cheat Course]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_218|[Web Novel 218] Chapter 218 - ふんどし忠犬 - Fundoshi Wearing Loyal Dog]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_219|[Web Novel 219] Chapter 219 - 無双活性 - Peerless Activity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_220|[Web Novel 220] Chapter 220 - 男の娘 - Trap]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_221|[Web Novel 221] Chapter 221 - 解放時間 - Release Time]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_222|[Web Novel 222] Chapter 222 - ゲーム知識 - Game Knowledge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_223|[Web Novel 223] Chapter 223 - 献身願望 - Desire of Devotion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_224|[Web Novel 224] Chapter 224 - 婚約者 - Fiance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_225|[Web Novel 225] Chapter 225 - 行き違い - Disagreement]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_226|[Web Novel 226] Chapter 226 - 異変 - Abnormality]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_227|[Web Novel 227] Chapter 227 - 毒 - Poison]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_228|[Web Novel 228] Chapter 228 - 洗脳 - Brainwash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_229|[Web Novel 229] Chapter 229 - 複数犯 - Multiple Offender]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_230|[Web Novel 230] Chapter 230 - 感染性 - Infectious]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_231|[Web Novel 231] Chapter 231 - 誤算 - Miscalculation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_232|[Web Novel 232] Chapter 232 - 努力 - Effort]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_233|[Web Novel 233] Chapter 233 - 正義の短剣 - Justice Dagger]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_234|[Web Novel 234] Chapter 234 - 集団心理 - Mass Psychology]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_235|[Web Novel 235] Chapter 235 - 残党 - Remnant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_236|[Web Novel 236] Chapter 236 - 盾の魔王 - Demon Lord of Shield]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_237|[Web Novel 237] Chapter 237 - 霊亀甲 Reiki Armor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_238|[Web Novel 238] Chapter 238 - 深追い - Following Deep]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_239|[Web Novel 239] Chapter 239 - 機会 - Opportunity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_240|[Web Novel 240] Chapter 240 - 研究資料 - Research Material]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_241|[Web Novel 241] Chapter 241 - 正義の弓 - Justice Bow]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_242|[Web Novel 242] Chapter 242 - 正義の否定 - Denial of Justice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_243|[Web Novel 243] Chapter 243 - 決闘条件 - Duel Condition]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_244|[Web Novel 244] Chapter 244 - 正義ＶＳ正義 - Justice VS Justice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_245|[Web Novel 245] Chapter 245 - 覚醒 - Awakening]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_246|[Web Novel 246] Chapter 246 - 革命 - Revolution]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_247|[Web Novel 247] Chapter 247 - 城下町爆走事件 - Riot Incident at Castle Town]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_248|[Web Novel 248] Chapter 248 - 旗揚げ - Drafting Army]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_249|[Web Novel 249] Chapter 249 - 完勝 - Complete Victory]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_250|[Web Novel 250] Chapter 250 - 昇進 - Promotion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_251|[Web Novel 251] Chapter 251 - 勇者の血族 - Bloodline of Heroes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_252|[Web Novel 252] Chapter 252 - 命乞い - Begging for live]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_253|[Web Novel 253] Chapter 253 - イエスマン - Yes Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_254|[Web Novel 254] Chapter 254 - Vol.1 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_255|[Web Novel 255] Chapter 255 - スタート地点 - Start Point]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_256|[Web Novel 256] Chapter 256 - 優越感 - Superiority Complex]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_257|[Web Novel 257] Chapter 257 - リベレイション - Liberation ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_258|[Web Novel 258] Chapter 258 - 盾の両面を見よ - Look at Both side of shield]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_259|[Web Novel 259] Chapter 259 - 義賊 - Righteous Thief]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_260|[Web Novel 260] Chapter 260 - 悪化 - Deteriorate]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_261|[Web Novel 261] Chapter 261 - 異能力者 - ESPER]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_262|[Web Novel 262] Chapter 262 - 研究所訪問 - Laboratory Visit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_263|[Web Novel 263] Chapter 263 - 抜き打ちチェック - Surprise Inspection]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_264|[Web Novel 264] Chapter 264 - ファミリア - Familia ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_265|[Web Novel 265] Chapter 265 - 深夜の攻防 - Midnight Battle]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_266|[Web Novel 266] Chapter 266 - 虎男 - Tiger Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_267|[Web Novel 267] Chapter 267 - 一時休戦 - Temporary Truce]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_268|[Web Novel 268] Chapter 268 - 酒 - Liquor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_269|[Web Novel 269] Chapter 269 - 真相は闇の中 - Truth in the Darkness]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_270|[Web Novel 270] Chapter 270 - 豚王 - Pig King]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_271|[Web Novel 271] Chapter 271 - キング - King ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_272|[Web Novel 272] Chapter 272 - 第二回勇者会議【上】 The 2nd Heroes Conference(First Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_273|[Web Novel 273] Chapter 273 - 第二回勇者会議【中】 The 2nd Heroes Conference(Middle Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_274|[Web Novel 274] Chapter 274 - 第二回勇者会議【下】 The 2nd Heroes Conference(Final Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_275|[Web Novel 275] Chapter 275 - 復興祭 - Reconstruction Festival]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_276|[Web Novel 276] Chapter 276 - 競羽 - Wing Competition]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_277|[Web Novel 277] Chapter 277 - 新・七つの大罪 - The New Seven Sins]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_278|[Web Novel 278] Chapter 278 - 遺伝子改造 _ Gene Remodeling]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_279|[Web Novel 279] Chapter 279 - 空中要塞 - Floating Fortress]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_280|[Web Novel 280] Chapter 280 - 人体実験 - Human Body Experiment]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_281|[Web Novel 281] Chapter 281 - 生命倫理 - Life Ethics]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_282|[Web Novel 282] Chapter 282 - バイオカスタム - Bio Custom]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_283|[Web Novel 283] Chapter 283 - 一長一短 - One Long, One Short]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_284|[Web Novel 284] Chapter 284 - 第二塔の攻防 - Battle of Second Tower]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_285|[Web Novel 285] Chapter 285 - 第二世代 - Second Generation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_286|[Web Novel 286] Chapter 286 - 戦況反転 - Battle Situation Reversed]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_287|[Web Novel 287] Chapter 287 - 研究結果 - Research Result]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_288|[Web Novel 288] Chapter 288 - 損害賠償 - Compensation of Damage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_289|[Web Novel 289] Chapter 289 - 期間限定 - Limited-Time Offer]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_290|[Web Novel 290] Chapter 290 - クレープの木 - Crepe Tree]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_291|[Web Novel 291] Chapter 291 - 竜信仰 - Dragon Faith]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_292|[Web Novel 292] Chapter 292 - 新型馬車 - A New Type of Carriage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_293|[Web Novel 293] Chapter 293 - ラフのラフ種 - Raph of Raph Race]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_294|[Web Novel 294] Chapter 294 - 集・壁・玉 - Gather, Wall, Ball]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_295|[Web Novel 295] Chapter 295 - 兄妹喧嘩 - Sibling Fight]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_296|[Web Novel 296] Chapter 296 - 虎々激突 - Tigers Clash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_297|[Web Novel 297] Chapter 297 - 鳳凰の地 - The Land of Houou]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_298|[Web Novel 298] Chapter 298 - 勇者の日記 - Hero Diary]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_299|[Web Novel 299] Chapter 299 - 最後の七星武器 - The Last Seven-Star Weapons]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_300|[Web Novel 300] Chapter 300 - 七星武器 - Seven-Star Weapon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_301|[Web Novel 301] Chapter 301 - 鳳凰戦前夜 - Eve of Houou War]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_302|[Web Novel 302] Chapter 302 - VS鳳凰 VS Houou]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_303|[Web Novel 303] Chapter 303 - 許されざる閃光 - Unforgivable Flash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_304|[Web Novel 304] Chapter 304 - 大き過ぎる代償 - A Price Too Great]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_305|[Web Novel 305] Chapter 305 - 盾になった少女 - The Girl Who Became a Shield]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_306|[Web Novel 306] Chapter 306 - ＶＳ鳳凰　終結 - VS Houou Finale]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_307|[Web Novel 307] Chapter 307 - 葬儀 - Funeral]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_308|[Web Novel 308] Chapter 308 - 麒麟 - Kirin]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_309|[Web Novel 309] Chapter 309 - 迷走 - Off-Course]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_310|[Web Novel 310] Chapter 310 - 銃器 - Firearms]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_311|[Web Novel 311] Chapter 311 - 天才 - Genius]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_312|[Web Novel 312] Chapter 312 - 奪われた力 - Stolen Power]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_313|[Web Novel 313] Chapter 313 - 撤退 - Retreat]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_314|[Web Novel 314] Chapter 314 - 遺言 - Last Will]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_315|[Web Novel 315] Chapter 315 - 精霊 - Spirit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_316|[Web Novel 316] Chapter 316 - 本当の敵 - The Real Enemy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_317|[Web Novel 317] Chapter 317 - 杖の勇者 - The Wand Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_318|[Web Novel 318] Chapter 318 - 作戦会議 - Strategy Meeting]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_319|[Web Novel 319] Chapter 319 - グラマーＶＳロリ - Glamour VS Loli]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_320|[Web Novel 320] Chapter 320 - ラフちゃん - Raph-chan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_321|[Web Novel 321] Chapter 321 - 焼きもち - Jealousy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_322|[Web Novel 322] Chapter 322 - 第八世代 - 8th Generation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_323|[Web Novel 323] Chapter 323 - チェンジ・ラフ - Change-Raph]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_324|[Web Novel 324] Chapter 324 - 英知の賢王 - The Wise King]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_325|[Web Novel 325] Chapter 325 - 挑発 - Provocation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_326|[Web Novel 326] Chapter 326 - Ⅹ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_327|[Web Novel 327] Chapter 327 - よそ見 - Look Away]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_328|[Web Novel 328] Chapter 328 - フェンリルフォース - Fenrir Force]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_329|[Web Novel 329] Chapter 329 - グレイプニルロープ - Gleiphnir Rope]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_330|[Web Novel 330] Chapter 330 - 一般人 - A Common Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_331|[Web Novel 331] Chapter 331 - 最強の七星勇者 - The Strongest of Seven Star Heroes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_332|[Web Novel 332] Chapter 332 - 狐七化け、狸八化け - A Fox Will Fool You Seven Times, but a Racoon Eight Times]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_333|[Web Novel 333] Chapter 333 - 盾の勇者が命ずる - By the Order of Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_334|[Web Novel 334] Chapter 334 - 三分の二 - Two-Thirds]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_335|[Web Novel 335] Chapter 335 - 共闘 - United Front]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_336|[Web Novel 336] Chapter 336 - 八番目 - The 8th]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_337|[Web Novel 337] Chapter 337 - 世界融合 - World Fusion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_338|[Web Novel 338] Chapter 338 - 僭称する者 - The One Who Hid His Title]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_339|[Web Novel 339] Chapter 339 - 強化方法【上】 - Enhancement Method(First Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_340|[Web Novel 340] Chapter 340 - 強化方法【中】 - Enhancement Method(Middle Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_341|[Web Novel 341] Chapter 341 - 強化方法【下】 - Enhancement Method(Final Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_342|[Web Novel 342] Chapter 342 - 異世界交流 - Other-World Exchange  ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_343|[Web Novel 343] Chapter 343 - 処刑 - Execution]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_344|[Web Novel 344] Chapter 344 - ソウルイーター - Soul Eater]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_345|[Web Novel 345] Chapter 345 - 自責の念 - Remorse]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_346|[Web Novel 346] Chapter 346 - 限界突破 - Limit Break]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_347|[Web Novel 347] Chapter 347 - 即位 - Coronation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_348|[Web Novel 348] Chapter 348 - 恋愛相談 - Love Consultation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_349|[Web Novel 349] Chapter 349 - 人生の墓場 - The Graveyard of Life]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_350|[Web Novel 350] Chapter 350 - 理想論 - Idealism]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_351|[Web Novel 351] Chapter 351 - フィロリアルの聖域 - Filorial Sanctuary]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_352|[Web Novel 352] Chapter 352 - 出る杭を打つ - Clearing Stock]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_353|[Web Novel 353] Chapter 353 - チート - Cheat ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_354|[Web Novel 354] Chapter 354 - 真紅に染まる空 - Crimson-Stained Sky]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_355|[Web Novel 355] Chapter 355 - 女神降臨 - Goddess Descent]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_356|[Web Novel 356] Chapter 356 - Ｌｖ上げ - Level Up]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_357|[Web Novel 357] Chapter 357 - 望まぬ帰還 - Undesired Return]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_358|[Web Novel 358] Chapter 358 - 帰宅 - Homecoming]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_359|[Web Novel 359] Chapter 359 - 歯痒さ - Frustration]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_360|[Web Novel 360] Chapter 360 - 選択 - Choice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_361|[Web Novel 361] Chapter 361 - 敵の敵は - An Enemy of the Enemy is... ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_362|[Web Novel 362] Chapter 362 - 不老不死 - Immortality]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_363|[Web Novel 363] Chapter 363 - 全てを守る力 - The Power to Protect Everything]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_364|[Web Novel 364] Chapter 364 - 二年間 - Two Years]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_365|[Web Novel 365] Chapter 365 - ディフェンスリンク - Defense Link ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_366|[Web Novel 366] Chapter 366 - 疑心暗鬼 - Paranoia Makes a Monster Out of Anything]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_367|[Web Novel 367] Chapter 367 - 三号狙い - Aim at the Third One]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_368|[Web Novel 368] Chapter 368 - 脆い所 - Soft-Spot]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_369|[Web Novel 369] Chapter 369 - 決戦前夜 - Eve of Battle]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_370|[Web Novel 370] Chapter 370 - 蛮族の鎧EX - Barbarian Armor EX]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_371|[Web Novel 371] Chapter 371 - 代行者 - Representative]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_372|[Web Novel 372] Chapter 372 - 末路 - End]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_373|[Web Novel 373] Chapter 373 - 一対の力 - Power of Pair]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_374|[Web Novel 374] Chapter 374 - 信頼 - Trust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_375|[Web Novel 375] Chapter 375 - 宴 - Feast]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_376|[Web Novel 376] Chapter 376 - 異世界と現代 - Other-World and Our Own World]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_377|[Web Novel 377] Chapter 377 - ロックバレー勇者伝説 - Rock Valley&#039;s Legend of Heroes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_378|[Web Novel 378] Chapter 378 - 盾の勇者の成り上がり - The Rising Of Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==&#039;&#039;&#039;SIDE STORIES&#039;&#039;&#039;==&lt;br /&gt;
===The Christmas of Shield Hero===&lt;br /&gt;
/*spoiler tales - read at your own interest*/&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_379|[Web Novel 379] Chapter 379 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【１】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[I]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_380|[Web Novel 380] Chapter 380 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【２】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[II]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_381|[Web Novel 381] Chapter 381 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【３】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[III]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_382|[Web Novel 382] Chapter 382 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【４】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[IV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_383|[Web Novel 383] Chapter 383 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【５】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[V]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_384|[Web Novel 384] Chapter 384 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【６】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[VI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_385|[Web Novel 385] Chapter 385 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【終】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[END]]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===The Valentine of Shield Hero===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_386|[Web Novel 386] Chapter 386 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[I]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_387|[Web Novel 387] Chapter 387 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【２】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[II]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_388|[Web Novel 388] Chapter 388 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【３】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[III]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_389|[Web Novel 389] Chapter 389 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【４】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[IV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_390|[Web Novel 390] Chapter 390 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【５】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[V]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_391|[Web Novel 391] Chapter 391 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【６】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[VI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_392|[Web Novel 392] Chapter 392 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【７】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[VII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_393|[Web Novel 393] Chapter 393 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【８】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[VIII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_394|[Web Novel 394] Chapter 394 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【９】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[IX]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_395|[Web Novel 395] Chapter 395 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１０】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[X]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_396|[Web Novel 396] Chapter 396 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１１】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_397|[Web Novel 397] Chapter 397 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１２】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_398|[Web Novel 398] Chapter 398 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１３】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XIII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_399|[Web Novel 399] Chapter 399 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１４】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XIV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_400|[Web Novel 400] Chapter 400 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１５】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_401|[Web Novel 401] Chapter 401 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１６】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XVI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_402|[Web Novel 402] Chapter 402 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【終】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[END]]]&lt;br /&gt;
===The White Day of Shield Hero===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_403|[Web Novel 403] Chapter 403 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【１】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[I]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_404|[Web Novel 404] Chapter 404 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【２】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[II]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_405|[Web Novel 405] Chapter 405 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【３】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[III]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_406|[Web Novel 406] Chapter 406 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【４】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[IV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_407|[Web Novel 407] Chapter 407 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【５】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[V]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_408|[Web Novel 408] Chapter 408 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【６】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[VI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_409|[Web Novel 409] Chapter 409 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【終】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[END]]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==外伝　槍の勇者のやり直し(Side Story - Start Over of The Spear Hero)==&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 1 to 3 - Tutorial Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_410|[Web Novel 410] Chapter 410 - 槍の勇者のやり直し - Start Over of The Spear Hero ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_411|[Web Novel 411] Chapter 411 - クロちゃん - Kuro-chan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_412|[Web Novel 412] Chapter 412 - レベリング - Leveling]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_413|[Web Novel 413] Chapter 413 - 金稼ぎ - Earning Money]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_414|[Web Novel 414] Chapter 414 - 時間遡行 - Time Regression]]&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 4 - Siltvelt Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_415|[Web Novel 415] Chapter 415 - 落とし穴 - Pitfall]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_416|[Web Novel 416] Chapter 416 - 牢獄 - Prison]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_417|[Web Novel 417] Chapter 417 - 老害 - Old Damage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_418|[Web Novel 418] Chapter 418 - エイミング - Aiming]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_419|[Web Novel 419] Chapter 419 - 護衛 - Escort]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_420|[Web Novel 420] Chapter 420 - アブソーブ - Absorb]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_421|[Web Novel 421] Chapter 421 - フィロリアル生産者 - Filorial Producer]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_422|[Web Novel 422] Chapter 422 - 亜人の酒場 - Demi-human&#039;s Tavern]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_423|[Web Novel 423] Chapter 423 - 樽風呂 - Barrel Bath]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_424|[Web Novel 424] Chapter 424 - 名付け親- Godparent ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_425|[Web Novel 425] Chapter 425 - 幻覚 - Illusion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_426|[Web Novel 426] Chapter 426 - キャンプ- Camp ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_427|[Web Novel 427] Chapter 427 - 服作り- Making Clothes ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_428|[Web Novel 428] Chapter 428 - 天使 - Angel]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_429|[Web Novel 429] Chapter 429 - 手腕 - Aptitude]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_430|[Web Novel 430] Chapter 430 - 三着の服 - Three Pieces of Clothes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_431|[Web Novel 431] Chapter 431 - 合流 - Regroup]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_432|[Web Novel 432] Chapter 432 - 覗き - Peeping]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_433|[Web Novel 433] Chapter 433 - 実戦経験 - Battle Experience]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_434|[Web Novel 434] Chapter 434 - 大きなフィロリアル様 - A Huge Filorial-sama]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_435|[Web Novel 435] Chapter 435 - 羽飾り - Feather Ornament]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_436|[Web Novel 436] Chapter 436 - シルトヴェルト - Siltvelt]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_437|[Web Novel 437] Chapter 437 - 運命の相手 - Fated Person]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_438|[Web Novel 438] Chapter 438 - 縁談 - Proposal]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_439|[Web Novel 439] Chapter 439 - 毒 - Poison]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_440|[Web Novel 440] Chapter 440 - ビーストスピア - Beast Spear]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_441|[Web Novel 441] Chapter 441 - 偽者 - Imposter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_442|[Web Novel 442] Chapter 442 - 裏路地にて - In the Back Alley]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_443|[Web Novel 443] Chapter 443 - 襲撃 - Raid]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_444|[Web Novel 444] Chapter 444 - シルドフリーデン - Sildfriden]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_445|[Web Novel 445] Chapter 445 - 鞭の勇者一行 - Whip Hero Party]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_446|[Web Novel 446] Chapter 446 - フラッシュバック - FLashback]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_447|[Web Novel 447] Chapter 447 - 消し炭 - Burned to Charcoal]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_448|[Web Novel 448] Chapter 448 - 不穏 - Unrest]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_449|[Web Novel 449] Chapter 449 - 残党 - Remnant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_450|[Web Novel 450] Chapter 450 - 飛竜 - Flying Dragon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_451|[Web Novel 451] Chapter 451 - 残り香 - Scent]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_452|[Web Novel 452] Chapter 452 - 道化 - Harlequin]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_453|[Web Novel 453] Chapter 453 - 聖戦 - Crusade]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_454|[Web Novel 454] Chapter 454 - 心に刻む - Engrave in Heart]]&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 5 - Melromarc Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_455|[Web Novel 455] Chapter 455 - 安全確保 - Security]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_456|[Web Novel 456] Chapter 456 - 聞き耳 - Listen]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_457|[Web Novel 457] Chapter 457 - 暗殺 - Assassination]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_458|[Web Novel 458] Chapter 458 - ただしイケメンに限る - limited to Handsome]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_459|[Web Novel 459] Chapter 459 - 色 - Color]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_460|[Web Novel 460] Chapter 460 - 証拠 - Evidence]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_461|[Web Novel 461] Chapter 461 - 改竄 - Alter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_462|[Web Novel 462] Chapter 462 - 戦争回避 - War Avoidance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_463|[Web Novel 463] Chapter 463 - 行商計画 - Peddlig Plan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_464|[Web Novel 464] Chapter 464 - 世界を呪わない - To Not Curse the World ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_465|[Web Novel 465] Chapter 465 - 魔物商 - Monster Shop]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_466|[Web Novel 466] Chapter 466 - ブラフ - Bluff]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_467|[Web Novel 467] Chapter 467 - 差異 - Difference]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_468|[Web Novel 468] Chapter 468 - 取り寄せ - In Stock]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_469|[Web Novel 469] Chapter 469 - 勧誘拒否 - Refusing Invitation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_470|[Web Novel 470] Chapter 470 - 商業通行手形 - Commercial Permit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_471|[Web Novel 471] Chapter 471 - 裁縫 - Sewing]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_472|[Web Novel 472] Chapter 472 - 峠 - Ridge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_473|[Web Novel 473] Chapter 473 - フィロリアルの変化 - Filorial&#039;s Change]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_474|[Web Novel 474] Chapter 474 - 馬車作り - Carriage Making]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_475|[Web Novel 475] Chapter 475 - 怠け豚 - Lazy Pig]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_476|[Web Novel 476] Chapter 476 - 秘密裏 - Secret Passage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_477|[Web Novel 477] Chapter 477 - 中学時代の友人 - Middle School period&#039;s Friend]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_478|[Web Novel 478] Chapter 478 - 餅は餅屋 - Mochi in Mochi Store]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_479|[Web Novel 479] Chapter 479 - パンダ獣人 - Panda Beastman]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_480|[Web Novel 480] Chapter 480 - 獣化 - Beast Transformation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_481|[Web Novel 481] Chapter 481 - スイッチ装備調達 - Switch Equipment Supply]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_482|[Web Novel 482] Chapter 482 - 四本 - Four Blades]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_483|[Web Novel 483] Chapter 483 - 過小評価 - Underestimation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_484|[Web Novel 484] Chapter 484 - 赤豚の動向 -Tendecy of Red Pig]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_485|[Web Novel 485] Chapter 485 - 未来への布石 - Preparation for Future]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_486|[Web Novel 486] Chapter 486 - 避難誘導 - Evacuation Guidance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_487|[Web Novel 487] Chapter 487 - 通常攻撃 - Conventional Attack]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_488|[Web Novel 488] Chapter 488 - 矛盾の再来 - Contradiction Return]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_489|[Web Novel 489] Chapter 489 - 盾ＶＳ弓＋α - Shield VS Bow+a]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_490|[Web Novel 490] Chapter 490 - バッドステータス - Bad Status]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_491|[Web Novel 491] Chapter 491 - 不公平 - Unfair]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_492|[Web Novel 492] Chapter 492 - 勇者密会 - Assign Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_493|[Web Novel 493] Chapter 493 - 卵くじ - Egg Lottery]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_494|[Web Novel 494] Chapter 494 - 取引 - Transaction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_495|[Web Novel 495] Chapter 495 - 謝礼 - Reward]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_496|[Web Novel 496] Chapter 496 - 彼は何故笑ったのか？ - Why is he Laughing?]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_497|[Web Novel 497] Chapter 497 - 着飾るパンダ - Dress Up Panda]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_498|[Web Novel 498] Chapter 498 - 種回収 - Seed Recovery]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_499|[Web Novel 499] Chapter 499 - 怠惰の種 - Seed of Laziness]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_500|[Web Novel 500] Chapter 500 - 食料配給 - Food Distribution]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_501|[Web Novel 501] Chapter 501 - 帳簿 - Account Book]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_502|[Web Novel 502] Chapter 502 - 観光地 - Tourist Attraction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_503|[Web Novel 503] Chapter 503 - 主治医の助手 - Physician Assistant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_504|[Web Novel 504] Chapter 504 - 保護 - Protection]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_505|[Web Novel 505] Chapter 505 - ドラゴンの娘 - Daughter of Dragon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_506|[Web Novel 506] Chapter 506 - ドラゴンの眷属 - Dragon&#039;s Kin]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_507|[Web Novel 507] Chapter 507 - 尻尾 - Tail]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_508|[Web Novel 508] Chapter 508 - おしおき - Punishment]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_509|[Web Novel 509] Chapter 509 - 偽の盾の勇者 - Fake Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_510|[Web Novel 510] Chapter 510 - 強欲の都市 - City of Greed]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_511|[Web Novel 511] Chapter 511 - ホットクレープ - Hot Crepe]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_512|[Web Novel 512] Chapter 512 - 鞍 - Saddle]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_513|[Web Novel 513] Chapter 513 - 助手の選択 - Assistant&#039;s Choice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_514|[Web Novel 514] Chapter 514 - 他人の所為 - the Other&#039;s Fault]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_515|[Web Novel 515] Chapter 515 - 彼を知る - He Knows]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_516|[Web Novel 516] Chapter 516 - 継承 - Inheritance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_517|[Web Novel 517] Chapter 517 - 最弱の竜帝 - the Weakest Dragon Emperor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_518|[Web Novel 518] Chapter 518 - 欠片の在り処 - Fragment&#039;s Whereabout]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_519|[Web Novel 519] Chapter 519 - 姫 - Princess]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_520|[Web Novel 520] Chapter 520 - 婚約者 - Fiance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_521|[Web Novel 521] Chapter 521 - 証拠隠滅 - Destruction of Evidence]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_522|[Web Novel 522] Chapter 522 - 善行の結果 - Benevolence Result]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_523|[Web Novel 523] Chapter 523 - 潜伏 - Hiding]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_524|[Web Novel 524] Chapter 524 - フレオンちゃん - Freon-chan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_525|[Web Novel 525] Chapter 525 - メルロマルクの王子 - Melromarc&#039;s Prince]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_526|[Web Novel 526] Chapter 526 - 内乱 - Civil War]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_527|[Web Novel 527] Chapter 527 - 風の如く - Like a Gust of Wind]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_528|[Web Novel 528] Chapter 528 - デジャヴュ - Deja Vu]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_529|[Web Novel 529] Chapter 529 - 煽り - Gust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_530|[Web Novel 530] Chapter 530 - 監禁 - Confinement]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_531|[Web Novel 531] Chapter 531 - 人質 - Hostage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_532|[Web Novel 532] Chapter 532 - 基本値 - Base Value]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_533|[Web Novel 533] Chapter 533 - 待ち伏せ - Ambush]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_534|[Web Novel 534] Chapter 534 - 国境戦 - Border War]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_535|[Web Novel 535] Chapter 535 - 休戦 - Truce]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_536|[Web Novel 536] Chapter 536 - 停戦 - Ceasefire]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_537|[Web Novel 537] Chapter 537 - 玉座 - Throne]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_538|[Web Novel 538] Chapter 538 - 幽閉 - Imprisonment]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_539|[Web Novel 539] Chapter 539 - 架け橋 - Bridge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_540|[Web Novel 540] Chapter 540 - 状況整理 - Sorting Circumstances]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_541|[Web Novel 541] Chapter 541 - 同行者 - Travelling Companion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_542|[Web Novel 542] Chapter 542 - 岩礁の鳥 - Reef Island]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_543|[Web Novel 543] Chapter 543 - 二本目 - the second time]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_544|[Web Novel 544] Chapter 544 - 高校時代の旅行 - The Trip on High School Period]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_545|[Web Novel 545] Chapter 545 - 槍の勇者とメンバー交換 - Member exchange of Spear Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_546|[Web Novel 546] Chapter 546 - 自慢失敗 - Boast Failure]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_547|[Web Novel 547] Chapter 547 - 多くの義務 - Numerous Responsibility]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_548|[Web Novel 548] Chapter 548 - 剣と助手 - Sword and Assistant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_549|[Web Novel 549] Chapter 549 - 邪魔 - Hindrance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_550|[Web Novel 550] Chapter 550 - 得意なゲーム - Game Specialty]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_551|[Web Novel 551] Chapter 551 - 槍の勇者と勇者会議【上】 - Spear Hero&#039;s Heroes Meeting(first part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_552|[Web Novel 552] Chapter 552 - 弓の勇者の反撃 - Bow Hero&#039;s Counter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_553|[Web Novel 553] Chapter 553 - 槍の勇者と勇者会議【中】 - Spear Hero&#039;s Heroes Meeting(middle part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_554|[Web Novel 554] Chapter 554 - 黒幕疑惑 - Suspicion as Mastermind]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_555|[Web Novel 555] Chapter 555 - 槍の勇者の勇者会議【下】 - Spear Hero&#039;s Heroes Meeting(final part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_556|[Web Novel 556] Chapter 556 - 楽園 - Paradise]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_557|[Web Novel 557] Chapter 557 - 星見酒 - Stargaze Liquor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_558|[Web Novel 558] Chapter 558 - 国葬 - National Funeral]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_559|[Web Novel 559] Chapter 559 - 善行の代償 - Benevolence Price]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_560|[Web Novel 560] Chapter 560 - 真逆の方向 - Opposite Direction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_561|[Web Novel 561] Chapter 561 - 7=8 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_562|[Web Novel 562] Chapter 562 - 霊亀の炎 - Reiki&#039;s Flame]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_563|[Web Novel 563] Chapter 563 - 被害報告 - Damage Report]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_564|[Web Novel 564] Chapter 564 - 手の平で転がす - Rolling in Palm]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_565|[Web Novel 565] Chapter 565 - 三度目の罠 - The Third Trap]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_566|[Web Novel 566] Chapter 566 - 水泡に帰す - Return To Foam]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_567|[Web Novel 567] Chapter 567 - 応竜 - Ouryu]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_568|[Web Novel 568] Chapter 568 - 自我の侵食 - Self Erosion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_569|[Web Novel 569] Chapter 569 - 四霊復活 - Resurrection of four spirits]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_570|[Web Novel 570] Chapter 570 - 四霊討伐作戦 - Four Spirits Subjugation Strategy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_571|[Web Novel 571] Chapter 571 - 蒸発 - Evaporate]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_572|[Web Novel 572] Chapter 572 - 分岐する世界 - Branching World]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_573|[Web Novel 573] Chapter 573 - 四霊結界 - Four Spirits Barrier]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_574|[Web Novel 574] Chapter 574 - 槍の勇者の選択 - Choice of Spear Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 6 - Forbrey Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_575|[Web Novel 575] Chapter 575 - 結束への布石 - Preparation for Unity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_576|[Web Novel 576] Chapter 576 - ストーキング - Stalking]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_577|[Web Novel 577] Chapter 577 - 論より証拠 - Evidence than Logic]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_578|[Web Novel 578] Chapter 578 - 未来人 - Man From the Future]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_579|[Web Novel 579] Chapter 579 - 国への不信 - Distrust toward Nation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_580|[Web Novel 580] Chapter 580 - 隠された武器 - Hidden Weapon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_581|[Web Novel 581] Chapter 581 - 三度目の言葉 - The Word for Third Times]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_582|[Web Novel 582] Chapter 582 - 守られた信頼 - Protected Trust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_583|[Web Novel 583] Chapter 583 - 鮮血 - Fresh Blood]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_584|[Web Novel 584] Chapter 584 - 神罰の日-Day of Divine Punishment ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_585|[Web Novel 585] Chapter 585 - ループの無駄遣い ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_586|[Web Novel 586] Chapter 586 - 信仰は残る ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_587|[Web Novel 587] Chapter 587 - 回復＋援護＝？ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_588|[Web Novel 588] Chapter 588 - 幼女か大人 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_589|[Web Novel 589] Chapter 589 - 正しくて間違っている ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_590|[Web Novel 590] Chapter 590 - 赤黒く濁していった ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_591|[Web Novel 591] Chapter 591 - 一人では強くなれない ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_592|[Web Novel 592] Chapter 592 - ファンタジーの不思議 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_593|[Web Novel 593] Chapter 593 - 中二病みたいな台詞 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_594|[Web Novel 594] Chapter 594 - 乗り物酔い ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_595|[Web Novel 595] Chapter 595 - 焼き肉パーティー ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_596|[Web Novel 596] Chapter 596 - 酔い止め ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_597|[Web Novel 597] Chapter 597 - シルトヴェルトの馬車 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_598|[Web Novel 598] Chapter 598 - 手中に収める ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_599|[Web Novel 599] Chapter 599 - 変身願望 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_600|[Web Novel 600] Chapter 600 - 買出し ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_601|[Web Novel 601] Chapter 601 - 料理効果 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_602|[Web Novel 602] Chapter 602 - 未来への恐怖 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_603|[Web Novel 603] Chapter 603 - 外見年齢 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_604|[Web Novel 604] Chapter 604 - 日程 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_605|[Web Novel 605] Chapter 605 - 熟練の腕 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_606|[Web Novel 606] Chapter 606 - 多芸 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_607|[Web Novel 607] Chapter 607 - 身勝手な召喚 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_608|[Web Novel 608] Chapter 608 - 魔王の研究 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_609|[Web Novel 609] Chapter 609 - 戦闘技術考案 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_610|[Web Novel 610] Chapter 610 - 冒険者ギルド ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_611|[Web Novel 611] Chapter 611 - ギルドの権力 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_612|[Web Novel 612] Chapter 612 - 良い証拠、悪い証拠 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_613|[Web Novel 613] Chapter 613 - 犯人がいない証拠 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_614|[Web Novel 614] Chapter 614 - 別の見え方 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_615|[Web Novel 615] Chapter 615 - 陣形 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_616|[Web Novel 616] Chapter 616 - 羊の腸 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_617|[Web Novel 617] Chapter 617 - 三枚目 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_618|[Web Novel 618] Chapter 618 - 今更 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_619|[Web Novel 619] Chapter 619 - しょっぱいネトゲ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_620|[Web Novel 620] Chapter 620 - 血も涙も無い ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_621|[Web Novel 621] Chapter 621 - 誠意 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_622|[Web Novel 622] Chapter 622 - 野次 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_623|[Web Novel 623] Chapter 623 - 巣立ち ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_624|[Web Novel 624] Chapter 624 - 養育費 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_625|[Web Novel 625] Chapter 625 - 弱肉強食 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_626|[Web Novel 626] Chapter 626 - 腐敗した政治 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_627|[Web Novel 627] Chapter 627 - 奴隷狩り ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_628|[Web Novel 628] Chapter 628 - モグラ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_629|[Web Novel 629] Chapter 629 - 長い名前 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Project Staff==&lt;br /&gt;
*Supervisor: [[user:Onizuka-gto|Onizuka-GTO]]&lt;br /&gt;
*Project Manager: [[user:Alpaca|Alpaca]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Translators===&lt;br /&gt;
Active&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Alpaca|Alpaca]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Ren|Ren]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Aperture:Null|Aperture:Null]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Uguu|Uguu]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/ Bakahou]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://anontranslator.wordpress.com/ anontranslator]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/ Yoraikun]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://epithetic.wordpress.com/ Epithetic]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:ShiroiOkami|ShiroiOkami]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Editors===&lt;br /&gt;
Active&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Soraya21|Soraya21]]/[[User:Soaya21|Soaya21]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:BDB|BDB]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Laclongquan|Laclongquan]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Reiji|Reiji]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:DarkeKyuubi|DarkeKyuubi]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:KuroInfinity|KuroInfinity]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://everydaysocloudy.wordpress.com/ EverydaySoCloudy]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Original Web Novel ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Original web published novel can be found here: [http://ncode.syosetu.com/n3009bk/ 盾の勇者の成り上がり]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Series Overview==&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 1 - 334 pages (August 22, 2013) ISBN 978-4840152754&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 2 - 316 pages (October 24, 2013) ISBN 978-4040660496&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 3 - 313 pages (December 21, 2013) ISBN 978-4040661667&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 4 - (February 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040663210&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 5 - (April 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040667188&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 6 - (June 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040667904&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 7 - (September 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040669960&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Light novel (English)]]&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Knight%27s_and_Magic&amp;diff=399802</id>
		<title>Talk:Knight&#039;s and Magic</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Knight%27s_and_Magic&amp;diff=399802"/>
		<updated>2014-11-13T22:29:01Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;Does anyone have a link for the japanese raws by any chance? [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 08:47, 13 November 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Skythewood website has [http://ncode.syosetu.com/n3556o/ this] listed as the web novel link. [[User:Bunnybacon|Bunnybacon]] ([[User talk:Bunnybacon|talk]]) 13:02, 13 November 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I was hoping for LN version, since they are the polished versions of the story. [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 16:29, 13 November 2014 (CST)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Knight%27s_and_Magic&amp;diff=399746</id>
		<title>Talk:Knight&#039;s and Magic</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Knight%27s_and_Magic&amp;diff=399746"/>
		<updated>2014-11-13T14:47:51Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: Created page with &amp;quot;Does anyone have a link for the japanese raws by any chance? ~~~~&amp;quot;&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;Does anyone have a link for the japanese raws by any chance? [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 08:47, 13 November 2014 (CST)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Ore_no_Nounai_Sentakushi_ga,_Gakuen_Love_Come_o_Zenryoku_de_Jama_Shiteiru&amp;diff=398765</id>
		<title>Talk:Ore no Nounai Sentakushi ga, Gakuen Love Come o Zenryoku de Jama Shiteiru</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Ore_no_Nounai_Sentakushi_ga,_Gakuen_Love_Come_o_Zenryoku_de_Jama_Shiteiru&amp;diff=398765"/>
		<updated>2014-11-06T07:43:40Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Status Check */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;== Status Check ==&lt;br /&gt;
So just waiting for edits and approval of this to become a main project now? [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 07:30, 5 November 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Chapter 2 isn&#039;t finished and I currently don&#039;t have an ETA for it sorry. [[User:Talinnilat|Talinnilat]] ([[User talk:Talinnilat|talk]]) 18:13, 5 November 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Btw is this novel still ongoing in Japan? --[[User:BobbyWibowo|BobbyWibowo]] ([[User talk:BobbyWibowo|talk]]) 18:49, 5 November 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
No problem. I&#039;ll wait till your done to start reading. I enjoyed the anime a lot. So I&#039;m curious to how is the novel. ~Just release when your done. [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 01:43, 6 November 2014 (CST)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari&amp;diff=398736</id>
		<title>Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari&amp;diff=398736"/>
		<updated>2014-11-05T22:44:25Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Rebuilding Arc and Beyond */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;{{Status|Active}}&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari / The Rising of the Shield Hero&#039;&#039;&#039; (盾の勇者の成り上がり) is a Japanese web novel written by Aneko Yusagi (アネコユサギ). The web novel was adapted into a Manga drawn by Aiya Kyuu (藍屋球) and published by MF Books. The Light Novel is illustrated by Minami Seira (弥南 せいら) with 7 volumes and ongoing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari series is also available in the following languages:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari (Indonesia)|Bahasa Indonesia (Indonesian)]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari (Italia)|Italia (Italian)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Synopsis==&lt;br /&gt;
Iwatani Naofumi was summoned into a parallel world along with 3 other people to become the world&#039;s Heroes. Each of the heroes were respectively equipped with their own legendary equipment when summoned. Naofumi coincidentally received the Legendary Shield as his weapon. Due to Naofumi&#039;s lack of charisma and experience, he ended up with only a single teammate while others have several. Unfortunately, on his third day Naofumi was betrayed, falsely accused, and robbed by the said teammate. Shunned by everyone from king to peasants, Naofumi&#039;s thoughts were filled with nothing but vengeance and hatred. Thus, his destiny in a parallel World begins...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===[[Tate_no_Yuusha:Registration_page|Registration]]===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Translators are asked to [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Registration_page|register]] beforehand to avoid confusions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Guidelines and Formats===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Format_guideline|General Format/Style Guideline]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Tate_no_Yuusha:Names_and_Terminology|Tate no Yuusha Names and Terminology]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Feedback &amp;amp; Discussion===&lt;br /&gt;
If you like the novel then please give us your [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=15&amp;amp;t=7641 feedback and/or thoughts]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Recent Updates==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{{:Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari: Updates||}}&lt;br /&gt;
Older updates can be found [[Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari: Updates|here]].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Light Novel Information==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The differences between the LN and WN can be found [[Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari:_Recommended_Read|here]].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Covers===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;gallery&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_1_Cover.png|Volume 1&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_2_Cover.jpg|Volume 2&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_3_Cover.jpg|Volume 3&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_4_Cover.jpg|Volume 4&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_5_Cover.jpg|Volume 5&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_6_Cover.jpg|Volume 6&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_7_Cover.jpg|Volume 7&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/gallery&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Illustrations===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Tate_no_Yuusha_ Illustrations| Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Web Novel Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There are differences between the light novel and web novel. The first four volumes follow more or less the progression in the web version, but start to really diverge in the fifth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These translations are based on the web novel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 1===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_1|[Web Novel 1] Chapter 1 - Royal Summoning]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_2|[Web Novel 2] Chapter 2 - Hero Introduction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_3|[Web Novel 3] Chapter 3 - Hero Discussion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_4|[Web Novel 4] Chapter 4 - Specially Arranged Gold]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_5|[Web Novel 5] Chapter 5 - Shield&#039;s Reality ]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_6|[Web Novel 6] Chapter 6 - The Trap &amp;amp; Arts of Betrayal]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_7|[Web Novel 7] Chapter 7 - False Charge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_8|[Web Novel 8] Chapter 8 - Fallen Fame]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_9|[Web Novel 9] Chapter 9 - Something Called a Slave]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_10|[Web Novel 10] Chapter 10 - Kids&#039; Lunch]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_11|[Web Novel 11] Chapter 11 - Slave&#039;s Accomplishments ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_12|[Web Novel 12] Chapter 12 - What&#039;s Yours is Mine]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_13|[Web Novel 13] Chapter 13 - Remedy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_14|[Web Novel 14] Chapter 14 - Taking a Life]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_15|[Web Novel 15] Chapter 15 - Demi-Human&#039;s Traits ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_16|[Web Novel 16] Chapter 16 - Preparations for the Wave]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_17|[Web Novel 17] Chapter 17 - The Barbarian&#039;s Armor ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_18|[Web Novel 18] Chapter 18 - Engraved Dragon Hourglass]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_19|[Web Novel 19] Chapter 19 - Memory/Black Beast]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_20|[Web Novel 20] Chapter 20 - Wave of Calamity ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_21|[Web Novel 21] Chapter 21 - Contradicting Actions]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_22|[Web Novel 22] Chapter 22 - What I Wanted to Hear]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_23|[Web Novel 23] Chapter 23 - Shared Pain]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 2===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_24|[Web Novel 24] Chapter 24 - Egg Gacha]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_25|[Web Novel 25] Chapter 25 - Gift of Life]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_26|[Web Novel 26] Chapter 26 - Filo]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_27|[Web Novel 27] Chapter 27 - Growth]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_28|[Web Novel 28] Chapter 28 - Exit by a Kick ]] [[http://pastebin.com/NuddPzZ0  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_29|[Web Novel 29] Chapter 29 - Those With Wings]] [[http://pastebin.com/zvzDhYEX  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_30|[Web Novel 30] Chapter 30 - Transformation Ability]] [[http://pastebin.com/RKBEUwHq  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_31|[Web Novel 31] Chapter 31 - 飴と鞭 Carrot and Stick]] [[http://pastebin.com/kB1n5bWG  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_32|[Web Novel 32] Chapter 32 - ご褒美 Reward (aka Riverside BBQ)]] [[http://pastebin.com/BRBdJnMS  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_33|[Web Novel 33] Chapter 33 - 行商 Peddling]] [[http://pastebin.com/iqjJ2dX5  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_34|[Web Novel 34] Chapter 34 - 馬車の旅 Journey on Carriage]] [[http://pastebin.com/3YtuVrta  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_35|[Web Novel 35] Chapter 35 - 勇者達の噂 Rumors of Our Hero]] [[http://pastebin.com/1gXK85Zh  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_36|[Web Novel 36] Chapter 36 - 命以外の全てを奪う To Take Everything But Your Life]] [[http://pastebin.com/bBAKPpja  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_37|[Web Novel 37] Chapter 37 - 魔法習得 Magical Study]] [[http://pastebin.com/JjS4VuLQ  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_38|[Web Novel 38] Chapter 38 - 封印された理由 The Reason it is Sealed]] [[http://pastebin.com/251SGJpZ  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_39|[Web Novel 39] Chapter 39 - 侵食植物 Plant Invasion]] [[http://pastebin.com/VKVLsf2d  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_40|[Web Novel 40] Chapter 40 - 品種改良 Selective Breeding]] [[http://pastebin.com/pH9VZP9v  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_41|[Web Novel 41] Chapter 41 - 将軍様…… Shogun-Sama]] [[http://pastebin.com/1qHiHWjS  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_42|[Web Novel 42] Chapter 42 - 疫病の村 The Village of Plague]] [[http://pastebin.com/4SqRZHzS  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_43|[Web Novel 43] Chapter 43 - カースシリーズ Curse Series]] [[http://pastebin.com/jmkfaPy1 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_44|[Web Novel 44] Chapter 44 - 憤怒の盾 Shield of Rage]] [[http://pastebin.com/maLEJtNn PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_45|[Web Novel 45] Chapter 45 - 行商の成果 The Results of Peddling]] [[http://pastebin.com/FxuQnG0E PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_46|[Web Novel 46] Chapter 46 - 蹴り逃げ、再び Exit By A Kick, Again]] [[http://pastebin.com/RV2qA2Td PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 3===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_47|[Web Novel 47] Chapter 47 - ウェルカム Welcome]] [[http://pastebin.com/jp48XpM8  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_48|[Web Novel 48] Chapter 48 - 成りすまし冤罪 Accusations of Identity Fraud]] [[http://pastebin.com/MhnD62cv PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_49|[Web Novel 49] Chapter 49 - 志願者 Volunteers]] [[http://pastebin.com/q8MK24Z5  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_50|[Web Novel 50] Chapter 50 - 嵐の前の Before the Storm]] [[http://pastebin.com/GXMvWepL PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_51|[Web Novel 51] Chapter 51 - 第三の厄災  Third Disaster ]] [[http://pastebin.com/C8k3qEDt PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_52|[Web Novel 52] Chapter 52 - グロウアップ  Grow Up]] [[http://pastebin.com/0zw1pBs5 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_53|[Web Novel 53] Chapter 53 - アイアンメイデン Iron Maiden]] [[http://pastebin.com/CjFLqYSe PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_54|[Web Novel 54] Chapter 54 - 決別 Farewell]] [[http://pastebin.com/vXY028GG PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_55|[Web Novel 55] Chapter 55 - 旅立ち Departure]] [[http://pastebin.com/ThPHwPzH PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_56|[Web Novel 56] Chapter 56 - 盾の悪魔 Shield Demon]] [[http://pastebin.com/GkTSr9wp PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_57|[Web Novel 57] Chapter 57 - 三勇教会 The Church of The Three Heroes]] [[http://pastebin.com/fxg8m967 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_58|[Web Novel 58] Chapter 58 - 指名手配 Wanted]] [[http://pastebin.com/BS5dSDXe PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_59|[Web Novel 59] Chapter 59 - フィーロの秘密 Firo&#039;s Secret]] [[http://pastebin.com/LX5DR78b PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_60|[Web Novel 60] Chapter 60 - 悪魔の所業 Deviltry ]] [[http://pastebin.com/05N8y6HU PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_61|[Web Novel 61] Chapter 61 - 説得 Persuasion]] [[http://pastebin.com/JQ6NKR7n PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_62|[Web Novel 62] Chapter 62 - 運命共同体 Common Destiny ]] [[http://pastebin.com/mB8F3aGe PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_63|[Web Novel 63] Chapter 63 - 影 Shadow]] [[http://pastebin.com/8c8vKrni PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_64|[Web Novel 64] Chapter 64 - 名前 Names]] [[http://pastebin.com/xZ7KSys7 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 4===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_65|[Web Novel 65] Chapter 65 - 伝説の神鳥 Legend of The Divine Bird]] [[http://pastebin.com/e5xAmgdr PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_66|[Web Novel 66] Chapter 66 - アホ毛 - Ahoge ]] [[http://pastebin.com/DybPD9h0 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_67|[Web Novel 67] Chapter 67 - 密林 - Jungle ]] [[http://pastebin.com/5S09eB0a PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_68|[Web Novel 68] Chapter 68 - 盾と槍の戦い - Battle between Spear and Shield]] [[http://pastebin.com/1A9dGgdm PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_69|[Web Novel 69] Chapter 69 - 裁き Judgement]] [[http://pastebin.com/eM507cQA PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_70|[Web Novel 70] Chapter 70 - 教皇 The Pope]] [[http://pastebin.com/ZDe2cXZt PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_71|[Web Novel 71] Chapter 71 - 複製品 - Replica ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-71-of-shieldbro-co-vs-the-pope-part-2/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_72|[Web Novel 72] Chapter 72 - ラースシールド - Wrath Shield]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-72-of-shieldbro-co-vs-the-pope-part-3/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_73|[Web Novel 73] Chapter 73 - 代償 - Price ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-73-of-shieldbro-co-vs-the-pope-part-4/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_74|[Web Novel 74] Chapter 74 - 女王 - The Queen ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-74-of-shieldbrotanukifiroand-melty/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_75|[Web Novel 75] Chapter 75 - 説教 - Sermon]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/27/chapter-75-badass-queen-edition/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_76|[Web Novel 76] Chapter 76 - クズとビッチ - Trash and Bitch]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/27/chapter-76-badass-queen-edition-part-2/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_77|[Web Novel 77] Chapter 77 - 土下座 - Dogeza]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/28/chapter-77-badass-queen-edition-part-3/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_78|[Web Novel 78] Chapter 78 - 契約 - Agreement]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/29/chapter-78-badass-queen-edition-part-4/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Calmira Island Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
At this point, the web and light novels start to diverge quite a bit.&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_79|[Web Novel 79] Chapter 79 - 晩餐 - Dinner]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/29/chapter-79-badass-queen-edition-part-5/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_80|[Web Novel 80] Chapter 80 - 活発化現象 - Invigoration]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/30/chapter-80-badass-queen-edition-part-6/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_81|[Web Novel 81] Chapter 81 - クラスアップ - Class Up]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/30/chapter-81-of-shieldbrotanukifiroand-melty/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_82|[Web Novel 82] Chapter 82 - 墓参り - Grave Visit]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/30/chapter-82-of-shieldbro-tanuki-firo-and-melty/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_83|[Web Novel 83] Chapter 83 - 伝承の魔法 - Magic Lore]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/01/chapter-83-shieldbro-tanuki-and-firo/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_84|[Web Novel 84] Chapter 84 - カルミラ島ジンクス・誕生編 Cal Mira Island Jinx - Origin Story]] [[http://anontranslator.wordpress.com/2014/10/02/tate-no-yuusha-ch-84/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_85|[Web Novel 85] Chapter 85 - 槍の勇者の仲間達 - The Companions of the Spear Hero]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/02/chapter-85-of-shieldbro-no-tanuki-and-firo-edition/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_86|[Web Novel 86] Chapter 86 - 愚痴 - Murmurs]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/03/chapter-86-of-shieldbro-woman-1-and-shadow/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_87|[Web Novel 87] Chapter 87 - 槍の勇者と仲間達 - The Spear Hero &amp;amp; My Companions]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/04/chapter-86-hero-of-the-spears-companions/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_88|[Web Novel 88] Chapter 88 - 直感と分析 - Intuition and Analysis]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/05/chapter-88-intuition-and-analysis/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_89|[Web Novel 89] Chapter 89 - カルミラ島スポーツ誕生 - The Birth of Cal Mira Island Sports]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/06/chapter-89-the-birth-of-cal-mira-island-sports/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_90|[Web Novel 90] Chapter 90 - 人員交換の意義 - The Significance of Personnel Exchange]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/07/chapter-90-the-significance-of-personnel-exchange/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_91|[Web Novel 91] Chapter 91 - 剣の勇者の仲間達 - The Companions of the Sword Hero]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/08/chapter-91-hero-of-the-swords-companions/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_92|[Web Novel 92] Chapter 92 - 剣の勇者と仲間達 - The Sword Hero &amp;amp; My Companions]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/09/chapter-92-being-companions-to-the-hero-of-the-sword// PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_93|[Web Novel 93] Chapter 93 - 酒場 - Tavern]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/10/chapter-93-bar/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_94|[Web Novel 94] Chapter 94 - 弓の勇者の仲間達 - The Companions of the Bow Hero]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/11/chapter-94-being-companions-to-the-hero-of-the-bow/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_95|[Web Novel 95] Chapter 95 - 正義の病 - The Disease of Justice]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/11/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-95/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_96|[Web Novel 96] Chapter 96 - 弓の勇者と仲間達 - The Bow Hero &amp;amp; My Companions]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/12/chapter-96-being-companions-to-the-hero-of-the-bow/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_97|[Web Novel 97] Chapter 97 - 虚言 - Lies]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/12/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-97/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_98|[Web Novel 98] Chapter 98 - 反省会 - Evaluation Session]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/13/chapter-98-evaluation-meeting/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_99|[Web Novel 99] Chapter 99 - カルミラ島ジンクス・流行編 - Karumira Island Jinx - Craze Chapter]] [[http://epithetic.wordpress.com/2014/10/15/shieldbro-99-calmira-island-jinx-craze-chapter/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_100|[Web Novel 100] Chapter 100 - 温泉 Hot Spring]] [[http://pastebin.com/F3umyv3i PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_101|[Web Novel 101] Chapter 101 - 勇者会議【上】 - Hero Conference (Start)]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/13/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-101/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_102|[Web Novel 102] Chapter 102 - 勇者会議【中】 - Hero Conference (Middle)]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/15/chapter-102-hero-conference-during/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_103|[Web Novel 103] Chapter 103 - 勇者会議【下】 - Hero Conference (End)]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/15/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-103/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_104|[Web Novel 104] Chapter 104 - １/４ ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/16/chapter-104-14/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_105|[Web Novel 105] Chapter 105 - ウェポンコピー - Weapon Copy]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/17/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-105/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_106|[Web Novel 106] Chapter 106 - カルミラ島の日々 - Days Spent on Karumira Island]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/18/chapter-106-days-on-cal-mira-island/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_107|[Web Novel 107] Chapter 107 - カルミラ島ジンクス・躍進編 The Karumira Island Revolution]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/18/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-107/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_108|[Web Novel 108] Chapter 108 - 冤罪、再び - False Charges, Again]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/19/chapter-108-false-accusations-again/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_109|[Web Novel 109] Chapter 109 - 解雇の理由 - Reason for Dismissal]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/19/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-109/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_110|[Web Novel 110] Chapter 110 - 幸薄少女 - A Girl Full of Joy ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/19/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-110/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_111|[Web Novel 111] Chapter 111 - 馬鹿にしか見えない王 - A King I Can Only See as an Idiot]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/20/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-111/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_112|[Web Novel 112] Chapter 112 - 倉庫 - Storage]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/21/chapter-112-warehouse/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_113|[Web Novel 113] Chapter 113 - 強くなる方法 - How to Become Stronger]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/21/chapter-113-a-method-on-becoming-stronger/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_114|[Web Novel 114] Chapter 114 - 流星盾 - Meteor Shield]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/21/chapter-114-meteor-shield/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Spirit Turtle Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_115|[Web Novel 115] Chapter 115 - 武器屋の好奇心 Weapon Shop Owner&#039;s Curiosity]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/22/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-115/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_116|[Web Novel 116] Chapter 116 - 青い砂音 - Blue Sand Sound]] [[http://pastebin.com/q0icNhPA PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_117|[Web Novel 117] Chapter 117 - ゲーム知識が牙を剥く時 When Game Knowledge Bares its Fangs ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/23/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-117/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_118|[Web Novel 118] Chapter 118 - ＶＳ霊亀、偵察戦 Versus the Spirit Tortoise, Scout Battle ]][[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/24/chapter-118-vs-spirit-turtle-recon-battle/#more-573 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_119|[Web Novel 119] Chapter 119 - 戦後への対策 Measures to End a Battle ]][[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/24/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-119/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_120|[Web Novel 120] Chapter 120 - 時間稼ぎ - Stalling for Time ]] [[http://pastebin.com/bijd18Ub PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_121|[Web Novel 121] Chapter 121 - 勇者の碑文 - The Inscription of the Heroes ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/25/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-121/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_122|[Web Novel 122] Chapter 122 - 探索 Exploration ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/26/chapter-122-exploration/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_123|[Web Novel 123] Chapter 123 - 青の砂時計 - Blue Hourglass ]][[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/27/chapter-213-blue-hourglass/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_124|[Web Novel 124] Chapter 124 - 霊亀の心臓 - Heart of the Spirit Tortoise ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/28/chapter-124-heart-of-the-spirit-turtle/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_125|[Web Novel 125] Chapter 125 - 可能性 - Possibilities ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/28/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-125/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_126|[Web Novel 126] Chapter 126 - ＶＳ霊亀　最終決戦 - Versus the Spirit Tortoise, The Final Fight]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/29/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-126/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_127|[Web Novel 127] Chapter 127 - 過保護 - Overprotective ]][[http://anontranslator.wordpress.com/2014/10/26/tate-no-yuusha-ch-127/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_128|[Web Novel 128] Chapter 128 - 勇者の処遇 - A Hero&#039;s Treatment ]][[http://pastebin.com/PR1Uu28w/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_129|[Web Novel 129] Chapter 129 - 地位 - Social Standing ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/31/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-129/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_130|[Web Novel 130] Chapter 130 - Ｌｖリセット - Level Reset ]] [[http://pastebin.com/Ykdk9zd2 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Rebuilding Arc and Beyond===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_131|[Web Novel 131] Chapter 131 - 出会った場所 - The Place We Met ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/01/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-131/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_132|[Web Novel 132] Chapter 132 - 知人達 - Acquaintances ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/01/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-132/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_133|[Web Novel 133] Chapter 133 - Ｅフロート - E Float]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/01/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-133/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_134|[Web Novel 134] Chapter 134 - バルーンシールド Balloon Shield ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/02/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-134/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_135|[Web Novel 135] Chapter 135 - 餌付け - Artificial Feeding ]] [[http://thedefend.wordpress.com/2014/11/03/chapter-135-artificial-feeding/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_136|[Web Novel 136] Chapter 136 - 夜食 - Nighttime Meal ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/03/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-136/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_137|[Web Novel 137] Chapter 137 - 海の男女 - People of the Sea ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/03/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-137/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_138|[Web Novel 138] Chapter 138 - 同性のみ可 - Same Sex Only ]] [[http://hatoken.wordpress.com/2014/11/04/chapter-138-same-sex-only/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_139|[Web Novel 139] Chapter 139 - 盾の看板 - Shield Billboard ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/04/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-139/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_140|[Web Novel 140] Chapter 140 - 脱走と発見 - Desertion and Discovery ]] [[http://pastebin.com/kA2Aj85z/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_141|[Web Novel 141] Chapter 141 - 槍の勇者捕獲作戦 - The Plan to Capture Spear Hero ]][[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/04/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-141/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_142|[Web Novel 142] Chapter 142 - ゲームが終わった日 - The Day the Game Ended ]][[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/05/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-142/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_143|[Web Novel 143] Chapter 143 - 魔物問題 - Demon Problem ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_144|[Web Novel 144] Chapter 144 - 決断 - Determination ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_145|[Web Novel 145] Chapter 145 - 報告 - Report ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_146|[Web Novel 146] Chapter 146 - 獣人 - Beastman ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_147|[Web Novel 147] Chapter 147 - 旗、再び - Flag, Again ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_148|[Web Novel 148] Chapter 148 - 失敗作 - Failed Creation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_149|[Web Novel 149] Chapter 149 - 錬金術師 - Alchemist ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_150|[Web Novel 150] Chapter 150 - 優遇も差別 Discrimination Even in Hospitality ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_151|[Web Novel 151] Chapter 151 - キャンピングプラント - Camping Plant ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_152|[Web Novel 152] Chapter 152 - 御用 - Arrest ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_153|[Web Novel 153] Chapter 153 - 本当はわかっている事 - Truthfully Understanding ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_154|[Web Novel 154] Chapter 154 - 自主性 - Independence ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_155|[Web Novel 155] Chapter 155 - ゼルトブル - Zeltbur]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_156|[Web Novel 156] Chapter 156 - 正夢 - Dreams Come True ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_157|[Web Novel 157] Chapter 157 - 買い付け - Purchase ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_158|[Web Novel 158] Chapter 158 - 神木の薬 - Medicine of the Sacred Tree]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_159|[Web Novel 159] Chapter 159 - パーフェクト＝ハイド＝ジャスティス - Perfect Hidden Justice ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_160|[Web Novel 160] Chapter 160 - 村へ帰る - Return to the Village ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_161|[Web Novel 161] Chapter 161 - 王女来訪 - Visiting the Princess ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_162|[Web Novel 162] Chapter 162 - フィロリアルとドラゴン - Filorial and Dragon ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_163|[Web Novel 163] Chapter 163 - ヴィッチ - Witch ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_164|[Web Novel 164] Chapter 164 - 投げやり - Negligence ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_165|[Web Novel 165] Chapter 165 - 新たな目覚め - A New Awakening ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_166|[Web Novel 166] Chapter 166 - 孵化 - Hatching ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_167|[Web Novel 167] Chapter 167 - 変幻無双流 - Peerless Transformation ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_168|[Web Novel 168] Chapter 168 - アルプス - Alps]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_169|[Web Novel 169] Chapter 169 - 武器屋の弟子 - Weapon Shop Owner and Apprentice ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_170|[Web Novel 170] Chapter 170 - クズとハクコ - Trash and Hakuko ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_171|[Web Novel 171] Chapter 171 - ポータルシールド - Portable Shield ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_172|[Web Novel 172] Chapter 172 - 修行 - Training]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_173|[Web Novel 173] Chapter 173 - 盾を守る盾 A Shield to Protect Shields ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_174|[Web Novel 174] Chapter 174 - メルティのお仕事 Melty&#039;s Job ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_175|[Web Novel 175] Chapter 175 - ピンポンダッシュ - Bells and Away]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_176|[Web Novel 176] Chapter 176 - ヘタレ - Loser ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_177|[Web Novel 177] Chapter 177 - Ｌｖドレイン　- Level Drain ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_178|[Web Novel 178] Chapter 178 - 戦力把握 - Grasping Forces]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_179|[Web Novel 179] Chapter 179 - 煩悩の塊 - Lump of Desire]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_180|[Web Novel 180] Chapter 180 - 幸運 - Good Fortune]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_181|[Web Novel 181] Chapter 181 - 合唱魔法 - Chorus Magic ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_182|[Web Novel 182] Chapter 182 - ラースドラゴン - Wrath Dragon ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_183|[Web Novel 183] Chapter 183 - 変 - Odd]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_184|[Web Novel 184] Chapter 184 - 浄化 - Purification]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_185|[Web Novel 185] Chapter 185 - ニックネーム - Nickname ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_186|[Web Novel 186] Chapter 186 - 竜の怒り - Dragon&#039;s Anger]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_187|[Web Novel 187] Chapter 187 - 解除 - Release]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_188|[Web Novel 188] Chapter 188 - 敬礼 - Salute]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_189|[Web Novel 189] Chapter 189 - 秘密基地 - Secret Base]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_190|[Web Novel 190] Chapter 190 - 正式依頼 - Formal Request]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_191|[Web Novel 191] Chapter 191 - 大器晩成 - Late Bloomer]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_192|[Web Novel 192] Chapter 192 - 仮面の男 - Masked Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_193|[Web Novel 193] Chapter 193 - 七つの大罪 - Seven Sins]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_194|[Web Novel 194] Chapter 194 - ドラゴンサンクチュアリ- Dragon Sanctuary ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_195|[Web Novel 195] Chapter 195 - 強欲 - Greed]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_196|[Web Novel 196] Chapter 196 - 現実ＶＳ理想 - Reality VS Ideal]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_197|[Web Novel 197] Chapter 197 - 閃光 - Flash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_198|[Web Novel 198] Chapter 198 - 目的 - Purpose]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_199|[Web Novel 199] Chapter 199 - 盾の勇者の朝 _ Morning of Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_200|[Web Novel 200] Chapter 200 - 反省 - Evaluation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_201|[Web Novel 201] Chapter 201 - クズとアトラ - Trash and Atla]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_202|[Web Novel 202] Chapter 202 - 恩赦 - Amnesty]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_203|[Web Novel 203] Chapter 203 - 魔力の流れ - Flow of Magic Power]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_204|[Web Novel 204] Chapter 204 - 龍脈法 - Dragon Leylines]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_205|[Web Novel 205] Chapter 205 - 恋の季節 - Season of Love]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_206|[Web Novel 206] Chapter 206 - フィトリアの依頼 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_207|[Web Novel 207] Chapter 207 - レース - Race]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_208|[Web Novel 208] Chapter 208 - ショートカット - Shortcut]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_209|[Web Novel 209] Chapter 209 - 色欲 - Lust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_210|[Web Novel 210] Chapter 210 - 嫉妬 - Envy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_211|[Web Novel 211] Chapter 211 - 仲間割れ - Internal Discord]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_212|[Web Novel 212] Chapter 212 - 愛の狩人 - Love Hunter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_213|[Web Novel 213] Chapter 213 - 仮眠 - Nap]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_214|[Web Novel 214] Chapter 214 - 革命派 - Revolutionaries]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_215|[Web Novel 215] Chapter 215 - 蛮族の鎧＋２ - Barbarian Armor+2]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_216|[Web Novel 216] Chapter 216 - 複合所有権 - Complex Ownership]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_217|[Web Novel 217] Chapter 217 - 盾の勇者の攻略講座 - Shield Hero&#039;s Cheat Course]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_218|[Web Novel 218] Chapter 218 - ふんどし忠犬 - Fundoshi Wearing Loyal Dog]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_219|[Web Novel 219] Chapter 219 - 無双活性 - Peerless Activity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_220|[Web Novel 220] Chapter 220 - 男の娘 - Trap]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_221|[Web Novel 221] Chapter 221 - 解放時間 - Release Time]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_222|[Web Novel 222] Chapter 222 - ゲーム知識 - Game Knowledge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_223|[Web Novel 223] Chapter 223 - 献身願望 - Desire of Devotion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_224|[Web Novel 224] Chapter 224 - 婚約者 - Fiance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_225|[Web Novel 225] Chapter 225 - 行き違い - Disagreement]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_226|[Web Novel 226] Chapter 226 - 異変 - Abnormality]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_227|[Web Novel 227] Chapter 227 - 毒 - Poison]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_228|[Web Novel 228] Chapter 228 - 洗脳 - Brainwash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_229|[Web Novel 229] Chapter 229 - 複数犯 - Multiple Offender]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_230|[Web Novel 230] Chapter 230 - 感染性 - Infectious]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_231|[Web Novel 231] Chapter 231 - 誤算 - Miscalculation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_232|[Web Novel 232] Chapter 232 - 努力 - Effort]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_233|[Web Novel 233] Chapter 233 - 正義の短剣 - Justice Dagger]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_234|[Web Novel 234] Chapter 234 - 集団心理 - Mass Psychology]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_235|[Web Novel 235] Chapter 235 - 残党 - Remnant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_236|[Web Novel 236] Chapter 236 - 盾の魔王 - Demon Lord of Shield]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_237|[Web Novel 237] Chapter 237 - 霊亀甲 Reiki Armor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_238|[Web Novel 238] Chapter 238 - 深追い - Following Deep]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_239|[Web Novel 239] Chapter 239 - 機会 - Opportunity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_240|[Web Novel 240] Chapter 240 - 研究資料 - Research Material]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_241|[Web Novel 241] Chapter 241 - 正義の弓 - Justice Bow]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_242|[Web Novel 242] Chapter 242 - 正義の否定 - Denial of Justice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_243|[Web Novel 243] Chapter 243 - 決闘条件 - Duel Condition]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_244|[Web Novel 244] Chapter 244 - 正義ＶＳ正義 - Justice VS Justice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_245|[Web Novel 245] Chapter 245 - 覚醒 - Awakening]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_246|[Web Novel 246] Chapter 246 - 革命 - Revolution]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_247|[Web Novel 247] Chapter 247 - 城下町爆走事件 - Riot Incident at Castle Town]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_248|[Web Novel 248] Chapter 248 - 旗揚げ - Drafting Army]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_249|[Web Novel 249] Chapter 249 - 完勝 - Complete Victory]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_250|[Web Novel 250] Chapter 250 - 昇進 - Promotion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_251|[Web Novel 251] Chapter 251 - 勇者の血族 - Bloodline of Heroes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_252|[Web Novel 252] Chapter 252 - 命乞い - Begging for live]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_253|[Web Novel 253] Chapter 253 - イエスマン - Yes Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_254|[Web Novel 254] Chapter 254 - Vol.1 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_255|[Web Novel 255] Chapter 255 - スタート地点 - Start Point]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_256|[Web Novel 256] Chapter 256 - 優越感 - Superiority Complex]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_257|[Web Novel 257] Chapter 257 - リベレイション - Liberation ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_258|[Web Novel 258] Chapter 258 - 盾の両面を見よ - Look at Both side of shield]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_259|[Web Novel 259] Chapter 259 - 義賊 - Righteous Thief]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_260|[Web Novel 260] Chapter 260 - 悪化 - Deteriorate]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_261|[Web Novel 261] Chapter 261 - 異能力者 - ESPER]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_262|[Web Novel 262] Chapter 262 - 研究所訪問 - Laboratory Visit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_263|[Web Novel 263] Chapter 263 - 抜き打ちチェック - Surprise Inspection]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_264|[Web Novel 264] Chapter 264 - ファミリア - Familia ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_265|[Web Novel 265] Chapter 265 - 深夜の攻防 - Midnight Battle]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_266|[Web Novel 266] Chapter 266 - 虎男 - Tiger Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_267|[Web Novel 267] Chapter 267 - 一時休戦 - Temporary Truce]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_268|[Web Novel 268] Chapter 268 - 酒 - Liquor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_269|[Web Novel 269] Chapter 269 - 真相は闇の中 - Truth in the Darkness]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_270|[Web Novel 270] Chapter 270 - 豚王 - Pig King]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_271|[Web Novel 271] Chapter 271 - キング - King ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_272|[Web Novel 272] Chapter 272 - 第二回勇者会議【上】 The 2nd Heroes Conference(First Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_273|[Web Novel 273] Chapter 273 - 第二回勇者会議【中】 The 2nd Heroes Conference(Middle Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_274|[Web Novel 274] Chapter 274 - 第二回勇者会議【下】 The 2nd Heroes Conference(Final Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_275|[Web Novel 275] Chapter 275 - 復興祭 - Reconstruction Festival]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_276|[Web Novel 276] Chapter 276 - 競羽 - Wing Competition]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_277|[Web Novel 277] Chapter 277 - 新・七つの大罪 - The New Seven Sins]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_278|[Web Novel 278] Chapter 278 - 遺伝子改造 _ Gene Remodeling]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_279|[Web Novel 279] Chapter 279 - 空中要塞 - Floating Fortress]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_280|[Web Novel 280] Chapter 280 - 人体実験 - Human Body Experiment]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_281|[Web Novel 281] Chapter 281 - 生命倫理 - Life Ethics]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_282|[Web Novel 282] Chapter 282 - バイオカスタム - Bio Custom]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_283|[Web Novel 283] Chapter 283 - 一長一短 - One Long, One Short]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_284|[Web Novel 284] Chapter 284 - 第二塔の攻防 - Battle of Second Tower]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_285|[Web Novel 285] Chapter 285 - 第二世代 - Second Generation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_286|[Web Novel 286] Chapter 286 - 戦況反転 - Battle Situation Reversed]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_287|[Web Novel 287] Chapter 287 - 研究結果 - Research Result]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_288|[Web Novel 288] Chapter 288 - 損害賠償 - Compensation of Damage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_289|[Web Novel 289] Chapter 289 - 期間限定 - Limited-Time Offer]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_290|[Web Novel 290] Chapter 290 - クレープの木 - Crepe Tree]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_291|[Web Novel 291] Chapter 291 - 竜信仰 - Dragon Faith]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_292|[Web Novel 292] Chapter 292 - 新型馬車 - A New Type of Carriage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_293|[Web Novel 293] Chapter 293 - ラフのラフ種 - Raph of Raph Race]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_294|[Web Novel 294] Chapter 294 - 集・壁・玉 - Gather, Wall, Ball]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_295|[Web Novel 295] Chapter 295 - 兄妹喧嘩 - Sibling Fight]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_296|[Web Novel 296] Chapter 296 - 虎々激突 - Tigers Clash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_297|[Web Novel 297] Chapter 297 - 鳳凰の地 - The Land of Houou]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_298|[Web Novel 298] Chapter 298 - 勇者の日記 - Hero Diary]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_299|[Web Novel 299] Chapter 299 - 最後の七星武器 - The Last Seven-Star Weapons]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_300|[Web Novel 300] Chapter 300 - 七星武器 - Seven-Star Weapon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_301|[Web Novel 301] Chapter 301 - 鳳凰戦前夜 - Eve of Houou War]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_302|[Web Novel 302] Chapter 302 - VS鳳凰 VS Houou]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_303|[Web Novel 303] Chapter 303 - 許されざる閃光 - Unforgivable Flash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_304|[Web Novel 304] Chapter 304 - 大き過ぎる代償 - A Price Too Great]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_305|[Web Novel 305] Chapter 305 - 盾になった少女 - The Girl Who Became a Shield]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_306|[Web Novel 306] Chapter 306 - ＶＳ鳳凰　終結 - VS Houou Finale]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_307|[Web Novel 307] Chapter 307 - 葬儀 - Funeral]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_308|[Web Novel 308] Chapter 308 - 麒麟 - Kirin]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_309|[Web Novel 309] Chapter 309 - 迷走 - Off-Course]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_310|[Web Novel 310] Chapter 310 - 銃器 - Firearms]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_311|[Web Novel 311] Chapter 311 - 天才 - Genius]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_312|[Web Novel 312] Chapter 312 - 奪われた力 - Stolen Power]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_313|[Web Novel 313] Chapter 313 - 撤退 - Retreat]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_314|[Web Novel 314] Chapter 314 - 遺言 - Last Will]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_315|[Web Novel 315] Chapter 315 - 精霊 - Spirit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_316|[Web Novel 316] Chapter 316 - 本当の敵 - The Real Enemy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_317|[Web Novel 317] Chapter 317 - 杖の勇者 - The Wand Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_318|[Web Novel 318] Chapter 318 - 作戦会議 - Strategy Meeting]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_319|[Web Novel 319] Chapter 319 - グラマーＶＳロリ - Glamour VS Loli]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_320|[Web Novel 320] Chapter 320 - ラフちゃん - Raph-chan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_321|[Web Novel 321] Chapter 321 - 焼きもち - Jealousy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_322|[Web Novel 322] Chapter 322 - 第八世代 - 8th Generation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_323|[Web Novel 323] Chapter 323 - チェンジ・ラフ - Change-Raph]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_324|[Web Novel 324] Chapter 324 - 英知の賢王 - The Wise King]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_325|[Web Novel 325] Chapter 325 - 挑発 - Provocation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_326|[Web Novel 326] Chapter 326 - Ⅹ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_327|[Web Novel 327] Chapter 327 - よそ見 - Look Away]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_328|[Web Novel 328] Chapter 328 - フェンリルフォース - Fenrir Force]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_329|[Web Novel 329] Chapter 329 - グレイプニルロープ - Gleiphnir Rope]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_330|[Web Novel 330] Chapter 330 - 一般人 - A Common Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_331|[Web Novel 331] Chapter 331 - 最強の七星勇者 - The Strongest of Seven Star Heroes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_332|[Web Novel 332] Chapter 332 - 狐七化け、狸八化け - A Fox Will Fool You Seven Times, but a Racoon Eight Times]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_333|[Web Novel 333] Chapter 333 - 盾の勇者が命ずる - By the Order of Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_334|[Web Novel 334] Chapter 334 - 三分の二 - Two-Thirds]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_335|[Web Novel 335] Chapter 335 - 共闘 - United Front]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_336|[Web Novel 336] Chapter 336 - 八番目 - The 8th]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_337|[Web Novel 337] Chapter 337 - 世界融合 - World Fusion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_338|[Web Novel 338] Chapter 338 - 僭称する者 - The One Who Hid His Title]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_339|[Web Novel 339] Chapter 339 - 強化方法【上】 - Enhancement Method(First Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_340|[Web Novel 340] Chapter 340 - 強化方法【中】 - Enhancement Method(Middle Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_341|[Web Novel 341] Chapter 341 - 強化方法【下】 - Enhancement Method(Final Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_342|[Web Novel 342] Chapter 342 - 異世界交流 - Other-World Exchange  ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_343|[Web Novel 343] Chapter 343 - 処刑 - Execution]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_344|[Web Novel 344] Chapter 344 - ソウルイーター - Soul Eater]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_345|[Web Novel 345] Chapter 345 - 自責の念 - Remorse]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_346|[Web Novel 346] Chapter 346 - 限界突破 - Limit Break]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_347|[Web Novel 347] Chapter 347 - 即位 - Coronation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_348|[Web Novel 348] Chapter 348 - 恋愛相談 - Love Consultation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_349|[Web Novel 349] Chapter 349 - 人生の墓場 - The Graveyard of Life]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_350|[Web Novel 350] Chapter 350 - 理想論 - Idealism]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_351|[Web Novel 351] Chapter 351 - フィロリアルの聖域 - Filorial Sanctuary]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_352|[Web Novel 352] Chapter 352 - 出る杭を打つ - Clearing Stock]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_353|[Web Novel 353] Chapter 353 - チート - Cheat ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_354|[Web Novel 354] Chapter 354 - 真紅に染まる空 - Crimson-Stained Sky]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_355|[Web Novel 355] Chapter 355 - 女神降臨 - Goddess Descent]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_356|[Web Novel 356] Chapter 356 - Ｌｖ上げ - Level Up]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_357|[Web Novel 357] Chapter 357 - 望まぬ帰還 - Undesired Return]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_358|[Web Novel 358] Chapter 358 - 帰宅 - Homecoming]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_359|[Web Novel 359] Chapter 359 - 歯痒さ - Frustration]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_360|[Web Novel 360] Chapter 360 - 選択 - Choice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_361|[Web Novel 361] Chapter 361 - 敵の敵は - An Enemy of the Enemy is... ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_362|[Web Novel 362] Chapter 362 - 不老不死 - Immortality]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_363|[Web Novel 363] Chapter 363 - 全てを守る力 - The Power to Protect Everything]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_364|[Web Novel 364] Chapter 364 - 二年間 - Two Years]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_365|[Web Novel 365] Chapter 365 - ディフェンスリンク - Defense Link ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_366|[Web Novel 366] Chapter 366 - 疑心暗鬼 - Paranoia Makes a Monster Out of Anything]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_367|[Web Novel 367] Chapter 367 - 三号狙い - Aim at the Third One]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_368|[Web Novel 368] Chapter 368 - 脆い所 - Soft-Spot]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_369|[Web Novel 369] Chapter 369 - 決戦前夜 - Eve of Battle]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_370|[Web Novel 370] Chapter 370 - 蛮族の鎧EX - Barbarian Armor EX]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_371|[Web Novel 371] Chapter 371 - 代行者 - Representative]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_372|[Web Novel 372] Chapter 372 - 末路 - End]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_373|[Web Novel 373] Chapter 373 - 一対の力 - Power of Pair]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_374|[Web Novel 374] Chapter 374 - 信頼 - Trust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_375|[Web Novel 375] Chapter 375 - 宴 - Feast]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_376|[Web Novel 376] Chapter 376 - 異世界と現代 - Other-World and Our Own World]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_377|[Web Novel 377] Chapter 377 - ロックバレー勇者伝説 - Rock Valley&#039;s Legend of Heroes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_378|[Web Novel 378] Chapter 378 - 盾の勇者の成り上がり - The Rising Of Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==&#039;&#039;&#039;SIDE STORIES&#039;&#039;&#039;==&lt;br /&gt;
===The Christmas of Shield Hero===&lt;br /&gt;
/*spoiler tales - read at your own interest*/&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_379|[Web Novel 379] Chapter 379 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【１】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[I]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_380|[Web Novel 380] Chapter 380 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【２】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[II]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_381|[Web Novel 381] Chapter 381 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【３】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[III]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_382|[Web Novel 382] Chapter 382 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【４】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[IV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_383|[Web Novel 383] Chapter 383 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【５】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[V]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_384|[Web Novel 384] Chapter 384 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【６】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[VI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_385|[Web Novel 385] Chapter 385 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【終】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[END]]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===The Valentine of Shield Hero===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_386|[Web Novel 386] Chapter 386 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[I]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_387|[Web Novel 387] Chapter 387 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【２】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[II]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_388|[Web Novel 388] Chapter 388 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【３】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[III]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_389|[Web Novel 389] Chapter 389 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【４】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[IV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_390|[Web Novel 390] Chapter 390 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【５】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[V]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_391|[Web Novel 391] Chapter 391 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【６】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[VI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_392|[Web Novel 392] Chapter 392 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【７】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[VII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_393|[Web Novel 393] Chapter 393 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【８】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[VIII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_394|[Web Novel 394] Chapter 394 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【９】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[IX]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_395|[Web Novel 395] Chapter 395 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１０】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[X]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_396|[Web Novel 396] Chapter 396 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１１】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_397|[Web Novel 397] Chapter 397 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１２】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_398|[Web Novel 398] Chapter 398 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１３】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XIII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_399|[Web Novel 399] Chapter 399 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１４】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XIV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_400|[Web Novel 400] Chapter 400 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１５】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_401|[Web Novel 401] Chapter 401 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１６】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XVI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_402|[Web Novel 402] Chapter 402 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【終】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[END]]]&lt;br /&gt;
===The White Day of Shield Hero===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_403|[Web Novel 403] Chapter 403 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【１】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[I]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_404|[Web Novel 404] Chapter 404 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【２】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[II]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_405|[Web Novel 405] Chapter 405 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【３】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[III]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_406|[Web Novel 406] Chapter 406 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【４】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[IV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_407|[Web Novel 407] Chapter 407 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【５】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[V]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_408|[Web Novel 408] Chapter 408 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【６】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[VI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_409|[Web Novel 409] Chapter 409 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【終】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[END]]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==外伝　槍の勇者のやり直し(Side Story - Start Over of The Spear Hero)==&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 1 to 3 - Tutorial Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_410|[Web Novel 410] Chapter 410 - 槍の勇者のやり直し - Start Over of The Spear Hero ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_411|[Web Novel 411] Chapter 411 - クロちゃん - Kuro-chan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_412|[Web Novel 412] Chapter 412 - レベリング - Leveling]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_413|[Web Novel 413] Chapter 413 - 金稼ぎ - Earning Money]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_414|[Web Novel 414] Chapter 414 - 時間遡行 - Time Regression]]&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 4 - Siltvelt Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_415|[Web Novel 415] Chapter 415 - 落とし穴 - Pitfall]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_416|[Web Novel 416] Chapter 416 - 牢獄 - Prison]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_417|[Web Novel 417] Chapter 417 - 老害 - Old Damage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_418|[Web Novel 418] Chapter 418 - エイミング - Aiming]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_419|[Web Novel 419] Chapter 419 - 護衛 - Escort]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_420|[Web Novel 420] Chapter 420 - アブソーブ - Absorb]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_421|[Web Novel 421] Chapter 421 - フィロリアル生産者 - Filorial Producer]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_422|[Web Novel 422] Chapter 422 - 亜人の酒場 - Demi-human&#039;s Tavern]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_423|[Web Novel 423] Chapter 423 - 樽風呂 - Barrel Bath]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_424|[Web Novel 424] Chapter 424 - 名付け親- Godparent ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_425|[Web Novel 425] Chapter 425 - 幻覚 - Illusion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_426|[Web Novel 426] Chapter 426 - キャンプ- Camp ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_427|[Web Novel 427] Chapter 427 - 服作り- Making Clothes ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_428|[Web Novel 428] Chapter 428 - 天使 - Angel]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_429|[Web Novel 429] Chapter 429 - 手腕 - Aptitude]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_430|[Web Novel 430] Chapter 430 - 三着の服 - Three Pieces of Clothes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_431|[Web Novel 431] Chapter 431 - 合流 - Regroup]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_432|[Web Novel 432] Chapter 432 - 覗き - Peeping]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_433|[Web Novel 433] Chapter 433 - 実戦経験 - Battle Experience]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_434|[Web Novel 434] Chapter 434 - 大きなフィロリアル様 - A Huge Filorial-sama]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_435|[Web Novel 435] Chapter 435 - 羽飾り - Feather Ornament]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_436|[Web Novel 436] Chapter 436 - シルトヴェルト - Siltvelt]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_437|[Web Novel 437] Chapter 437 - 運命の相手 - Fated Person]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_438|[Web Novel 438] Chapter 438 - 縁談 - Proposal]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_439|[Web Novel 439] Chapter 439 - 毒 - Poison]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_440|[Web Novel 440] Chapter 440 - ビーストスピア - Beast Spear]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_441|[Web Novel 441] Chapter 441 - 偽者 - Imposter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_442|[Web Novel 442] Chapter 442 - 裏路地にて - In the Back Alley]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_443|[Web Novel 443] Chapter 443 - 襲撃 - Raid]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_444|[Web Novel 444] Chapter 444 - シルドフリーデン - Sildfriden]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_445|[Web Novel 445] Chapter 445 - 鞭の勇者一行 - Whip Hero Party]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_446|[Web Novel 446] Chapter 446 - フラッシュバック - FLashback]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_447|[Web Novel 447] Chapter 447 - 消し炭 - Burned to Charcoal]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_448|[Web Novel 448] Chapter 448 - 不穏 - Unrest]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_449|[Web Novel 449] Chapter 449 - 残党 - Remnant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_450|[Web Novel 450] Chapter 450 - 飛竜 - Flying Dragon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_451|[Web Novel 451] Chapter 451 - 残り香 - Scent]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_452|[Web Novel 452] Chapter 452 - 道化 - Harlequin]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_453|[Web Novel 453] Chapter 453 - 聖戦 - Crusade]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_454|[Web Novel 454] Chapter 454 - 心に刻む - Engrave in Heart]]&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 5 - Melromarc Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_455|[Web Novel 455] Chapter 455 - 安全確保 - Security]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_456|[Web Novel 456] Chapter 456 - 聞き耳 - Listen]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_457|[Web Novel 457] Chapter 457 - 暗殺 - Assassination]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_458|[Web Novel 458] Chapter 458 - ただしイケメンに限る - limited to Handsome]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_459|[Web Novel 459] Chapter 459 - 色 - Color]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_460|[Web Novel 460] Chapter 460 - 証拠 - Evidence]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_461|[Web Novel 461] Chapter 461 - 改竄 - Alter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_462|[Web Novel 462] Chapter 462 - 戦争回避 - War Avoidance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_463|[Web Novel 463] Chapter 463 - 行商計画 - Peddlig Plan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_464|[Web Novel 464] Chapter 464 - 世界を呪わない - To Not Curse the World ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_465|[Web Novel 465] Chapter 465 - 魔物商 - Monster Shop]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_466|[Web Novel 466] Chapter 466 - ブラフ - Bluff]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_467|[Web Novel 467] Chapter 467 - 差異 - Difference]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_468|[Web Novel 468] Chapter 468 - 取り寄せ - In Stock]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_469|[Web Novel 469] Chapter 469 - 勧誘拒否 - Refusing Invitation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_470|[Web Novel 470] Chapter 470 - 商業通行手形 - Commercial Permit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_471|[Web Novel 471] Chapter 471 - 裁縫 - Sewing]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_472|[Web Novel 472] Chapter 472 - 峠 - Ridge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_473|[Web Novel 473] Chapter 473 - フィロリアルの変化 - Filorial&#039;s Change]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_474|[Web Novel 474] Chapter 474 - 馬車作り - Carriage Making]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_475|[Web Novel 475] Chapter 475 - 怠け豚 - Lazy Pig]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_476|[Web Novel 476] Chapter 476 - 秘密裏 - Secret Passage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_477|[Web Novel 477] Chapter 477 - 中学時代の友人 - Middle School period&#039;s Friend]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_478|[Web Novel 478] Chapter 478 - 餅は餅屋 - Mochi in Mochi Store]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_479|[Web Novel 479] Chapter 479 - パンダ獣人 - Panda Beastman]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_480|[Web Novel 480] Chapter 480 - 獣化 - Beast Transformation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_481|[Web Novel 481] Chapter 481 - スイッチ装備調達 - Switch Equipment Supply]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_482|[Web Novel 482] Chapter 482 - 四本 - Four Blades]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_483|[Web Novel 483] Chapter 483 - 過小評価 - Underestimation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_484|[Web Novel 484] Chapter 484 - 赤豚の動向 -Tendecy of Red Pig]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_485|[Web Novel 485] Chapter 485 - 未来への布石 - Preparation for Future]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_486|[Web Novel 486] Chapter 486 - 避難誘導 - Evacuation Guidance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_487|[Web Novel 487] Chapter 487 - 通常攻撃 - Conventional Attack]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_488|[Web Novel 488] Chapter 488 - 矛盾の再来 - Contradiction Return]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_489|[Web Novel 489] Chapter 489 - 盾ＶＳ弓＋α - Shield VS Bow+a]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_490|[Web Novel 490] Chapter 490 - バッドステータス - Bad Status]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_491|[Web Novel 491] Chapter 491 - 不公平 - Unfair]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_492|[Web Novel 492] Chapter 492 - 勇者密会 - Assign Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_493|[Web Novel 493] Chapter 493 - 卵くじ - Egg Lottery]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_494|[Web Novel 494] Chapter 494 - 取引 - Transaction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_495|[Web Novel 495] Chapter 495 - 謝礼 - Reward]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_496|[Web Novel 496] Chapter 496 - 彼は何故笑ったのか？ - Why is he Laughing?]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_497|[Web Novel 497] Chapter 497 - 着飾るパンダ - Dress Up Panda]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_498|[Web Novel 498] Chapter 498 - 種回収 - Seed Recovery]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_499|[Web Novel 499] Chapter 499 - 怠惰の種 - Seed of Laziness]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_500|[Web Novel 500] Chapter 500 - 食料配給 - Food Distribution]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_501|[Web Novel 501] Chapter 501 - 帳簿 - Account Book]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_502|[Web Novel 502] Chapter 502 - 観光地 - Tourist Attraction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_503|[Web Novel 503] Chapter 503 - 主治医の助手 - Physician Assistant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_504|[Web Novel 504] Chapter 504 - 保護 - Protection]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_505|[Web Novel 505] Chapter 505 - ドラゴンの娘 - Daughter of Dragon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_506|[Web Novel 506] Chapter 506 - ドラゴンの眷属 - Dragon&#039;s Kin]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_507|[Web Novel 507] Chapter 507 - 尻尾 - Tail]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_508|[Web Novel 508] Chapter 508 - おしおき - Punishment]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_509|[Web Novel 509] Chapter 509 - 偽の盾の勇者 - Fake Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_510|[Web Novel 510] Chapter 510 - 強欲の都市 - City of Greed]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_511|[Web Novel 511] Chapter 511 - ホットクレープ - Hot Crepe]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_512|[Web Novel 512] Chapter 512 - 鞍 - Saddle]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_513|[Web Novel 513] Chapter 513 - 助手の選択 - Assistant&#039;s Choice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_514|[Web Novel 514] Chapter 514 - 他人の所為 - the Other&#039;s Fault]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_515|[Web Novel 515] Chapter 515 - 彼を知る - He Knows]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_516|[Web Novel 516] Chapter 516 - 継承 - Inheritance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_517|[Web Novel 517] Chapter 517 - 最弱の竜帝 - the Weakest Dragon Emperor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_518|[Web Novel 518] Chapter 518 - 欠片の在り処 - Fragment&#039;s Whereabout]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_519|[Web Novel 519] Chapter 519 - 姫 - Princess]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_520|[Web Novel 520] Chapter 520 - 婚約者 - Fiance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_521|[Web Novel 521] Chapter 521 - 証拠隠滅 - Destruction of Evidence]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_522|[Web Novel 522] Chapter 522 - 善行の結果 - Benevolence Result]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_523|[Web Novel 523] Chapter 523 - 潜伏 - Hiding]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_524|[Web Novel 524] Chapter 524 - フレオンちゃん - Freon-chan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_525|[Web Novel 525] Chapter 525 - メルロマルクの王子 - Melromarc&#039;s Prince]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_526|[Web Novel 526] Chapter 526 - 内乱 - Civil War]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_527|[Web Novel 527] Chapter 527 - 風の如く - Like a Gust of Wind]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_528|[Web Novel 528] Chapter 528 - デジャヴュ - Deja Vu]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_529|[Web Novel 529] Chapter 529 - 煽り - Gust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_530|[Web Novel 530] Chapter 530 - 監禁 - Confinement]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_531|[Web Novel 531] Chapter 531 - 人質 - Hostage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_532|[Web Novel 532] Chapter 532 - 基本値 - Base Value]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_533|[Web Novel 533] Chapter 533 - 待ち伏せ - Ambush]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_534|[Web Novel 534] Chapter 534 - 国境戦 - Border War]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_535|[Web Novel 535] Chapter 535 - 休戦 - Truce]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_536|[Web Novel 536] Chapter 536 - 停戦 - Ceasefire]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_537|[Web Novel 537] Chapter 537 - 玉座 - Throne]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_538|[Web Novel 538] Chapter 538 - 幽閉 - Imprisonment]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_539|[Web Novel 539] Chapter 539 - 架け橋 - Bridge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_540|[Web Novel 540] Chapter 540 - 状況整理 - Sorting Circumstances]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_541|[Web Novel 541] Chapter 541 - 同行者 - Travelling Companion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_542|[Web Novel 542] Chapter 542 - 岩礁の鳥 - Reef Island]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_543|[Web Novel 543] Chapter 543 - 二本目 - the second time]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_544|[Web Novel 544] Chapter 544 - 高校時代の旅行 - The Trip on High School Period]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_545|[Web Novel 545] Chapter 545 - 槍の勇者とメンバー交換 - Member exchange of Spear Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_546|[Web Novel 546] Chapter 546 - 自慢失敗 - Boast Failure]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_547|[Web Novel 547] Chapter 547 - 多くの義務 - Numerous Responsibility]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_548|[Web Novel 548] Chapter 548 - 剣と助手 - Sword and Assistant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_549|[Web Novel 549] Chapter 549 - 邪魔 - Hindrance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_550|[Web Novel 550] Chapter 550 - 得意なゲーム - Game Specialty]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_551|[Web Novel 551] Chapter 551 - 槍の勇者と勇者会議【上】 - Spear Hero&#039;s Heroes Meeting(first part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_552|[Web Novel 552] Chapter 552 - 弓の勇者の反撃 - Bow Hero&#039;s Counter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_553|[Web Novel 553] Chapter 553 - 槍の勇者と勇者会議【中】 - Spear Hero&#039;s Heroes Meeting(middle part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_554|[Web Novel 554] Chapter 554 - 黒幕疑惑 - Suspicion as Mastermind]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_555|[Web Novel 555] Chapter 555 - 槍の勇者の勇者会議【下】 - Spear Hero&#039;s Heroes Meeting(final part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_556|[Web Novel 556] Chapter 556 - 楽園 - Paradise]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_557|[Web Novel 557] Chapter 557 - 星見酒 - Stargaze Liquor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_558|[Web Novel 558] Chapter 558 - 国葬 - National Funeral]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_559|[Web Novel 559] Chapter 559 - 善行の代償 - Benevolence Price]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_560|[Web Novel 560] Chapter 560 - 真逆の方向 - Opposite Direction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_561|[Web Novel 561] Chapter 561 - 7=8 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_562|[Web Novel 562] Chapter 562 - 霊亀の炎 - Reiki&#039;s Flame]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_563|[Web Novel 563] Chapter 563 - 被害報告 - Damage Report]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_564|[Web Novel 564] Chapter 564 - 手の平で転がす - Rolling in Palm]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_565|[Web Novel 565] Chapter 565 - 三度目の罠 - The Third Trap]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_566|[Web Novel 566] Chapter 566 - 水泡に帰す - Return To Foam]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_567|[Web Novel 567] Chapter 567 - 応竜 - Ouryu]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_568|[Web Novel 568] Chapter 568 - 自我の侵食 - Self Erosion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_569|[Web Novel 569] Chapter 569 - 四霊復活 - Resurrection of four spirits]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_570|[Web Novel 570] Chapter 570 - 四霊討伐作戦 - Four Spirits Subjugation Strategy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_571|[Web Novel 571] Chapter 571 - 蒸発 - Evaporate]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_572|[Web Novel 572] Chapter 572 - 分岐する世界 - Branching World]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_573|[Web Novel 573] Chapter 573 - 四霊結界 - Four Spirits Barrier]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_574|[Web Novel 574] Chapter 574 - 槍の勇者の選択 - Choice of Spear Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 6 - Forbrey Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_575|[Web Novel 575] Chapter 575 - 結束への布石 - Preparation for Unity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_576|[Web Novel 576] Chapter 576 - ストーキング - Stalking]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_577|[Web Novel 577] Chapter 577 - 論より証拠 - Evidence than Logic]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_578|[Web Novel 578] Chapter 578 - 未来人 - Man From the Future]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_579|[Web Novel 579] Chapter 579 - 国への不信 - Distrust toward Nation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_580|[Web Novel 580] Chapter 580 - 隠された武器 - Hidden Weapon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_581|[Web Novel 581] Chapter 581 - 三度目の言葉 - The Word for Third Times]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_582|[Web Novel 582] Chapter 582 - 守られた信頼 - Protected Trust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_583|[Web Novel 583] Chapter 583 - 鮮血 - Fresh Blood]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_584|[Web Novel 584] Chapter 584 - 神罰の日-Day of Divine Punishment ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_585|[Web Novel 585] Chapter 585 - ループの無駄遣い ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_586|[Web Novel 586] Chapter 586 - 信仰は残る ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_587|[Web Novel 587] Chapter 587 - 回復＋援護＝？ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_588|[Web Novel 588] Chapter 588 - 幼女か大人 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_589|[Web Novel 589] Chapter 589 - 正しくて間違っている ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_590|[Web Novel 590] Chapter 590 - 赤黒く濁していった ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_591|[Web Novel 591] Chapter 591 - 一人では強くなれない ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_592|[Web Novel 592] Chapter 592 - ファンタジーの不思議 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_593|[Web Novel 593] Chapter 593 - 中二病みたいな台詞 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_594|[Web Novel 594] Chapter 594 - 乗り物酔い ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_595|[Web Novel 595] Chapter 595 - 焼き肉パーティー ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_596|[Web Novel 596] Chapter 596 - 酔い止め ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_597|[Web Novel 597] Chapter 597 - シルトヴェルトの馬車 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_598|[Web Novel 598] Chapter 598 - 手中に収める ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_599|[Web Novel 599] Chapter 599 - 変身願望 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_600|[Web Novel 600] Chapter 600 - 買出し ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_601|[Web Novel 601] Chapter 601 - 料理効果 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_602|[Web Novel 602] Chapter 602 - 未来への恐怖 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_603|[Web Novel 603] Chapter 603 - 外見年齢 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_604|[Web Novel 604] Chapter 604 - 日程 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_605|[Web Novel 605] Chapter 605 - 熟練の腕 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_606|[Web Novel 606] Chapter 606 - 多芸 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_607|[Web Novel 607] Chapter 607 - 身勝手な召喚 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_608|[Web Novel 608] Chapter 608 - 魔王の研究 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_609|[Web Novel 609] Chapter 609 - 戦闘技術考案 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_610|[Web Novel 610] Chapter 610 - 冒険者ギルド ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_611|[Web Novel 611] Chapter 611 - ギルドの権力 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_612|[Web Novel 612] Chapter 612 - 良い証拠、悪い証拠 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_613|[Web Novel 613] Chapter 613 - 犯人がいない証拠 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_614|[Web Novel 614] Chapter 614 - 別の見え方 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_615|[Web Novel 615] Chapter 615 - 陣形 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_616|[Web Novel 616] Chapter 616 - 羊の腸 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_617|[Web Novel 617] Chapter 617 - 三枚目 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_618|[Web Novel 618] Chapter 618 - 今更 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_619|[Web Novel 619] Chapter 619 - しょっぱいネトゲ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_620|[Web Novel 620] Chapter 620 - 血も涙も無い ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_621|[Web Novel 621] Chapter 621 - 誠意 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_622|[Web Novel 622] Chapter 622 - 野次 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_623|[Web Novel 623] Chapter 623 - 巣立ち ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_624|[Web Novel 624] Chapter 624 - 養育費 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_625|[Web Novel 625] Chapter 625 - 弱肉強食 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_626|[Web Novel 626] Chapter 626 - 腐敗した政治 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_627|[Web Novel 627] Chapter 627 - 奴隷狩り ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_628|[Web Novel 628] Chapter 628 - モグラ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_629|[Web Novel 629] Chapter 629 - 長い名前 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Project Staff==&lt;br /&gt;
*Supervisor: [[user:Onizuka-gto|Onizuka-GTO]]&lt;br /&gt;
*Project Manager: [[user:Alpaca|Alpaca]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Translators===&lt;br /&gt;
Active&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Alpaca|Alpaca]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Ren|Ren]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Aperture:Null|Aperture:Null]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Uguu|Uguu]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/ Bakahou]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://anontranslator.wordpress.com/ anontranslator]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/ Yoraikun]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://epithetic.wordpress.com/ Epithetic]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:ShiroiOkami|ShiroiOkami]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Editors===&lt;br /&gt;
Active&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Soraya21|Soraya21]]/[[User:Soaya21|Soaya21]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:BDB|BDB]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Laclongquan|Laclongquan]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Reiji|Reiji]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:DarkeKyuubi|DarkeKyuubi]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:KuroInfinity|KuroInfinity]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://everydaysocloudy.wordpress.com/ EverydaySoCloudy]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Original Web Novel ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Original web published novel can be found here: [http://ncode.syosetu.com/n3009bk/ 盾の勇者の成り上がり]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Series Overview==&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 1 - 334 pages (August 22, 2013) ISBN 978-4840152754&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 2 - 316 pages (October 24, 2013) ISBN 978-4040660496&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 3 - 313 pages (December 21, 2013) ISBN 978-4040661667&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 4 - (February 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040663210&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 5 - (April 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040667188&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 6 - (June 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040667904&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 7 - (September 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040669960&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Light novel (English)]]&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Ore_no_Nounai_Sentakushi_ga,_Gakuen_Love_Come_o_Zenryoku_de_Jama_Shiteiru&amp;diff=398700</id>
		<title>Talk:Ore no Nounai Sentakushi ga, Gakuen Love Come o Zenryoku de Jama Shiteiru</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Ore_no_Nounai_Sentakushi_ga,_Gakuen_Love_Come_o_Zenryoku_de_Jama_Shiteiru&amp;diff=398700"/>
		<updated>2014-11-05T13:30:27Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: Created page with &amp;quot;== Status Check ==  So just waiting for edits and approval of this to become a main project now? ~~~~&amp;quot;&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;== Status Check ==&lt;br /&gt;
 So just waiting for edits and approval of this to become a main project now? [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 07:30, 5 November 2014 (CST)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari&amp;diff=398608</id>
		<title>Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari&amp;diff=398608"/>
		<updated>2014-11-04T20:25:39Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Calmira Island Arc and Beyond */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;{{Status|Active}}&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari / The Rising of the Shield Hero&#039;&#039;&#039; (盾の勇者の成り上がり) is a Japanese web novel written by Aneko Yusagi (アネコユサギ). The web novel was adapted into a Manga drawn by Aiya Kyuu (藍屋球) and published by MF Books. The Light Novel is illustrated by Minami Seira (弥南 せいら) with 7 volumes and ongoing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari series is also available in the following languages:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari (Indonesia)|Bahasa Indonesia (Indonesian)]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari (Italia)|Italia (Italian)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Synopsis==&lt;br /&gt;
Iwatani Naofumi was summoned into a parallel world along with 3 other people to become the world&#039;s Heroes. Each of the heroes were respectively equipped with their own legendary equipment when summoned. Naofumi coincidentally received the Legendary Shield as his weapon. Due to Naofumi&#039;s lack of charisma and experience, he ended up with only a single teammate while others have several. Unfortunately, on his third day Naofumi was betrayed, falsely accused, and robbed by the said teammate. Shunned by everyone from king to peasants, Naofumi&#039;s thoughts were filled with nothing but vengeance and hatred. Thus, his destiny in a parallel World begins...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===[[Tate_no_Yuusha:Registration_page|Registration]]===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Translators are asked to [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Registration_page|register]] beforehand to avoid confusions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Guidelines and Formats===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Format_guideline|General Format/Style Guideline]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Tate_no_Yuusha:Names_and_Terminology|Tate no Yuusha Names and Terminology]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Feedback &amp;amp; Discussion===&lt;br /&gt;
If you like the novel then please give us your [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=15&amp;amp;t=7641 feedback and/or thoughts]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Recent Updates==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{{:Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari: Updates||}}&lt;br /&gt;
Older updates can be found [[Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari: Updates|here]].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Light Novel Information==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The differences between the LN and WN can be found [[Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari:_Recommended_Read|here]].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Covers===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;gallery&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_1_Cover.png|Volume 1&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_2_Cover.jpg|Volume 2&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_3_Cover.jpg|Volume 3&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_4_Cover.jpg|Volume 4&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_5_Cover.jpg|Volume 5&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_6_Cover.jpg|Volume 6&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_7_Cover.jpg|Volume 7&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/gallery&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Illustrations===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Tate_no_Yuusha_ Illustrations| Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Web Novel Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There are differences between the light novel and web novel. The first four volumes follow more or less the progression in the web version, but start to really diverge in the fifth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These translations are based on the web novel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 1===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_1|[Web Novel 1] Chapter 1 - Royal Summoning]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_2|[Web Novel 2] Chapter 2 - Hero Introduction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_3|[Web Novel 3] Chapter 3 - Hero Discussion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_4|[Web Novel 4] Chapter 4 - Specially Arranged Gold]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_5|[Web Novel 5] Chapter 5 - Shield&#039;s Reality ]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_6|[Web Novel 6] Chapter 6 - The Trap &amp;amp; Arts of Betrayal]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_7|[Web Novel 7] Chapter 7 - False Charge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_8|[Web Novel 8] Chapter 8 - Fallen Fame]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_9|[Web Novel 9] Chapter 9 - Something Called a Slave]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_10|[Web Novel 10] Chapter 10 - Kids&#039; Lunch]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_11|[Web Novel 11] Chapter 11 - Slave&#039;s Accomplishments ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_12|[Web Novel 12] Chapter 12 - What&#039;s Yours is Mine]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_13|[Web Novel 13] Chapter 13 - Remedy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_14|[Web Novel 14] Chapter 14 - Taking a Life]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_15|[Web Novel 15] Chapter 15 - Demi-Human&#039;s Traits ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_16|[Web Novel 16] Chapter 16 - Preparations for the Wave]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_17|[Web Novel 17] Chapter 17 - The Barbarian&#039;s Armor ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_18|[Web Novel 18] Chapter 18 - Engraved Dragon Hourglass]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_19|[Web Novel 19] Chapter 19 - Memory/Black Beast]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_20|[Web Novel 20] Chapter 20 - Wave of Calamity ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_21|[Web Novel 21] Chapter 21 - Contradicting Actions]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_22|[Web Novel 22] Chapter 22 - What I Wanted to Hear]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_23|[Web Novel 23] Chapter 23 - Shared Pain]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 2===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_24|[Web Novel 24] Chapter 24 - Egg Gacha]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_25|[Web Novel 25] Chapter 25 - Gift of Life]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_26|[Web Novel 26] Chapter 26 - Filo]] [[http://pastebin.com/Pmmdvy9a  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_27|[Web Novel 27] Chapter 27 - Growth]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_28|[Web Novel 28] Chapter 28 - Exit by a Kick ]] [[http://pastebin.com/NuddPzZ0  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_29|[Web Novel 29] Chapter 29 - Those With Wings]] [[http://pastebin.com/zvzDhYEX  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_30|[Web Novel 30] Chapter 30 - Transformation Ability]] [[http://pastebin.com/RKBEUwHq  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_31|[Web Novel 31] Chapter 31 - 飴と鞭 Carrot and Stick]] [[http://pastebin.com/kB1n5bWG  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_32|[Web Novel 32] Chapter 32 - ご褒美 Reward (aka Riverside BBQ)]] [[http://pastebin.com/BRBdJnMS  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_33|[Web Novel 33] Chapter 33 - 行商 Peddling]] [[http://pastebin.com/iqjJ2dX5  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_34|[Web Novel 34] Chapter 34 - 馬車の旅 Journey on Carriage]] [[http://pastebin.com/3YtuVrta  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_35|[Web Novel 35] Chapter 35 - 勇者達の噂 Rumors of Our Hero]] [[http://pastebin.com/1gXK85Zh  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_36|[Web Novel 36] Chapter 36 - 命以外の全てを奪う To Take Everything But Your Life]] [[http://pastebin.com/bBAKPpja  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_37|[Web Novel 37] Chapter 37 - 魔法習得 Magical Study]] [[http://pastebin.com/JjS4VuLQ  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_38|[Web Novel 38] Chapter 38 - 封印された理由 The Reason it is Sealed]] [[http://pastebin.com/251SGJpZ  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_39|[Web Novel 39] Chapter 39 - 侵食植物 Plant Invasion]] [[http://pastebin.com/VKVLsf2d  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_40|[Web Novel 40] Chapter 40 - 品種改良 Selective Breeding]] [[http://pastebin.com/pH9VZP9v  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_41|[Web Novel 41] Chapter 41 - 将軍様…… Shogun-Sama]] [[http://pastebin.com/1qHiHWjS  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_42|[Web Novel 42] Chapter 42 - 疫病の村 The Village of Plague]] [[http://pastebin.com/4SqRZHzS  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_43|[Web Novel 43] Chapter 43 - カースシリーズ Curse Series]] [[http://pastebin.com/jmkfaPy1 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_44|[Web Novel 44] Chapter 44 - 憤怒の盾 Shield of Rage]] [[http://pastebin.com/maLEJtNn PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_45|[Web Novel 45] Chapter 45 - 行商の成果 The Results of Peddling]] [[http://pastebin.com/FxuQnG0E PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_46|[Web Novel 46] Chapter 46 - 蹴り逃げ、再び Exit By A Kick, Again]] [[http://pastebin.com/RV2qA2Td PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 3===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_47|[Web Novel 47] Chapter 47 - ウェルカム Welcome]] [[http://pastebin.com/jp48XpM8  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_48|[Web Novel 48] Chapter 48 - 成りすまし冤罪 Accusations of Identity Fraud]] [[http://pastebin.com/MhnD62cv PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_49|[Web Novel 49] Chapter 49 - 志願者 Volunteers]] [[http://pastebin.com/q8MK24Z5  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_50|[Web Novel 50] Chapter 50 - 嵐の前の Before the Storm]] [[http://pastebin.com/GXMvWepL PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_51|[Web Novel 51] Chapter 51 - 第三の厄災  Third Disaster ]] [[http://pastebin.com/C8k3qEDt PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_52|[Web Novel 52] Chapter 52 - グロウアップ  Grow Up]] [[http://pastebin.com/0zw1pBs5 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_53|[Web Novel 53] Chapter 53 - アイアンメイデン Iron Maiden]] [[http://pastebin.com/CjFLqYSe PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_54|[Web Novel 54] Chapter 54 - 決別 Farewell]] [[http://pastebin.com/vXY028GG PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_55|[Web Novel 55] Chapter 55 - 旅立ち Departure]] [[http://pastebin.com/ThPHwPzH PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_56|[Web Novel 56] Chapter 56 - 盾の悪魔 Shield Demon]] [[http://pastebin.com/GkTSr9wp PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_57|[Web Novel 57] Chapter 57 - 三勇教会 The Church of The Three Heroes]] [[http://pastebin.com/fxg8m967 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_58|[Web Novel 58] Chapter 58 - 指名手配 Wanted]] [[http://pastebin.com/BS5dSDXe PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_59|[Web Novel 59] Chapter 59 - フィーロの秘密 Firo&#039;s Secret]] [[http://pastebin.com/LX5DR78b PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_60|[Web Novel 60] Chapter 60 - 悪魔の所業 Deviltry ]] [[http://pastebin.com/05N8y6HU PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_61|[Web Novel 61] Chapter 61 - 説得 Persuasion]] [[http://pastebin.com/JQ6NKR7n PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_62|[Web Novel 62] Chapter 62 - 運命共同体 Common Destiny ]] [[http://pastebin.com/mB8F3aGe PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_63|[Web Novel 63] Chapter 63 - 影 Shadow]] [[http://pastebin.com/8c8vKrni PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_64|[Web Novel 64] Chapter 64 - 名前 Names]] [[http://pastebin.com/xZ7KSys7 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 4===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_65|[Web Novel 65] Chapter 65 - 伝説の神鳥 Legend of The Divine Bird]] [[http://pastebin.com/e5xAmgdr PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_66|[Web Novel 66] Chapter 66 - アホ毛 - Ahoge ]] [[http://pastebin.com/DybPD9h0 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_67|[Web Novel 67] Chapter 67 - 密林 - Jungle ]] [[http://pastebin.com/5S09eB0a PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_68|[Web Novel 68] Chapter 68 - 盾と槍の戦い - Battle between Spear and Shield]] [[http://pastebin.com/1A9dGgdm PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_69|[Web Novel 69] Chapter 69 - 裁き Judgement]] [[http://pastebin.com/eM507cQA PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_70|[Web Novel 70] Chapter 70 - 教皇 The Pope]] [[http://pastebin.com/ZDe2cXZt PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_71|[Web Novel 71] Chapter 71 - 複製品 - Replica ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-71-of-shieldbro-co-vs-the-pope-part-2/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_72|[Web Novel 72] Chapter 72 - ラースシールド - Wrath Shield]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-72-of-shieldbro-co-vs-the-pope-part-3/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_73|[Web Novel 73] Chapter 73 - 代償 - Price ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-73-of-shieldbro-co-vs-the-pope-part-4/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_74|[Web Novel 74] Chapter 74 - 女王 - The Queen ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-74-of-shieldbrotanukifiroand-melty/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_75|[Web Novel 75] Chapter 75 - 説教 - Sermon]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/27/chapter-75-badass-queen-edition/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_76|[Web Novel 76] Chapter 76 - クズとビッチ - Trash and Bitch]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/27/chapter-76-badass-queen-edition-part-2/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_77|[Web Novel 77] Chapter 77 - 土下座 - Dogeza]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/28/chapter-77-badass-queen-edition-part-3/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_78|[Web Novel 78] Chapter 78 - 契約 - Agreement]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/29/chapter-78-badass-queen-edition-part-4/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Calmira Island Arc and Beyond===&lt;br /&gt;
At this point, the web and light novels start to diverge quite a bit.&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_79|[Web Novel 79] Chapter 79 - 晩餐 - Dinner]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/29/chapter-79-badass-queen-edition-part-5/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_80|[Web Novel 80] Chapter 80 - 活発化現象 - Invigoration]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/30/chapter-80-badass-queen-edition-part-6/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_81|[Web Novel 81] Chapter 81 - クラスアップ - Class Up]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/30/chapter-81-of-shieldbrotanukifiroand-melty/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_82|[Web Novel 82] Chapter 82 - 墓参り - Grave Visit]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/30/chapter-82-of-shieldbro-tanuki-firo-and-melty/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_83|[Web Novel 83] Chapter 83 - 伝承の魔法 - Magic Lore]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/01/chapter-83-shieldbro-tanuki-and-firo/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_84|[Web Novel 84] Chapter 84 - カルミラ島ジンクス・誕生編 Cal Mira Island Jinx - Origin Story]] [[http://anontranslator.wordpress.com/2014/10/02/tate-no-yuusha-ch-84/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_85|[Web Novel 85] Chapter 85 - 槍の勇者の仲間達 - The Companions of the Spear Hero]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/02/chapter-85-of-shieldbro-no-tanuki-and-firo-edition/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_86|[Web Novel 86] Chapter 86 - 愚痴 - Murmurs]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/03/chapter-86-of-shieldbro-woman-1-and-shadow/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_87|[Web Novel 87] Chapter 87 - 槍の勇者と仲間達 - The Spear Hero &amp;amp; My Companions]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/04/chapter-86-hero-of-the-spears-companions/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_88|[Web Novel 88] Chapter 88 - 直感と分析 - Intuition and Analysis]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/05/chapter-88-intuition-and-analysis/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_89|[Web Novel 89] Chapter 89 - カルミラ島スポーツ誕生 - The Birth of Cal Mira Island Sports]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/06/chapter-89-the-birth-of-cal-mira-island-sports/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_90|[Web Novel 90] Chapter 90 - 人員交換の意義 - The Significance of Personnel Exchange]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/07/chapter-90-the-significance-of-personnel-exchange/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_91|[Web Novel 91] Chapter 91 - 剣の勇者の仲間達 - The Companions of the Sword Hero]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/08/chapter-91-hero-of-the-swords-companions/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_92|[Web Novel 92] Chapter 92 - 剣の勇者と仲間達 - The Sword Hero &amp;amp; My Companions]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/09/chapter-92-being-companions-to-the-hero-of-the-sword// PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_93|[Web Novel 93] Chapter 93 - 酒場 - Tavern]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/10/chapter-93-bar/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_94|[Web Novel 94] Chapter 94 - 弓の勇者の仲間達 - The Companions of the Bow Hero]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/11/chapter-94-being-companions-to-the-hero-of-the-bow/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_95|[Web Novel 95] Chapter 95 - 正義の病 - The Disease of Justice]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/11/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-95/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_96|[Web Novel 96] Chapter 96 - 弓の勇者と仲間達 - The Bow Hero &amp;amp; My Companions]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/12/chapter-96-being-companions-to-the-hero-of-the-bow/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_97|[Web Novel 97] Chapter 97 - 虚言 - Lies]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/12/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-97/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_98|[Web Novel 98] Chapter 98 - 反省会 - Evaluation Session]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/13/chapter-98-evaluation-meeting/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_99|[Web Novel 99] Chapter 99 - カルミラ島ジンクス・流行編 - Karumira Island Jinx - Craze Chapter]] [[http://epithetic.wordpress.com/2014/10/15/shieldbro-99-calmira-island-jinx-craze-chapter/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_100|[Web Novel 100] Chapter 100 - 温泉 Hot Spring]] [[http://pastebin.com/F3umyv3i PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_101|[Web Novel 101] Chapter 101 - 勇者会議【上】 - Hero Conference (Start)]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/13/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-101/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_102|[Web Novel 102] Chapter 102 - 勇者会議【中】 - Hero Conference (Middle)]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/15/chapter-102-hero-conference-during/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_103|[Web Novel 103] Chapter 103 - 勇者会議【下】 - Hero Conference (End)]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/15/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-103/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_104|[Web Novel 104] Chapter 104 - １/４ ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/16/chapter-104-14/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_105|[Web Novel 105] Chapter 105 - ウェポンコピー - Weapon Copy]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/17/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-105/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_106|[Web Novel 106] Chapter 106 - カルミラ島の日々 - Days Spent on Karumira Island]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/18/chapter-106-days-on-cal-mira-island/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_107|[Web Novel 107] Chapter 107 - カルミラ島ジンクス・躍進編 The Karumira Island Revolution]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/18/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-107/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_108|[Web Novel 108] Chapter 108 - 冤罪、再び - False Charges, Again]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/19/chapter-108-false-accusations-again/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_109|[Web Novel 109] Chapter 109 - 解雇の理由 - Reason for Dismissal]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/19/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-109/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_110|[Web Novel 110] Chapter 110 - 幸薄少女 - A Girl Full of Joy ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/19/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-110/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_111|[Web Novel 111] Chapter 111 - 馬鹿にしか見えない王 - A King I Can Only See as an Idiot]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/20/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-111/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_112|[Web Novel 112] Chapter 112 - 倉庫 - Storage]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/21/chapter-112-warehouse/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_113|[Web Novel 113] Chapter 113 - 強くなる方法 - How to Become Stronger]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/21/chapter-113-a-method-on-becoming-stronger/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_114|[Web Novel 114] Chapter 114 - 流星盾 - Meteor Shield]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/21/chapter-114-meteor-shield/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_115|[Web Novel 115] Chapter 115 - 武器屋の好奇心 Weapon Shop Owner&#039;s Curiosity]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/22/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-115/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_116|[Web Novel 116] Chapter 116 - 青い砂音 - Blue Sand Sound]] [[http://pastebin.com/q0icNhPA PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_117|[Web Novel 117] Chapter 117 - ゲーム知識が牙を剥く時 When Game Knowledge Bares its Fangs ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/23/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-117/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_118|[Web Novel 118] Chapter 118 - ＶＳ霊亀、偵察戦 Versus the Spirit Tortoise, Scout Battle ]][[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/24/chapter-118-vs-spirit-turtle-recon-battle/#more-573 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_119|[Web Novel 119] Chapter 119 - 戦後への対策 Measures to End a Battle ]][[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/24/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-119/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_120|[Web Novel 120] Chapter 120 - 時間稼ぎ - Stalling for Time ]] [[http://pastebin.com/bijd18Ub PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_121|[Web Novel 121] Chapter 121 - 勇者の碑文 - The Inscription of the Heroes ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/25/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-121/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_122|[Web Novel 122] Chapter 122 - 探索 Exploration ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/26/chapter-122-exploration/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_123|[Web Novel 123] Chapter 123 - 青の砂時計 - Blue Hourglass ]][[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/27/chapter-213-blue-hourglass/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_124|[Web Novel 124] Chapter 124 - 霊亀の心臓 - Heart of the Spirit Tortoise ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/28/chapter-124-heart-of-the-spirit-turtle/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_125|[Web Novel 125] Chapter 125 - 可能性 - Possibilities ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/28/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-125/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_126|[Web Novel 126] Chapter 126 - ＶＳ霊亀　最終決戦 - Versus the Spirit Tortoise, The Final Fight]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/29/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-126/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_127|[Web Novel 127] Chapter 127 - 過保護 - Overprotective ]][[http://anontranslator.wordpress.com/2014/10/26/tate-no-yuusha-ch-127/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_128|[Web Novel 128] Chapter 128 - 勇者の処遇 - A Hero&#039;s Treatment ]][[http://pastebin.com/PR1Uu28w/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_129|[Web Novel 129] Chapter 129 - 地位 - Social Standing ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/31/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-129/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_130|[Web Novel 130] Chapter 130 - Ｌｖリセット - Level Reset ]] [[http://pastebin.com/Ykdk9zd2 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_131|[Web Novel 131] Chapter 131 - 出会った場所 - The Place We Met ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/01/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-131/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_132|[Web Novel 132] Chapter 132 - 知人達 - Acquaintances ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/01/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-132/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_133|[Web Novel 133] Chapter 133 - Ｅフロート - E Float]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/01/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-133/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_134|[Web Novel 134] Chapter 134 - バルーンシールド Balloon Shield ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/02/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-134/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_135|[Web Novel 135] Chapter 135 - 餌付け - Artificial Feeding ]] [[http://thedefend.wordpress.com/2014/11/03/chapter-135-artificial-feeding/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_136|[Web Novel 136] Chapter 136 - 夜食 - Nighttime Meal ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/03/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-136/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_137|[Web Novel 137] Chapter 137 - 海の男女 - People of the Sea ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/03/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-137/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_138|[Web Novel 138] Chapter 138 - 同性のみ可 - Same Sex Only ]][[http://hatoken.wordpress.com/2014/11/04/chapter-138-same-sex-only/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_139|[Web Novel 139] Chapter 139 - 盾の看板 - Shield Billboard ]][[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/04/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-139/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_140|[Web Novel 140] Chapter 140 - 脱走と発見 - Desertion and Discovery ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_141|[Web Novel 141] Chapter 141 - 槍の勇者捕獲作戦 - The Plan to Capture Spear Hero ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_142|[Web Novel 142] Chapter 142 - ゲームが終わった日 - The Day the Game Ended ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_143|[Web Novel 143] Chapter 143 - 魔物問題 - Demon Problem ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_144|[Web Novel 144] Chapter 144 - 決断 - Determination ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_145|[Web Novel 145] Chapter 145 - 報告 - Report ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_146|[Web Novel 146] Chapter 146 - 獣人 - Beastman ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_147|[Web Novel 147] Chapter 147 - 旗、再び - Flag, Again ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_148|[Web Novel 148] Chapter 148 - 失敗作 - Failed Creation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_149|[Web Novel 149] Chapter 149 - 錬金術師 - Alchemist ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_150|[Web Novel 150] Chapter 150 - 優遇も差別 Discrimination Even in Hospitality ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_151|[Web Novel 151] Chapter 151 - キャンピングプラント - Camping Plant ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_152|[Web Novel 152] Chapter 152 - 御用 - Arrest ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_153|[Web Novel 153] Chapter 153 - 本当はわかっている事 - Truthfully Understanding ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_154|[Web Novel 154] Chapter 154 - 自主性 - Independence ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_155|[Web Novel 155] Chapter 155 - ゼルトブル - Zeltbur]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_156|[Web Novel 156] Chapter 156 - 正夢 - Dreams Come True ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_157|[Web Novel 157] Chapter 157 - 買い付け - Purchase ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_158|[Web Novel 158] Chapter 158 - 神木の薬 - Medicine of the Sacred Tree]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_159|[Web Novel 159] Chapter 159 - パーフェクト＝ハイド＝ジャスティス - Perfect Hidden Justice ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_160|[Web Novel 160] Chapter 160 - 村へ帰る - Return to the Village ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_161|[Web Novel 161] Chapter 161 - 王女来訪 - Visiting the Princess ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_162|[Web Novel 162] Chapter 162 - フィロリアルとドラゴン - Filorial and Dragon ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_163|[Web Novel 163] Chapter 163 - ヴィッチ - Witch ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_164|[Web Novel 164] Chapter 164 - 投げやり - Negligence ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_165|[Web Novel 165] Chapter 165 - 新たな目覚め - A New Awakening ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_166|[Web Novel 166] Chapter 166 - 孵化 - Hatching ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_167|[Web Novel 167] Chapter 167 - 変幻無双流 - Peerless Transformation ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_168|[Web Novel 168] Chapter 168 - アルプス - Alps]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_169|[Web Novel 169] Chapter 169 - 武器屋の弟子 - Weapon Shop Owner and Apprentice ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_170|[Web Novel 170] Chapter 170 - クズとハクコ - Trash and Hakuko ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_171|[Web Novel 171] Chapter 171 - ポータルシールド - Portable Shield ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_172|[Web Novel 172] Chapter 172 - 修行 - Training]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_173|[Web Novel 173] Chapter 173 - 盾を守る盾 A Shield to Protect Shields ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_174|[Web Novel 174] Chapter 174 - メルティのお仕事 Melty&#039;s Job ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_175|[Web Novel 175] Chapter 175 - ピンポンダッシュ - Bells and Away]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_176|[Web Novel 176] Chapter 176 - ヘタレ - Loser ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_177|[Web Novel 177] Chapter 177 - Ｌｖドレイン　- Level Drain ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_178|[Web Novel 178] Chapter 178 - 戦力把握 - Grasping Forces]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_179|[Web Novel 179] Chapter 179 - 煩悩の塊 - Lump of Desire]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_180|[Web Novel 180] Chapter 180 - 幸運 - Good Fortune]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_181|[Web Novel 181] Chapter 181 - 合唱魔法 - Chorus Magic ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_182|[Web Novel 182] Chapter 182 - ラースドラゴン - Wrath Dragon ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_183|[Web Novel 183] Chapter 183 - 変 - Odd]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_184|[Web Novel 184] Chapter 184 - 浄化 - Purification]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_185|[Web Novel 185] Chapter 185 - ニックネーム - Nickname ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_186|[Web Novel 186] Chapter 186 - 竜の怒り - Dragon&#039;s Anger]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_187|[Web Novel 187] Chapter 187 - 解除 - Release]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_188|[Web Novel 188] Chapter 188 - 敬礼 - Salute]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_189|[Web Novel 189] Chapter 189 - 秘密基地 - Secret Base]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_190|[Web Novel 190] Chapter 190 - 正式依頼 - Formal Request]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_191|[Web Novel 191] Chapter 191 - 大器晩成 - Late Bloomer]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_192|[Web Novel 192] Chapter 192 - 仮面の男 - Masked Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_193|[Web Novel 193] Chapter 193 - 七つの大罪 - Seven Sins]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_194|[Web Novel 194] Chapter 194 - ドラゴンサンクチュアリ- Dragon Sanctuary ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_195|[Web Novel 195] Chapter 195 - 強欲 - Greed]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_196|[Web Novel 196] Chapter 196 - 現実ＶＳ理想 - Reality VS Ideal]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_197|[Web Novel 197] Chapter 197 - 閃光 - Flash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_198|[Web Novel 198] Chapter 198 - 目的 - Purpose]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_199|[Web Novel 199] Chapter 199 - 盾の勇者の朝 _ Morning of Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_200|[Web Novel 200] Chapter 200 - 反省 - Evaluation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_201|[Web Novel 201] Chapter 201 - クズとアトラ - Trash and Atla]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_202|[Web Novel 202] Chapter 202 - 恩赦 - Amnesty]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_203|[Web Novel 203] Chapter 203 - 魔力の流れ - Flow of Magic Power]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_204|[Web Novel 204] Chapter 204 - 龍脈法 - Dragon Leylines]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_205|[Web Novel 205] Chapter 205 - 恋の季節 - Season of Love]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_206|[Web Novel 206] Chapter 206 - フィトリアの依頼 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_207|[Web Novel 207] Chapter 207 - レース - Race]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_208|[Web Novel 208] Chapter 208 - ショートカット - Shortcut]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_209|[Web Novel 209] Chapter 209 - 色欲 - Lust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_210|[Web Novel 210] Chapter 210 - 嫉妬 - Envy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_211|[Web Novel 211] Chapter 211 - 仲間割れ - Internal Discord]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_212|[Web Novel 212] Chapter 212 - 愛の狩人 - Love Hunter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_213|[Web Novel 213] Chapter 213 - 仮眠 - Nap]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_214|[Web Novel 214] Chapter 214 - 革命派 - Revolutionaries]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_215|[Web Novel 215] Chapter 215 - 蛮族の鎧＋２ - Barbarian Armor+2]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_216|[Web Novel 216] Chapter 216 - 複合所有権 - Complex Ownership]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_217|[Web Novel 217] Chapter 217 - 盾の勇者の攻略講座 - Shield Hero&#039;s Cheat Course]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_218|[Web Novel 218] Chapter 218 - ふんどし忠犬 - Fundoshi Wearing Loyal Dog]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_219|[Web Novel 219] Chapter 219 - 無双活性 - Peerless Activity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_220|[Web Novel 220] Chapter 220 - 男の娘 - Trap]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_221|[Web Novel 221] Chapter 221 - 解放時間 - Release Time]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_222|[Web Novel 222] Chapter 222 - ゲーム知識 - Game Knowledge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_223|[Web Novel 223] Chapter 223 - 献身願望 - Desire of Devotion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_224|[Web Novel 224] Chapter 224 - 婚約者 - Fiance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_225|[Web Novel 225] Chapter 225 - 行き違い - Disagreement]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_226|[Web Novel 226] Chapter 226 - 異変 - Abnormality]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_227|[Web Novel 227] Chapter 227 - 毒 - Poison]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_228|[Web Novel 228] Chapter 228 - 洗脳 - Brainwash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_229|[Web Novel 229] Chapter 229 - 複数犯 - Multiple Offender]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_230|[Web Novel 230] Chapter 230 - 感染性 - Infectious]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_231|[Web Novel 231] Chapter 231 - 誤算 - Miscalculation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_232|[Web Novel 232] Chapter 232 - 努力 - Effort]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_233|[Web Novel 233] Chapter 233 - 正義の短剣 - Justice Dagger]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_234|[Web Novel 234] Chapter 234 - 集団心理 - Mass Psychology]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_235|[Web Novel 235] Chapter 235 - 残党 - Remnant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_236|[Web Novel 236] Chapter 236 - 盾の魔王 - Demon Lord of Shield]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_237|[Web Novel 237] Chapter 237 - 霊亀甲 Reiki Armor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_238|[Web Novel 238] Chapter 238 - 深追い - Following Deep]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_239|[Web Novel 239] Chapter 239 - 機会 - Opportunity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_240|[Web Novel 240] Chapter 240 - 研究資料 - Research Material]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_241|[Web Novel 241] Chapter 241 - 正義の弓 - Justice Bow]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_242|[Web Novel 242] Chapter 242 - 正義の否定 - Denial of Justice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_243|[Web Novel 243] Chapter 243 - 決闘条件 - Duel Condition]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_244|[Web Novel 244] Chapter 244 - 正義ＶＳ正義 - Justice VS Justice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_245|[Web Novel 245] Chapter 245 - 覚醒 - Awakening]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_246|[Web Novel 246] Chapter 246 - 革命 - Revolution]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_247|[Web Novel 247] Chapter 247 - 城下町爆走事件 - Riot Incident at Castle Town]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_248|[Web Novel 248] Chapter 248 - 旗揚げ - Drafting Army]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_249|[Web Novel 249] Chapter 249 - 完勝 - Complete Victory]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_250|[Web Novel 250] Chapter 250 - 昇進 - Promotion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_251|[Web Novel 251] Chapter 251 - 勇者の血族 - Bloodline of Heroes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_252|[Web Novel 252] Chapter 252 - 命乞い - Begging for live]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_253|[Web Novel 253] Chapter 253 - イエスマン - Yes Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_254|[Web Novel 254] Chapter 254 - Vol.1 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_255|[Web Novel 255] Chapter 255 - スタート地点 - Start Point]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_256|[Web Novel 256] Chapter 256 - 優越感 - Superiority Complex]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_257|[Web Novel 257] Chapter 257 - リベレイション - Liberation ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_258|[Web Novel 258] Chapter 258 - 盾の両面を見よ - Look at Both side of shield]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_259|[Web Novel 259] Chapter 259 - 義賊 - Righteous Thief]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_260|[Web Novel 260] Chapter 260 - 悪化 - Deteriorate]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_261|[Web Novel 261] Chapter 261 - 異能力者 - ESPER]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_262|[Web Novel 262] Chapter 262 - 研究所訪問 - Laboratory Visit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_263|[Web Novel 263] Chapter 263 - 抜き打ちチェック - Surprise Inspection]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_264|[Web Novel 264] Chapter 264 - ファミリア - Familia ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_265|[Web Novel 265] Chapter 265 - 深夜の攻防 - Midnight Battle]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_266|[Web Novel 266] Chapter 266 - 虎男 - Tiger Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_267|[Web Novel 267] Chapter 267 - 一時休戦 - Temporary Truce]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_268|[Web Novel 268] Chapter 268 - 酒 - Liquor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_269|[Web Novel 269] Chapter 269 - 真相は闇の中 - Truth in the Darkness]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_270|[Web Novel 270] Chapter 270 - 豚王 - Pig King]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_271|[Web Novel 271] Chapter 271 - キング - King ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_272|[Web Novel 272] Chapter 272 - 第二回勇者会議【上】 The 2nd Heroes Conference(First Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_273|[Web Novel 273] Chapter 273 - 第二回勇者会議【中】 The 2nd Heroes Conference(Middle Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_274|[Web Novel 274] Chapter 274 - 第二回勇者会議【下】 The 2nd Heroes Conference(Final Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_275|[Web Novel 275] Chapter 275 - 復興祭 - Reconstruction Festival]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_276|[Web Novel 276] Chapter 276 - 競羽 - Wing Competition]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_277|[Web Novel 277] Chapter 277 - 新・七つの大罪 - The New Seven Sins]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_278|[Web Novel 278] Chapter 278 - 遺伝子改造 _ Gene Remodeling]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_279|[Web Novel 279] Chapter 279 - 空中要塞 - Floating Fortress]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_280|[Web Novel 280] Chapter 280 - 人体実験 - Human Body Experiment]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_281|[Web Novel 281] Chapter 281 - 生命倫理 - Life Ethics]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_282|[Web Novel 282] Chapter 282 - バイオカスタム - Bio Custom]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_283|[Web Novel 283] Chapter 283 - 一長一短 - One Long, One Short]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_284|[Web Novel 284] Chapter 284 - 第二塔の攻防 - Battle of Second Tower]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_285|[Web Novel 285] Chapter 285 - 第二世代 - Second Generation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_286|[Web Novel 286] Chapter 286 - 戦況反転 - Battle Situation Reversed]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_287|[Web Novel 287] Chapter 287 - 研究結果 - Research Result]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_288|[Web Novel 288] Chapter 288 - 損害賠償 - Compensation of Damage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_289|[Web Novel 289] Chapter 289 - 期間限定 - Limited-Time Offer]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_290|[Web Novel 290] Chapter 290 - クレープの木 - Crepe Tree]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_291|[Web Novel 291] Chapter 291 - 竜信仰 - Dragon Faith]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_292|[Web Novel 292] Chapter 292 - 新型馬車 - A New Type of Carriage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_293|[Web Novel 293] Chapter 293 - ラフのラフ種 - Raph of Raph Race]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_294|[Web Novel 294] Chapter 294 - 集・壁・玉 - Gather, Wall, Ball]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_295|[Web Novel 295] Chapter 295 - 兄妹喧嘩 - Sibling Fight]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_296|[Web Novel 296] Chapter 296 - 虎々激突 - Tigers Clash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_297|[Web Novel 297] Chapter 297 - 鳳凰の地 - The Land of Houou]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_298|[Web Novel 298] Chapter 298 - 勇者の日記 - Hero Diary]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_299|[Web Novel 299] Chapter 299 - 最後の七星武器 - The Last Seven-Star Weapons]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_300|[Web Novel 300] Chapter 300 - 七星武器 - Seven-Star Weapon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_301|[Web Novel 301] Chapter 301 - 鳳凰戦前夜 - Eve of Houou War]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_302|[Web Novel 302] Chapter 302 - VS鳳凰 VS Houou]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_303|[Web Novel 303] Chapter 303 - 許されざる閃光 - Unforgivable Flash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_304|[Web Novel 304] Chapter 304 - 大き過ぎる代償 - A Price Too Great]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_305|[Web Novel 305] Chapter 305 - 盾になった少女 - The Girl Who Became a Shield]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_306|[Web Novel 306] Chapter 306 - ＶＳ鳳凰　終結 - VS Houou Finale]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_307|[Web Novel 307] Chapter 307 - 葬儀 - Funeral]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_308|[Web Novel 308] Chapter 308 - 麒麟 - Kirin]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_309|[Web Novel 309] Chapter 309 - 迷走 - Off-Course]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_310|[Web Novel 310] Chapter 310 - 銃器 - Firearms]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_311|[Web Novel 311] Chapter 311 - 天才 - Genius]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_312|[Web Novel 312] Chapter 312 - 奪われた力 - Stolen Power]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_313|[Web Novel 313] Chapter 313 - 撤退 - Retreat]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_314|[Web Novel 314] Chapter 314 - 遺言 - Last Will]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_315|[Web Novel 315] Chapter 315 - 精霊 - Spirit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_316|[Web Novel 316] Chapter 316 - 本当の敵 - The Real Enemy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_317|[Web Novel 317] Chapter 317 - 杖の勇者 - The Wand Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_318|[Web Novel 318] Chapter 318 - 作戦会議 - Strategy Meeting]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_319|[Web Novel 319] Chapter 319 - グラマーＶＳロリ - Glamour VS Loli]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_320|[Web Novel 320] Chapter 320 - ラフちゃん - Raph-chan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_321|[Web Novel 321] Chapter 321 - 焼きもち - Jealousy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_322|[Web Novel 322] Chapter 322 - 第八世代 - 8th Generation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_323|[Web Novel 323] Chapter 323 - チェンジ・ラフ - Change-Raph]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_324|[Web Novel 324] Chapter 324 - 英知の賢王 - The Wise King]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_325|[Web Novel 325] Chapter 325 - 挑発 - Provocation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_326|[Web Novel 326] Chapter 326 - Ⅹ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_327|[Web Novel 327] Chapter 327 - よそ見 - Look Away]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_328|[Web Novel 328] Chapter 328 - フェンリルフォース - Fenrir Force]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_329|[Web Novel 329] Chapter 329 - グレイプニルロープ - Gleiphnir Rope]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_330|[Web Novel 330] Chapter 330 - 一般人 - A Common Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_331|[Web Novel 331] Chapter 331 - 最強の七星勇者 - The Strongest of Seven Star Heroes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_332|[Web Novel 332] Chapter 332 - 狐七化け、狸八化け - A Fox Will Fool You Seven Times, but a Racoon Eight Times]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_333|[Web Novel 333] Chapter 333 - 盾の勇者が命ずる - By the Order of Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_334|[Web Novel 334] Chapter 334 - 三分の二 - Two-Thirds]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_335|[Web Novel 335] Chapter 335 - 共闘 - United Front]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_336|[Web Novel 336] Chapter 336 - 八番目 - The 8th]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_337|[Web Novel 337] Chapter 337 - 世界融合 - World Fusion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_338|[Web Novel 338] Chapter 338 - 僭称する者 - The One Who Hid His Title]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_339|[Web Novel 339] Chapter 339 - 強化方法【上】 - Enhancement Method(First Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_340|[Web Novel 340] Chapter 340 - 強化方法【中】 - Enhancement Method(Middle Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_341|[Web Novel 341] Chapter 341 - 強化方法【下】 - Enhancement Method(Final Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_342|[Web Novel 342] Chapter 342 - 異世界交流 - Other-World Exchange  ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_343|[Web Novel 343] Chapter 343 - 処刑 - Execution]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_344|[Web Novel 344] Chapter 344 - ソウルイーター - Soul Eater]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_345|[Web Novel 345] Chapter 345 - 自責の念 - Remorse]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_346|[Web Novel 346] Chapter 346 - 限界突破 - Limit Break]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_347|[Web Novel 347] Chapter 347 - 即位 - Coronation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_348|[Web Novel 348] Chapter 348 - 恋愛相談 - Love Consultation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_349|[Web Novel 349] Chapter 349 - 人生の墓場 - The Graveyard of Life]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_350|[Web Novel 350] Chapter 350 - 理想論 - Idealism]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_351|[Web Novel 351] Chapter 351 - フィロリアルの聖域 - Filorial Sanctuary]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_352|[Web Novel 352] Chapter 352 - 出る杭を打つ - Clearing Stock]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_353|[Web Novel 353] Chapter 353 - チート - Cheat ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_354|[Web Novel 354] Chapter 354 - 真紅に染まる空 - Crimson-Stained Sky]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_355|[Web Novel 355] Chapter 355 - 女神降臨 - Goddess Descent]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_356|[Web Novel 356] Chapter 356 - Ｌｖ上げ - Level Up]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_357|[Web Novel 357] Chapter 357 - 望まぬ帰還 - Undesired Return]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_358|[Web Novel 358] Chapter 358 - 帰宅 - Homecoming]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_359|[Web Novel 359] Chapter 359 - 歯痒さ - Frustration]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_360|[Web Novel 360] Chapter 360 - 選択 - Choice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_361|[Web Novel 361] Chapter 361 - 敵の敵は - An Enemy of the Enemy is... ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_362|[Web Novel 362] Chapter 362 - 不老不死 - Immortality]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_363|[Web Novel 363] Chapter 363 - 全てを守る力 - The Power to Protect Everything]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_364|[Web Novel 364] Chapter 364 - 二年間 - Two Years]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_365|[Web Novel 365] Chapter 365 - ディフェンスリンク - Defense Link ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_366|[Web Novel 366] Chapter 366 - 疑心暗鬼 - Paranoia Makes a Monster Out of Anything]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_367|[Web Novel 367] Chapter 367 - 三号狙い - Aim at the Third One]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_368|[Web Novel 368] Chapter 368 - 脆い所 - Soft-Spot]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_369|[Web Novel 369] Chapter 369 - 決戦前夜 - Eve of Battle]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_370|[Web Novel 370] Chapter 370 - 蛮族の鎧EX - Barbarian Armor EX]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_371|[Web Novel 371] Chapter 371 - 代行者 - Representative]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_372|[Web Novel 372] Chapter 372 - 末路 - End]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_373|[Web Novel 373] Chapter 373 - 一対の力 - Power of Pair]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_374|[Web Novel 374] Chapter 374 - 信頼 - Trust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_375|[Web Novel 375] Chapter 375 - 宴 - Feast]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_376|[Web Novel 376] Chapter 376 - 異世界と現代 - Other-World and Our Own World]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_377|[Web Novel 377] Chapter 377 - ロックバレー勇者伝説 - Rock Valley&#039;s Legend of Heroes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_378|[Web Novel 378] Chapter 378 - 盾の勇者の成り上がり - The Rising Of Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==&#039;&#039;&#039;SIDE STORIES&#039;&#039;&#039;==&lt;br /&gt;
===The Christmas of Shield Hero (PREVIEW)===&lt;br /&gt;
/*spoiler tales - read at your own interest*/&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_379|[Web Novel 379] Chapter 379 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【１】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[I]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_380|[Web Novel 380] Chapter 380 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【２】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[II]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_381|[Web Novel 381] Chapter 381 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【３】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[III]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_382|[Web Novel 382] Chapter 382 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【４】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[IV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_383|[Web Novel 383] Chapter 383 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【５】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[V]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_384|[Web Novel 384] Chapter 384 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【６】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[VI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_385|[Web Novel 385] Chapter 385 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【終】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[END]]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===The Valentine of Shield Hero===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_386|[Web Novel 386] Chapter 386 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[I]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_387|[Web Novel 387] Chapter 387 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【２】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[II]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_388|[Web Novel 388] Chapter 388 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【３】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[III]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_389|[Web Novel 389] Chapter 389 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【４】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[IV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_390|[Web Novel 390] Chapter 390 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【５】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[V]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_391|[Web Novel 391] Chapter 391 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【６】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[VI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_392|[Web Novel 392] Chapter 392 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【７】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[VII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_393|[Web Novel 393] Chapter 393 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【８】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[VIII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_394|[Web Novel 394] Chapter 394 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【９】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[IX]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_395|[Web Novel 395] Chapter 395 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１０】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[X]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_396|[Web Novel 396] Chapter 396 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１１】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_397|[Web Novel 397] Chapter 397 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１２】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_398|[Web Novel 398] Chapter 398 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１３】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XIII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_399|[Web Novel 399] Chapter 399 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１４】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XIV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_400|[Web Novel 400] Chapter 400 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１５】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_401|[Web Novel 401] Chapter 401 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１６】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XVI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_402|[Web Novel 402] Chapter 402 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【終】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[END]]]&lt;br /&gt;
===The White Day of Shield Hero===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_403|[Web Novel 403] Chapter 403 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【１】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[I]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_404|[Web Novel 404] Chapter 404 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【２】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[II]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_405|[Web Novel 405] Chapter 405 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【３】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[III]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_406|[Web Novel 406] Chapter 406 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【４】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[IV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_407|[Web Novel 407] Chapter 407 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【５】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[V]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_408|[Web Novel 408] Chapter 408 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【６】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[VI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_409|[Web Novel 409] Chapter 409 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【終】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[END]]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==外伝　槍の勇者のやり直し(Side Story - Start Over of The Spear Hero)==&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 1 to 3 - Tutorial Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_410|[Web Novel 410] Chapter 410 - 槍の勇者のやり直し - Start Over of The Spear Hero ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_411|[Web Novel 411] Chapter 411 - クロちゃん - Kuro-chan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_412|[Web Novel 412] Chapter 412 - レベリング - Leveling]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_413|[Web Novel 413] Chapter 413 - 金稼ぎ - Earning Money]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_414|[Web Novel 414] Chapter 414 - 時間遡行 - Time Regression]]&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 4 - Siltvelt Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_415|[Web Novel 415] Chapter 415 - 落とし穴 - Pitfall]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_416|[Web Novel 416] Chapter 416 - 牢獄 - Prison]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_417|[Web Novel 417] Chapter 417 - 老害 - Old Damage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_418|[Web Novel 418] Chapter 418 - エイミング - Aiming]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_419|[Web Novel 419] Chapter 419 - 護衛 - Escort]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_420|[Web Novel 420] Chapter 420 - アブソーブ - Absorb]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_421|[Web Novel 421] Chapter 421 - フィロリアル生産者 - Filorial Producer]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_422|[Web Novel 422] Chapter 422 - 亜人の酒場 - Demi-human&#039;s Tavern]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_423|[Web Novel 423] Chapter 423 - 樽風呂 - Barrel Bath]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_424|[Web Novel 424] Chapter 424 - 名付け親- Godparent ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_425|[Web Novel 425] Chapter 425 - 幻覚 - Illusion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_426|[Web Novel 426] Chapter 426 - キャンプ- Camp ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_427|[Web Novel 427] Chapter 427 - 服作り- Making Clothes ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_428|[Web Novel 428] Chapter 428 - 天使 - Angel]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_429|[Web Novel 429] Chapter 429 - 手腕 - Aptitude]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_430|[Web Novel 430] Chapter 430 - 三着の服 - Three Pieces of Clothes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_431|[Web Novel 431] Chapter 431 - 合流 - Regroup]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_432|[Web Novel 432] Chapter 432 - 覗き - Peeping]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_433|[Web Novel 433] Chapter 433 - 実戦経験 - Battle Experience]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_434|[Web Novel 434] Chapter 434 - 大きなフィロリアル様 - A Huge Filorial-sama]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_435|[Web Novel 435] Chapter 435 - 羽飾り - Feather Ornament]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_436|[Web Novel 436] Chapter 436 - シルトヴェルト - Siltvelt]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_437|[Web Novel 437] Chapter 437 - 運命の相手 - Fated Person]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_438|[Web Novel 438] Chapter 438 - 縁談 - Proposal]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_439|[Web Novel 439] Chapter 439 - 毒 - Poison]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_440|[Web Novel 440] Chapter 440 - ビーストスピア - Beast Spear]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_441|[Web Novel 441] Chapter 441 - 偽者 - Imposter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_442|[Web Novel 442] Chapter 442 - 裏路地にて - In the Back Alley]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_443|[Web Novel 443] Chapter 443 - 襲撃 - Raid]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_444|[Web Novel 444] Chapter 444 - シルドフリーデン - Sildfriden]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_445|[Web Novel 445] Chapter 445 - 鞭の勇者一行 - Whip Hero Party]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_446|[Web Novel 446] Chapter 446 - フラッシュバック - FLashback]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_447|[Web Novel 447] Chapter 447 - 消し炭 - Burned to Charcoal]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_448|[Web Novel 448] Chapter 448 - 不穏 - Unrest]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_449|[Web Novel 449] Chapter 449 - 残党 - Remnant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_450|[Web Novel 450] Chapter 450 - 飛竜 - Flying Dragon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_451|[Web Novel 451] Chapter 451 - 残り香 - Scent]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_452|[Web Novel 452] Chapter 452 - 道化 - Harlequin]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_453|[Web Novel 453] Chapter 453 - 聖戦 - Crusade]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_454|[Web Novel 454] Chapter 454 - 心に刻む - Engrave in Heart]]&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 5 - Melromarc Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_455|[Web Novel 455] Chapter 455 - 安全確保 - Security]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_456|[Web Novel 456] Chapter 456 - 聞き耳 - Listen]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_457|[Web Novel 457] Chapter 457 - 暗殺 - Assassination]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_458|[Web Novel 458] Chapter 458 - ただしイケメンに限る - limited to Handsome]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_459|[Web Novel 459] Chapter 459 - 色 - Color]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_460|[Web Novel 460] Chapter 460 - 証拠 - Evidence]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_461|[Web Novel 461] Chapter 461 - 改竄 - Alter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_462|[Web Novel 462] Chapter 462 - 戦争回避 - War Avoidance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_463|[Web Novel 463] Chapter 463 - 行商計画 - Peddlig Plan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_464|[Web Novel 464] Chapter 464 - 世界を呪わない - To Not Curse the World ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_465|[Web Novel 465] Chapter 465 - 魔物商 - Monster Shop]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_466|[Web Novel 466] Chapter 466 - ブラフ - Bluff]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_467|[Web Novel 467] Chapter 467 - 差異 - Difference]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_468|[Web Novel 468] Chapter 468 - 取り寄せ - In Stock]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_469|[Web Novel 469] Chapter 469 - 勧誘拒否 - Refusing Invitation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_470|[Web Novel 470] Chapter 470 - 商業通行手形 - Commercial Permit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_471|[Web Novel 471] Chapter 471 - 裁縫 - Sewing]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_472|[Web Novel 472] Chapter 472 - 峠 - Ridge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_473|[Web Novel 473] Chapter 473 - フィロリアルの変化 - Filorial&#039;s Change]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_474|[Web Novel 474] Chapter 474 - 馬車作り - Carriage Making]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_475|[Web Novel 475] Chapter 475 - 怠け豚 - Lazy Pig]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_476|[Web Novel 476] Chapter 476 - 秘密裏 - Secret Passage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_477|[Web Novel 477] Chapter 477 - 中学時代の友人 - Middle School period&#039;s Friend]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_478|[Web Novel 478] Chapter 478 - 餅は餅屋 - Mochi in Mochi Store]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_479|[Web Novel 479] Chapter 479 - パンダ獣人 - Panda Beastman]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_480|[Web Novel 480] Chapter 480 - 獣化 - Beast Transformation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_481|[Web Novel 481] Chapter 481 - スイッチ装備調達 - Switch Equipment Supply]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_482|[Web Novel 482] Chapter 482 - 四本 - Four Blades]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_483|[Web Novel 483] Chapter 483 - 過小評価 - Underestimation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_484|[Web Novel 484] Chapter 484 - 赤豚の動向 -Tendecy of Red Pig]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_485|[Web Novel 485] Chapter 485 - 未来への布石 - Preparation for Future]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_486|[Web Novel 486] Chapter 486 - 避難誘導 - Evacuation Guidance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_487|[Web Novel 487] Chapter 487 - 通常攻撃 - Conventional Attack]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_488|[Web Novel 488] Chapter 488 - 矛盾の再来 - Contradiction Return]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_489|[Web Novel 489] Chapter 489 - 盾ＶＳ弓＋α - Shield VS Bow+a]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_490|[Web Novel 490] Chapter 490 - バッドステータス - Bad Status]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_491|[Web Novel 491] Chapter 491 - 不公平 - Unfair]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_492|[Web Novel 492] Chapter 492 - 勇者密会 - Assign Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_493|[Web Novel 493] Chapter 493 - 卵くじ - Egg Lottery]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_494|[Web Novel 494] Chapter 494 - 取引 - Transaction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_495|[Web Novel 495] Chapter 495 - 謝礼 - Reward]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_496|[Web Novel 496] Chapter 496 - 彼は何故笑ったのか？ - Why is he Laughing?]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_497|[Web Novel 497] Chapter 497 - 着飾るパンダ - Dress Up Panda]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_498|[Web Novel 498] Chapter 498 - 種回収 - Seed Recovery]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_499|[Web Novel 499] Chapter 499 - 怠惰の種 - Seed of Laziness]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_500|[Web Novel 500] Chapter 500 - 食料配給 - Food Distribution]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_501|[Web Novel 501] Chapter 501 - 帳簿 - Account Book]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_502|[Web Novel 502] Chapter 502 - 観光地 - Tourist Attraction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_503|[Web Novel 503] Chapter 503 - 主治医の助手 - Physician Assistant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_504|[Web Novel 504] Chapter 504 - 保護 - Protection]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_505|[Web Novel 505] Chapter 505 - ドラゴンの娘 - Daughter of Dragon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_506|[Web Novel 506] Chapter 506 - ドラゴンの眷属 - Dragon&#039;s Kin]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_507|[Web Novel 507] Chapter 507 - 尻尾 - Tail]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_508|[Web Novel 508] Chapter 508 - おしおき - Punishment]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_509|[Web Novel 509] Chapter 509 - 偽の盾の勇者 - Fake Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_510|[Web Novel 510] Chapter 510 - 強欲の都市 - City of Greed]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_511|[Web Novel 511] Chapter 511 - ホットクレープ - Hot Crepe]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_512|[Web Novel 512] Chapter 512 - 鞍 - Saddle]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_513|[Web Novel 513] Chapter 513 - 助手の選択 - Assistant&#039;s Choice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_514|[Web Novel 514] Chapter 514 - 他人の所為 - the Other&#039;s Fault]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_515|[Web Novel 515] Chapter 515 - 彼を知る - He Knows]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_516|[Web Novel 516] Chapter 516 - 継承 - Inheritance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_517|[Web Novel 517] Chapter 517 - 最弱の竜帝 - the Weakest Dragon Emperor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_518|[Web Novel 518] Chapter 518 - 欠片の在り処 - Fragment&#039;s Whereabout]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_519|[Web Novel 519] Chapter 519 - 姫 - Princess]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_520|[Web Novel 520] Chapter 520 - 婚約者 - Fiance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_521|[Web Novel 521] Chapter 521 - 証拠隠滅 - Destruction of Evidence]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_522|[Web Novel 522] Chapter 522 - 善行の結果 - Benevolence Result]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_523|[Web Novel 523] Chapter 523 - 潜伏 - Hiding]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_524|[Web Novel 524] Chapter 524 - フレオンちゃん - Freon-chan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_525|[Web Novel 525] Chapter 525 - メルロマルクの王子 - Melromarc&#039;s Prince]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_526|[Web Novel 526] Chapter 526 - 内乱 - Civil War]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_527|[Web Novel 527] Chapter 527 - 風の如く - Like a Gust of Wind]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_528|[Web Novel 528] Chapter 528 - デジャヴュ - Deja Vu]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_529|[Web Novel 529] Chapter 529 - 煽り - Gust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_530|[Web Novel 530] Chapter 530 - 監禁 - Confinement]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_531|[Web Novel 531] Chapter 531 - 人質 - Hostage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_532|[Web Novel 532] Chapter 532 - 基本値 - Base Value]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_533|[Web Novel 533] Chapter 533 - 待ち伏せ - Ambush]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_534|[Web Novel 534] Chapter 534 - 国境戦 - Border War]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_535|[Web Novel 535] Chapter 535 - 休戦 - Truce]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_536|[Web Novel 536] Chapter 536 - 停戦 - Ceasefire]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_537|[Web Novel 537] Chapter 537 - 玉座 - Throne]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_538|[Web Novel 538] Chapter 538 - 幽閉 - Imprisonment]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_539|[Web Novel 539] Chapter 539 - 架け橋 - Bridge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_540|[Web Novel 540] Chapter 540 - 状況整理 - Sorting Circumstances]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_541|[Web Novel 541] Chapter 541 - 同行者 - Travelling Companion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_542|[Web Novel 542] Chapter 542 - 岩礁の鳥 - Reef Island]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_543|[Web Novel 543] Chapter 543 - 二本目 - the second time]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_544|[Web Novel 544] Chapter 544 - 高校時代の旅行 - The Trip on High School Period]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_545|[Web Novel 545] Chapter 545 - 槍の勇者とメンバー交換 - Member exchange of Spear Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_546|[Web Novel 546] Chapter 546 - 自慢失敗 - Boast Failure]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_547|[Web Novel 547] Chapter 547 - 多くの義務 - Numerous Responsibility]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_548|[Web Novel 548] Chapter 548 - 剣と助手 - Sword and Assistant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_549|[Web Novel 549] Chapter 549 - 邪魔 - Hindrance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_550|[Web Novel 550] Chapter 550 - 得意なゲーム - Game Specialty]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_551|[Web Novel 551] Chapter 551 - 槍の勇者と勇者会議【上】 - Spear Hero&#039;s Heroes Meeting(first part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_552|[Web Novel 552] Chapter 552 - 弓の勇者の反撃 - Bow Hero&#039;s Counter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_553|[Web Novel 553] Chapter 553 - 槍の勇者と勇者会議【中】 - Spear Hero&#039;s Heroes Meeting(middle part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_554|[Web Novel 554] Chapter 554 - 黒幕疑惑 - Suspicion as Mastermind]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_555|[Web Novel 555] Chapter 555 - 槍の勇者の勇者会議【下】 - Spear Hero&#039;s Heroes Meeting(final part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_556|[Web Novel 556] Chapter 556 - 楽園 - Paradise]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_557|[Web Novel 557] Chapter 557 - 星見酒 - Stargaze Liquor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_558|[Web Novel 558] Chapter 558 - 国葬 - National Funeral]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_559|[Web Novel 559] Chapter 559 - 善行の代償 - Benevolence Price]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_560|[Web Novel 560] Chapter 560 - 真逆の方向 - Opposite Direction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_561|[Web Novel 561] Chapter 561 - 7=8 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_562|[Web Novel 562] Chapter 562 - 霊亀の炎 - Reiki&#039;s Flame]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_563|[Web Novel 563] Chapter 563 - 被害報告 - Damage Report]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_564|[Web Novel 564] Chapter 564 - 手の平で転がす - Rolling in Palm]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_565|[Web Novel 565] Chapter 565 - 三度目の罠 - The Third Trap]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_566|[Web Novel 566] Chapter 566 - 水泡に帰す - Return To Foam]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_567|[Web Novel 567] Chapter 567 - 応竜 - Ouryu]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_568|[Web Novel 568] Chapter 568 - 自我の侵食 - Self Erosion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_569|[Web Novel 569] Chapter 569 - 四霊復活 - Resurrection of four spirits]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_570|[Web Novel 570] Chapter 570 - 四霊討伐作戦 - Four Spirits Subjugation Strategy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_571|[Web Novel 571] Chapter 571 - 蒸発 - Evaporate]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_572|[Web Novel 572] Chapter 572 - 分岐する世界 - Branching World]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_573|[Web Novel 573] Chapter 573 - 四霊結界 - Four Spirits Barrier]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_574|[Web Novel 574] Chapter 574 - 槍の勇者の選択 - Choice of Spear Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 6 - Forbrey Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_575|[Web Novel 575] Chapter 575 - 結束への布石 - Preparation for Unity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_576|[Web Novel 576] Chapter 576 - ストーキング - Stalking]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_577|[Web Novel 577] Chapter 577 - 論より証拠 - Evidence than Logic]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_578|[Web Novel 578] Chapter 578 - 未来人 - Man From the Future]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_579|[Web Novel 579] Chapter 579 - 国への不信 - Distrust toward Nation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_580|[Web Novel 580] Chapter 580 - 隠された武器 - Hidden Weapon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_581|[Web Novel 581] Chapter 581 - 三度目の言葉 - The Word for Third Times]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_582|[Web Novel 582] Chapter 582 - 守られた信頼 - Protected Trust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_583|[Web Novel 583] Chapter 583 - 鮮血 - Fresh Blood]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_584|[Web Novel 584] Chapter 584 - 神罰の日-Day of Divine Punishment ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_585|[Web Novel 585] Chapter 585 - ループの無駄遣い ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_586|[Web Novel 586] Chapter 586 - 信仰は残る ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_587|[Web Novel 587] Chapter 587 - 回復＋援護＝？ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_588|[Web Novel 588] Chapter 588 - 幼女か大人 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_589|[Web Novel 589] Chapter 589 - 正しくて間違っている ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_590|[Web Novel 590] Chapter 590 - 赤黒く濁していった ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_591|[Web Novel 591] Chapter 591 - 一人では強くなれない ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_592|[Web Novel 592] Chapter 592 - ファンタジーの不思議 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_593|[Web Novel 593] Chapter 593 - 中二病みたいな台詞 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_594|[Web Novel 594] Chapter 594 - 乗り物酔い ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_595|[Web Novel 595] Chapter 595 - 焼き肉パーティー ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_596|[Web Novel 596] Chapter 596 - 酔い止め ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_597|[Web Novel 597] Chapter 597 - シルトヴェルトの馬車 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_598|[Web Novel 598] Chapter 598 - 手中に収める ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_599|[Web Novel 599] Chapter 599 - 変身願望 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_600|[Web Novel 600] Chapter 600 - 買出し ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_601|[Web Novel 601] Chapter 601 - 料理効果 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_602|[Web Novel 602] Chapter 602 - 未来への恐怖 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_603|[Web Novel 603] Chapter 603 - 外見年齢 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_604|[Web Novel 604] Chapter 604 - 日程 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_605|[Web Novel 605] Chapter 605 - 熟練の腕 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_606|[Web Novel 606] Chapter 606 - 多芸 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_607|[Web Novel 607] Chapter 607 - 身勝手な召喚 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_608|[Web Novel 608] Chapter 608 - 魔王の研究 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_609|[Web Novel 609] Chapter 609 - 戦闘技術考案 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_610|[Web Novel 610] Chapter 610 - 冒険者ギルド ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_611|[Web Novel 611] Chapter 611 - ギルドの権力 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_612|[Web Novel 612] Chapter 612 - 良い証拠、悪い証拠 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_613|[Web Novel 613] Chapter 613 - 犯人がいない証拠 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_614|[Web Novel 614] Chapter 614 - 別の見え方 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_615|[Web Novel 615] Chapter 615 - 陣形 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_616|[Web Novel 616] Chapter 616 - 羊の腸 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_617|[Web Novel 617] Chapter 617 - 三枚目 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_618|[Web Novel 618] Chapter 618 - 今更 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_619|[Web Novel 619] Chapter 619 - しょっぱいネトゲ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_620|[Web Novel 620] Chapter 620 - 血も涙も無い ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_621|[Web Novel 621] Chapter 621 - 誠意 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_622|[Web Novel 622] Chapter 622 - 野次 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_623|[Web Novel 623] Chapter 623 - 巣立ち ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_624|[Web Novel 624] Chapter 624 - 養育費 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_625|[Web Novel 625] Chapter 625 - 弱肉強食 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_626|[Web Novel 626] Chapter 626 - 腐敗した政治 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Project Staff==&lt;br /&gt;
*Supervisor: [[user:Onizuka-gto|Onizuka-GTO]]&lt;br /&gt;
*Project Manager: [[user:Alpaca|Alpaca]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Translators===&lt;br /&gt;
Active&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Alpaca|Alpaca]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Ren|Ren]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Aperture:Null|Aperture:Null]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Uguu|Uguu]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/ Bakahou]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://anontranslator.wordpress.com/ anontranslator]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/ Yoraikun]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://epithetic.wordpress.com/ Epithetic]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:ShiroiOkami|ShiroiOkami]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Editors===&lt;br /&gt;
Active&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Soraya21|Soraya21]]/[[User:Soaya21|Soaya21]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:BDB|BDB]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Laclongquan|Laclongquan]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Reiji|Reiji]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:DarkeKyuubi|DarkeKyuubi]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:KuroInfinity|KuroInfinity]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://everydaysocloudy.wordpress.com/ EverydaySoCloudy]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Original Web Novel ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Original web published novel can be found here: [http://ncode.syosetu.com/n3009bk/ 盾の勇者の成り上がり]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Series Overview==&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 1 - 334 pages (August 22, 2013) ISBN 978-4840152754&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 2 - 316 pages (October 24, 2013) ISBN 978-4040660496&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 3 - 313 pages (December 21, 2013) ISBN 978-4040661667&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 4 - (February 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040663210&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 5 - (April 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040667188&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 6 - (June 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040667904&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 7 - (September 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040669960&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Light novel (English)]]&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari&amp;diff=398157</id>
		<title>Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari&amp;diff=398157"/>
		<updated>2014-11-02T10:59:29Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Calmira Island Arc and Beyond */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;{{Status|Active}}&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari / The Rising of the Shield Hero&#039;&#039;&#039; (盾の勇者の成り上がり) is a Japanese web novel written by Aneko Yusagi (アネコユサギ). The web novel was adapted into a Manga drawn by Aiya Kyuu (藍屋球) and published by MF Books. The Light Novel is illustrated by Minami Seira (弥南 せいら) with 7 volumes and ongoing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari series is also available in the following languages:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari (Indonesia)|Bahasa Indonesia (Indonesian)]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Tate no Yuusha no Nariagari (Italia)|Italia (Italian)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Synopsis==&lt;br /&gt;
Iwatani Naofumi was summoned into a parallel world along with 3 other people to become the world&#039;s Heroes. Each of the heroes were respectively equipped with their own legendary equipment when summoned. Naofumi coincidentally received the Legendary Shield as his weapon. Due to Naofumi&#039;s lack of charisma and experience, he ended up with only a single teammate while others have several. Unfortunately, on his third day Naofumi was betrayed, falsely accused, and robbed by the said teammate. Shunned by everyone from king to peasants, Naofumi&#039;s thoughts were filled with nothing but vengeance and hatred. Thus, his destiny in a parallel World begins...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===[[Tate_no_Yuusha:Registration_page|Registration]]===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Translators are asked to [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Registration_page|register]] beforehand to avoid confusions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Guidelines and Formats===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Format_guideline|General Format/Style Guideline]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Tate_no_Yuusha:Names_and_Terminology|Tate no Yuusha Names and Terminology]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Feedback &amp;amp; Discussion===&lt;br /&gt;
If you like the novel then please give us your [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=15&amp;amp;t=7641 feedback and/or thoughts]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Recent Updates==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{{:Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari: Updates||}}&lt;br /&gt;
Older updates can be found [[Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari: Updates|here]].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Light Novel Information==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The differences between the LN and WN can be found [[Tate_no_Yuusha_no_Nariagari:_Recommended_Read|here]].&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Covers===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;gallery&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_1_Cover.png|Volume 1&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_2_Cover.jpg|Volume 2&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_3_Cover.jpg|Volume 3&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_4_Cover.jpg|Volume 4&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_5_Cover.jpg|Volume 5&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_6_Cover.jpg|Volume 6&lt;br /&gt;
File:Tate_no_Yuusha_Volume_7_Cover.jpg|Volume 7&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/gallery&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Illustrations===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Tate_no_Yuusha_ Illustrations| Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Web Novel Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There are differences between the light novel and web novel. The first four volumes follow more or less the progression in the web version, but start to really diverge in the fifth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These translations are based on the web novel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 1===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_1|[Web Novel 1] Chapter 1 - Royal Summoning]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_2|[Web Novel 2] Chapter 2 - Hero Introduction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_3|[Web Novel 3] Chapter 3 - Hero Discussion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_4|[Web Novel 4] Chapter 4 - Specially Arranged Gold]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_5|[Web Novel 5] Chapter 5 - Shield&#039;s Reality ]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_6|[Web Novel 6] Chapter 6 - The Trap &amp;amp; Arts of Betrayal]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_7|[Web Novel 7] Chapter 7 - False Charge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_8|[Web Novel 8] Chapter 8 - Fallen Fame]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_9|[Web Novel 9] Chapter 9 - Something Called a Slave]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_10|[Web Novel 10] Chapter 10 - Kids&#039; Lunch]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_11|[Web Novel 11] Chapter 11 - Slave&#039;s Accomplishments ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_12|[Web Novel 12] Chapter 12 - What&#039;s Yours is Mine]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_13|[Web Novel 13] Chapter 13 - Remedy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_14|[Web Novel 14] Chapter 14 - Taking a Life]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_15|[Web Novel 15] Chapter 15 - Demi-Human&#039;s Traits ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_16|[Web Novel 16] Chapter 16 - Preparations for the Wave]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_17|[Web Novel 17] Chapter 17 - The Barbarian&#039;s Armor ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_18|[Web Novel 18] Chapter 18 - Engraved Dragon Hourglass]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_19|[Web Novel 19] Chapter 19 - Memory/Black Beast]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_20|[Web Novel 20] Chapter 20 - Wave of Calamity ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_21|[Web Novel 21] Chapter 21 - Contradicting Actions]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_22|[Web Novel 22] Chapter 22 - What I Wanted to Hear]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_23|[Web Novel 23] Chapter 23 - Shared Pain]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 2===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_24|[Web Novel 24] Chapter 24 - Egg Gacha]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_25|[Web Novel 25] Chapter 25 - Gift of Life]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_26|[Web Novel 26] Chapter 26 - Firo]] [[http://pastebin.com/Pmmdvy9a  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_27|[Web Novel 27] Chapter 27 - Growth]] &lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_28|[Web Novel 28] Chapter 28 - Exit by a Kick ]] [[http://pastebin.com/NuddPzZ0  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_29|[Web Novel 29] Chapter 29 - Those With Wings]] [[http://pastebin.com/zvzDhYEX  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_30|[Web Novel 30] Chapter 30 - Transformation Ability]] [[http://pastebin.com/RKBEUwHq  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_31|[Web Novel 31] Chapter 31 - 飴と鞭 Carrot and Stick]] [[http://pastebin.com/kB1n5bWG  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_32|[Web Novel 32] Chapter 32 - ご褒美 Reward (aka Riverside BBQ)]] [[http://pastebin.com/BRBdJnMS  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_33|[Web Novel 33] Chapter 33 - 行商 Peddling]] [[http://pastebin.com/iqjJ2dX5  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_34|[Web Novel 34] Chapter 34 - 馬車の旅 Journey on Carriage]] [[http://pastebin.com/3YtuVrta  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_35|[Web Novel 35] Chapter 35 - 勇者達の噂 Rumors of Our Hero]] [[http://pastebin.com/1gXK85Zh  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_36|[Web Novel 36] Chapter 36 - 命以外の全てを奪う To Take Everything But Your Life]] [[http://pastebin.com/bBAKPpja  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_37|[Web Novel 37] Chapter 37 - 魔法習得 Magical Study]] [[http://pastebin.com/JjS4VuLQ  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_38|[Web Novel 38] Chapter 38 - 封印された理由 The Reason it is Sealed]] [[http://pastebin.com/251SGJpZ  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_39|[Web Novel 39] Chapter 39 - 侵食植物 Plant Invasion]] [[http://pastebin.com/VKVLsf2d  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_40|[Web Novel 40] Chapter 40 - 品種改良 Selective Breeding]] [[http://pastebin.com/pH9VZP9v  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_41|[Web Novel 41] Chapter 41 - 将軍様…… Shogun-Sama]] [[http://pastebin.com/1qHiHWjS  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_42|[Web Novel 42] Chapter 42 - 疫病の村 The Village of Plague]] [[http://pastebin.com/4SqRZHzS  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_43|[Web Novel 43] Chapter 43 - カースシリーズ Curse Series]] [[http://pastebin.com/jmkfaPy1 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_44|[Web Novel 44] Chapter 44 - 憤怒の盾 Shield of Rage]] [[http://pastebin.com/maLEJtNn PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_45|[Web Novel 45] Chapter 45 - 行商の成果 The Results of Peddling]] [[http://pastebin.com/FxuQnG0E PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_46|[Web Novel 46] Chapter 46 - 蹴り逃げ、再び Exit By A Kick, Again]] [[http://pastebin.com/RV2qA2Td PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 3===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_47|[Web Novel 47] Chapter 47 - ウェルカム Welcome]] [[http://pastebin.com/jp48XpM8  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_48|[Web Novel 48] Chapter 48 - 成りすまし冤罪 Accusations of Identity Fraud]] [[http://pastebin.com/MhnD62cv PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_49|[Web Novel 49] Chapter 49 - 志願者 Volunteers]] [[http://pastebin.com/q8MK24Z5  PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_50|[Web Novel 50] Chapter 50 - 嵐の前の Before the Storm]] [[http://pastebin.com/GXMvWepL PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_51|[Web Novel 51] Chapter 51 - 第三の厄災  Third Disaster ]] [[http://pastebin.com/C8k3qEDt PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_52|[Web Novel 52] Chapter 52 - グロウアップ  Grow Up]] [[http://pastebin.com/0zw1pBs5 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_53|[Web Novel 53] Chapter 53 - アイアンメイデン Iron Maiden]] [[http://pastebin.com/CjFLqYSe PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_54|[Web Novel 54] Chapter 54 - 決別 Farewell]] [[http://pastebin.com/vXY028GG PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_55|[Web Novel 55] Chapter 55 - 旅立ち Departure]] [[http://pastebin.com/ThPHwPzH PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_56|[Web Novel 56] Chapter 56 - 盾の悪魔 Shield Demon]] [[http://pastebin.com/GkTSr9wp PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_57|[Web Novel 57] Chapter 57 - 三勇教会 The Church of The Three Heroes]] [[http://pastebin.com/fxg8m967 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_58|[Web Novel 58] Chapter 58 - 指名手配 Wanted]] [[http://pastebin.com/BS5dSDXe PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_59|[Web Novel 59] Chapter 59 - フィーロの秘密 Firo&#039;s Secret]] [[http://pastebin.com/LX5DR78b PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_60|[Web Novel 60] Chapter 60 - 悪魔の所業 Deviltry ]] [[http://pastebin.com/05N8y6HU PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_61|[Web Novel 61] Chapter 61 - 説得 Persuasion]] [[http://pastebin.com/JQ6NKR7n PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_62|[Web Novel 62] Chapter 62 - 運命共同体 Common Destiny ]] [[http://pastebin.com/mB8F3aGe PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_63|[Web Novel 63] Chapter 63 - 影 Shadow]] [[http://pastebin.com/8c8vKrni PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_64|[Web Novel 64] Chapter 64 - 名前 Names]] [[http://pastebin.com/xZ7KSys7 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Events Covered in Volume 4===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_65|[Web Novel 65] Chapter 65 - 伝説の神鳥 Legend of The Divine Bird]] [[http://pastebin.com/e5xAmgdr PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_66|[Web Novel 66] Chapter 66 - アホ毛 - Ahoge ]] [[http://pastebin.com/DybPD9h0 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_67|[Web Novel 67] Chapter 67 - 密林 - Jungle ]] [[http://pastebin.com/5S09eB0a PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_68|[Web Novel 68] Chapter 68 - 盾と槍の戦い - Battle between Spear and Shield]] [[http://pastebin.com/1A9dGgdm PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_69|[Web Novel 69] Chapter 69 - 裁き Judgement]] [[http://pastebin.com/eM507cQA PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_70|[Web Novel 70] Chapter 70 - 教皇 The Pope]] [[http://pastebin.com/ZDe2cXZt PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_71|[Web Novel 71] Chapter 71 - 複製品 - Replica ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-71-of-shieldbro-co-vs-the-pope-part-2/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_72|[Web Novel 72] Chapter 72 - ラースシールド - Wrath Shield]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-72-of-shieldbro-co-vs-the-pope-part-3/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_73|[Web Novel 73] Chapter 73 - 代償 - Price ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-73-of-shieldbro-co-vs-the-pope-part-4/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_74|[Web Novel 74] Chapter 74 - 女王 - The Queen ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/26/chapter-74-of-shieldbrotanukifiroand-melty/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_75|[Web Novel 75] Chapter 75 - 説教 - Sermon]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/27/chapter-75-badass-queen-edition/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_76|[Web Novel 76] Chapter 76 - クズとビッチ - Trash and Bitch]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/27/chapter-76-badass-queen-edition-part-2/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_77|[Web Novel 77] Chapter 77 - 土下座 - Dogeza]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/28/chapter-77-badass-queen-edition-part-3/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_78|[Web Novel 78] Chapter 78 - 契約 - Agreement]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/29/chapter-78-badass-queen-edition-part-4/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Calmira Island Arc and Beyond===&lt;br /&gt;
At this point, the web and light novels start to diverge quite a bit.&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_79|[Web Novel 79] Chapter 79 - 晩餐 - Dinner]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/29/chapter-79-badass-queen-edition-part-5/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_80|[Web Novel 80] Chapter 80 - 活発化現象 - Invigoration]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/30/chapter-80-badass-queen-edition-part-6/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_81|[Web Novel 81] Chapter 81 - クラスアップ - Class Up]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/30/chapter-81-of-shieldbrotanukifiroand-melty/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_82|[Web Novel 82] Chapter 82 - 墓参り - Grave Visit]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/09/30/chapter-82-of-shieldbro-tanuki-firo-and-melty/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_83|[Web Novel 83] Chapter 83 - 伝承の魔法 - Magic Lore]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/01/chapter-83-shieldbro-tanuki-and-firo/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_84|[Web Novel 84] Chapter 84 - カルミラ島ジンクス・誕生編 Cal Mira Island Jinx - Origin Story]] [[http://anontranslator.wordpress.com/2014/10/02/tate-no-yuusha-ch-84/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_85|[Web Novel 85] Chapter 85 - 槍の勇者の仲間達 - The Companions of the Spear Hero]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/02/chapter-85-of-shieldbro-no-tanuki-and-firo-edition/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_86|[Web Novel 86] Chapter 86 - 愚痴 - Murmurs]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/03/chapter-86-of-shieldbro-woman-1-and-shadow/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_87|[Web Novel 87] Chapter 87 - 槍の勇者と仲間達 - The Spear Hero &amp;amp; My Companions]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/04/chapter-86-hero-of-the-spears-companions/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_88|[Web Novel 88] Chapter 88 - 直感と分析 - Intuition and Analysis]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/05/chapter-88-intuition-and-analysis/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_89|[Web Novel 89] Chapter 89 - カルミラ島スポーツ誕生 - The Birth of Cal Mira Island Sports]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/06/chapter-89-the-birth-of-cal-mira-island-sports/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_90|[Web Novel 90] Chapter 90 - 人員交換の意義 - The Significance of Personnel Exchange]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/07/chapter-90-the-significance-of-personnel-exchange/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_91|[Web Novel 91] Chapter 91 - 剣の勇者の仲間達 - The Companions of the Sword Hero]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/08/chapter-91-hero-of-the-swords-companions/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_92|[Web Novel 92] Chapter 92 - 剣の勇者と仲間達 - The Sword Hero &amp;amp; My Companions]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/09/chapter-92-being-companions-to-the-hero-of-the-sword// PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_93|[Web Novel 93] Chapter 93 - 酒場 - Tavern]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/10/chapter-93-bar/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_94|[Web Novel 94] Chapter 94 - 弓の勇者の仲間達 - The Companions of the Bow Hero]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/11/chapter-94-being-companions-to-the-hero-of-the-bow/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_95|[Web Novel 95] Chapter 95 - 正義の病 - The Disease of Justice]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/11/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-95/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_96|[Web Novel 96] Chapter 96 - 弓の勇者と仲間達 - The Bow Hero &amp;amp; My Companions]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/12/chapter-96-being-companions-to-the-hero-of-the-bow/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_97|[Web Novel 97] Chapter 97 - 虚言 - Lies]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/12/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-97/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_98|[Web Novel 98] Chapter 98 - 反省会 - Evaluation Session]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/13/chapter-98-evaluation-meeting/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_99|[Web Novel 99] Chapter 99 - カルミラ島ジンクス・流行編 - Karumira Island Jinx - Craze Chapter]] [[http://epithetic.wordpress.com/2014/10/15/shieldbro-99-calmira-island-jinx-craze-chapter/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_100|[Web Novel 100] Chapter 100 - 温泉 Hot Spring]] [[http://pastebin.com/F3umyv3i PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_101|[Web Novel 101] Chapter 101 - 勇者会議【上】 - Hero Conference (Start)]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/13/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-101/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_102|[Web Novel 102] Chapter 102 - 勇者会議【中】 - Hero Conference (Middle)]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/15/chapter-102-hero-conference-during/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_103|[Web Novel 103] Chapter 103 - 勇者会議【下】 - Hero Conference (End)]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/15/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-103/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_104|[Web Novel 104] Chapter 104 - １/４ ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/16/chapter-104-14/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_105|[Web Novel 105] Chapter 105 - ウェポンコピー - Weapon Copy]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/17/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-105/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_106|[Web Novel 106] Chapter 106 - カルミラ島の日々 - Days Spent on Karumira Island]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/18/chapter-106-days-on-cal-mira-island/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_107|[Web Novel 107] Chapter 107 - カルミラ島ジンクス・躍進編 The Karumira Island Revolution]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/18/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-107/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_108|[Web Novel 108] Chapter 108 - 冤罪、再び - False Charges, Again]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/19/chapter-108-false-accusations-again/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_109|[Web Novel 109] Chapter 109 - 解雇の理由 - Reason for Dismissal]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/19/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-109/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_110|[Web Novel 110] Chapter 110 - 幸薄少女 - A Girl Full of Joy ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/19/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-110/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_111|[Web Novel 111] Chapter 111 - 馬鹿にしか見えない王 - A King I Can Only See as an Idiot]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/20/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-111/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_112|[Web Novel 112] Chapter 112 - 倉庫 - Storage]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/21/chapter-112-warehouse/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_113|[Web Novel 113] Chapter 113 - 強くなる方法 - How to Become Stronger]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/21/chapter-113-a-method-on-becoming-stronger/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_114|[Web Novel 114] Chapter 114 - 流星盾 - Meteor Shield]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/21/chapter-114-meteor-shield/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_115|[Web Novel 115] Chapter 115 - 武器屋の好奇心 Weapon Shop Owner&#039;s Curiosity]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/22/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-115/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_116|[Web Novel 116] Chapter 116 - 青い砂音 - Blue Sand Sound]] [[http://pastebin.com/q0icNhPA PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_117|[Web Novel 117] Chapter 117 - ゲーム知識が牙を剥く時 When Game Knowledge Bares its Fangs ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/23/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-117/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_118|[Web Novel 118] Chapter 118 - ＶＳ霊亀、偵察戦 Versus the Spirit Tortoise, Scout Battle ]][[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/24/chapter-118-vs-spirit-turtle-recon-battle/#more-573 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_119|[Web Novel 119] Chapter 119 - 戦後への対策 Measures to End a Battle ]][[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/24/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-119/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_120|[Web Novel 120] Chapter 120 - 時間稼ぎ - Stalling for Time ]] [[http://pastebin.com/bijd18Ub PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_121|[Web Novel 121] Chapter 121 - 勇者の碑文 - The Inscription of the Heroes ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/25/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-121/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_122|[Web Novel 122] Chapter 122 - 探索 Exploration ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/26/chapter-122-exploration/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_123|[Web Novel 123] Chapter 123 - 青の砂時計 - Blue Hourglass ]][[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/27/chapter-213-blue-hourglass/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_124|[Web Novel 124] Chapter 124 - 霊亀の心臓 - Heart of the Spirit Tortoise ]] [[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/2014/10/28/chapter-124-heart-of-the-spirit-turtle/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_125|[Web Novel 125] Chapter 125 - 可能性 - Possibilities ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/28/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-125/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_126|[Web Novel 126] Chapter 126 - ＶＳ霊亀　最終決戦 - Versus the Spirit Tortoise, The Final Fight]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/29/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-126/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_127|[Web Novel 127] Chapter 127 - 過保護 - Overprotective ]][[http://anontranslator.wordpress.com/2014/10/26/tate-no-yuusha-ch-127/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_128|[Web Novel 128] Chapter 128 - 勇者の処遇 - A Hero&#039;s Treatment ]][[http://pastebin.com/PR1Uu28w/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_129|[Web Novel 129] Chapter 129 - 地位 - Social Standing ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/31/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-129/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_130|[Web Novel 130] Chapter 130 - Ｌｖリセット - Level Reset ]] [[http://pastebin.com/Ykdk9zd2 PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_131|[Web Novel 131] Chapter 131 - 出会った場所 - The Place We Met ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/01/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-131/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_132|[Web Novel 132] Chapter 132 - 知人達 - Acquaintances ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/01/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-132/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_133|[Web Novel 133] Chapter 133 - Ｅフロート - E Float]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/01/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-133/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_134|[Web Novel 134] Chapter 134 - バルーンシールド Balloon Shield ]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/11/02/the-rise-of-the-shield-hero-chapter-134/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_135|[Web Novel 135] Chapter 135 - 餌付け - Artificial Feeding ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_136|[Web Novel 136] Chapter 136 - 夜食 - Nighttime Meal ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_137|[Web Novel 137] Chapter 137 - 海の男女 - People of the Sea ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_138|[Web Novel 138] Chapter 138 - 同性のみ可 - Same Sex Only ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_139|[Web Novel 139] Chapter 139 - 盾の看板 - Shield Billboard ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_140|[Web Novel 140] Chapter 140 - 脱走と発見 - Desertion and Discovery ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_141|[Web Novel 141] Chapter 141 - 槍の勇者捕獲作戦 - The Plan to Capture Spear Hero ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_142|[Web Novel 142] Chapter 142 - ゲームが終わった日 - The Day the Game Ended ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_143|[Web Novel 143] Chapter 143 - 魔物問題 - Demon Problem ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_144|[Web Novel 144] Chapter 144 - 決断 - Determination ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_145|[Web Novel 145] Chapter 145 - 報告 - Report ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_146|[Web Novel 146] Chapter 146 - 獣人 - Beastman ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_147|[Web Novel 147] Chapter 147 - 旗、再び - Flag, Again ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_148|[Web Novel 148] Chapter 148 - 失敗作 - Failed Creation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_149|[Web Novel 149] Chapter 149 - 錬金術師 - Alchemist ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_150|[Web Novel 150] Chapter 150 - 優遇も差別 Discrimination Even in Hospitality ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_151|[Web Novel 151] Chapter 151 - キャンピングプラント - Camping Plant ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_152|[Web Novel 152] Chapter 152 - 御用 - Arrest ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_153|[Web Novel 153] Chapter 153 - 本当はわかっている事 - Truthfully Understanding ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_154|[Web Novel 154] Chapter 154 - 自主性 - Independence ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_155|[Web Novel 155] Chapter 155 - ゼルトブル - Zeltbur]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_156|[Web Novel 156] Chapter 156 - 正夢 - Dreams Come True ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_157|[Web Novel 157] Chapter 157 - 買い付け - Purchase ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_158|[Web Novel 158] Chapter 158 - 神木の薬 - Medicine of the Sacred Tree]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_159|[Web Novel 159] Chapter 159 - パーフェクト＝ハイド＝ジャスティス - Perfect Hidden Justice ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_160|[Web Novel 160] Chapter 160 - 村へ帰る - Return to the Village ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_161|[Web Novel 161] Chapter 161 - 王女来訪 - Visiting the Princess ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_162|[Web Novel 162] Chapter 162 - フィロリアルとドラゴン - Filorial and Dragon ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_163|[Web Novel 163] Chapter 163 - ヴィッチ - Witch ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_164|[Web Novel 164] Chapter 164 - 投げやり - Negligence ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_165|[Web Novel 165] Chapter 165 - 新たな目覚め - A New Awakening ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_166|[Web Novel 166] Chapter 166 - 孵化 - Hatching ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_167|[Web Novel 167] Chapter 167 - 変幻無双流 - Peerless Transformation ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_168|[Web Novel 168] Chapter 168 - アルプス - Alps]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_169|[Web Novel 169] Chapter 169 - 武器屋の弟子 - Weapon Shop Owner and Apprentice ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_170|[Web Novel 170] Chapter 170 - クズとハクコ - Trash and Hakuko ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_171|[Web Novel 171] Chapter 171 - ポータルシールド - Portable Shield ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_172|[Web Novel 172] Chapter 172 - 修行 - Training]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_173|[Web Novel 173] Chapter 173 - 盾を守る盾 A Shield to Protect Shields ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_174|[Web Novel 174] Chapter 174 - メルティのお仕事 Melty&#039;s Job ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_175|[Web Novel 175] Chapter 175 - ピンポンダッシュ - Bells and Away]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_176|[Web Novel 176] Chapter 176 - ヘタレ - Loser ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_177|[Web Novel 177] Chapter 177 - Ｌｖドレイン　- Level Drain ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_178|[Web Novel 178] Chapter 178 - 戦力把握 - Grasping Forces]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_179|[Web Novel 179] Chapter 179 - 煩悩の塊 - Lump of Desire]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_180|[Web Novel 180] Chapter 180 - 幸運 - Good Fortune]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_181|[Web Novel 181] Chapter 181 - 合唱魔法 - Chorus Magic ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_182|[Web Novel 182] Chapter 182 - ラースドラゴン - Wrath Dragon ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_183|[Web Novel 183] Chapter 183 - 変 - Odd]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_184|[Web Novel 184] Chapter 184 - 浄化 - Purification]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_185|[Web Novel 185] Chapter 185 - ニックネーム - Nickname ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_186|[Web Novel 186] Chapter 186 - 竜の怒り - Dragon&#039;s Anger]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_187|[Web Novel 187] Chapter 187 - 解除 - Release]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_188|[Web Novel 188] Chapter 188 - 敬礼 - Salute]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_189|[Web Novel 189] Chapter 189 - 秘密基地 - Secret Base]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_190|[Web Novel 190] Chapter 190 - 正式依頼 - Formal Request]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_191|[Web Novel 191] Chapter 191 - 大器晩成 - Late Bloomer]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_192|[Web Novel 192] Chapter 192 - 仮面の男 - Masked Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_193|[Web Novel 193] Chapter 193 - 七つの大罪 - Seven Sins]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_194|[Web Novel 194] Chapter 194 - ドラゴンサンクチュアリ- Dragon Sanctuary ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_195|[Web Novel 195] Chapter 195 - 強欲 - Greed]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_196|[Web Novel 196] Chapter 196 - 現実ＶＳ理想 - Reality VS Ideal]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_197|[Web Novel 197] Chapter 197 - 閃光 - Flash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_198|[Web Novel 198] Chapter 198 - 目的 - Purpose]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_199|[Web Novel 199] Chapter 199 - 盾の勇者の朝 _ Morning of Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_200|[Web Novel 200] Chapter 200 - 反省 - Evaluation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_201|[Web Novel 201] Chapter 201 - クズとアトラ - Trash and Atla]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_202|[Web Novel 202] Chapter 202 - 恩赦 - Amnesty]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_203|[Web Novel 203] Chapter 203 - 魔力の流れ - Flow of Magic Power]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_204|[Web Novel 204] Chapter 204 - 龍脈法 - Dragon Leylines]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_205|[Web Novel 205] Chapter 205 - 恋の季節 - Season of Love]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_206|[Web Novel 206] Chapter 206 - フィトリアの依頼 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_207|[Web Novel 207] Chapter 207 - レース - Race]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_208|[Web Novel 208] Chapter 208 - ショートカット - Shortcut]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_209|[Web Novel 209] Chapter 209 - 色欲 - Lust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_210|[Web Novel 210] Chapter 210 - 嫉妬 - Envy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_211|[Web Novel 211] Chapter 211 - 仲間割れ - Internal Discord]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_212|[Web Novel 212] Chapter 212 - 愛の狩人 - Love Hunter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_213|[Web Novel 213] Chapter 213 - 仮眠 - Nap]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_214|[Web Novel 214] Chapter 214 - 革命派 - Revolutionaries]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_215|[Web Novel 215] Chapter 215 - 蛮族の鎧＋２ - Barbarian Armor+2]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_216|[Web Novel 216] Chapter 216 - 複合所有権 - Complex Ownership]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_217|[Web Novel 217] Chapter 217 - 盾の勇者の攻略講座 - Shield Hero&#039;s Cheat Course]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_218|[Web Novel 218] Chapter 218 - ふんどし忠犬 - Fundoshi Wearing Loyal Dog]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_219|[Web Novel 219] Chapter 219 - 無双活性 - Peerless Activity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_220|[Web Novel 220] Chapter 220 - 男の娘 - Trap]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_221|[Web Novel 221] Chapter 221 - 解放時間 - Release Time]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_222|[Web Novel 222] Chapter 222 - ゲーム知識 - Game Knowledge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_223|[Web Novel 223] Chapter 223 - 献身願望 - Desire of Devotion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_224|[Web Novel 224] Chapter 224 - 婚約者 - Fiance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_225|[Web Novel 225] Chapter 225 - 行き違い - Disagreement]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_226|[Web Novel 226] Chapter 226 - 異変 - Abnormality]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_227|[Web Novel 227] Chapter 227 - 毒 - Poison]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_228|[Web Novel 228] Chapter 228 - 洗脳 - Brainwash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_229|[Web Novel 229] Chapter 229 - 複数犯 - Multiple Offender]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_230|[Web Novel 230] Chapter 230 - 感染性 - Infectious]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_231|[Web Novel 231] Chapter 231 - 誤算 - Miscalculation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_232|[Web Novel 232] Chapter 232 - 努力 - Effort]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_233|[Web Novel 233] Chapter 233 - 正義の短剣 - Justice Dagger]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_234|[Web Novel 234] Chapter 234 - 集団心理 - Mass Psychology]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_235|[Web Novel 235] Chapter 235 - 残党 - Remnant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_236|[Web Novel 236] Chapter 236 - 盾の魔王 - Demon Lord of Shield]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_237|[Web Novel 237] Chapter 237 - 霊亀甲 Reiki Armor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_238|[Web Novel 238] Chapter 238 - 深追い - Following Deep]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_239|[Web Novel 239] Chapter 239 - 機会 - Opportunity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_240|[Web Novel 240] Chapter 240 - 研究資料 - Research Material]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_241|[Web Novel 241] Chapter 241 - 正義の弓 - Justice Bow]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_242|[Web Novel 242] Chapter 242 - 正義の否定 - Denial of Justice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_243|[Web Novel 243] Chapter 243 - 決闘条件 - Duel Condition]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_244|[Web Novel 244] Chapter 244 - 正義ＶＳ正義 - Justice VS Justice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_245|[Web Novel 245] Chapter 245 - 覚醒 - Awakening]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_246|[Web Novel 246] Chapter 246 - 革命 - Revolution]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_247|[Web Novel 247] Chapter 247 - 城下町爆走事件 - Riot Incident at Castle Town]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_248|[Web Novel 248] Chapter 248 - 旗揚げ - Drafting Army]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_249|[Web Novel 249] Chapter 249 - 完勝 - Complete Victory]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_250|[Web Novel 250] Chapter 250 - 昇進 - Promotion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_251|[Web Novel 251] Chapter 251 - 勇者の血族 - Bloodline of Heroes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_252|[Web Novel 252] Chapter 252 - 命乞い - Begging for live]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_253|[Web Novel 253] Chapter 253 - イエスマン - Yes Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_254|[Web Novel 254] Chapter 254 - Vol.1 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_255|[Web Novel 255] Chapter 255 - スタート地点 - Start Point]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_256|[Web Novel 256] Chapter 256 - 優越感 - Superiority Complex]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_257|[Web Novel 257] Chapter 257 - リベレイション - Liberation ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_258|[Web Novel 258] Chapter 258 - 盾の両面を見よ - Look at Both side of shield]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_259|[Web Novel 259] Chapter 259 - 義賊 - Righteous Thief]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_260|[Web Novel 260] Chapter 260 - 悪化 - Deteriorate]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_261|[Web Novel 261] Chapter 261 - 異能力者 - ESPER]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_262|[Web Novel 262] Chapter 262 - 研究所訪問 - Laboratory Visit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_263|[Web Novel 263] Chapter 263 - 抜き打ちチェック - Surprise Inspection]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_264|[Web Novel 264] Chapter 264 - ファミリア - Familia ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_265|[Web Novel 265] Chapter 265 - 深夜の攻防 - Midnight Battle]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_266|[Web Novel 266] Chapter 266 - 虎男 - Tiger Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_267|[Web Novel 267] Chapter 267 - 一時休戦 - Temporary Truce]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_268|[Web Novel 268] Chapter 268 - 酒 - Liquor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_269|[Web Novel 269] Chapter 269 - 真相は闇の中 - Truth in the Darkness]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_270|[Web Novel 270] Chapter 270 - 豚王 - Pig King]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_271|[Web Novel 271] Chapter 271 - キング - King ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_272|[Web Novel 272] Chapter 272 - 第二回勇者会議【上】 The 2nd Heroes Conference(First Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_273|[Web Novel 273] Chapter 273 - 第二回勇者会議【中】 The 2nd Heroes Conference(Middle Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_274|[Web Novel 274] Chapter 274 - 第二回勇者会議【下】 The 2nd Heroes Conference(Final Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_275|[Web Novel 275] Chapter 275 - 復興祭 - Reconstruction Festival]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_276|[Web Novel 276] Chapter 276 - 競羽 - Wing Competition]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_277|[Web Novel 277] Chapter 277 - 新・七つの大罪 - The New Seven Sins]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_278|[Web Novel 278] Chapter 278 - 遺伝子改造 _ Gene Remodeling]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_279|[Web Novel 279] Chapter 279 - 空中要塞 - Floating Fortress]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_280|[Web Novel 280] Chapter 280 - 人体実験 - Human Body Experiment]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_281|[Web Novel 281] Chapter 281 - 生命倫理 - Life Ethics]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_282|[Web Novel 282] Chapter 282 - バイオカスタム - Bio Custom]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_283|[Web Novel 283] Chapter 283 - 一長一短 - One Long, One Short]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_284|[Web Novel 284] Chapter 284 - 第二塔の攻防 - Battle of Second Tower]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_285|[Web Novel 285] Chapter 285 - 第二世代 - Second Generation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_286|[Web Novel 286] Chapter 286 - 戦況反転 - Battle Situation Reversed]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_287|[Web Novel 287] Chapter 287 - 研究結果 - Research Result]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_288|[Web Novel 288] Chapter 288 - 損害賠償 - Compensation of Damage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_289|[Web Novel 289] Chapter 289 - 期間限定 - Limited-Time Offer]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_290|[Web Novel 290] Chapter 290 - クレープの木 - Crepe Tree]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_291|[Web Novel 291] Chapter 291 - 竜信仰 - Dragon Faith]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_292|[Web Novel 292] Chapter 292 - 新型馬車 - A New Type of Carriage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_293|[Web Novel 293] Chapter 293 - ラフのラフ種 - Raph of Raph Race]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_294|[Web Novel 294] Chapter 294 - 集・壁・玉 - Gather, Wall, Ball]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_295|[Web Novel 295] Chapter 295 - 兄妹喧嘩 - Sibling Fight]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_296|[Web Novel 296] Chapter 296 - 虎々激突 - Tigers Clash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_297|[Web Novel 297] Chapter 297 - 鳳凰の地 - The Land of Houou]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_298|[Web Novel 298] Chapter 298 - 勇者の日記 - Hero Diary]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_299|[Web Novel 299] Chapter 299 - 最後の七星武器 - The Last Seven-Star Weapons]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_300|[Web Novel 300] Chapter 300 - 七星武器 - Seven-Star Weapon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_301|[Web Novel 301] Chapter 301 - 鳳凰戦前夜 - Eve of Houou War]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_302|[Web Novel 302] Chapter 302 - VS鳳凰 VS Houou]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_303|[Web Novel 303] Chapter 303 - 許されざる閃光 - Unforgivable Flash]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_304|[Web Novel 304] Chapter 304 - 大き過ぎる代償 - A Price Too Great]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_305|[Web Novel 305] Chapter 305 - 盾になった少女 - The Girl Who Became a Shield]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_306|[Web Novel 306] Chapter 306 - ＶＳ鳳凰　終結 - VS Houou Finale]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_307|[Web Novel 307] Chapter 307 - 葬儀 - Funeral]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_308|[Web Novel 308] Chapter 308 - 麒麟 - Kirin]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_309|[Web Novel 309] Chapter 309 - 迷走 - Off-Course]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_310|[Web Novel 310] Chapter 310 - 銃器 - Firearms]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_311|[Web Novel 311] Chapter 311 - 天才 - Genius]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_312|[Web Novel 312] Chapter 312 - 奪われた力 - Stolen Power]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_313|[Web Novel 313] Chapter 313 - 撤退 - Retreat]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_314|[Web Novel 314] Chapter 314 - 遺言 - Last Will]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_315|[Web Novel 315] Chapter 315 - 精霊 - Spirit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_316|[Web Novel 316] Chapter 316 - 本当の敵 - The Real Enemy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_317|[Web Novel 317] Chapter 317 - 杖の勇者 - The Wand Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_318|[Web Novel 318] Chapter 318 - 作戦会議 - Strategy Meeting]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_319|[Web Novel 319] Chapter 319 - グラマーＶＳロリ - Glamour VS Loli]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_320|[Web Novel 320] Chapter 320 - ラフちゃん - Raph-chan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_321|[Web Novel 321] Chapter 321 - 焼きもち - Jealousy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_322|[Web Novel 322] Chapter 322 - 第八世代 - 8th Generation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_323|[Web Novel 323] Chapter 323 - チェンジ・ラフ - Change-Raph]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_324|[Web Novel 324] Chapter 324 - 英知の賢王 - The Wise King]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_325|[Web Novel 325] Chapter 325 - 挑発 - Provocation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_326|[Web Novel 326] Chapter 326 - Ⅹ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_327|[Web Novel 327] Chapter 327 - よそ見 - Look Away]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_328|[Web Novel 328] Chapter 328 - フェンリルフォース - Fenrir Force]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_329|[Web Novel 329] Chapter 329 - グレイプニルロープ - Gleiphnir Rope]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_330|[Web Novel 330] Chapter 330 - 一般人 - A Common Man]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_331|[Web Novel 331] Chapter 331 - 最強の七星勇者 - The Strongest of Seven Star Heroes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_332|[Web Novel 332] Chapter 332 - 狐七化け、狸八化け - A Fox Will Fool You Seven Times, but a Racoon Eight Times]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_333|[Web Novel 333] Chapter 333 - 盾の勇者が命ずる - By the Order of Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_334|[Web Novel 334] Chapter 334 - 三分の二 - Two-Thirds]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_335|[Web Novel 335] Chapter 335 - 共闘 - United Front]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_336|[Web Novel 336] Chapter 336 - 八番目 - The 8th]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_337|[Web Novel 337] Chapter 337 - 世界融合 - World Fusion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_338|[Web Novel 338] Chapter 338 - 僭称する者 - The One Who Hid His Title]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_339|[Web Novel 339] Chapter 339 - 強化方法【上】 - Enhancement Method(First Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_340|[Web Novel 340] Chapter 340 - 強化方法【中】 - Enhancement Method(Middle Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_341|[Web Novel 341] Chapter 341 - 強化方法【下】 - Enhancement Method(Final Part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_342|[Web Novel 342] Chapter 342 - 異世界交流 - Other-World Exchange  ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_343|[Web Novel 343] Chapter 343 - 処刑 - Execution]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_344|[Web Novel 344] Chapter 344 - ソウルイーター - Soul Eater]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_345|[Web Novel 345] Chapter 345 - 自責の念 - Remorse]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_346|[Web Novel 346] Chapter 346 - 限界突破 - Limit Break]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_347|[Web Novel 347] Chapter 347 - 即位 - Coronation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_348|[Web Novel 348] Chapter 348 - 恋愛相談 - Love Consultation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_349|[Web Novel 349] Chapter 349 - 人生の墓場 - The Graveyard of Life]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_350|[Web Novel 350] Chapter 350 - 理想論 - Idealism]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_351|[Web Novel 351] Chapter 351 - フィロリアルの聖域 - Filorial Sanctuary]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_352|[Web Novel 352] Chapter 352 - 出る杭を打つ - Clearing Stock]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_353|[Web Novel 353] Chapter 353 - チート - Cheat ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_354|[Web Novel 354] Chapter 354 - 真紅に染まる空 - Crimson-Stained Sky]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_355|[Web Novel 355] Chapter 355 - 女神降臨 - Goddess Descent]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_356|[Web Novel 356] Chapter 356 - Ｌｖ上げ - Level Up]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_357|[Web Novel 357] Chapter 357 - 望まぬ帰還 - Undesired Return]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_358|[Web Novel 358] Chapter 358 - 帰宅 - Homecoming]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_359|[Web Novel 359] Chapter 359 - 歯痒さ - Frustration]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_360|[Web Novel 360] Chapter 360 - 選択 - Choice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_361|[Web Novel 361] Chapter 361 - 敵の敵は - An Enemy of the Enemy is... ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_362|[Web Novel 362] Chapter 362 - 不老不死 - Immortality]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_363|[Web Novel 363] Chapter 363 - 全てを守る力 - The Power to Protect Everything]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_364|[Web Novel 364] Chapter 364 - 二年間 - Two Years]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_365|[Web Novel 365] Chapter 365 - ディフェンスリンク - Defense Link ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_366|[Web Novel 366] Chapter 366 - 疑心暗鬼 - Paranoia Makes a Monster Out of Anything]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_367|[Web Novel 367] Chapter 367 - 三号狙い - Aim at the Third One]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_368|[Web Novel 368] Chapter 368 - 脆い所 - Soft-Spot]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_369|[Web Novel 369] Chapter 369 - 決戦前夜 - Eve of Battle]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_370|[Web Novel 370] Chapter 370 - 蛮族の鎧EX - Barbarian Armor EX]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_371|[Web Novel 371] Chapter 371 - 代行者 - Representative]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_372|[Web Novel 372] Chapter 372 - 末路 - End]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_373|[Web Novel 373] Chapter 373 - 一対の力 - Power of Pair]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_374|[Web Novel 374] Chapter 374 - 信頼 - Trust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_375|[Web Novel 375] Chapter 375 - 宴 - Feast]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_376|[Web Novel 376] Chapter 376 - 異世界と現代 - Other-World and Our Own World]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_377|[Web Novel 377] Chapter 377 - ロックバレー勇者伝説 - Rock Valley&#039;s Legend of Heroes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_378|[Web Novel 378] Chapter 378 - 盾の勇者の成り上がり - The Rising Of Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==&#039;&#039;&#039;SIDE STORIES&#039;&#039;&#039;==&lt;br /&gt;
===The Christmas of Shield Hero (PREVIEW)===&lt;br /&gt;
/*spoiler tales - read at your own interest*/&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_379|[Web Novel 379] Chapter 379 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【１】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[I]]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/05/the-christmas-of-the-shield-hero-part-1/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_380|[Web Novel 380] Chapter 380 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【２】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[II]]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/06/the-christmas-of-the-shield-hero-part-2/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_381|[Web Novel 381] Chapter 381 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【３】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[III]]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/06/the-christmas-of-the-shield-hero-part-3/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_382|[Web Novel 382] Chapter 382 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【４】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[IV]]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/07/the-christmas-of-the-shield-hero-part-4/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_383|[Web Novel 383] Chapter 383 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【５】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[V]]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/08/the-christmas-of-the-shield-hero-part-5/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_384|[Web Novel 384] Chapter 384 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【６】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[VI]]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/10/the-christmas-of-the-shield-hero-part-6/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_385|[Web Novel 385] Chapter 385 - 番外編　盾の勇者のクリスマス【終】 - Side Story - The Christmas of Shield Hero[END]]] [[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/2014/10/10/the-christmas-of-the-shield-hero-conclusion/ PREVIEW]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===The Valentine of Shield Hero===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_386|[Web Novel 386] Chapter 386 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[I]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_387|[Web Novel 387] Chapter 387 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【２】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[II]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_388|[Web Novel 388] Chapter 388 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【３】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[III]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_389|[Web Novel 389] Chapter 389 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【４】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[IV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_390|[Web Novel 390] Chapter 390 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【５】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[V]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_391|[Web Novel 391] Chapter 391 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【６】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[VI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_392|[Web Novel 392] Chapter 392 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【７】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[VII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_393|[Web Novel 393] Chapter 393 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【８】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[VIII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_394|[Web Novel 394] Chapter 394 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【９】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[IX]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_395|[Web Novel 395] Chapter 395 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１０】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[X]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_396|[Web Novel 396] Chapter 396 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１１】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_397|[Web Novel 397] Chapter 397 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１２】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_398|[Web Novel 398] Chapter 398 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１３】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XIII]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_399|[Web Novel 399] Chapter 399 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１４】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XIV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_400|[Web Novel 400] Chapter 400 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１５】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_401|[Web Novel 401] Chapter 401 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【１６】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[XVI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_402|[Web Novel 402] Chapter 402 - 番外編　盾の勇者のバレンタイン【終】 - Side Story - The Valentine of Shield Hero[END]]]&lt;br /&gt;
===The White Day of Shield Hero===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_403|[Web Novel 403] Chapter 403 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【１】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[I]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_404|[Web Novel 404] Chapter 404 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【２】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[II]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_405|[Web Novel 405] Chapter 405 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【３】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[III]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_406|[Web Novel 406] Chapter 406 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【４】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[IV]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_407|[Web Novel 407] Chapter 407 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【５】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[V]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_408|[Web Novel 408] Chapter 408 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【６】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[VI]]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_409|[Web Novel 409] Chapter 409 - 番外編　盾の勇者のホワイトデー【終】 - Side Story - The White Day of Shield Hero[END]]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==外伝　槍の勇者のやり直し(Side Story - Start Over of The Spear Hero)==&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 1 to 3 - Tutorial Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_410|[Web Novel 410] Chapter 410 - 槍の勇者のやり直し - Start Over of The Spear Hero ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_411|[Web Novel 411] Chapter 411 - クロちゃん - Kuro-chan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_412|[Web Novel 412] Chapter 412 - レベリング - Leveling]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_413|[Web Novel 413] Chapter 413 - 金稼ぎ - Earning Money]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_414|[Web Novel 414] Chapter 414 - 時間遡行 - Time Regression]]&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 4 - Siltvelt Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_415|[Web Novel 415] Chapter 415 - 落とし穴 - Pitfall]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_416|[Web Novel 416] Chapter 416 - 牢獄 - Prison]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_417|[Web Novel 417] Chapter 417 - 老害 - Old Damage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_418|[Web Novel 418] Chapter 418 - エイミング - Aiming]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_419|[Web Novel 419] Chapter 419 - 護衛 - Escort]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_420|[Web Novel 420] Chapter 420 - アブソーブ - Absorb]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_421|[Web Novel 421] Chapter 421 - フィロリアル生産者 - Filorial Producer]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_422|[Web Novel 422] Chapter 422 - 亜人の酒場 - Demi-human&#039;s Tavern]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_423|[Web Novel 423] Chapter 423 - 樽風呂 - Barrel Bath]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_424|[Web Novel 424] Chapter 424 - 名付け親- Godparent ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_425|[Web Novel 425] Chapter 425 - 幻覚 - Illusion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_426|[Web Novel 426] Chapter 426 - キャンプ- Camp ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_427|[Web Novel 427] Chapter 427 - 服作り- Making Clothes ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_428|[Web Novel 428] Chapter 428 - 天使 - Angel]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_429|[Web Novel 429] Chapter 429 - 手腕 - Aptitude]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_430|[Web Novel 430] Chapter 430 - 三着の服 - Three Pieces of Clothes]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_431|[Web Novel 431] Chapter 431 - 合流 - Regroup]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_432|[Web Novel 432] Chapter 432 - 覗き - Peeping]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_433|[Web Novel 433] Chapter 433 - 実戦経験 - Battle Experience]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_434|[Web Novel 434] Chapter 434 - 大きなフィロリアル様 - A Huge Filorial-sama]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_435|[Web Novel 435] Chapter 435 - 羽飾り - Feather Ornament]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_436|[Web Novel 436] Chapter 436 - シルトヴェルト - Siltvelt]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_437|[Web Novel 437] Chapter 437 - 運命の相手 - Fated Person]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_438|[Web Novel 438] Chapter 438 - 縁談 - Proposal]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_439|[Web Novel 439] Chapter 439 - 毒 - Poison]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_440|[Web Novel 440] Chapter 440 - ビーストスピア - Beast Spear]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_441|[Web Novel 441] Chapter 441 - 偽者 - Imposter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_442|[Web Novel 442] Chapter 442 - 裏路地にて - In the Back Alley]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_443|[Web Novel 443] Chapter 443 - 襲撃 - Raid]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_444|[Web Novel 444] Chapter 444 - シルドフリーデン - Sildfriden]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_445|[Web Novel 445] Chapter 445 - 鞭の勇者一行 - Whip Hero Party]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_446|[Web Novel 446] Chapter 446 - フラッシュバック - FLashback]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_447|[Web Novel 447] Chapter 447 - 消し炭 - Burned to Charcoal]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_448|[Web Novel 448] Chapter 448 - 不穏 - Unrest]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_449|[Web Novel 449] Chapter 449 - 残党 - Remnant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_450|[Web Novel 450] Chapter 450 - 飛竜 - Flying Dragon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_451|[Web Novel 451] Chapter 451 - 残り香 - Scent]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_452|[Web Novel 452] Chapter 452 - 道化 - Harlequin]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_453|[Web Novel 453] Chapter 453 - 聖戦 - Crusade]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_454|[Web Novel 454] Chapter 454 - 心に刻む - Engrave in Heart]]&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 5 - Melromarc Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_455|[Web Novel 455] Chapter 455 - 安全確保 - Security]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_456|[Web Novel 456] Chapter 456 - 聞き耳 - Listen]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_457|[Web Novel 457] Chapter 457 - 暗殺 - Assassination]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_458|[Web Novel 458] Chapter 458 - ただしイケメンに限る - limited to Handsome]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_459|[Web Novel 459] Chapter 459 - 色 - Color]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_460|[Web Novel 460] Chapter 460 - 証拠 - Evidence]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_461|[Web Novel 461] Chapter 461 - 改竄 - Alter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_462|[Web Novel 462] Chapter 462 - 戦争回避 - War Avoidance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_463|[Web Novel 463] Chapter 463 - 行商計画 - Peddlig Plan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_464|[Web Novel 464] Chapter 464 - 世界を呪わない - To Not Curse the World ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_465|[Web Novel 465] Chapter 465 - 魔物商 - Monster Shop]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_466|[Web Novel 466] Chapter 466 - ブラフ - Bluff]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_467|[Web Novel 467] Chapter 467 - 差異 - Difference]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_468|[Web Novel 468] Chapter 468 - 取り寄せ - In Stock]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_469|[Web Novel 469] Chapter 469 - 勧誘拒否 - Refusing Invitation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_470|[Web Novel 470] Chapter 470 - 商業通行手形 - Commercial Permit]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_471|[Web Novel 471] Chapter 471 - 裁縫 - Sewing]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_472|[Web Novel 472] Chapter 472 - 峠 - Ridge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_473|[Web Novel 473] Chapter 473 - フィロリアルの変化 - Filorial&#039;s Change]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_474|[Web Novel 474] Chapter 474 - 馬車作り - Carriage Making]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_475|[Web Novel 475] Chapter 475 - 怠け豚 - Lazy Pig]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_476|[Web Novel 476] Chapter 476 - 秘密裏 - Secret Passage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_477|[Web Novel 477] Chapter 477 - 中学時代の友人 - Middle School period&#039;s Friend]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_478|[Web Novel 478] Chapter 478 - 餅は餅屋 - Mochi in Mochi Store]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_479|[Web Novel 479] Chapter 479 - パンダ獣人 - Panda Beastman]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_480|[Web Novel 480] Chapter 480 - 獣化 - Beast Transformation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_481|[Web Novel 481] Chapter 481 - スイッチ装備調達 - Switch Equipment Supply]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_482|[Web Novel 482] Chapter 482 - 四本 - Four Blades]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_483|[Web Novel 483] Chapter 483 - 過小評価 - Underestimation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_484|[Web Novel 484] Chapter 484 - 赤豚の動向 -Tendecy of Red Pig]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_485|[Web Novel 485] Chapter 485 - 未来への布石 - Preparation for Future]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_486|[Web Novel 486] Chapter 486 - 避難誘導 - Evacuation Guidance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_487|[Web Novel 487] Chapter 487 - 通常攻撃 - Conventional Attack]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_488|[Web Novel 488] Chapter 488 - 矛盾の再来 - Contradiction Return]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_489|[Web Novel 489] Chapter 489 - 盾ＶＳ弓＋α - Shield VS Bow+a]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_490|[Web Novel 490] Chapter 490 - バッドステータス - Bad Status]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_491|[Web Novel 491] Chapter 491 - 不公平 - Unfair]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_492|[Web Novel 492] Chapter 492 - 勇者密会 - Assign Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_493|[Web Novel 493] Chapter 493 - 卵くじ - Egg Lottery]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_494|[Web Novel 494] Chapter 494 - 取引 - Transaction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_495|[Web Novel 495] Chapter 495 - 謝礼 - Reward]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_496|[Web Novel 496] Chapter 496 - 彼は何故笑ったのか？ - Why is he Laughing?]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_497|[Web Novel 497] Chapter 497 - 着飾るパンダ - Dress Up Panda]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_498|[Web Novel 498] Chapter 498 - 種回収 - Seed Recovery]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_499|[Web Novel 499] Chapter 499 - 怠惰の種 - Seed of Laziness]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_500|[Web Novel 500] Chapter 500 - 食料配給 - Food Distribution]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_501|[Web Novel 501] Chapter 501 - 帳簿 - Account Book]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_502|[Web Novel 502] Chapter 502 - 観光地 - Tourist Attraction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_503|[Web Novel 503] Chapter 503 - 主治医の助手 - Physician Assistant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_504|[Web Novel 504] Chapter 504 - 保護 - Protection]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_505|[Web Novel 505] Chapter 505 - ドラゴンの娘 - Daughter of Dragon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_506|[Web Novel 506] Chapter 506 - ドラゴンの眷属 - Dragon&#039;s Kin]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_507|[Web Novel 507] Chapter 507 - 尻尾 - Tail]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_508|[Web Novel 508] Chapter 508 - おしおき - Punishment]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_509|[Web Novel 509] Chapter 509 - 偽の盾の勇者 - Fake Shield Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_510|[Web Novel 510] Chapter 510 - 強欲の都市 - City of Greed]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_511|[Web Novel 511] Chapter 511 - ホットクレープ - Hot Crepe]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_512|[Web Novel 512] Chapter 512 - 鞍 - Saddle]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_513|[Web Novel 513] Chapter 513 - 助手の選択 - Assistant&#039;s Choice]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_514|[Web Novel 514] Chapter 514 - 他人の所為 - the Other&#039;s Fault]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_515|[Web Novel 515] Chapter 515 - 彼を知る - He Knows]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_516|[Web Novel 516] Chapter 516 - 継承 - Inheritance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_517|[Web Novel 517] Chapter 517 - 最弱の竜帝 - the Weakest Dragon Emperor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_518|[Web Novel 518] Chapter 518 - 欠片の在り処 - Fragment&#039;s Whereabout]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_519|[Web Novel 519] Chapter 519 - 姫 - Princess]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_520|[Web Novel 520] Chapter 520 - 婚約者 - Fiance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_521|[Web Novel 521] Chapter 521 - 証拠隠滅 - Destruction of Evidence]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_522|[Web Novel 522] Chapter 522 - 善行の結果 - Benevolence Result]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_523|[Web Novel 523] Chapter 523 - 潜伏 - Hiding]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_524|[Web Novel 524] Chapter 524 - フレオンちゃん - Freon-chan]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_525|[Web Novel 525] Chapter 525 - メルロマルクの王子 - Melromarc&#039;s Prince]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_526|[Web Novel 526] Chapter 526 - 内乱 - Civil War]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_527|[Web Novel 527] Chapter 527 - 風の如く - Like a Gust of Wind]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_528|[Web Novel 528] Chapter 528 - デジャヴュ - Deja Vu]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_529|[Web Novel 529] Chapter 529 - 煽り - Gust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_530|[Web Novel 530] Chapter 530 - 監禁 - Confinement]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_531|[Web Novel 531] Chapter 531 - 人質 - Hostage]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_532|[Web Novel 532] Chapter 532 - 基本値 - Base Value]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_533|[Web Novel 533] Chapter 533 - 待ち伏せ - Ambush]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_534|[Web Novel 534] Chapter 534 - 国境戦 - Border War]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_535|[Web Novel 535] Chapter 535 - 休戦 - Truce]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_536|[Web Novel 536] Chapter 536 - 停戦 - Ceasefire]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_537|[Web Novel 537] Chapter 537 - 玉座 - Throne]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_538|[Web Novel 538] Chapter 538 - 幽閉 - Imprisonment]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_539|[Web Novel 539] Chapter 539 - 架け橋 - Bridge]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_540|[Web Novel 540] Chapter 540 - 状況整理 - Sorting Circumstances]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_541|[Web Novel 541] Chapter 541 - 同行者 - Travelling Companion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_542|[Web Novel 542] Chapter 542 - 岩礁の鳥 - Reef Island]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_543|[Web Novel 543] Chapter 543 - 二本目 - the second time]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_544|[Web Novel 544] Chapter 544 - 高校時代の旅行 - The Trip on High School Period]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_545|[Web Novel 545] Chapter 545 - 槍の勇者とメンバー交換 - Member exchange of Spear Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_546|[Web Novel 546] Chapter 546 - 自慢失敗 - Boast Failure]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_547|[Web Novel 547] Chapter 547 - 多くの義務 - Numerous Responsibility]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_548|[Web Novel 548] Chapter 548 - 剣と助手 - Sword and Assistant]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_549|[Web Novel 549] Chapter 549 - 邪魔 - Hindrance]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_550|[Web Novel 550] Chapter 550 - 得意なゲーム - Game Specialty]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_551|[Web Novel 551] Chapter 551 - 槍の勇者と勇者会議【上】 - Spear Hero&#039;s Heroes Meeting(first part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_552|[Web Novel 552] Chapter 552 - 弓の勇者の反撃 - Bow Hero&#039;s Counter]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_553|[Web Novel 553] Chapter 553 - 槍の勇者と勇者会議【中】 - Spear Hero&#039;s Heroes Meeting(middle part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_554|[Web Novel 554] Chapter 554 - 黒幕疑惑 - Suspicion as Mastermind]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_555|[Web Novel 555] Chapter 555 - 槍の勇者の勇者会議【下】 - Spear Hero&#039;s Heroes Meeting(final part)]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_556|[Web Novel 556] Chapter 556 - 楽園 - Paradise]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_557|[Web Novel 557] Chapter 557 - 星見酒 - Stargaze Liquor]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_558|[Web Novel 558] Chapter 558 - 国葬 - National Funeral]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_559|[Web Novel 559] Chapter 559 - 善行の代償 - Benevolence Price]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_560|[Web Novel 560] Chapter 560 - 真逆の方向 - Opposite Direction]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_561|[Web Novel 561] Chapter 561 - 7=8 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_562|[Web Novel 562] Chapter 562 - 霊亀の炎 - Reiki&#039;s Flame]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_563|[Web Novel 563] Chapter 563 - 被害報告 - Damage Report]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_564|[Web Novel 564] Chapter 564 - 手の平で転がす - Rolling in Palm]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_565|[Web Novel 565] Chapter 565 - 三度目の罠 - The Third Trap]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_566|[Web Novel 566] Chapter 566 - 水泡に帰す - Return To Foam]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_567|[Web Novel 567] Chapter 567 - 応竜 - Ouryu]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_568|[Web Novel 568] Chapter 568 - 自我の侵食 - Self Erosion]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_569|[Web Novel 569] Chapter 569 - 四霊復活 - Resurrection of four spirits]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_570|[Web Novel 570] Chapter 570 - 四霊討伐作戦 - Four Spirits Subjugation Strategy]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_571|[Web Novel 571] Chapter 571 - 蒸発 - Evaporate]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_572|[Web Novel 572] Chapter 572 - 分岐する世界 - Branching World]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_573|[Web Novel 573] Chapter 573 - 四霊結界 - Four Spirits Barrier]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_574|[Web Novel 574] Chapter 574 - 槍の勇者の選択 - Choice of Spear Hero]]&lt;br /&gt;
===Loop 6 - Forbrey Arc===&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_575|[Web Novel 575] Chapter 575 - 結束への布石 - Preparation for Unity]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_576|[Web Novel 576] Chapter 576 - ストーキング - Stalking]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_577|[Web Novel 577] Chapter 577 - 論より証拠 - Evidence than Logic]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_578|[Web Novel 578] Chapter 578 - 未来人 - Man From the Future]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_579|[Web Novel 579] Chapter 579 - 国への不信 - Distrust toward Nation]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_580|[Web Novel 580] Chapter 580 - 隠された武器 - Hidden Weapon]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_581|[Web Novel 581] Chapter 581 - 三度目の言葉 - The Word for Third Times]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_582|[Web Novel 582] Chapter 582 - 守られた信頼 - Protected Trust]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_583|[Web Novel 583] Chapter 583 - 鮮血 - Fresh Blood]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_584|[Web Novel 584] Chapter 584 - 神罰の日-Day of Divine Punishment ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_585|[Web Novel 585] Chapter 585 - ループの無駄遣い ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_586|[Web Novel 586] Chapter 586 - 信仰は残る ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_587|[Web Novel 587] Chapter 587 - 回復＋援護＝？ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_588|[Web Novel 588] Chapter 588 - 幼女か大人 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_589|[Web Novel 589] Chapter 589 - 正しくて間違っている ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_590|[Web Novel 590] Chapter 590 - 赤黒く濁していった ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_591|[Web Novel 591] Chapter 591 - 一人では強くなれない ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_592|[Web Novel 592] Chapter 592 - ファンタジーの不思議 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_593|[Web Novel 593] Chapter 593 - 中二病みたいな台詞 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_594|[Web Novel 594] Chapter 594 - 乗り物酔い ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_595|[Web Novel 595] Chapter 595 - 焼き肉パーティー ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_596|[Web Novel 596] Chapter 596 - 酔い止め ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_597|[Web Novel 597] Chapter 597 - シルトヴェルトの馬車 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_598|[Web Novel 598] Chapter 598 - 手中に収める ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_599|[Web Novel 599] Chapter 599 - 変身願望 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_600|[Web Novel 600] Chapter 600 - 買出し ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_601|[Web Novel 601] Chapter 601 - 料理効果 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_602|[Web Novel 602] Chapter 602 - 未来への恐怖 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_603|[Web Novel 603] Chapter 603 - 外見年齢 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_604|[Web Novel 604] Chapter 604 - 日程 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_605|[Web Novel 605] Chapter 605 - 熟練の腕 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_606|[Web Novel 606] Chapter 606 - 多芸 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_607|[Web Novel 607] Chapter 607 - 身勝手な召喚 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_608|[Web Novel 608] Chapter 608 - 魔王の研究 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_609|[Web Novel 609] Chapter 609 - 戦闘技術考案 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_610|[Web Novel 610] Chapter 610 - 冒険者ギルド ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_611|[Web Novel 611] Chapter 611 - ギルドの権力 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_612|[Web Novel 612] Chapter 612 - 良い証拠、悪い証拠 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_613|[Web Novel 613] Chapter 613 - 犯人がいない証拠 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_614|[Web Novel 614] Chapter 614 - 別の見え方 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_615|[Web Novel 615] Chapter 615 - 陣形 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_616|[Web Novel 616] Chapter 616 - 羊の腸 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_617|[Web Novel 617] Chapter 617 - 三枚目 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_618|[Web Novel 618] Chapter 618 - 今更 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
* [[Tate_no_Yuusha:Web_Chapter_619|[Web Novel 619] Chapter 619 - しょっぱいネトゲ ]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Project Staff==&lt;br /&gt;
*Supervisor: [[user:Onizuka-gto|Onizuka-GTO]]&lt;br /&gt;
*Project Manager: [[user:Alpaca|Alpaca]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Translators===&lt;br /&gt;
Active&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Alpaca|Alpaca]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Ren|Ren]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Aperture:Null|Aperture:Null]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Uguu|Uguu]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://bakahou.wordpress.com/ Bakahou]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://anontranslator.wordpress.com/ anontranslator]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://yoraikun.wordpress.com/ Yoraikun]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://epithetic.wordpress.com/ Epithetic]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:ShiroiOkami|ShiroiOkami]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Editors===&lt;br /&gt;
Active&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Soraya21|Soraya21]]/[[User:Soaya21|Soaya21]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:BDB|BDB]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Laclongquan|Laclongquan]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Reiji|Reiji]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:DarkeKyuubi|DarkeKyuubi]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:KuroInfinity|KuroInfinity]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://everydaysocloudy.wordpress.com/ EverydaySoCloudy]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Original Web Novel ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Original web published novel can be found here: [http://ncode.syosetu.com/n3009bk/ 盾の勇者の成り上がり]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Series Overview==&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 1 - 334 pages (August 22, 2013) ISBN 978-4840152754&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 2 - 316 pages (October 24, 2013) ISBN 978-4040660496&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 3 - 313 pages (December 21, 2013) ISBN 978-4040661667&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 4 - (February 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040663210&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 5 - (April 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040667188&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 6 - (June 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040667904&lt;br /&gt;
* 盾の勇者の成り上がり 7 - (September 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4040669960&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Light novel (English)]]&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Teh_Ping_Talk:Miscellaneous&amp;diff=394755</id>
		<title>Teh Ping Talk:Miscellaneous</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Teh_Ping_Talk:Miscellaneous&amp;diff=394755"/>
		<updated>2014-10-07T21:36:24Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Just question */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Any Final Questions?==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Alright, there&#039;s one month left before I&#039;ll be gone, so I&#039;ll entertain questions for the time being. Just follow the rules below and post your questions on this document.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::*No discussion on very debatable stuff like political and religious issues.&lt;br /&gt;
::*No sexual related stuff here.&lt;br /&gt;
::*No translation requests.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To those of you who may be interested in becoming LN translators, now will be a good time to ask me any questions you might have, for...to put it this way, Unicorns will appear if you see me back again. I don&#039;t plan to give any farewell speeches (just doesn&#039;t feel right for me), so this Q&amp;amp;A will be the final interaction here.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q. Did you take any Japanese classes or did you teach yourself?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: I didn&#039;t actually take Japanese classes. When I started out translating, I didn&#039;t understand a single word of Japanese. All I had was my pretty &#039;excellent&#039; coverage of kanji characters which I could guess the meaning from. So yeah, I kind of taught myself Japanese while translating (during the time when I first started on Index). It&#039;s more of picking out the grammar nuances, learning the charts and working my way up. It&#039;s not easy (and I&#039;m still learning), but I am still around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: Who will continue Baka To Test Translation Project?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: Depends. I haven&#039;t found a successor yet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: I&#039;ve seen one in SAO before, so did you have other novels that you payed more of your time researching than translating?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: About researching, that&#039;s a very fun aspect in this hobby...I would say that Gundam Unicorn would be the one series where I spent 10% translating and 90% researching. I would say that I first started researching on the stories when I started working on Baka Test because of all the questions that were tested. I think Unicorn&#039;s the only series in this regards, though the madness that was SAO volume 10 chapter 2 reached the 20-80 ratio. I would also recommend translators to do research, not for the sake of the readers, but to gain some form of knowledge (Baka Test&#039;s research can mentally scar me though)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: What drives you into this..job? translating I mean. Could you say your motivations for this job, also for the wannabe translators.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: Ehh...if I have to put it, it&#039;s kind of like a hobby to me. Part of the answer is here: http://www.baka-tsuki.org/blog/?p=513  and, another part of the reason is because I lack a sense of self-worth, the shameless in trying something new (for this profession anyway). I can&#039;t say that this is a &#039;job&#039; that will attract many people because of the time dedication required. If I have to say, you&#039;re not going to be very well-known under this Baka-Tsuki community of translating unless you have shown an outstanding amount of contribution, especially for series that have developed massive fanbases (looking at you, Index, Infinite Stratos, SAO). Of course, I feel you got to have a large sense of responsibility in order to be able to keep going, or else you will keep procrastinating (leaders of tomorrow). I can&#039;t say to anyone straight that there is any motivation, because there isn&#039;t actually one. It comes down basically to one thing, what is/are the reason(s) for translating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: As one of the trolls on B-T... What do you think about people who are flaming and complain about translations ?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: If I have to say it bluntly, there is no excuse for translators to get dejected just because other people critique their work and stuff. I honestly...can&#039;t take people seriously if they only talk and don&#039;t do anything of any contributions, or just type behind the computer and not do anything to try and remedy situations when the people being critiqued are contributing more than them atm. (It&#039;s probably because of this that I took up more of an admin role this year, and it&#039;s kinda tough to balance it out.) I&#039;m a firm believer in backing up words, and for people complaining about speeds and such, I do try to put the effort in telling them to be patient and such. The results are still bleak, but I&#039;m still optimistic (even idealistic about this).  &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: Do you enjoy translating all those chapters or is there a time when you feel it&#039;s too late to back out of a certain chapter/novel and feel that you must finish it no matter what?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: While I do try to view all the chapters I work on as my kids, there are a few &#039;emotional&#039; chapters I had to literally force myself to keep translating. Unicorn has quite a few of them (especially with the parts that weren&#039;t adapted into the anime), Mother Rosario, Index Volume 16 (after the first chapter), Baka Test Minami and Shouko&#039;s backstory (there&#039;s another touching one in 10.5 involving Akihisa and Mizuki when they were kids, now if I can force myself to work on that) and especially Rudolf the Red Nosed Reindeer. Some do make me cringe when I translate, like...Infinite Stratos volume 7...the Railgun story written by Ryougo Narita-shi...Baka Test volume 4 (the reason why I preferred not to work on that volume), so I had to force myself to be professional when translating them. Normally, the ideal situation is to read through the stories, know what I&#039;m going to expect, and have a mental preparation of going through what&#039;s going to happen (especially if it&#039;s your favorite series), but because of my workstyle and RL, I don&#039;t even have the time to read through the stories beforehand, which I admit does affect the quality of the overall work. Either way, I can&#039;t say that I enjoy a lot of the stories I work on, but I do force myself to work through them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: And yeah, why are you leaving?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: I&#039;m tired. Yes, I&#039;m tired of translating. At the same time, i want to finish off what I have left so that I don&#039;t &#039;owe&#039; anything to anyone here. At the same time, I am pursuing a double degree right now, and once the next semester starts, I will be saddled with quite a lot of responsibilities both academically and non-academically. I know many of you are asking me to stay as an admin or senior advisor, but I do believe that you guys have to get used to life without me here, and also, I do prefer to be the finisher (the translator) than the quarterback (the admin), which is weird since I get more of QB roles than finisher roles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: When are you coming back?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: When Unicorns appear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: Ping, when are unicorns gonna appear?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: When you fulfill that request I asked of you. =P I will be back in some way on 22nd March 2013.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: What do you think of machine translations on BT? Could it help projects progress?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: Well, the general consensus is that machine translations are very bad because they don&#039;t translate the grammatical terms well. Sure, they will often get one or two-word terms correct, so it is a good for short phrases, but entire translations on machine translations, to me, is not really the way to go because of the grammatical issues when translating. It is improving with people giving translation recommendations, but I don&#039;t expect machine translation to be the way to go for another 10 years at least.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: Ping, what will happen to SAO translations in the future?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: Right now, there&#039;s still Tap around to translate. I&#039;ll let him have free reign to do what he wants with the project, but the thing is that I don&#039;t see more translators being willing to take up this project because of the stress level involved in this project. It caused me to fake a ragequit, do an April Fools&#039; Joke as a take that to the people complaining about the lack of progress on Volume 5 Chapter 6...and increased the size of my forehead by 3 inches...but jokes aside, whoever who has this project has to be mentally prepared for high demands on this series (unless you can shut your mind from it), so to Tap and anyone else working on it, good luck. It&#039;s not going to be easy, so I&#039;ll be there with you in spirit =P.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: What projects have you actually wanted to work on?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: &#039;When Hikaru was on the Earth&#039; is one series that I was most hoping to work on, since I do like Nomura-shi&#039;s works. Accel World is another if I didn&#039;t have SAO...and for basketball reasons, Ro-Kyu-Bu!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: Any LNs you like to read once you retire?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: It&#039;s not an LN per say, but [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Biblia_Koshodou_no_Jiken_Techou Biblia Koshodou no Jiken Techou] is one series I look forward to catching up. I am getting sick and tired of all the harem stories and such, and I&#039;m looking forward to working on more serious stories per say...Maybe I can check out Another or Sugar Dark. I am looking forward to picking up more obscure stories when I head to the bookstore after my retirement. (and work as a literature club member writing stories everyday, oh who am I kidding...)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: Is there a series you will like to work on if it wasn&#039;t licensed?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: First Choice: Spice and Wolf. Second Choice: Bungaku Shoujo. Third Choice: The Twelve Kingdoms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: Are you going to be gone for good?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: Check one of the questions above.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: Any plans to retake Infinite Stratos?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: Nope. I&#039;ll like to ask Life4Kaoru to help take over if IS does come out since they offered quite a lot of support to the project, but it&#039;s their choice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: What regrets do you have over here?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: Not being able to finish the Shana translations.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: What are your thoughts of having people competing with each other while doing the same story?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: I would say, redundant, because when two people are doing the same volume, it&#039;s like doing a double translation. However, it does have the benefit of making sure that the translators try to keep up their standards. It&#039;s the same issue with having kids. Once you have two or more children, each child will want to work harder to impress their parents (at least when they&#039;re young), especially the older one who&#039;s been getting the attention up till this point. Ultimately, it comes down to the translators&#039; decision, but I&#039;ll just state my view here.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: Any concerns about BT?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A: If I have to say, it&#039;s that those who post their translations here should be prepared to get their work edited. If they don&#039;t accept that they don&#039;t have absolute control, this really isn&#039;t the place for them. This isn&#039;t a particular dig at anyone, but a lamentation on my part since I don&#039;t really put  that much control over my work when I post here, since I do expect careless typos and mistranslations on my part (I&#039;m fine with my translations being shared, but only if no profits are made, and that credit is given due). Of course, the easy way out is to control everything on my own, but I prefer to be the finisher (translator) than be the all-rounder who has to do everything. I just have to rely on the readers and hope that they make the right edits. This is also the main reason why I don&#039;t want to create a blog for my translations, because I don&#039;t want to end up doing everything. I just want to &#039;arrive, post, leave&#039;. This is a culture of BT in itself, and honestly, it isn&#039;t for everyone because of how open it is.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Q: How do you respond to those who complain about the quality of the work?&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Speaking of which, I remember one of the posts on a certain place where I was called out specifically, telling me to &#039;clean up the mess&#039;. The thing is, you can&#039;t turn Carbon into gold directly (and when I say directly, I mean that it&#039;s possible to do so indirectly by selling carbon and buying gold, but this is just to cover all bases). The style of LN translations is that we do try to keep the meaning and diction as close as possible. Most of the sentences are either dialogue or short paragraphs of 2, 3 lines that eschew adverbs as much as possible. Most of the stories are action and dialogue driven (or in fact, all of them are), and they aren&#039;t the best of literary greatness in the first place. And when it reaches the second stage (us), this literary sense is diminished further because of the different grammar styles. We&#039;re basically trying to fit jigsaws when we translate. There are some lines that require further elaboration because they just don&#039;t work out in English. There are some lines that can be simply translated from long sentences into 1, 2 words. Honestly, you have to read the originals in order to understand this well.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Singapore AFA 2012 ! ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey there Teh_Ping ~ It&#039;s me again XD. Anyways, you going to the festival next week on saturday or sunday? Just wanted to know [[User:Vermiculo|Vermiculo]] ([[User talk:Vermiculo|talk]]) 00:34, 2 November 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m going on both Saturday and Sunday. Won&#039;t be at the concert though. Most likely in the afternoon on Sat, def on Sunday.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 00:55, 2 November 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Teh Ping Talk:Miscellaneous==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey, when you get promoted/if you&#039;re promoted already, could you bump up unbreakable machine doll from teaser to full project status? Thanks alot. --[[User:Hayashi s|Hayashi s]] 08:36, 11 June 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Duly noted.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 05:47, 12 June 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hai - Vermiliongrey&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I don&#039;t understand your editing in the kokoro connect Spanish page, we can&#039;t work things out if you don&#039;t communicate directly. Please, to avoid confusion. --[[User:BakaSenpai|BakaSenpai]] ([[User talk:BakaSenpai|talk]]) 23:28, 18 October 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ah~ Sorry for the confusion and thanks for the correction but I believe there will be more errors coming on the way since I&#039;m new on this page and I&#039;m still learning how to adjust the project without conflicts but thanks for your concerns and if anything you believe it&#039;s not proper please feel free to edit it. By all means, are you a translator? --[[User:BakaSenpai|BakaSenpai]] ([[User talk:BakaSenpai|talk]]) 23:42, 18 October 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I was going to ask you if you were a English translator since they are very short in translator in the English version since one is retired for now until midterms are over and there&#039;s only one working very hard on it. I don&#039;t know if you take &amp;quot;pending projects&amp;quot; but it&#039;s a fantastic novel. In my opinion from what I read and the themes that are included: Romance, drama, comedy ( light hearted ), psychology and super natural. They&#039;re more update with the Chinese Version so I don&#039;t know if you speak or read it. But you should really read it when you have the time and it&#039;s really good. I can tell more info about it but that would be spoilers...However if you help on it, it&#039;ll please many fans out there. I don&#039;t mean to pry but the project is a few months old so that explain the lack of help  --[[User:BakaSenpai|BakaSenpai]] ([[User talk:BakaSenpai|talk]]) 23:55, 18 October 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A &amp;quot;possible&amp;quot; vandal registered using &amp;quot;Teh PING&amp;quot; -a normal person wouldn&#039;t do something like this.&lt;br /&gt;
http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=User:Teh_PING&amp;amp;action=edit&amp;amp;redlink=1&lt;br /&gt;
http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Special:Log/newusers&lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Superduperelectromagnetictops|Superduperelectro]] ([[User talk:Superduperelectromagnetictops|talk]]) 22:35, 14 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Most of the accounts created are from bots, I guess. That&#039;s not me though. I prefer to have everything accountable to me. If there is any case of vandalism from that user, I&#039;ll shut it down.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 23:06, 14 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Happy Birthday --[[User:Drowzycow|Drowzycow]] ([[User talk:Drowzycow|talk]]) 13:31, 12 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Heh, thanks for the backup there Ping. --[[User:Bilagaana|Bilagaana]] ([[User talk:Bilagaana|talk]]) 11:40, 28 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Um, hello, I&#039;m interested in becoming a translator here, and I was told to ask here for help upgrading my status to translator? Thank you so much! --[[User:Mistspinner|Mistspinner]] ([[User talk:Mistspinner|talk]]) 19:00, 6 October 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not having the status will not prevent you from contributing. The only difference would be the ability to delete pages. --[[User:KuroiHikari|KuroiHikari]] ([[User_talk:KuroiHikari|Talk]] | ) 22:08, 6 October 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Good luck in the Army ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It&#039;ll problaly drain a lot of your energy, but I think once you get pass it, you feel a little bit better about yourself too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks for your hard work. I&#039;ll hope to see update sometime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Good luck! --[[User:Hypernova|Hypernova]] 19:23, 26 April 2010 (UTC)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Congratulations on the promotion ! --[[User:Saganatsu|Saganatsu]] 16:28, 2 July 2011 (UCT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lance Corporal? Congrats! [[User:Kira0802|Kira]] 16:48, 2 July 2011 (UCT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Shinrei Tantei Yakumo==&lt;br /&gt;
As I understand it, Angelanime is not the translator. --[[User:Darklor|Darklor]] 08:14, 8 March 2011 (UTC)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Well, that means we have to ask Angelanime who the translator is--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 11:06, 8 March 2011 (UTC)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== To Teh Ping ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hello, I just wanted to let you know that I wanted to thank you for all of the translating that you have been doing so far. Reading these light novels have been a real treat and I just wanted to let you know that your work is appreciated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks for passing the message. [[User:Zephyrus|Zephyrus]] 03:24, 6 March 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yo man, I hope your wrist is getting better! Get well soon!! [[User:M.A.D|M.A.D]] - [[User_talk:M.A.D|Talk]] 17:32, 10 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is late, but I just read your blog interview from last year, I couldn&#039;t believe you started out translating with a hiragana chart...I started last year with that and finally a year later felt confident enough to be a Nwb, Power to you! You mentioned in your blog training any nwb translators out there, I started Papakiki around 2 weeks ago, so if you have any lesson&#039;s/advice/whatever, let me know, I only know around 300 kanji by sight, so your advice about taking it slow was extremely helpful, (and the part about not comparing your speed to others, I was just starting to do that). Anyhow, thanks again. [[user:黒曜石ペガサス|黒曜石ペガサス]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Someone&#039;s happy today huh. お誕生日おめでとうございます！[[User:SkyZenith|SkyZenith]] ([[User talk:SkyZenith|talk]]) 01:14, 12 March 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Punctuation ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The types of punctuation used formally were: ...&#039;&#039;&amp;quot;&amp;quot; (You might need to see in editing mode to get the difference). I used the characters ... and &#039; and &amp;quot; to replace them. The thing is, that every type of character has an id set to it in the form of a combination of bits (01010101). This is done because bits, bytes, kilobytes, megabytes, etc, is how data is stored. In other words &amp;quot; does not equal &amp;quot; or &amp;quot; in the storing language. However in English they would mean the same thing. &amp;quot; occurs earlier in the storage character table than &amp;quot; or &amp;quot; therefore it has a smaller id. Thus space can be saved by using it. My advice is to either stop using MSWord and use WordPad or TextPad editor. OR... first write in MSWord then take it to TextPad and then use the find and replace functions to switch the above characters. You can also use FoxReplace addon if you are using Firefox but that&#039;s just a little more complex in initializing the settings but the result is that the replacement process becomes fully automated (It&#039;s a major pain if you make a mistake though, if you don&#039;t exclude pages you need to, then the replacement could affect something you did not wish it to). The final way is to use this site&#039;s own search and replace function. [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] 15:41, 29 May 2011 (UCT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
One more thing. I&#039;ve noticed that stuttering words have been separated by commas. Example: &amp;quot;Do, don&#039;t think I was doing it for you okay?&amp;quot; The thing is that normally in English writing stuttering words are separated by the use of hyphens(-) lets take the example above. It should have been: &amp;quot;Do-Don&#039;t think I was doing it for you okay?&amp;quot; See the difference in the Don&#039;t(s). Just thought I should let you know. Was I helpful? [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] 15:41, 29 May 2011 (UCT)&lt;br /&gt;
 &lt;br /&gt;
...Well, I guess it would be troublesome. I&#039;m using MSWord right now to eliminate as many typos as I can, and I have no idea how much space does this website have. Will keep this in mind, definitely, but I don&#039;t know if I can get myself to work that extra bit though. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As for stuttering, I just followed how it&#039;s normally given instead of just following how the English do it. Thanks for your input.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 02:16, 30 May 2011 (UCT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Either hyphens(-) for short(quick) stutters or three dots(...) for long pause between stutters is what I learned. If there is anything else just let me know. I&#039;ll be willing to help. Personally, my method is the FoxReplace one. [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] - 15:58, 3 June 2011 (UCT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Umm. I&#039;ve added some info on the FoxReplace method on my talk page. If you feel like it please check it out. [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] - 17:42, 6 July 2011 (UCT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I would like you to support me [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=4&amp;amp;t=4564 here], if you are willing. Thank you. [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] - 13:35, 13 September 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Stuttering===&lt;br /&gt;
Careful. Stuttering is denoted differently in Japanese and English. In Japanese stuttering is denoted by &#039;&#039;&#039;comma&#039;&#039;&#039; or three dots. Whereas in English stuttering is denoted by &#039;&#039;&#039;hyphen&#039;&#039;&#039; or three dots. The reason is to ensure that the &amp;lt;big&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;I&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/big&amp;gt; in stuttering words like &amp;lt;big&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;I-I&#039;&#039;&#039;t&amp;lt;/big&amp;gt; aren&#039;t mistaken with the self reference word &amp;lt;big&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;I&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/big&amp;gt;. There are other similar instances as well. Since &#039;&#039;&#039;commas&#039;&#039;&#039; would allow for such mistakes to happen thus &#039;&#039;&#039;hyphens&#039;&#039;&#039; are used instead. Such conflicts do not occur in Japanese (due to watashi, boku, etc instead of in English where &amp;lt;big&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;I&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/big&amp;gt; can be confused since most stutterings are of words that start with &amp;lt;big&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;I&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/big&amp;gt; or similar curcumsatnces, &amp;lt;big&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;A&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/big&amp;gt; is another one). [http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Stutter#Primary_behaviors See here.] Take care. [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] -  12:41, 9 February 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Narrative Tense? (Toaru Majutsu no Index) ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The poll on this conundrum is leaning heavily towards past tense. Should we edit the project-specific guidelines to reflect that consensus? --[[User:Tactician J|Tact]] 11:00, 6 June 2011 (UCT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As much as I hate to agree with that, go ahead, we should--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 14:06, 6 June 2011 (UCT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Collapsibility Upgrade ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Umm. If it&#039;s not too much trouble could you take a look at [[MediaWiki_talk:Common.js|this]]. [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] - 18:06, 29 June 2011 (UCT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Questions... ==&lt;br /&gt;
How long does a chapter take???&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As long as it needs. --[[User:Saganatsu|Saganatsu]] 04:42, 6 August 2011 (UCT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Request ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since your user page mentioned you&#039;re leaving one space open I figured I might as well leave a request. I&#039;d be really glad if you could help with Oreimo, since its translation has pretty much stalled (though I haven&#039;t confirmed the status of the translators, from what I gathered they all have it queued). Anyway, if you do pick it up, I&#039;d be more than willing to be an active (personal, if it suits you) editor for the series.-[[User:Ppaaccoojrf|ppaaccoojrf]] 01:13, 26 August 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Well, it&#039;s a &#039;maybe&#039;, no guarantees though.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 02:54, 26 August 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Good enough, let me know if you do pick it up. Thanks for minding the request.--[[User:Ppaaccoojrf|ppaaccoojrf]] 15:15, 26 August 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== to Teh_Ping ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
please give Sword art online a piece of your time.thank you.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Deck of cards|Deck of cards]] 22:57, 16 May 2012 (CDT) I don&#039;t know if I&#039;m doing this right I&#039;m a complete noob to baka-tsuki. I&#039;m replying to your message you sent me earlier; it&#039;s an original fiction that I created myself, I&#039;m just looking to share it with others and I was wondering if that was a possibility?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hi I got your message, I&#039;m trying to post it on a forum right now and make a poll (which I don&#039;t really know how to do just yetx0.) Also, I&#039;m encountering another problem at the moment, even when I press the preview button it says &#039;The username you entered is already in use, please select an alternative.&#039; Any suggestions?? [[User:Deck of cards|Deck of cards]] 22:32, 18 May 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Haha alright mission accomplished. One problem, by accident I posted two threads. The first one I wrote said it didn&#039;t go through so I re-did it. Would you mind deleting one of them?? [[User:Deck of cards|Deck of cards]] 00:53, 19 May 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Deck of cards|Deck of cards]] Hey Teh_Ping long time no talk. I just wanted to let you know that I got a hold of TLG and he gave me permission to continue posting my story on the wiki. I didn&#039;t want you to see those pages and be like &#039;whaa??&#039; lol. I just finished re-editing the ones I already have on the wiki and am about to start posting again. Thanks for all your help, I really appreciate it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hello I would like to translate Fate aprocrypha as the Chinese version is out. Can I be approved to edit the page?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Archiving advice ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems that your talk page is getting more cluttered up. You know, you can always archive your talkpage when it reaches a certain limit. Simply create a new page named &#039;&#039;&#039;User talk:Teh Ping/Archive #&#039;&#039;&#039;, where # is the archive number, and copy all the discussions that you consider too old to keep on your talk page but too valuable to delete. Create a link to the archive on top of your talk page by writing &amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;[[/Archive #]]&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;. You won&#039;t need to create a link &#039;&#039;back&#039;&#039; to the talk page from the archive. It seems subpage settings are active on user pages. [[User talk:Zero2001/Archive 1|I&#039;ve already made one.]] [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] - 21:18, 15 September 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks for the suggestion, but I&#039;ll be sorting them according to the series.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 21:38, 15 September 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Subpages &amp;lt;- Archives ===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Umm, I think you named them wrongly. Shall I rename them for you? A backlink will automatically be generated that way. [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] - 15:32, 16 September 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
^^ [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] - 00:20, 20 September 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Name wrongly? No, I&#039;m just following the wikipedia versions. Baka Test needs to be changed (and Index), but I haven&#039;t told told Oni that. Also, there&#039;s quite a lot of references out there on Volume 3 Author Notes and Volume 4 chapter 2 that I haven&#039;t added in.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 00:34, 20 September 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Umm. I mean the names of the subpages you made (assuming this page and the other similar ones were made as a result of the post in the parent section of this section). They were supposed to be named &#039;&#039;&#039;User Talk:Teh Peng/*&#039;&#039;&#039; not &#039;&#039;&#039;Teh Ping Talk:*&#039;&#039;&#039; where * is Miscellaneous, etc. A user&#039;s page, talk page and &#039;&#039;&#039;subpages&#039;&#039;&#039; are a users personal space. The way you named them put them in the main page namespace. It could lead to people challenging the pages for deletion. Best if you renamed these Teh Peng Talk pages before that happens. Plus you get an automatically generated backlink to your talk page. [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] - 01:59, 20 September 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Teh Peng? Should be Teh Ping lol. Need to switch around later then.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anyway, I don&#039;t know how to respond to this: http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=32&amp;amp;t=4553--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 03:48, 20 September 2011 (CD&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey Teh Ping. I think it&#039;s about time you moved your talk pages to under your userspace. Mainspace should be mainly be for project, volume and chapter pages. Others have started to copy you and it&#039;s gonna end up making searches more problematic. Everything would be resolved if every user kept subpages rather than make personal pages in the mainspace. If you don&#039;t know how, I can move them for you. [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] -  11:53, 3 September 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Registering as an Editor==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
How can I register as one (specifically on IS)? I mean in a way that my forum status also gets updated. I feel that those who don&#039;t know me can&#039;t take me seriously when I post as simply a Reader. [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] -  15:27, 27 September 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
You just log in on the forum, go to the user control panel, select the &amp;quot;Usergroups&amp;quot; tab, click in the radiobutton beside &amp;quot;Project Editors&amp;quot;, scroll down, and hit submit. (I believe you have to get approved, so it will take a few days, but you&#039;ll become and editor eventually.) [[User:Hobogunner|Hobogunner]] 15:43, 27 September 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Moving talk pages==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Are you able to track new messages? [[User:Kira0802|Kira]] ([[User_talk:Kira0802|Talk]]) 19:19, 10 October 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I just need to set it as &#039;watch page&#039;, so yeah, I can track them.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 00:27, 11 October 2011 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==[[Boku Wa Tomodachi Ga Sukunai:Volume1 Past]]==&lt;br /&gt;
Uh, that was a surprise, that you translated that. Will you also translate more of this series? --[[User:Darklor|Darklor]] 16:23, 24 November 2011 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not really. I still have my other series to work on...--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 17:57, 24 November 2011 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Thanks==&lt;br /&gt;
High praise to &amp;quot;Teh Ping &amp;lt;The Godly&amp;gt;&amp;quot; *bows*. [[User:All Nighter94|All Night]] ([[User talk:All Nighter94|talk]])&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m really sorry you had to fix up [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Kino_no_Tabi:Volume5_Chapter4&amp;amp;direction=prev&amp;amp;oldid=146986 this page....] I swear I didn&#039;t save it.... I was planning to just submit it later after I had a bit of sleep. So I was shocked to find it there all neat and tidy this morning...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anyway, thank you very much!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Ella.servantes|Ella.servantes]] 22:13, 5 April 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ping,&lt;br /&gt;
You are pretty awesome.  I really don&#039;t know how you have dealt with translating and wiping out those douche bag fake names and random junk the past week.  Seems as if you and the staff are main lining caffeine.  Those random people are a severe problem when I&#039;m just checking for updates. I have a Rosetta Stone thing for Japanese, but have done some research that says I should look into other sources while learning.  Also wondering how to learn the written portion.  I used to rent from a Chinese woman that has a grand child.  Maybe I can start from there on learning the written portion of Chinese.Vonuss 01:33, 18 May 2013 (CDT). I should also take steps to learn how the wiki editing works.  My land lord(the Chinese lady) took my English bulldog for walks to the beach and back.  I&#039;ma call her and ask.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Asking for a favor==&lt;br /&gt;
Hi Teh Ping, can you kindly tell me how to start translating. I am a big fan of many korean and japenese novels. But can&#039;t read the languages so i am always waiting for other translators. If possible i would like to learn how to do it myself so that i can read ahead as much as i want.&lt;br /&gt;
from nikjin&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hi Teh Ping, do you know how to contact Js06? I want to translate one of his project into Vietnamese so I asked for permission in the forum, and no one answer. Then I posted in Js06 talk page (since he is the only one translating it) and no answer. Finally I posted in the PJ talk page and still got no answer. So if you happen to know how to contact him, please told him to answer me. Thank you [[User:Gingi|Gingi]] 11:40, 21 April 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Is it about Heavy Object, Oreimo or Monogatari? I can help you ask him if you want, but I need to know what series you&#039;re interested in.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 11:52, 21 April 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Oh yeah, sorry, my bad. It&#039;s Heavy Object [[User:Gingi|Gingi]] 11:57, 21 April 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yes, you&#039;re allowed to.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 01:25, 22 April 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks man. [[User:Gingi|Gingi]] 06:17, 22 April 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hi there. This is regarding the Fan Fiction project by [[User:Deck of cards|Deck of cards]]. Sorry since I was the one who advised him to directly post the series on the Wiki without understanding the rules first. Based on your advise I think he posted it on the forum but in Future Project Suggestions. Can you help on moving it to the Fan Fiction project? I don&#039;t know how to do it or I don&#039;t have the power to do it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Group Membership==&lt;br /&gt;
Hey, I&#039;m an Indonesian translator, so can you upgrade my group membership to translator? Thanks. --[[User:Gwilthyunman|Gwilthyunman]] 19:49, 11 June 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
me too... Is it possible..? [[User:Tony Yon|Tony Yon]] 06:26, 12 June 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Please upgrade mine too. Is it still possible? Thanks [[User:Arczyx|Arczyx]] 08:49, 12 June 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Do note that I can only promote people to only translator or editor at this point.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 09:12, 12 June 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Oh venerable dark lord, Teh_Ping-sama. May I ask an upgrade for my account to translator? May you give thy grace to thou benevolent worshiper. -[[User:Lan013|Lan013]] - [[User_talk:Lan013|Talk]] 09:06, 19 July 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
i&#039;m a TL, but what do u get if you have this group membership?-[[User:idiffer| idiffer]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
You get a level up, of course, with some nifty skills like deleting pages, quick re-rolling edits and patrolling edits. --[[User:Rock96|Rock96]] 09:46, 19 July 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
thanks, rock. then i&#039;m in. i need some pages deleted... can you pls upgrade me, teh ping?-[[User:idiffer| idiffer]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
hi, can I get an upgrade to translator and editor? [[User:Hayashi s|Hayashi s]] 11:37, 24 July 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hi Ping, can you upgrade me to translator? :) [[User:Stellarroze|Stellarroze]] ([[User talk:Stellarroze|talk]]) 07:33, 15 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hi Ping, can I get an upgrade to be an editor too? There are some people doing vandalism that I want to block. Thanks. [[User:Arczyx|Arczyx]] ([[User talk:Arczyx|talk]]) 00:35, 8 January 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==About Indowebster==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m very sorry about one of our member (in indowebster) for making such profit from printed PDF&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
although I had long in IDWS, this is my first time I heard something like this (I haven&#039;t looked in shopping corner section until now)&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
I am also one of the translator in BT, so I understand, and also objected to make profit from PDF &amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
for now I have talked to oelil (the one who selling the pdf) and some of our moderators and super moderators to prevent something like this happened again)&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
and oelil also has closed his thread voluntarily&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m as the representative from Indowebster, sincerely apologize to Baka-Tsuki and all of the translators for our rude behaviour&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
PS : please forgive me if my english is bad since it&#039;s not my primary language&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-- [[User:LiTTleDRAgo|LiTTleDRAgo]]  ([[User_talk:LiTTleDRAgo|Talk]]) 11:43, 2 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just like he said, LiTTleDRAgo already talk with the moderators there and the problem is cleared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I also sincerely apologize on behalf of my fellow Indonesians, so please restore the SAO pages again, for the sake of the honor of my country (Indonesia have bad people just like any other country, and I don&#039;t want my country to be bullied by BT members because of them).&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
So, please...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the main page too...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Arczyx|Arczyx]] - [[User_talk:Arczyx|Talk]] 12:24, 2 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I edited the main page to remove any implications of Indonesia since it seems that there was only one person, but I am not going to restore volume 9.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 12:38, 2 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thank you very much for the main page. Regarding volume 9, you really mean to ban it for 3 days? Well, if you see this as a fitting shock therapy, then I won&#039;t object. I suggest you also put up a warning on SAO page saying &amp;quot;Don&#039;t profiting from our hard work&amp;quot; or something so people gonna know why volume 9 got deleted and no one from any country will do something like this ever again (just don&#039;t mention Indonesia in there though). [[User:Arczyx|Arczyx]] - [[User_talk:Arczyx|Talk]] 16:31, 2 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I understand, it&#039;s unfortunate things have turned like this,&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
if this will really soothe your anger, then I shall speak no more about this -- [[User:LiTTleDRAgo|LiTTleDRAgo]]  ([[User_talk:LiTTleDRAgo|Talk]]) 18:41, 2 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Changing Default Signature for all member users==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey Teh Ping, I have a favor to ask. You know how annoying it is to go through the user page to get to a user&#039;s talk page via the default signature; especially when you&#039;re in a hurry. Well I found a way to fix that. But I need a supervisor or above to do it for me. Can you copy the source code of [http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/MediaWiki:Signature this page] to [[MediaWiki:Signature]]? It would be a great help if you did. [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] -  13:16, 4 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I need TLG&#039;s permission for that though.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] 21:05, 4 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;ve already asked Onizuka and Thelastguardian. Let&#039;s see how it goes. Although it wouldn&#039;t hurt if you gave a little support. Honestly, I don&#039;t think you&#039;d really need permission because even wikipedia edited it&#039;s default signature to include a direct link to the user&#039;s talk page (See the external link above). Plus, it&#039;s a less time consuming method than going out of our way to get to a user&#039;s talk page. Or to &#039;&#039;ask users&#039;&#039; and &#039;&#039;explain to users how&#039;&#039; to manually edit their signature. [[User:Zero2001|Zero2001]] - [[User_talk:Zero2001|Talk]] -  22:16, 4 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Spam ==&lt;br /&gt;
Hi, could you IP-ban this guy - http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=User:Blackdiamond . He&#039;s been spamming. Thanks.&lt;br /&gt;
(Is this international Spam B-T weekend???)&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Stellarroze|Stellarroze]] ([[User talk:Stellarroze|talk]]) 19:31, 18 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hi, I don&#039;t know if this is supposed to go in this particular thread....but anyways, I&#039;ve been having a particularly large problem with a user by the name of Krytyk. I am a freelance editor who likes to roam and do edits on the fly. In particular interest here is the Antimagic Academy 35th TP Light Novel where Krytyk is the translator/dictator. I am to understand that baka-tsuki invites edits that change text for the better, yet he keeps undoing my changes because they don&#039;t fit in with his style; which is unfortunately unreadable for anyone below a high-school reading level. The grammar is jarbled, the words don&#039;t fit right, etc. His reasoning for undoing 1.5 hours of changes (in three parts) was that i hypenated the instances of Anti-Magic. All the grammar changes, sentence construction mistakes, undone because of hyphens. Dictatorial. Please help with this. Thanks so much,&lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Mosswind|Mosswind]] ([[User talk:Mosswind|talk]]) 21:34, 30 January 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Password change? ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everytime I click onto the forum it takes me to a password change page, but I didn&#039;t receive any prior notice for this. This isn&#039;t BT being hacked or anything is it? --[[User:M.A.D|M.A.D]] - [[User_talk:M.A.D|Talk]] 14:03, 22 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yeah, onizuka-gto is hacking the forum ^^ [[User:Vaelis|Vaelis]] ([[User talk:Vaelis|talk]]) 14:10, 22 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ah, got it. I wonder if I should report him to himself :P --[[User:M.A.D|M.A.D]] - [[User_talk:M.A.D|Talk]] 15:07, 22 August 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Hi (translations tips)==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hi, Teh Ping, do you have any interest in taking an apprentice? :D [[User:MADh0n0r|MADh0n0r]] ([[User talk:MADh0n0r|talk]]) 10:07, 25 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I can see from your profile that you don&#039;t know Japanese...do you know Chinese or Korean? I can take apprentices, but do know that I have only 1 month left. (I&#039;ll disappear from here after that).--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 10:57, 25 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I don&#039;t know korean, but I do know chinese. [[User:MADh0n0r|MADh0n0r]] ([[User talk:MADh0n0r|talk]]) 18:04, 25 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Okay...just a test of your grammar. Try translating this: http://www.wenku8.cn/novel/0/467/25227.htm (May have some pop-ups, so be careful). (For hints, 友少 will mean Haganai, 平坂读 will mean Hirasaka Yomi, いたち means itachi, ブリキ means Buriki, and put all the 老师 as -san instead of -sensei (teacher))&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also, you might want to get started with memorizing these charts: http://www.freejapaneselessons.com/lesson01.cfm http://www.freejapaneselessons.com/lesson02.cfm&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Erm, what does &amp;quot;可替换书衣&amp;quot; mean? [[User:MADh0n0r|MADh0n0r]] ([[User talk:MADh0n0r|talk]]) 04:04, 26 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Changeable book cover--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 04:19, 26 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And &amp;quot;幼女&amp;quot; would be..? [[User:MADh0n0r|MADh0n0r]] ([[User talk:MADh0n0r|talk]]) 04:29, 26 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Little girl. BTW, do you have access to a dictionary? It is a bit... unorthodox to ask for definitions here. If you are going to try translate, I don&#039;t think you should bother a translator on their page, and you should get a good dictionary. There ARE forums to ask those kind of questions too, and I&#039;m sure the people there will be happy to help you. --[[User:Pryun|Pryun]] - [[User_talk:Pryun|Talk]] 06:10, 26 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Erm, I checked the dictionary already, but I thought it would be weird if the &#039;exchangeable book cover&#039; has a picture of a little girl. Since it was weird, I thought I&#039;d ask just in case... [[User:MADh0n0r|MADh0n0r]] ([[User talk:MADh0n0r|talk]]) 06:52, 26 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anyway, I&#039;m done with the translation from chinese to english already, I put 幼女 as Maria already, since she is the cover for volume 4, but what do I do now? [[User:MADh0n0r|MADh0n0r]] ([[User talk:MADh0n0r|talk]]) 07:33, 26 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just post what you have translated here. (I&#039;m very sure it&#039;s an author&#039;s joke to encourage lolicons to keep the book cover as there&#039;s Maria on it...)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Pryun, I&#039;ll allow him to check his translations with me. I don&#039;t have much time, so I want to hurry up and train as many prospects as I can. There are other tasks I want MH to do. But first, I want to see his grammar level and also to memorize the charts.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 09:46, 26 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Erm, alright, so here goes...&lt;br /&gt;
	&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
…… The only thing that I am certain of is that, the me who writes stories about idiots is definitely not a normal. Due to facing my calculator &#039;&#039;&#039;computer&#039;&#039;&#039; at home every day, I have nothing to write for the afterword, hence I can only use such a barefaced method to write out four pages. But now that I think about it, I have already used the ‘idiots cannot see’ joke in my previous works. This is really bad…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But, never mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It’s been a long time, I am the man with few friends, whom is struggling every day to live through my lonely life, Hirasaka Yomi.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fourth volume of Boku wa Tomodachi ga Sukunai has finally been published.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If everyone had fun reading it, I will be pleased. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though I said that, I don’t really have any interesting stories to write in this afterword, so I’d better do some publicity work.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The first volume of the manga drawn by itachi-san, Boku wa Tomodachi ga Sukunai, will be published together with this fourth volume on the 23rd of July. Those of you, who are reading this in the book shop, please run along to the manga corner to check it out!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the manga version of Haganai, Yozora and Sena are really vivid, with those rich facial expressions while doing absurd actions of all sorts, it really is very interesting! The weird faces of Yozora and Sena is really destructive, those really aren’t expressions that beauties should have…… While thinking “with this, even the light novel would have to concede defeat”, I enjoyed the series purely as a reader. Everyone, be sure to check it out!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Other than that, as the manga series of Haganai is receiving praises, the September issue of the Comic Alive to be sold on the 27th of July, inclusive is an exchangeable book cover drawn by buriki-san, as well as a side story novel. Especially the exchangeable book cover, you must see it, it’s Maria! As the original author of the manga, the editing department has mailed me a copy of the Comic Alive, however, I still intend to buy another 2 copies, one for keeping, and another for reading. Although some may think that ‘anyway the side story novel will be added into the collection of the light novel’, however, due to the absurdity of the author himself, who has written a story that makes it difficult to add the side story into the novel, so I expect that the side story most probably won’t be added into the light novels. Therefore, I ask everyone to make sure to buy the September’s issue of Comic Alive. It’s Maria!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This time, too, the script was handed up just in the nick of time, for giving trouble to Buriki-san as well as the other editors, I am very apologetic. For the me with few friends, it is because of all these colleagues in the making of the light novels as well as all you readers, that I was able to make it throught. My, isn’t this just like a normal? Although I only have a few friends…… Anyway, I will still be in your care from now on!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
June 2010 Hirasaka Yomi&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:MADh0n0r|MADh0n0r]] ([[User talk:MADh0n0r|talk]]) 10:22, 26 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I will do crosschecking and submit them here the next day, but my first impression on the translation is that it is very rigid (I do admit that I have some issues with this as well, but I feel the sentence flow is something a translator should keep working on). Pause whenever you need to. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Some other notes I have:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::*If unsure, use a machine translator for phrases, or maybe a dictionary, or check out some other sources. Remember, even if we&#039;re translators, we are not walking dictionaries. Machine translators may not be as accurate as one would like, but they&#039;re quite good for short phrases.&lt;br /&gt;
::*(I used to have the same mistake as you here) You don&#039;t have to make sure that the translated sentence must have the same punctuations and must be at the same place all the time. If you feel that you need to take liberties with a comma or a full stop, just go ahead. Also, some of your conjunctions are used in weird places, like the although...however in the same sentence. Do not try to use that many conjunctions. Rearrange the order of the words if you have to. The most important part is to convey the meaning of the sentence correctly. Feel free to break up any sentences and synthesize them whenever you want to, as long as it doesn&#039;t compromise the content.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
...Some people complain about not getting Japanese to English translations, but I don&#039;t see many of them working on LN translations anyway...so yeah, I&#039;ll encourage you to learn Japanese to help in the long run, but you must first get seasoned as a translator. I will give you more feedback and corrections regarding your translations later on (ASAP if I can) before I let you practise further.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
EXTRA: You need to memorize the charts if you want to proceed with the Japanese translations. (and also, try learning some Japanese, whether by taking courses or actually self-learning, like this website which helped me quite a lot, http://www.alljapaneseallthetime.com/blog/about but I don&#039;t watch anime. I ended up reading the Japanese raws every single day, see the terms, take notes and stuff, but mostly focused on grammar.) Also, with the recent (Chinese) licensing of Sword Art Online and Accel World, I don&#039;t think you will be able to get them in Chinese unless you buy them from a bookshop that sells them, like Kinokuniya (in Singapore, it&#039;s in Takashimaya)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 11:20, 26 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Huh? Do you mean that you can get Sword Art Online and Accel World in Chinese from bookstores, and not just from fan translations on the internet? [[User:MADh0n0r|MADh0n0r]] ([[User talk:MADh0n0r|talk]]) 22:41, 26 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
You can. In fact, these two series can only be obtained because of licenses.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Here&#039;s the corrected version.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
…… The only thing that I am certain of is that the me who writes stories about idiots is definitely not a normal. I face my computer at home every day, so I have nothing to write for the afterword and can only use such a barefaced method to write out four pages. But now that I think about it, I have already used the ‘idiots cannot see’ joke in my previous works&#039;s afterword. This move is really bad…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But never mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It’s been a long time, I am the man with few friends, struggling every day to live through my lonely life, Hirasaka Yomi.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fourth volume of Boku wa Tomodachi ga Sukunai has finally been published.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If everyone had fun reading it, I will be pleased. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though I said that, I don’t really have any interesting stories to write in this afterword, so I’d better do some publicity work.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The first volume of the manga drawn by itachi-san, Boku wa Tomodachi ga Sukunai, will be published together with this fourth volume on the 23rd of July. Those of you who are reading this in the book shop, please run along to the manga corner to check it out!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yozora and Sena are really lively in the manga version of Haganai with those rich facial expressions while doing absurd actions of all sorts; it really is very interesting! The weird faces of Yozora and Sena is really destructive, those really aren’t expressions that beauties should have…… While thinking “even the light novel would have to concede defeat with regards to this”, I enjoyed the series purely as a reader. Everyone, be sure to check it out!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also, as the manga series of Haganai is receiving praises, the September issue of the Comic Alive to be sold on the 27th of July, inclusive is an exchangeable book cover drawn by buriki-san, as well as a side story novel. Especially the exchangeable book cover, you must see it, it’s a young girl on it! As the original author of the manga, the editing department mailed me a copy of the Comic Alive. However, I still intend to buy another 2 copies, one for keeping, and another for reading. Some may think that ‘anyway the side story novel will be added into the collection of the light novel’, but this absurd author himself has written a story that makes it difficult to add the side story into the novel, so I expect that the side story most probably won’t be added into the light novels. Therefore, I ask everyone to make sure to buy the September’s issue of Comic Alive. There&#039;s a young girl on it!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The script was handed up in the nick of time this time, and I am very sorry for giving trouble to Buriki-san as well as the other editors. It is because of all these colleagues who helped produced the light novels as well as all you readers that I, the one with few friends, was able to make it through. My, am I being normal here? Even though I have few friends…… Anyway, I will still be in your care from now on!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Late June 2010 Hirasaka Yomi&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A guideline on what to do once you&#039;re registered: (Use this for reference: http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Format_guideline)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
1. First, go to the volume that you want to upload. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
2. Do you see the edit button on the top right hand corner? Click it. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
3. Look at the &#039;Internal link&#039; section, that is how you&#039;re going to add hyperlinks. (You can look at the other volumes for reference) &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
4. If you did it right, the words should be in red, (you can edit the titles according to how you see fit, but try to keep it uniform) click on it. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
5. Now, you should be in a new page. Click on the &#039;create&#039; button at the top. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
6. Upload the text that you have already translated. (Make sure to press &#039;enter&#039; once after every paragraph so that it&#039;s easier to read.) &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
7. Next, the headings. At the wiki editing tips page, look at the &#039;headings&#039; section (well, duh). &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
8. If you see the format used on all B-T texts, you&#039;ll probably get an idea of how to do it. (Just copy what they do.) &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
9. For pictures, it&#039;s under &#039;thumbnail image&#039;, the &#039;picture&#039; would be from the illustrations of the volume that&#039;s available here. If I want a picture from say &#039;Volume 1 page 031&#039;, the format would be &amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;[[Image:Index_v01_031.jpg|thumb]]&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt; &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
10. For a footer, just go to any completed chapter here, copy the scripts for the footer, and make the necessary edits.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To add illustrations, go onto the wiki, go to the bottom left corner, and click on &#039;upload file&#039;. Browse the file from your computer, change the destination filename appropriately (jpg for jpg file format, and so on). Then, just follow what is done on the volume 1 illustrations.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also, why don&#039;t you try out with translating Baka Test? I can use some help for 6.5. Try working on the afterwords first. Just practice more with it, and make sure your text does not have too much of transliteration. Some of your translations are quite literal with the wording. I don&#039;t actually have much to teach you at this point, since everything is pretty much mental at this point. Oh, and you can upload your work.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 02:54, 30 November 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ah, I see... Then, can I help out with the afterword for 6.5? [[User:MADh0n0r|MADh0n0r]] ([[User talk:MADh0n0r|talk]]) 07:51, 1 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Go ahead with it. Just remember not to be too literal with the translations.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 08:21, 1 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also, you can pretty much choose whatever series you want to do except for Haganai as Vexed wants to take the entire project (I honestly applaud him for that). You can take Baka Test 6.5 if you want, the first story if you like, since I&#039;ll be on holiday for the next 5 days, but if you are wondering what series to chose, here are the fansubs for some series.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
http://www.wenku8.cn/novel/0/471/index.htm (Amazingly, SAO isn&#039;t taken down.)&lt;br /&gt;
http://www.wenku8.cn/novel/0/351/index.htm (Aria)&lt;br /&gt;
http://www.wenku8.cn/novel/0/381/index.htm (AW)&lt;br /&gt;
http://www.wenku8.cn/novel/0/47/index.htm (Oreimo)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Chinese&amp;gt;English translators willing to take on these series, take note.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 08:35, 1 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;ve just registered for the 6.5 afterword, though I&#039;m not sure if it&#039;s done correctly... Just a question though, do you usually translate from Japanese or Chinese? [[User:MADh0n0r|MADh0n0r]] ([[User talk:MADh0n0r|talk]]) 11:20, 1 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
First point, done right. Second, Japanese, for 70% of the time. (If we talk about my career up till this point)--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 12:38, 1 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hi, I was working on AW V11 when this name turned up: 小幸. Raw test is chinese. Is this a nickname for Utai, maybe? If not, then who? [[User:Tusjecht|&amp;amp;#91;tusjecht&amp;amp;#93;]] ([[User talk:Tusjecht|talk]]) 23:11, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Note, when there is a &#039;小&#039; in front, thre&#039;s most likely a -chan behind. In this case, I guess it&#039;s Sky Raker calling Kuroyukihime Sa-chan.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 23:15, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Okay then. Then, what would be the translation for this: 学姊. Is it maybe referring to KYH-senpai? [[User:Tusjecht|&amp;amp;#91;tusjecht&amp;amp;#93;]] ([[User talk:Tusjecht|talk]]) 00:06, 9 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Senpai, or sempai. Personally, I&#039;ll take sempai. Then again, there are people complaining about the use of honorifics here and there. Just do whatever you want with that.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 00:17, 9 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
So it is! Alright thanks, I&#039;ll go with senpai for consistency. (: [[User:Tusjecht|&amp;amp;#91;tusjecht&amp;amp;#93;]] ([[User talk:Tusjecht|talk]]) 00:18, 9 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Problem IPs ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A round of vandalism in the old Clannad template page:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
88.119.128.204 &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
80.242.214.149&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
213.144.132.98 &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
95.48.133.82&lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Skies|Skies]] ([[User talk:Skies|talk]]) 10:50, 26 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Oreimo ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hello, i know this is likely the wrong place to ask this question so i apologize in advance but i was wondering about two things. First off if Oreimo volume 4 and 5 are indeed fully translated and if so how does one add the full text feature?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==[[Hikaru ga Chikyuu ni Itakoro......]]==&lt;br /&gt;
What do you mean with NTR? --[[User:Darklor|Darklor]] ([[User talk:Darklor|talk]]) 04:54, 13 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
...The title of each volume is a female character from the &#039;Tale of Genji&#039;. Google &#039;Utsusemi&#039;...--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 10:46, 13 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Lock certain novel pages from anonymous edits==&lt;br /&gt;
Hi, I noticed that both Kokoro Connect and Sakurasou no Pet na Kanojo are currently open to anonymous editing. Can you modify the page as well as their subpages so that they are protected from anonymous editing? Thanks ^_^ --[[User:MCsq2|MCsq2]] ([[User talk:MCsq2|Talk]]) 03:43, 15 April 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Russian supervisor==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hello, Rock96 said you are looking for russian supervisor. I agree to became one of them. What must supervisor do? [[User:Sharkrahs|Sharkrahs]] ([[User talk:Sharkrahs|talk]]) 07:36, 21 May 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=14&amp;amp;t=5859&amp;amp;p=185081#p185081 To make it fair to all applicants.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 07:50, 21 May 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
==Infinite Stratos translation project==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Is it possible that I can heip to translate the Infinite Stratos light novel?  [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=User:Fengyi fengyi]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Spammers/Bots==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hello, Teh Ping. I&#039;ve noticed a lot of spammers and bots being blocked lately, sometimes 20 in a row. While I don&#039;t dispute blocking them, I&#039;d just like to ask the reason one would bot or spam on B-T. As far as I can see there are no advantages to doing so except &amp;quot;for the lulz&amp;quot;. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-- [[User:神|神]] ([[User talk:神|talk]]) 02:45, 12 July 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They&#039;re bots. They search for public wikis and create accounts/edit user pages for free advertising. Would be nice if BT had a captcha on the registration page, or something. I&#039;m pretty sure there&#039;s a wikimedia plugin for it. [[User:LivingHumanoidInterface|LivingHumanoidInterface]] ([[User talk:LivingHumanoidInterface|talk]])&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I completely get how stopping bots is necessary, but I (and I assume at least a few others) seem to have been caught in the cross-fire. My account &amp;quot;Darwen G&#039;wein&amp;quot; has insta-blocked&amp;lt;!--IP address 162.197.97.242, and block ID #17143 --&amp;gt;, and after a few not-thought-out-at-all attempts to fix it, the wiki and forums seem determined to label me and every email address I own as spam. I can easily see how some less patient folks might give up on the idea of contributing altogether. Definitely seconding the captcha idea, or a similar alternative.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Special:Contributions/116.251.223.102|116.251.223.102]] 17:15, 8 March 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hello Darwen. I&#039;ve unblocked you. To answer the questions above:&lt;br /&gt;
:*The bots post link spam in order to increase the page rankings of their respective affiliated websites. The more inbound links to a webpage there are over the internet, the higher that page will rank on Google search. These spam bots post links to increase their own page ranking score.&lt;br /&gt;
:*We used to have captcha, but after we upgraded the server, it&#039;s apparently not working. We are trying our best to resolve the issue through all means we currently can. Temporarily, we&#039;ll have to rely on manual blocking. Sorry for the inconvenience. &lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Cloudii|Cloudii]] ([[User talk:Cloudii|talk]]) 20:37, 8 March 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Accel World==&lt;br /&gt;
You said that you would be taking the project down with the release of the 1st volume, but Yen Press has it marked as a [http://www.yenpress.com/accel-world-novel/ July release] and you are taking it down already.--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 06:01, 16 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Note the notice. I said &#039;&#039;&#039;BY&#039;&#039;&#039; the release of the 1st volume, not &#039;&#039;&#039;with&#039;&#039;&#039;. For further information, please take note of [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=13&amp;amp;t=10386 this] --[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 06:04, 16 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Oh, I see, point 5. I wonder how did I miss it when I read them before. Thanks. Let&#039;s hope Yen Press releases the books at a good pace so that I can get my hands as soon as possible on a volume 6 copy.--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 06:38, 16 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
@Kemm you can always try Tusjecht&#039;s wordpress, http://tusjecht.wordpress.com, he&#039;s translating them until they&#039;re caught up (he&#039;s currently doing Vol. 6) . [[User:Wraiyf|Wraiyf]] ([[User talk:Wraiyf|talk]]) 09:54, 16 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Sidebar Change==&lt;br /&gt;
Thank you for that recent change. It was getting unbearable after the number of series went over 100.--[[User:OH&amp;amp;#38;S|OH&amp;amp;#38;S]] ([[User talk:OH&amp;amp;#38;S|talk]]) 02:12, 13 June 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==SAO:Progressive Licensed==&lt;br /&gt;
Announced yesterday by Yen Press.&lt;br /&gt;
http://www.yenpress.com/category/news/&lt;br /&gt;
EDIT: I see Kira has already dealt with the Progressive main page. I only mentioned it since you still have a note on the SAO page (http://baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Sword_Art_Online) saying that the Progressive project will be reinstated soon, since it&#039;s a protected page I can&#039;t remove the note --[[User:Drowzycow|Drowzycow]] ([[User talk:Drowzycow|talk]]) 20:57, 14 June 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Regarding Mushoku==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sure, though I don&#039;t have an account on the forums here(can&#039;t make one due to ISP block and don&#039;t intend on it either so no point in unlocking that for me). You&#039;ll have to PM me on DeviantArt or through the AnimeSuki forums. Or maybe some other communication platform?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
http://darksilencer.deviantart.com/ or http://forums.animesuki.com/member.php?u=68115&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sorry if it&#039;s a bit inconvenient on your end, I don&#039;t use irc and other such things either...  &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it&#039;s about translation/transliteration quality, a couple months ago I posted a rough example here: http://darksilencer.deviantart.com/journal/Mushoku-Tensei-Special-Chapter-World-Map-Examp-465638929&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I have a few more notes I could make on that as well, but for the bulk it&#039;s like that.  --[[User:Dark Kaito|Dark Kaito]] ([[User talk:Dark Kaito|talk]]) 10:26, 25 August 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Quick question regarding translations, someone posted their translation on a chapter already registered by me with no notice at all, should I just copy paste my translation (and thus delete his), or is that something you do? --[[User:Awrya|Awrya]] ([[User talk:Awrya|talk]]) 23:10, 5 September 2014 (GMT+1)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As the new supervisor for Mushoku, I figured I should again ask for the &#039;official okay&#039; to upload a third party&#039;s translations for unregistered chapters. I would register the chapter under my name, credit given to him, and upload his TL so that it can be more easily processed for tlc and editing. He has given permission to use his translations: http://pastebin.com/7L762b3d . --[[User:Deadgye|Deadgye]] ([[User talk:Deadgye|talk]]) 18:22 EDT Sept 10 2014&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Original Light Novels - Inquiry==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I was redirected here to consult whether it is possible for me to write a light novel on my user page: http://baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=User:Shrysha&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Please let me know if this is something I can do, or what steps I might need to take in order to get this approved, thanks!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Shrysha&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Just question==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I just want to ask how are you? &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cos it past long time since your last update, so hope you going well and will soon decide all your  problems and return to B-T and translations.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
P.S. Especially Black Bullet :D --[[User:Mugu|Mugu]] ([[User talk:Mugu|talk]]) 09:47, 7 September 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Most of my stuff nowadays are based on Hereticlnt, and Black Bullet V2C1 is already translated, just not edited.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 08:10, 11 September 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I was wondering who should I contact for forum support. Whenever I try to log into the forum I keep getting an &amp;quot;Login Attempts have exceeded&amp;quot; enter a capcha and such but I still can&#039;t login... [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 16:36, 7 October 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Rough drafts for your pastebin folder (if you have) ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Oni has a pastebin folder to store potential candidates for editing. since you took over Mushouku Tensei from him, I will send this (not mine) rough draft of Mushouku Tensei 205 for your keeping. It&#039;s not even at the level of readable yet, but better than machine translated. Hungry that the fan of MT are, we will find it here. http://pastebin.com/H4QCWwNr C205 War Effort.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is 75% of 203 done by Vanant and the rest done by anon on pastebin. It might be impolitic to post it on main page, but its no problem if you push it on pastebin folder. http://pastebin.com/HbjE906X and http://pastebin.com/PFdPSzua [[User:Laclongquan|Laclongquan]] ([[User talk:Laclongquan|talk]]) 01:40, 10 September 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right, I&#039;m not sure if Vanant will be willing to have them uploaded anyway. Given the massive number of contributors for this project however, I&#039;m looking to introduce stricter controls (and I&#039;ve been busy reading this series to get a feel for the story, though I highly suspect that the LN version will have lots of edits as well)--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 08:10, 11 September 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Mushoku Tensei Updates ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hi Ping, there&#039;s a few updates for Mushoku Tensei I would like to discuss:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
1. &#039;&#039;&#039;Preview Chapters 85, 86, 87, 103, 107&#039;&#039;&#039;: Consider removing preview status from these five chapters.  I have read through them and found them in good reading conditions.  Additionally, I have checked them against the Chinese script for translation errors, and corrected any I came across.  At their current condition, they&#039;re at least as good as any other regular chapters on MT, and does not deserve relegating in preview ghetto.  &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
2. &#039;&#039;&#039;Dual Registration for 173, 174, 175&#039;&#039;&#039;: A heads-up is probably not necessary, but [[user:saihafire]] and I are collaborating to release these chapters.  I have already finished translating the chapters, and they&#039;ll be up on BT as soon as Saiha finished authenticating them for translation errors.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
3. &#039;&#039;&#039;MT v18&#039;&#039;&#039;:  I would like you to take a look at /a/&#039;s v18 and consider it for BT ([https://docs.google.com/document/d/1Gbk6r3ekVRQFUOukdbIgtATfmlaNedekem6JNtf2gu4/edit linked here]).  You may have read about it in the forums, for the past two weeks /a/ has crowdsource-editing a machine translation of MT v18.  It&#039;s a process I have been helping with, and I think the edit has reached a quality acceptable as previews for BT. There were even /a/non moonreaders (self-described Japanese readers) whom helped correct the script for mistranslation! &amp;lt;br /&amp;gt; &amp;lt;br /&amp;gt;After two weeks, I believe /a/&#039;s MTL v18 has reached a level of readability and accuracy, that if I translate the chapters from scratch, I will unlikely improve upon.  Thus I want to ask you to give permission for the chapters be added.  I&#039;ll be happy to do the legwork, if you approves.  Furthermore, once you allowed, I&#039;ll like to discuss with [[user:zmunjali]] about using the edits to update the v18.1-6 that he has registered. &amp;lt;br /&amp;gt; &amp;lt;br /&amp;gt;For concerns with the baka-tsuki guidelines, I believe this situation fits under External Translation Groups in [[Baka-Tsuki:External Contributor Rules]].  I have been nominated as &amp;quot;project head&amp;quot; for the purpose of faciliating /a/&#039;s v18 onto BT.  Thus, I have the permissions necessary to offer the chapters to BT. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
- [[User:Onii Sama|Onii Sama]] ([[User talk:Onii Sama|talk]]) 22:08, 11 September 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
1. I&#039;ll make a quick review ASAP (once my tests are done). If they&#039;re good to go, I&#039;ll amend accordingly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
2. Right, I think it&#039;s a good idea to inform me just in case.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
3. Hmm...I had a quick review of the text, and tbh, I think my preference may be different, given that MT has paragraphs with shorter lines than most LNs. One note I can say is that there&#039;s no need for the text to be so formal, you can use contracted form as much as possible since the text is typically in first-person format. Do inform zmunjali before this, and once you&#039;re done, do contact me via PM on the forums. --[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 09:28, 12 September 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With all due respect, Onii-sama, I believe the only people who can claim those chapters to be comparatively error-free are those who have read the novel in it&#039;s native language (Japanese).  While chapters 85, 86, 87, and 103 do flow well enough to be considered readable, I cannot say the same for chapter 107.  As I am nearly done with retranslating it, I can assuredly say there are many parts that do not flow accurately, and some parts are translated with an opposite meaning than the author intended.  However, I believe it&#039;s up to the reader to decide which translation to keep once I upload my translation. -- [[User:Fighter747|Fighter747]] ([[User talk:Fighter747|talk]]) 06:11, 19 September 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Glad to hear you&#039;re revisiting old chapters.  I plan to do the same now that we&#039;re nearly caught up with Japan.  I&#039;m sure Ping is happy to have second opinions from both of remaining translators still active on the MT project.  Even though our opinions on them may differ, surely he can consider both during evaluation.  &amp;lt;br /&amp;gt;For the record, I never said those five early preview chapters are &amp;quot;error-free,&amp;quot; what I wrote are &amp;quot;I checked them against the chinese script&amp;quot; and consider them &amp;quot;as good as regular chapters.&amp;quot;  I think my translation checking is valid: assuming two &amp;quot;90%&amp;quot; scripts, as long as they&#039;re uncorrelated, the chance of both getting a line wrong is 1%, ie 6 or so errors in a typical 600 line script.  That&#039;s good enough, theoretically, in my opinion. &amp;lt;br /&amp;gt;As for your new 107:  according to the [[Baka-Tsuki:Machine Translation Guidelines|new MTL guidelines]], replacement should be automatic, so a vote is likely unnecessary.  - [[User:Onii Sama|Onii Sama]] ([[User talk:Onii Sama|talk]]) 18:40, 19 September 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::To clarify, yes, I believe translation work in general should have some error threshold that is considered acceptable.  I did say &amp;quot;comparatively&amp;quot; error-free, so I do expect some errors to pop up that may be difficult to reconcile.&amp;lt;br /&amp;gt;Going back to the five chapters, I haven&#039;t compared the first four chapters with the webnovel, but I have done so for the fifth one (Chapter 107). My concern is if &#039;&#039;&#039;that&#039;&#039;&#039; chapter preview was considered acceptable by your standards, perhaps my tolerance for errors may be much lower than expected. -- [[User:Fighter747|Fighter747]] ([[User talk:Fighter747|talk]]) 16:50, 21 September 2014 (CDT)&amp;lt;br /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ah whatever, I guess I&#039;ll just translate those chapters myself.--[[User:Teh Ping|Teh Ping]] ([[User talk:Teh Ping|talk]]) 21:56, 19 September 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Hyouketsu_Kyoukai_no_Eden&amp;diff=393713</id>
		<title>Talk:Hyouketsu Kyoukai no Eden</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Hyouketsu_Kyoukai_no_Eden&amp;diff=393713"/>
		<updated>2014-10-01T16:21:37Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;well, this is ttranslated at C.E. Translations... heres a link: http://cetranslation.blogspot.com.au/2011/07/hyouketsu-kyoukai-no-eden-volume-1.html, for the 1st 3 vols and theres a link there to vol4 + some of vol 5 aswell...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
really gratefull if this project will starting.&lt;br /&gt;
the translator already lose their motivation when volume 5 chapter 3 completed.&lt;br /&gt;
Many reader waiting for this project.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Volume 4 has been completed on http://sakurahonyaku.wordpress.com/&lt;br /&gt;
Volume 5 is only done up to chapter 3.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
C.E. Translations dropped this a while back once they&#039;d finished Volume 3. Mizuho, as known as Sinemerald over at http://sakurahonyaku.wordpress.com picked it up. He is continuing from where C.E. left off. That being from Volume 4 onward. Do remember to use the 4 &amp;quot;~&amp;quot; to tag your posts. It gets confusing otherwise. [[User:All Nighter94|All Night]] ([[User talk:All Nighter94|talk]]) 13:21, 11 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As All Night said, [[user:‎Mizuho|Mizuho]]/sinemerald was in hiatus the last 6 months and is back up to v5ch4 p8. We just requested permission to transfer Mizuho&#039;s work to BT. And I decided to upload the images from the raws I have. It&#039;s still a long way until we see all this translated, and it will be on Mizuho&#039;s whim so just don&#039;t expect too much out of translators.[[User:Acolyte|Acolyte]] ([[User talk:Acolyte|talk]]) 14:02, 11 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Question: if permission to host volumes 1-3 was given to Zerry Mark, does that mean that BT will eventually host volumes 1-3 locally? [[User:Rasen|Rasen]] ([[User talk:Rasen|talk]]) 22:01, 20 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
I asked this in sakurahonyaku but zery said that it&#039;s only for hotlinking. I sent an e-mail to cetranslations but no answer from them. Perhaps you can contact them also? [[User:Acolyte|Acolyte]] ([[User talk:Acolyte|talk]]) 12:20, 22 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
So I have a question regarding the connection to &#039;&#039;Tasogare-iro no Uta Tsukai.&#039;&#039;  The page says that this series is a sequel to it but how much of a sequel is it?  Are we talking a &amp;quot;direct&amp;quot; kind of sequel or a &amp;quot;set in the same world&amp;quot; kind of sequel?  More to the point can I read &#039;&#039;Eden&#039;&#039; without reading &#039;&#039;Tasogare&#039;&#039; or would I be missing too much?  Want to find out if I am ok to read this now as the translation of &#039;&#039;Tasogare&#039;&#039; doesn&#039;t seem to be doing too good currently. -Anon&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I just noticed, the covers of volume 01 and 03 have been put in the wrong spot. They need to swap their current positions. [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 11:21, 1 October 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Rokka_no_Yuusha&amp;diff=390822</id>
		<title>Rokka no Yuusha</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Rokka_no_Yuusha&amp;diff=390822"/>
		<updated>2014-09-15T06:17:04Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Volume 2 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;{{Status|Active}}&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:RnY_V1_cover.jpg‎|thumb|Rokka no Yuusha Volume 1 Cover]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rokka no Yuusha (六花の勇者) is a novel series written by Ishio Yamagata and illustrated by Miyagi.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Project hosted on [http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/ NanoDesu&#039;s website].&#039;&#039;&#039; &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Story Synopsis==&lt;br /&gt;
When the Majin awakes from the depths of darkness, the Gods of Destiny choose 6 heroes, granting them power to save the world. The young man who calls himself &amp;quot;world&#039;s strongest person,&amp;quot; Adlet, is selected into this group of six, the Six Flower Heroes, and ventures forth to battle to stop the Majin&#039;s resurrection. However, at the appointed gathering place, why are there seven people? Right after, the Illusion Fog barrier is activated, shutting the seven right in the forest. They fall to the suspicion that one of them is an enemy. And then, the one whom that suspicion is most directed at is Adlet...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Novel Summary==&lt;br /&gt;
When “The Majin” awakes the goddess of fate will choose six warriors and bestow them with the power to save the world. Somewhere on their bodies a crest in the shape of a flower will appear and as a result the warriors are called “The Heroes of the Six Flowers”. As the day of The Majin’s revival nears, Adlet, a boy who calls himself the strongest man in the world, is chosen as one of the “Six Flowers”. But when the heroes arrived at their designated location, they found that there were seven heroes present. Which meant that one of them was an imposter and an enemy. Confused by the impossible situation, suspicion and paranoia spread among the chosen. And within a thick forest, the heroes’ fierce battle begins!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Updates ==&lt;br /&gt;
*20th January 2014&lt;br /&gt;
** Rokka no Yuusha Volume 1 Prologue Completed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==The &#039;&#039;Rokka no Yuusha&#039;&#039; series by Ishio Yamagata==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This novel is hosted from [http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/  Nanodesu]. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;All main links below are external links to [http://nanodesutranslations.wordpress.com/ NanoDesu]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 1===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:RnY_V1_cover.jpg‎|thumb|x160px]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-1/prologue/ Prologue: The Forest of Certain Death]  &lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-1/chapter-one/ Chapter 1:The Departure and the Two Encounters]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-1/chapter-two/ Chapter 2: The Gathering of the Six Flowers]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-1/chapter-3/ Chapter 3: The Trap and the Escape]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-1/chapter-4/ Chapter 4: Counterattack]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-1/chapter-5/ Chapter 5: The Time of Clarity]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-1/epilogue/ Epilogue]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-1/afterword/ Afterword]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br \&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 2===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:RnY_V2_cover.jpg‎|thumb|x160px]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-2/prologue-the-killing/ Prologue: The Killing]  &lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-2/chapter-one/ Chapter 1: The March to The Wailing Demon Territory] &lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-2/chapter-two/ Chapter 2: Mora&#039;s Secret Pact]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-2/chapter-three/ Chapter 3: At the Eternal Flower]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-2/chapter-four/ Chapter 4: The Sudden Change]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-2/chapter-five/ Chapter 5: The Truth of the Traitor]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-2/epilogue/ Epilogue]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-2/afterword/ Afterword]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br \&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 3===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:RnY_V3_cover.jpg‎|thumb|x160px]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-3/prologue/ Prologue: The Majin and the Flower]  &lt;br /&gt;
*[http://rokkathetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-3/chapter-one/ Chapter 1: Reunion] &lt;br /&gt;
*[Chapter 2]&lt;br /&gt;
*[Chapter 3]&lt;br /&gt;
*[Chapter 4]&lt;br /&gt;
*[Chapter 5&lt;br /&gt;
*[Epilogue]&lt;br /&gt;
*[Afterword]&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br \&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Project Status==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Project Status: &#039;&#039;&#039;Ongoing&#039;&#039;&#039; by Nanodesu translations (hosted project)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Series Overview==&lt;br /&gt;
:*六花の勇者 1 - August 25, 2011 ISBN 978-4-0863-0633-1&lt;br /&gt;
:*六花の勇者 2 - April 25, 2012 ISBN 978-4-0863-0671-3&lt;br /&gt;
:*六花の勇者 3 - November 22, 2012 ISBN 978-4-0863-0710-9&lt;br /&gt;
:*六花の勇者 4 - July 25, 2013 ISBN 978-4-0863-0745-1 &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Light novel (English)]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Hosted Projects]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:NanoDesu Translations]]&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Sakurasou_no_Pet_na_Kanojo&amp;diff=382091</id>
		<title>Talk:Sakurasou no Pet na Kanojo</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Sakurasou_no_Pet_na_Kanojo&amp;diff=382091"/>
		<updated>2014-08-15T14:40:51Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Editing Questions */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;== Formatting ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Should we use &amp;quot;Sakurasou&amp;quot; or &amp;quot;the Sakura Dormitory&amp;quot;? The former coheres to the name of the novel, while the latter expresses the full meaning. Or maybe we should add a Translator&#039;s note and use the former? [[User:Pudding321|Pudding321]] 23:50, 5 October 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It&#039;s better to stick more to the Japanese side. And instead of &amp;quot;Hall&amp;quot; write it as &amp;quot;Dormitory&amp;quot;. --[[User:Chancs|Chancs]] ([[User talk:Chancs|talk]]) 00:06, 6 October 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
WE HELL YEAH I&#039;VE WAITED SO LONG FOR THIS TO START!!! XDDDDD THX TO WHOEVER WHO TOOK THE INITAITIVE TO START THE POLLS. XDDDDDDD &lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;3 YOU!!! XDDD sry for the lag cause I went on holiday. :P  [[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]] 16:04, 23 Nov 2012 (GMT+8)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;ve been wondering: Would you translators prefer that I edit the script strictly for spelling, grammar and format, and stick really close to the original more direct translation, or would it be better if I tried to make the text flow more, occasionally altering meanings in some way to make it read more like an English novel? I would like to think that I&#039;m not completely ignorant of Japanese culture and language(otherwise I probably wouldn&#039;t even be here), so sometimes I can infer as to what some of the original text was trying to say and thus try to find a more suitable western/English equivalent. I am fine with either way, as the former is easier and less time consuming, though more mechanical, and the latter would be more interesting to do, albeit requiring more effort. What would you guys prefer?&lt;br /&gt;
P.s. Sorry for the huge block of text :P  -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 22:25, 3 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Erm...For me, at least just for me, because I did work previously as an editor (Yeah I sucked at it), most translators would prefer the text edited for spelling, grammar, and format. With flow included. But if it is a big changed to the whole sentence, we would normally paste the &amp;quot;Before change&amp;quot; and &amp;quot;Changed&amp;quot; on the discussion page, then change it. But technical terms are still kept and untranslated (E.g. Sakurasou, Kouhai, Sempai.) I have no idea why, but it looks and sounds better if kept like that. :PPP&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But for me, I don&#039;t really wanna go through that hassle. If you don&#039;t mind that, I would appreciate it, but because of RL stuff, (Most ppl have that), I think it is rather time-consuming. So I am fine if you just edit. And if I don&#039;t like it, I&#039;ll just change that portion of text back. Something like that. :)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m quite flexible so it&#039;s fine. But maybe you would have to ask the opinions of other translators as well, just in case... :PPPP&lt;br /&gt;
P.S. sry for the even longer line of text. XDDDD  --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I don&#039;t think that it&#039;s that big of a deal, but is this project still supposed to be in UK English? I saw something about that when I started editing this, but when I recently checked again it wasn&#039;t there anymore. So, did the rules change? Just wondering because the other editor (the one that&#039;s actually here) is changing things to American English, so I don&#039;t know if I should do the same or continue to use UK. -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 21:37, 7 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just my 2¥ concerning editing. After two years of translation, editing and TLC, I think that you should try having the meaning conveyed in a more natural English. For example, idioms, expressions and many things can be edited as long as the script gets better, not worse. So if it doesn&#039;t flow well, I&#039;d say that it needs to be rephrased. Basically, you can change or subtitute as long as the meaning doesn&#039;t get twisted around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the project, BT&#039;s default language is American English. However, pudding comes from HK and he uses UK English. I&#039;d say you pick the English you want, as long as it is applied throughout the series. [[User:Kira0802|Kira]] ([[User_talk:Kira0802|Talk]]) 21:51, 7 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The thing is, I&#039;m from Canada and would prefer UK English, but I&#039;m not the only editor anymore. I guess I&#039;ll work something out with the other guy who seems to prefer American. &lt;br /&gt;
Oh, and thanks for your advice, Kira.&lt;br /&gt;
-[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 22:01, 7 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Haha lol. I don&#039;t mind either, though I&#039;ll be sending in a mixed version of it. :DDD Lol cause I&#039;m not in UK or America, so my English is pretty screwed up, so you&#039;ll see a little color of every nation. LOL&lt;br /&gt;
On a side note, who&#039;s the project supervisor and admin for it? I think it&#039;s better to put there cause newbies like me would need the info. :/&lt;br /&gt;
Though I contacted pudding at that time cause he was the only translator. :P  --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Woah, lol I just noticed that this is now a full project. Congrats for all you guys&#039; hard work! -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 00:06, 9 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thx! And pls help edit when you have free time too! XD --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Erm hi just dropping by to ask a question. In the anime of Sakurasou, it seemed that Misaki always calls Sorata &amp;quot;Kouhai-kun&amp;quot;. So just wondering if we need ta put the &amp;quot;-kun&amp;quot; prefix behind. thx. :D --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If we do start putting kuns onto Kouhai, then we should put kun/san/chan onto everything else. But I don&#039;t think that&#039;s necessary.[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 03:20, 12 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kk thx! But on a side note, Nanami always uses the &amp;quot;Kanda-kun&amp;quot; to voice the sarcasm of her speech, e.g. &amp;quot;Kanda-kun, can you stop looking here?&amp;quot; so... :/ --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I see, but the sarcasm might only be in the anime. I&#039;m TLing from the KR version, and it doesn&#039;t really emphasize the sarcasm. I guess I&#039;ll ask for Pudding&#039;s advice. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On a side note, what do the other LNs do? Do they add the kun/san/chan on the end? Or does it depend on the translator?&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 04:37, 13 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hm...I think it depends on the translator. LOL --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;ve talked to Pudding, and he says why not. So&#039;ll put the kuns onto the Kohai from now on. I&#039;ll edit ch3&amp;amp;4 for the kuns --[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 07:36, 13 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Okay! :D - - [[user:Magykalman |Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Added the kuns in the rest. Hopefully I&#039;ll have more free time during winter break to do more editing, but I&#039;ll still be popping in from time to time until then. -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 21:11, 13 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Managed to get my hands on the JP raws all the way up to vol 8. So...if anyone needs them, I have them. Also uploading the pics now. - [[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 14:36, 23 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey guys, I&#039;d like to help out, either as an editor or translator. Native English (American) speaker, so I&#039;d probably do better on editing, but I can attempt to translate from the Chinese LN (which I have access to) or from the original that Jasou says he has access to. [[User:Khiral|Khiral]] ([[User talk:Khiral|talk]]) 01:46, 27 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hello Khiral, having an extra TL or an editor is awesome and welcomed. If you feel comfortable TLing, you can start from Vol3 because Vol2 is being done by Pudding321 and myself.If you want to edit, then that&#039;s fine as well. Just go with whichever you feel you can dedicate yourself into without getting too bored. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If you are going to translate, it would be better to translate from the original language(Japanese) because it&#039;s better to use the original source. But if you find Chinese easier to TL from, then you can choose to use the Chinese version.--[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 03:03, 27 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After some thought, I will just edit for the time being. I searched the forums, but couldn&#039;t find a general protocol for editing. Is there anything particular? [[User:Khiral|Khiral]] ([[User talk:Khiral|talk]]) 08:30, 28 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There really aren&#039;t much protocols that I&#039;m aware of, except that we prefer to use UK English and we don&#039;t like to change the meaning of the context. So just make sure that the original meaning of the book is retained. Also, please check for the flow of the words, so that it doesn&#039;t sound forced or confusing. So you can sign yourself up on the editors section and get started! --[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 09:37, 28 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Uploaded Volume 8 images. Semi-spoilers inside. [[User:Khiral|Khiral]] ([[User talk:Khiral|talk]]) 11:15, 31 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey there, Khiral. I&#039;m just wondering why you use two different accounts to update. I&#039;m guessing KuroDubZero is also you?  -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 11:48, 31 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I only use this account, barring some sort of strange split personality, so I don&#039;t think so. Also, high quality image scans got posted just as I uploaded the chapter 8 images. GG. brb reuploading. Edit: Also read the pages that go with volume&#039;s 8 semi-spoiler image and hnggggggggggggggggggggggh I&#039;ll be back once I&#039;m done dying of hnnnnnnnnghhhhhhhh [[User:Khiral|Khiral]] ([[User talk:Khiral|talk]]) 11:55, 31 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Haha, okay then, I guess I was mistaken. Just don&#039;t get a nosebleed and actually die of blood loss :). Though, I wonder who that mystery uploader(KuroDubZero) is? - [[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 15:43, 31 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 7.5 ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
First off would like to say thanks for the translators translating this series, really enjoying the anime so i have enjoyed reading the LN, just wanted to point out on the slim chance that you actually didn&#039;t know that you missed out on volume 7.5&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
http://www.mangaupdates.com/image/i140851.jpg&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also i was wondering if chapter 2 of volume 1 is still being translated, my reason for wondering this is because the translation is getting pretty consistent updates with the exception of chapter 2 which is 50% done, so i was wondering if the translator that had that chapter registered stopped or was just busy with RL or whatever else.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hi there, and first off, thanks for the support. (I think) most of us are aware about 7.5, but I guess the raws aren&#039;t readily available, so that section has yet to be added. The TL for chapter 2 is probably just busy with RL stuff. I think he has mentioned that his pace is pretty slow, so you&#039;ll just have to wait until he finishes. Though, if you&#039;re watching the anime, then you&#039;re not missing out on much by reading ahead. Also, please sign your name with four &amp;quot;~&amp;quot; (no spaces, not including quotes).  - [[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 14:03, 2 January 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey Anon visitor. So we do know about volume 7.5 and I will do them when I have time. Also, in regards to Ch2, I&#039;m not the one who is doing it, so you won&#039;t get the updates for it until the TL comes back to do it. However, I do suggest checking out NanoDesu who are doing a great job at translating Sakurasou as well. We aren&#039;t working together with them, but we still support them full heartedly for what they are doing. I think they are on Ch2 ATM, and will finish that chapter earlier than us. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The recent updates (Vol1 Ch3, 4, Vol2 ch1, 2 &amp;amp; 4) were done by me, so that&#039;s why it was updated regularly. But don&#039;t expect Ch3 of Vol2, because I&#039;m not the one who&#039;s doing that chapter. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Here&#039;s the link for NanoDesu- http://sakurasouthetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-1/chapter-2/chapter-2-3/&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Please give them and us lots of love and support.[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 15:44, 2 January 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eh bro so sry. I&#039;m really busy with my stocks now. Index isn&#039;t looking very well and bears are taking control of the market. So kinda busy. So so sry. :( Maybe you can go read at NanoDesu or sth if you want to (if you can read difficult words) lol. Thx for supporting BT and all btw. XD And yeah I&#039;ll do the update ASAP when I have time to type them out ltr (I&#039;m done with the TL part). So sry again. --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Wikia Recruitment ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Recruiting, editors for Sakurasou no Pet na Kanojo wikia (here&#039;s the link: http://sakurasounopetnakanojo.wikia.com).&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
We need more and more editor to make it grow and become a noticeable wikia for this anime.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
Be there, makes the wikia grows and be proud of yourselves for succeeding to spread the series.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
We&#039;ll wait for your contribution there.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
Any further information please contact me, Ethrundr, in the wikia.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
In IRC, you can contact me about the wikia by joining channel #sakurasouwikia&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Pygmalion|Pygmalion]] ([[User talk:Pygmalion|talk]]) 06:38, 22 January 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Edit Confirmations ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In some of the translations, some of the responses use &#039;why&#039; to reply back. I&#039;m not sure what the literal translation is from the RAWs but it this type of reply is very awkward and confusing so I would rather change everything to &#039;what&#039;. Before I make any such changes though, I would like some confirmation about this. Thanks.--[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 18:56, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the KR raws that I TL from, it uses &#039;why&#039;. However, if you think that &#039;what&#039; is a better choice, I don&#039;t think it really matters. I would check with Pudding though, since he TLs from the original JP raws.[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 20:50, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;Why&#039; is a valid response in many cases, so I don&#039;t really see a problem with the use of &#039;why&#039;. But, if it&#039;s really bothering you... From what I remember, the JP raws do use &#039;why&#039;(なぜ naze), but I might be wrong as I haven&#039;t looked through them ever since I got them a few months back. I don&#039;t think pudding (or anyone else for that matter) will reply any time soon, as the only activity I&#039;ve seen lately has been from Junnynam. Also, many thanks for still being such a great and dedicated translator, Junnynam. -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 21:17, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks Jasou, and I think you&#039;re right about the &#039;naze&#039; thing. &#039;Naze&#039;, &#039;nande&#039; are some commonly used responses in Japanese (from what I&#039;ve seen on animes at least). Anyhow, I&#039;ll be back on Sakurasou soon. My other LN project is almost complete :D --[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 21:29, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In general, English speakers don&#039;t reply back with &#039;why&#039;. However, if the raws translates like that, then I will not touch it.--[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 08:05, 9 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;If it’s Mashiro, she would be able to paint something like that. She certainly had the possibility.&amp;quot; Perhaps &#039;ability&#039; or &#039;potential&#039; since &#039;possibility&#039; doesn&#039;t fit in this context. Also, &amp;quot;Thin legs, slim figure, pale skin and the person still looked boyish&amp;quot;. The flow is a bit bad so maybe &amp;quot;Even with thin legs, a slim figure, and pale skin, the person still looked boyish&amp;quot;? --[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 11:19, 18 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Possibility to potential is fine. And with the second bit, I&#039;ll try to change it so that it flows better. Thanks for the edits. [[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 13:53, 18 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m reaching my finals so my pace will slow down drastically. From now on, I will also be pasting my edit suggestions in the discussion page of each chapter if that doesn&#039;t bother everyone. --[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 20:32, 30 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I haven&#039;t been very active in my editing as of late, but I just finished going through part one of volume 4 chapter 3 in response to the request. If there are any problems with the edits, feel free to address them. I tried not deviate too much from the original. Also tranlated a few prologues earlier, so feel free to fix if there are mistakes in TL. -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 21:17, 1 May 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sakurasou Volume 4 Ch 3, I&#039;ve just started a bit. Please tell me if the following changes would be alright with you, if they are minor in your opinion, I can just edit accordingly by myself form there on.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;[...], and that became his confidence.&amp;quot; -&amp;gt; &amp;quot;[...], and it [IMO it refers to the &amp;quot;making people happy&amp;quot;] made him confident.&amp;quot;, IMO it&#039;s confusing otherwise.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;[...] that he could also make someone happy.&amp;quot; -&amp;gt; &amp;quot;[...] that he was able to make someone (people?) happy.&amp;quot;&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;He wanted to taste that excitement again… no, as much as he could.&amp;quot; -&amp;gt; &amp;quot;He wanted to taste that excitement again… no, as many times as he could.&amp;quot;&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If you prefer another contact method for these questions or if they annoy you in general, please let me know.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Cautr|-cautr]] ([[User talk:Cautr|talk]]) 18:27, 15 September 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those changes are fine. Thanks&lt;br /&gt;
Also, you can contact me via my email if that&#039;s more convenient for you. &lt;br /&gt;
junnynam@gmail.com  --[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam#top|talk]]) 18:34, 15 September 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Pdf Version  ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Pdfs were done by Chaoscube. Thank you.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
http://ge.tt/m/7WCBStb&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 16:55, 23 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Adel Ainsworth ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the 2nd novel, when talking about this character, you have translated his age as &amp;quot;seventeen&amp;quot; (17). Given that this answer calmed Sorata and that he is older than Rita (her grandfather, if I&#039;m not wrong), who, like Mashiro and Sorata is 16-17, shouldn&#039;t it be &amp;quot;seventy&amp;quot; (70) instead? --[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 13:59, 24 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I think Mashiro was kidding about the age. I&#039;ll try to contact Pudding or Nanodesu for clarification. Since I&#039;m using the Korean version, I can&#039;t tell if it&#039;s a translation mistake on the publisher&#039;s part or it was intentional. But it does say seventeen. [[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 17:13, 24 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I talked to Pudding about it and it is indeed seventy. Something like this is one of the major disadvantages of using a version that has already been translated (J-&amp;gt;K-&amp;gt;E). I should&#039;ve guessed that it was an error just by looking at the context, but I forgot to reconfirm with other translators. [[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 04:27, 25 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== About British English ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Editors and readers would&#039;ve noticed that I use British English as I live in Australia. However, I have noticed from an anonymous edit that the term &#039;fortnight&#039; is rare in America so he/she changed it to 2 weeks. So if anyone comes across a term that they don&#039;t get because it&#039;s British English, then please comment it down here and I will avoid using the term in the future. I will no longer use fortnight either. Thanks[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 01:56, 24 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Does that mean we are sticking with British English? If so, I will stop changing things into American terms.--[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 07:38, 24 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Well, I would like to stick with British English spellings. I don&#039;t really mind for terms/idioms ect. [[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 07:42, 24 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;d try to do that, thanks for the info 02:26, 25 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Editing Questions ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Initially, Sorata did look for Misaki, who prepared bentos for both Jin and himself.&amp;quot;  The himself here should be herself since Sorata is looking for Misaki and not Jin. Volume 01 Chapter 02 [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 06:48, 15 August 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
(“I really must be exhausted”, &#039;&#039;&#039;Sorta&#039;&#039;&#039; said, closing his eyes and shaking his head.) *Points out* Sorta said? Who is Sorta? A new character? [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 09:40, 15 August 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Sakurasou_no_Pet_na_Kanojo&amp;diff=382053</id>
		<title>Talk:Sakurasou no Pet na Kanojo</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Sakurasou_no_Pet_na_Kanojo&amp;diff=382053"/>
		<updated>2014-08-15T11:48:12Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Editing Questions */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;== Formatting ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Should we use &amp;quot;Sakurasou&amp;quot; or &amp;quot;the Sakura Dormitory&amp;quot;? The former coheres to the name of the novel, while the latter expresses the full meaning. Or maybe we should add a Translator&#039;s note and use the former? [[User:Pudding321|Pudding321]] 23:50, 5 October 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It&#039;s better to stick more to the Japanese side. And instead of &amp;quot;Hall&amp;quot; write it as &amp;quot;Dormitory&amp;quot;. --[[User:Chancs|Chancs]] ([[User talk:Chancs|talk]]) 00:06, 6 October 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
WE HELL YEAH I&#039;VE WAITED SO LONG FOR THIS TO START!!! XDDDDD THX TO WHOEVER WHO TOOK THE INITAITIVE TO START THE POLLS. XDDDDDDD &lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;3 YOU!!! XDDD sry for the lag cause I went on holiday. :P  [[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]] 16:04, 23 Nov 2012 (GMT+8)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;ve been wondering: Would you translators prefer that I edit the script strictly for spelling, grammar and format, and stick really close to the original more direct translation, or would it be better if I tried to make the text flow more, occasionally altering meanings in some way to make it read more like an English novel? I would like to think that I&#039;m not completely ignorant of Japanese culture and language(otherwise I probably wouldn&#039;t even be here), so sometimes I can infer as to what some of the original text was trying to say and thus try to find a more suitable western/English equivalent. I am fine with either way, as the former is easier and less time consuming, though more mechanical, and the latter would be more interesting to do, albeit requiring more effort. What would you guys prefer?&lt;br /&gt;
P.s. Sorry for the huge block of text :P  -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 22:25, 3 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Erm...For me, at least just for me, because I did work previously as an editor (Yeah I sucked at it), most translators would prefer the text edited for spelling, grammar, and format. With flow included. But if it is a big changed to the whole sentence, we would normally paste the &amp;quot;Before change&amp;quot; and &amp;quot;Changed&amp;quot; on the discussion page, then change it. But technical terms are still kept and untranslated (E.g. Sakurasou, Kouhai, Sempai.) I have no idea why, but it looks and sounds better if kept like that. :PPP&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But for me, I don&#039;t really wanna go through that hassle. If you don&#039;t mind that, I would appreciate it, but because of RL stuff, (Most ppl have that), I think it is rather time-consuming. So I am fine if you just edit. And if I don&#039;t like it, I&#039;ll just change that portion of text back. Something like that. :)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m quite flexible so it&#039;s fine. But maybe you would have to ask the opinions of other translators as well, just in case... :PPPP&lt;br /&gt;
P.S. sry for the even longer line of text. XDDDD  --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I don&#039;t think that it&#039;s that big of a deal, but is this project still supposed to be in UK English? I saw something about that when I started editing this, but when I recently checked again it wasn&#039;t there anymore. So, did the rules change? Just wondering because the other editor (the one that&#039;s actually here) is changing things to American English, so I don&#039;t know if I should do the same or continue to use UK. -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 21:37, 7 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just my 2¥ concerning editing. After two years of translation, editing and TLC, I think that you should try having the meaning conveyed in a more natural English. For example, idioms, expressions and many things can be edited as long as the script gets better, not worse. So if it doesn&#039;t flow well, I&#039;d say that it needs to be rephrased. Basically, you can change or subtitute as long as the meaning doesn&#039;t get twisted around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the project, BT&#039;s default language is American English. However, pudding comes from HK and he uses UK English. I&#039;d say you pick the English you want, as long as it is applied throughout the series. [[User:Kira0802|Kira]] ([[User_talk:Kira0802|Talk]]) 21:51, 7 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The thing is, I&#039;m from Canada and would prefer UK English, but I&#039;m not the only editor anymore. I guess I&#039;ll work something out with the other guy who seems to prefer American. &lt;br /&gt;
Oh, and thanks for your advice, Kira.&lt;br /&gt;
-[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 22:01, 7 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Haha lol. I don&#039;t mind either, though I&#039;ll be sending in a mixed version of it. :DDD Lol cause I&#039;m not in UK or America, so my English is pretty screwed up, so you&#039;ll see a little color of every nation. LOL&lt;br /&gt;
On a side note, who&#039;s the project supervisor and admin for it? I think it&#039;s better to put there cause newbies like me would need the info. :/&lt;br /&gt;
Though I contacted pudding at that time cause he was the only translator. :P  --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Woah, lol I just noticed that this is now a full project. Congrats for all you guys&#039; hard work! -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 00:06, 9 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thx! And pls help edit when you have free time too! XD --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Erm hi just dropping by to ask a question. In the anime of Sakurasou, it seemed that Misaki always calls Sorata &amp;quot;Kouhai-kun&amp;quot;. So just wondering if we need ta put the &amp;quot;-kun&amp;quot; prefix behind. thx. :D --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If we do start putting kuns onto Kouhai, then we should put kun/san/chan onto everything else. But I don&#039;t think that&#039;s necessary.[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 03:20, 12 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kk thx! But on a side note, Nanami always uses the &amp;quot;Kanda-kun&amp;quot; to voice the sarcasm of her speech, e.g. &amp;quot;Kanda-kun, can you stop looking here?&amp;quot; so... :/ --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I see, but the sarcasm might only be in the anime. I&#039;m TLing from the KR version, and it doesn&#039;t really emphasize the sarcasm. I guess I&#039;ll ask for Pudding&#039;s advice. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On a side note, what do the other LNs do? Do they add the kun/san/chan on the end? Or does it depend on the translator?&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 04:37, 13 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hm...I think it depends on the translator. LOL --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;ve talked to Pudding, and he says why not. So&#039;ll put the kuns onto the Kohai from now on. I&#039;ll edit ch3&amp;amp;4 for the kuns --[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 07:36, 13 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Okay! :D - - [[user:Magykalman |Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Added the kuns in the rest. Hopefully I&#039;ll have more free time during winter break to do more editing, but I&#039;ll still be popping in from time to time until then. -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 21:11, 13 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Managed to get my hands on the JP raws all the way up to vol 8. So...if anyone needs them, I have them. Also uploading the pics now. - [[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 14:36, 23 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey guys, I&#039;d like to help out, either as an editor or translator. Native English (American) speaker, so I&#039;d probably do better on editing, but I can attempt to translate from the Chinese LN (which I have access to) or from the original that Jasou says he has access to. [[User:Khiral|Khiral]] ([[User talk:Khiral|talk]]) 01:46, 27 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hello Khiral, having an extra TL or an editor is awesome and welcomed. If you feel comfortable TLing, you can start from Vol3 because Vol2 is being done by Pudding321 and myself.If you want to edit, then that&#039;s fine as well. Just go with whichever you feel you can dedicate yourself into without getting too bored. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If you are going to translate, it would be better to translate from the original language(Japanese) because it&#039;s better to use the original source. But if you find Chinese easier to TL from, then you can choose to use the Chinese version.--[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 03:03, 27 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After some thought, I will just edit for the time being. I searched the forums, but couldn&#039;t find a general protocol for editing. Is there anything particular? [[User:Khiral|Khiral]] ([[User talk:Khiral|talk]]) 08:30, 28 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There really aren&#039;t much protocols that I&#039;m aware of, except that we prefer to use UK English and we don&#039;t like to change the meaning of the context. So just make sure that the original meaning of the book is retained. Also, please check for the flow of the words, so that it doesn&#039;t sound forced or confusing. So you can sign yourself up on the editors section and get started! --[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 09:37, 28 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Uploaded Volume 8 images. Semi-spoilers inside. [[User:Khiral|Khiral]] ([[User talk:Khiral|talk]]) 11:15, 31 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey there, Khiral. I&#039;m just wondering why you use two different accounts to update. I&#039;m guessing KuroDubZero is also you?  -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 11:48, 31 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I only use this account, barring some sort of strange split personality, so I don&#039;t think so. Also, high quality image scans got posted just as I uploaded the chapter 8 images. GG. brb reuploading. Edit: Also read the pages that go with volume&#039;s 8 semi-spoiler image and hnggggggggggggggggggggggh I&#039;ll be back once I&#039;m done dying of hnnnnnnnnghhhhhhhh [[User:Khiral|Khiral]] ([[User talk:Khiral|talk]]) 11:55, 31 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Haha, okay then, I guess I was mistaken. Just don&#039;t get a nosebleed and actually die of blood loss :). Though, I wonder who that mystery uploader(KuroDubZero) is? - [[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 15:43, 31 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 7.5 ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
First off would like to say thanks for the translators translating this series, really enjoying the anime so i have enjoyed reading the LN, just wanted to point out on the slim chance that you actually didn&#039;t know that you missed out on volume 7.5&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
http://www.mangaupdates.com/image/i140851.jpg&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also i was wondering if chapter 2 of volume 1 is still being translated, my reason for wondering this is because the translation is getting pretty consistent updates with the exception of chapter 2 which is 50% done, so i was wondering if the translator that had that chapter registered stopped or was just busy with RL or whatever else.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hi there, and first off, thanks for the support. (I think) most of us are aware about 7.5, but I guess the raws aren&#039;t readily available, so that section has yet to be added. The TL for chapter 2 is probably just busy with RL stuff. I think he has mentioned that his pace is pretty slow, so you&#039;ll just have to wait until he finishes. Though, if you&#039;re watching the anime, then you&#039;re not missing out on much by reading ahead. Also, please sign your name with four &amp;quot;~&amp;quot; (no spaces, not including quotes).  - [[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 14:03, 2 January 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey Anon visitor. So we do know about volume 7.5 and I will do them when I have time. Also, in regards to Ch2, I&#039;m not the one who is doing it, so you won&#039;t get the updates for it until the TL comes back to do it. However, I do suggest checking out NanoDesu who are doing a great job at translating Sakurasou as well. We aren&#039;t working together with them, but we still support them full heartedly for what they are doing. I think they are on Ch2 ATM, and will finish that chapter earlier than us. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The recent updates (Vol1 Ch3, 4, Vol2 ch1, 2 &amp;amp; 4) were done by me, so that&#039;s why it was updated regularly. But don&#039;t expect Ch3 of Vol2, because I&#039;m not the one who&#039;s doing that chapter. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Here&#039;s the link for NanoDesu- http://sakurasouthetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-1/chapter-2/chapter-2-3/&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Please give them and us lots of love and support.[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 15:44, 2 January 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eh bro so sry. I&#039;m really busy with my stocks now. Index isn&#039;t looking very well and bears are taking control of the market. So kinda busy. So so sry. :( Maybe you can go read at NanoDesu or sth if you want to (if you can read difficult words) lol. Thx for supporting BT and all btw. XD And yeah I&#039;ll do the update ASAP when I have time to type them out ltr (I&#039;m done with the TL part). So sry again. --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Wikia Recruitment ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Recruiting, editors for Sakurasou no Pet na Kanojo wikia (here&#039;s the link: http://sakurasounopetnakanojo.wikia.com).&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
We need more and more editor to make it grow and become a noticeable wikia for this anime.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
Be there, makes the wikia grows and be proud of yourselves for succeeding to spread the series.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
We&#039;ll wait for your contribution there.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
Any further information please contact me, Ethrundr, in the wikia.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
In IRC, you can contact me about the wikia by joining channel #sakurasouwikia&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Pygmalion|Pygmalion]] ([[User talk:Pygmalion|talk]]) 06:38, 22 January 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Edit Confirmations ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In some of the translations, some of the responses use &#039;why&#039; to reply back. I&#039;m not sure what the literal translation is from the RAWs but it this type of reply is very awkward and confusing so I would rather change everything to &#039;what&#039;. Before I make any such changes though, I would like some confirmation about this. Thanks.--[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 18:56, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the KR raws that I TL from, it uses &#039;why&#039;. However, if you think that &#039;what&#039; is a better choice, I don&#039;t think it really matters. I would check with Pudding though, since he TLs from the original JP raws.[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 20:50, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;Why&#039; is a valid response in many cases, so I don&#039;t really see a problem with the use of &#039;why&#039;. But, if it&#039;s really bothering you... From what I remember, the JP raws do use &#039;why&#039;(なぜ naze), but I might be wrong as I haven&#039;t looked through them ever since I got them a few months back. I don&#039;t think pudding (or anyone else for that matter) will reply any time soon, as the only activity I&#039;ve seen lately has been from Junnynam. Also, many thanks for still being such a great and dedicated translator, Junnynam. -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 21:17, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks Jasou, and I think you&#039;re right about the &#039;naze&#039; thing. &#039;Naze&#039;, &#039;nande&#039; are some commonly used responses in Japanese (from what I&#039;ve seen on animes at least). Anyhow, I&#039;ll be back on Sakurasou soon. My other LN project is almost complete :D --[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 21:29, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In general, English speakers don&#039;t reply back with &#039;why&#039;. However, if the raws translates like that, then I will not touch it.--[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 08:05, 9 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;If it’s Mashiro, she would be able to paint something like that. She certainly had the possibility.&amp;quot; Perhaps &#039;ability&#039; or &#039;potential&#039; since &#039;possibility&#039; doesn&#039;t fit in this context. Also, &amp;quot;Thin legs, slim figure, pale skin and the person still looked boyish&amp;quot;. The flow is a bit bad so maybe &amp;quot;Even with thin legs, a slim figure, and pale skin, the person still looked boyish&amp;quot;? --[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 11:19, 18 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Possibility to potential is fine. And with the second bit, I&#039;ll try to change it so that it flows better. Thanks for the edits. [[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 13:53, 18 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m reaching my finals so my pace will slow down drastically. From now on, I will also be pasting my edit suggestions in the discussion page of each chapter if that doesn&#039;t bother everyone. --[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 20:32, 30 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I haven&#039;t been very active in my editing as of late, but I just finished going through part one of volume 4 chapter 3 in response to the request. If there are any problems with the edits, feel free to address them. I tried not deviate too much from the original. Also tranlated a few prologues earlier, so feel free to fix if there are mistakes in TL. -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 21:17, 1 May 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sakurasou Volume 4 Ch 3, I&#039;ve just started a bit. Please tell me if the following changes would be alright with you, if they are minor in your opinion, I can just edit accordingly by myself form there on.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;[...], and that became his confidence.&amp;quot; -&amp;gt; &amp;quot;[...], and it [IMO it refers to the &amp;quot;making people happy&amp;quot;] made him confident.&amp;quot;, IMO it&#039;s confusing otherwise.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;[...] that he could also make someone happy.&amp;quot; -&amp;gt; &amp;quot;[...] that he was able to make someone (people?) happy.&amp;quot;&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;He wanted to taste that excitement again… no, as much as he could.&amp;quot; -&amp;gt; &amp;quot;He wanted to taste that excitement again… no, as many times as he could.&amp;quot;&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If you prefer another contact method for these questions or if they annoy you in general, please let me know.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Cautr|-cautr]] ([[User talk:Cautr|talk]]) 18:27, 15 September 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those changes are fine. Thanks&lt;br /&gt;
Also, you can contact me via my email if that&#039;s more convenient for you. &lt;br /&gt;
junnynam@gmail.com  --[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam#top|talk]]) 18:34, 15 September 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Pdf Version  ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Pdfs were done by Chaoscube. Thank you.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
http://ge.tt/m/7WCBStb&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 16:55, 23 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Adel Ainsworth ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the 2nd novel, when talking about this character, you have translated his age as &amp;quot;seventeen&amp;quot; (17). Given that this answer calmed Sorata and that he is older than Rita (her grandfather, if I&#039;m not wrong), who, like Mashiro and Sorata is 16-17, shouldn&#039;t it be &amp;quot;seventy&amp;quot; (70) instead? --[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 13:59, 24 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I think Mashiro was kidding about the age. I&#039;ll try to contact Pudding or Nanodesu for clarification. Since I&#039;m using the Korean version, I can&#039;t tell if it&#039;s a translation mistake on the publisher&#039;s part or it was intentional. But it does say seventeen. [[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 17:13, 24 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I talked to Pudding about it and it is indeed seventy. Something like this is one of the major disadvantages of using a version that has already been translated (J-&amp;gt;K-&amp;gt;E). I should&#039;ve guessed that it was an error just by looking at the context, but I forgot to reconfirm with other translators. [[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 04:27, 25 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== About British English ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Editors and readers would&#039;ve noticed that I use British English as I live in Australia. However, I have noticed from an anonymous edit that the term &#039;fortnight&#039; is rare in America so he/she changed it to 2 weeks. So if anyone comes across a term that they don&#039;t get because it&#039;s British English, then please comment it down here and I will avoid using the term in the future. I will no longer use fortnight either. Thanks[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 01:56, 24 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Does that mean we are sticking with British English? If so, I will stop changing things into American terms.--[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 07:38, 24 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Well, I would like to stick with British English spellings. I don&#039;t really mind for terms/idioms ect. [[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 07:42, 24 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;d try to do that, thanks for the info 02:26, 25 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Editing Questions ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Initially, Sorata did look for Misaki, who prepared bentos for both Jin and himself.&amp;quot;  The himself here should be herself since Sorata is looking for Misaki and not Jin. Volume 01 Chapter 02 [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 06:48, 15 August 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Sakurasou_no_Pet_na_Kanojo&amp;diff=382052</id>
		<title>Talk:Sakurasou no Pet na Kanojo</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Sakurasou_no_Pet_na_Kanojo&amp;diff=382052"/>
		<updated>2014-08-15T11:44:26Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;== Formatting ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Should we use &amp;quot;Sakurasou&amp;quot; or &amp;quot;the Sakura Dormitory&amp;quot;? The former coheres to the name of the novel, while the latter expresses the full meaning. Or maybe we should add a Translator&#039;s note and use the former? [[User:Pudding321|Pudding321]] 23:50, 5 October 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It&#039;s better to stick more to the Japanese side. And instead of &amp;quot;Hall&amp;quot; write it as &amp;quot;Dormitory&amp;quot;. --[[User:Chancs|Chancs]] ([[User talk:Chancs|talk]]) 00:06, 6 October 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
WE HELL YEAH I&#039;VE WAITED SO LONG FOR THIS TO START!!! XDDDDD THX TO WHOEVER WHO TOOK THE INITAITIVE TO START THE POLLS. XDDDDDDD &lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;3 YOU!!! XDDD sry for the lag cause I went on holiday. :P  [[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]] 16:04, 23 Nov 2012 (GMT+8)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;ve been wondering: Would you translators prefer that I edit the script strictly for spelling, grammar and format, and stick really close to the original more direct translation, or would it be better if I tried to make the text flow more, occasionally altering meanings in some way to make it read more like an English novel? I would like to think that I&#039;m not completely ignorant of Japanese culture and language(otherwise I probably wouldn&#039;t even be here), so sometimes I can infer as to what some of the original text was trying to say and thus try to find a more suitable western/English equivalent. I am fine with either way, as the former is easier and less time consuming, though more mechanical, and the latter would be more interesting to do, albeit requiring more effort. What would you guys prefer?&lt;br /&gt;
P.s. Sorry for the huge block of text :P  -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 22:25, 3 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Erm...For me, at least just for me, because I did work previously as an editor (Yeah I sucked at it), most translators would prefer the text edited for spelling, grammar, and format. With flow included. But if it is a big changed to the whole sentence, we would normally paste the &amp;quot;Before change&amp;quot; and &amp;quot;Changed&amp;quot; on the discussion page, then change it. But technical terms are still kept and untranslated (E.g. Sakurasou, Kouhai, Sempai.) I have no idea why, but it looks and sounds better if kept like that. :PPP&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But for me, I don&#039;t really wanna go through that hassle. If you don&#039;t mind that, I would appreciate it, but because of RL stuff, (Most ppl have that), I think it is rather time-consuming. So I am fine if you just edit. And if I don&#039;t like it, I&#039;ll just change that portion of text back. Something like that. :)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m quite flexible so it&#039;s fine. But maybe you would have to ask the opinions of other translators as well, just in case... :PPPP&lt;br /&gt;
P.S. sry for the even longer line of text. XDDDD  --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I don&#039;t think that it&#039;s that big of a deal, but is this project still supposed to be in UK English? I saw something about that when I started editing this, but when I recently checked again it wasn&#039;t there anymore. So, did the rules change? Just wondering because the other editor (the one that&#039;s actually here) is changing things to American English, so I don&#039;t know if I should do the same or continue to use UK. -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 21:37, 7 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just my 2¥ concerning editing. After two years of translation, editing and TLC, I think that you should try having the meaning conveyed in a more natural English. For example, idioms, expressions and many things can be edited as long as the script gets better, not worse. So if it doesn&#039;t flow well, I&#039;d say that it needs to be rephrased. Basically, you can change or subtitute as long as the meaning doesn&#039;t get twisted around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the project, BT&#039;s default language is American English. However, pudding comes from HK and he uses UK English. I&#039;d say you pick the English you want, as long as it is applied throughout the series. [[User:Kira0802|Kira]] ([[User_talk:Kira0802|Talk]]) 21:51, 7 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The thing is, I&#039;m from Canada and would prefer UK English, but I&#039;m not the only editor anymore. I guess I&#039;ll work something out with the other guy who seems to prefer American. &lt;br /&gt;
Oh, and thanks for your advice, Kira.&lt;br /&gt;
-[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 22:01, 7 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Haha lol. I don&#039;t mind either, though I&#039;ll be sending in a mixed version of it. :DDD Lol cause I&#039;m not in UK or America, so my English is pretty screwed up, so you&#039;ll see a little color of every nation. LOL&lt;br /&gt;
On a side note, who&#039;s the project supervisor and admin for it? I think it&#039;s better to put there cause newbies like me would need the info. :/&lt;br /&gt;
Though I contacted pudding at that time cause he was the only translator. :P  --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Woah, lol I just noticed that this is now a full project. Congrats for all you guys&#039; hard work! -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 00:06, 9 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thx! And pls help edit when you have free time too! XD --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Erm hi just dropping by to ask a question. In the anime of Sakurasou, it seemed that Misaki always calls Sorata &amp;quot;Kouhai-kun&amp;quot;. So just wondering if we need ta put the &amp;quot;-kun&amp;quot; prefix behind. thx. :D --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If we do start putting kuns onto Kouhai, then we should put kun/san/chan onto everything else. But I don&#039;t think that&#039;s necessary.[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 03:20, 12 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kk thx! But on a side note, Nanami always uses the &amp;quot;Kanda-kun&amp;quot; to voice the sarcasm of her speech, e.g. &amp;quot;Kanda-kun, can you stop looking here?&amp;quot; so... :/ --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I see, but the sarcasm might only be in the anime. I&#039;m TLing from the KR version, and it doesn&#039;t really emphasize the sarcasm. I guess I&#039;ll ask for Pudding&#039;s advice. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On a side note, what do the other LNs do? Do they add the kun/san/chan on the end? Or does it depend on the translator?&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 04:37, 13 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hm...I think it depends on the translator. LOL --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;ve talked to Pudding, and he says why not. So&#039;ll put the kuns onto the Kohai from now on. I&#039;ll edit ch3&amp;amp;4 for the kuns --[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 07:36, 13 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Okay! :D - - [[user:Magykalman |Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Added the kuns in the rest. Hopefully I&#039;ll have more free time during winter break to do more editing, but I&#039;ll still be popping in from time to time until then. -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 21:11, 13 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Managed to get my hands on the JP raws all the way up to vol 8. So...if anyone needs them, I have them. Also uploading the pics now. - [[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 14:36, 23 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey guys, I&#039;d like to help out, either as an editor or translator. Native English (American) speaker, so I&#039;d probably do better on editing, but I can attempt to translate from the Chinese LN (which I have access to) or from the original that Jasou says he has access to. [[User:Khiral|Khiral]] ([[User talk:Khiral|talk]]) 01:46, 27 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hello Khiral, having an extra TL or an editor is awesome and welcomed. If you feel comfortable TLing, you can start from Vol3 because Vol2 is being done by Pudding321 and myself.If you want to edit, then that&#039;s fine as well. Just go with whichever you feel you can dedicate yourself into without getting too bored. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If you are going to translate, it would be better to translate from the original language(Japanese) because it&#039;s better to use the original source. But if you find Chinese easier to TL from, then you can choose to use the Chinese version.--[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 03:03, 27 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After some thought, I will just edit for the time being. I searched the forums, but couldn&#039;t find a general protocol for editing. Is there anything particular? [[User:Khiral|Khiral]] ([[User talk:Khiral|talk]]) 08:30, 28 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There really aren&#039;t much protocols that I&#039;m aware of, except that we prefer to use UK English and we don&#039;t like to change the meaning of the context. So just make sure that the original meaning of the book is retained. Also, please check for the flow of the words, so that it doesn&#039;t sound forced or confusing. So you can sign yourself up on the editors section and get started! --[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 09:37, 28 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Uploaded Volume 8 images. Semi-spoilers inside. [[User:Khiral|Khiral]] ([[User talk:Khiral|talk]]) 11:15, 31 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey there, Khiral. I&#039;m just wondering why you use two different accounts to update. I&#039;m guessing KuroDubZero is also you?  -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 11:48, 31 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I only use this account, barring some sort of strange split personality, so I don&#039;t think so. Also, high quality image scans got posted just as I uploaded the chapter 8 images. GG. brb reuploading. Edit: Also read the pages that go with volume&#039;s 8 semi-spoiler image and hnggggggggggggggggggggggh I&#039;ll be back once I&#039;m done dying of hnnnnnnnnghhhhhhhh [[User:Khiral|Khiral]] ([[User talk:Khiral|talk]]) 11:55, 31 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Haha, okay then, I guess I was mistaken. Just don&#039;t get a nosebleed and actually die of blood loss :). Though, I wonder who that mystery uploader(KuroDubZero) is? - [[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 15:43, 31 December 2012 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 7.5 ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
First off would like to say thanks for the translators translating this series, really enjoying the anime so i have enjoyed reading the LN, just wanted to point out on the slim chance that you actually didn&#039;t know that you missed out on volume 7.5&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
http://www.mangaupdates.com/image/i140851.jpg&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also i was wondering if chapter 2 of volume 1 is still being translated, my reason for wondering this is because the translation is getting pretty consistent updates with the exception of chapter 2 which is 50% done, so i was wondering if the translator that had that chapter registered stopped or was just busy with RL or whatever else.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hi there, and first off, thanks for the support. (I think) most of us are aware about 7.5, but I guess the raws aren&#039;t readily available, so that section has yet to be added. The TL for chapter 2 is probably just busy with RL stuff. I think he has mentioned that his pace is pretty slow, so you&#039;ll just have to wait until he finishes. Though, if you&#039;re watching the anime, then you&#039;re not missing out on much by reading ahead. Also, please sign your name with four &amp;quot;~&amp;quot; (no spaces, not including quotes).  - [[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 14:03, 2 January 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey Anon visitor. So we do know about volume 7.5 and I will do them when I have time. Also, in regards to Ch2, I&#039;m not the one who is doing it, so you won&#039;t get the updates for it until the TL comes back to do it. However, I do suggest checking out NanoDesu who are doing a great job at translating Sakurasou as well. We aren&#039;t working together with them, but we still support them full heartedly for what they are doing. I think they are on Ch2 ATM, and will finish that chapter earlier than us. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The recent updates (Vol1 Ch3, 4, Vol2 ch1, 2 &amp;amp; 4) were done by me, so that&#039;s why it was updated regularly. But don&#039;t expect Ch3 of Vol2, because I&#039;m not the one who&#039;s doing that chapter. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Here&#039;s the link for NanoDesu- http://sakurasouthetranslation.wordpress.com/volume-1/chapter-2/chapter-2-3/&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Please give them and us lots of love and support.[[User:Monkeii12|Monkeii12]] ([[User talk:Monkeii12|talk]]) 15:44, 2 January 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eh bro so sry. I&#039;m really busy with my stocks now. Index isn&#039;t looking very well and bears are taking control of the market. So kinda busy. So so sry. :( Maybe you can go read at NanoDesu or sth if you want to (if you can read difficult words) lol. Thx for supporting BT and all btw. XD And yeah I&#039;ll do the update ASAP when I have time to type them out ltr (I&#039;m done with the TL part). So sry again. --[[user:Magykalman|Magykalman]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Wikia Recruitment ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Recruiting, editors for Sakurasou no Pet na Kanojo wikia (here&#039;s the link: http://sakurasounopetnakanojo.wikia.com).&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
We need more and more editor to make it grow and become a noticeable wikia for this anime.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
Be there, makes the wikia grows and be proud of yourselves for succeeding to spread the series.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
We&#039;ll wait for your contribution there.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
Any further information please contact me, Ethrundr, in the wikia.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
In IRC, you can contact me about the wikia by joining channel #sakurasouwikia&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Pygmalion|Pygmalion]] ([[User talk:Pygmalion|talk]]) 06:38, 22 January 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Edit Confirmations ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In some of the translations, some of the responses use &#039;why&#039; to reply back. I&#039;m not sure what the literal translation is from the RAWs but it this type of reply is very awkward and confusing so I would rather change everything to &#039;what&#039;. Before I make any such changes though, I would like some confirmation about this. Thanks.--[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 18:56, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the KR raws that I TL from, it uses &#039;why&#039;. However, if you think that &#039;what&#039; is a better choice, I don&#039;t think it really matters. I would check with Pudding though, since he TLs from the original JP raws.[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 20:50, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;Why&#039; is a valid response in many cases, so I don&#039;t really see a problem with the use of &#039;why&#039;. But, if it&#039;s really bothering you... From what I remember, the JP raws do use &#039;why&#039;(なぜ naze), but I might be wrong as I haven&#039;t looked through them ever since I got them a few months back. I don&#039;t think pudding (or anyone else for that matter) will reply any time soon, as the only activity I&#039;ve seen lately has been from Junnynam. Also, many thanks for still being such a great and dedicated translator, Junnynam. -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 21:17, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks Jasou, and I think you&#039;re right about the &#039;naze&#039; thing. &#039;Naze&#039;, &#039;nande&#039; are some commonly used responses in Japanese (from what I&#039;ve seen on animes at least). Anyhow, I&#039;ll be back on Sakurasou soon. My other LN project is almost complete :D --[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 21:29, 8 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In general, English speakers don&#039;t reply back with &#039;why&#039;. However, if the raws translates like that, then I will not touch it.--[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 08:05, 9 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;If it’s Mashiro, she would be able to paint something like that. She certainly had the possibility.&amp;quot; Perhaps &#039;ability&#039; or &#039;potential&#039; since &#039;possibility&#039; doesn&#039;t fit in this context. Also, &amp;quot;Thin legs, slim figure, pale skin and the person still looked boyish&amp;quot;. The flow is a bit bad so maybe &amp;quot;Even with thin legs, a slim figure, and pale skin, the person still looked boyish&amp;quot;? --[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 11:19, 18 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Possibility to potential is fine. And with the second bit, I&#039;ll try to change it so that it flows better. Thanks for the edits. [[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 13:53, 18 February 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m reaching my finals so my pace will slow down drastically. From now on, I will also be pasting my edit suggestions in the discussion page of each chapter if that doesn&#039;t bother everyone. --[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 20:32, 30 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I haven&#039;t been very active in my editing as of late, but I just finished going through part one of volume 4 chapter 3 in response to the request. If there are any problems with the edits, feel free to address them. I tried not deviate too much from the original. Also tranlated a few prologues earlier, so feel free to fix if there are mistakes in TL. -[[User:Jasou|Jasou]] ([[User talk:Jasou|talk]]) 21:17, 1 May 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sakurasou Volume 4 Ch 3, I&#039;ve just started a bit. Please tell me if the following changes would be alright with you, if they are minor in your opinion, I can just edit accordingly by myself form there on.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;[...], and that became his confidence.&amp;quot; -&amp;gt; &amp;quot;[...], and it [IMO it refers to the &amp;quot;making people happy&amp;quot;] made him confident.&amp;quot;, IMO it&#039;s confusing otherwise.&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;[...] that he could also make someone happy.&amp;quot; -&amp;gt; &amp;quot;[...] that he was able to make someone (people?) happy.&amp;quot;&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;He wanted to taste that excitement again… no, as much as he could.&amp;quot; -&amp;gt; &amp;quot;He wanted to taste that excitement again… no, as many times as he could.&amp;quot;&amp;lt;br/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If you prefer another contact method for these questions or if they annoy you in general, please let me know.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Cautr|-cautr]] ([[User talk:Cautr|talk]]) 18:27, 15 September 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Those changes are fine. Thanks&lt;br /&gt;
Also, you can contact me via my email if that&#039;s more convenient for you. &lt;br /&gt;
junnynam@gmail.com  --[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam#top|talk]]) 18:34, 15 September 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Pdf Version  ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Pdfs were done by Chaoscube. Thank you.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
http://ge.tt/m/7WCBStb&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 16:55, 23 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Adel Ainsworth ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the 2nd novel, when talking about this character, you have translated his age as &amp;quot;seventeen&amp;quot; (17). Given that this answer calmed Sorata and that he is older than Rita (her grandfather, if I&#039;m not wrong), who, like Mashiro and Sorata is 16-17, shouldn&#039;t it be &amp;quot;seventy&amp;quot; (70) instead? --[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 13:59, 24 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I think Mashiro was kidding about the age. I&#039;ll try to contact Pudding or Nanodesu for clarification. Since I&#039;m using the Korean version, I can&#039;t tell if it&#039;s a translation mistake on the publisher&#039;s part or it was intentional. But it does say seventeen. [[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 17:13, 24 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I talked to Pudding about it and it is indeed seventy. Something like this is one of the major disadvantages of using a version that has already been translated (J-&amp;gt;K-&amp;gt;E). I should&#039;ve guessed that it was an error just by looking at the context, but I forgot to reconfirm with other translators. [[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 04:27, 25 March 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== About British English ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Editors and readers would&#039;ve noticed that I use British English as I live in Australia. However, I have noticed from an anonymous edit that the term &#039;fortnight&#039; is rare in America so he/she changed it to 2 weeks. So if anyone comes across a term that they don&#039;t get because it&#039;s British English, then please comment it down here and I will avoid using the term in the future. I will no longer use fortnight either. Thanks[[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 01:56, 24 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Does that mean we are sticking with British English? If so, I will stop changing things into American terms.--[[User:Vu.P|Vu.P]] ([[User talk:Vu.P|talk]]) 07:38, 24 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Well, I would like to stick with British English spellings. I don&#039;t really mind for terms/idioms ect. [[User:Junnynam|Junnynam]] ([[User talk:Junnynam|talk]]) 07:42, 24 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;d try to do that, thanks for the info 02:26, 25 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Editing Questions ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Initially, Sorata did look for Misaki, who prepared bentos for both Jin and himself.&amp;quot;  The himself here should be herself since Sorata is looking for Misaki and not Jin. [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 06:44, 15 August 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Log_Horizon&amp;diff=379306</id>
		<title>Talk:Log Horizon</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Log_Horizon&amp;diff=379306"/>
		<updated>2014-08-07T23:39:20Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;== About honorific ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Can we just use normal Japanase honorific such as -san,-sama, onii-chan, etc -- [[User:Endo|Endo]] ([[User talk:Endo|talk]]) 08 November 2013&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:I was going to bring up something similar in the forums to get the other editors&#039; opinions. I will ask about this as well. -- [[User:Guardianknight|Guardianknight]] ([[User talk:Guardianknight|talk]]) 07:25, 8 November 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::We need someone to crosscheck with JP ver (TL-kun translate this from C -&amp;gt; E) -- [[User:LiTTleDRAgo|LiTTleDRAgo]]  ([[User_talk:LiTTleDRAgo|Talk]]) 07:48, 8 November 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just asking if this project are approved, and who is the Project Administrator, Project Supervisor and Project Leader: ? -- [[User:X-Rates|X-Rates]]  00:44, 10 November 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:I doubt we need them for now. The translator isn&#039;t from BT, I don&#039;t think we can just &amp;quot;supervise other community translation&amp;quot; like the translation were ours -- [[User:LiTTleDRAgo|LiTTleDRAgo]]  ([[User_talk:LiTTleDRAgo|Talk]]) 03:01, 10 November 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Has there been any consensus about using Japanese honorifics, or nicknames? For example, Nyanta likes to call Shiroe &amp;quot;Shiroechi,&amp;quot; and Soujirou as &amp;quot;Soujicchi&amp;quot; Would the translator mind? Also, I recently noticed that the punctuation for sentences could be different in the Japanese version. Would the translator mind if we tried to be consistent?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the Japanese LN liked to consistently put terms in brackets like so: &amp;lt;Debauchery Tea Part&amp;gt; or &amp;lt;D.D.D&amp;gt;. How would the translator or others (but mainly the translator) feel about doing the same? -- [[User:Rasen|Rasen]] 09:48, 10 November 2013‎ (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:TL-kun give us the permission to do whatever we want to his translation -- [[User:LiTTleDRAgo|LiTTleDRAgo]]  ([[User_talk:LiTTleDRAgo|Talk]]) 03:01, 10 November 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::Really? Fantastic! I&#039;ll try and do this in phases/separate editing session, from least objectionable to most. That way, if people really have a problem with one phase of changes, they can undo them in one go. Hope that&#039;s ok with everyone?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::1)Japanese honorifcs/nicknames. Done with (v1-6). Wouldn&#039;t mind some feedback if people like this, or would prefer the original. Naturally, the most important opinion belongs to the TL, as I sure as fun can&#039;t do what he/she did, and I don&#039;t want to step on any toes.&lt;br /&gt;
:::Saw some subsequent edits to the honorifics that I made, and just thought I should point out that I&#039;m sticking to how Mamire spelled it. Also to ask that people don&#039;t just change the names randomly. Naotsugu calls Shiroe &amp;quot;Shiro&amp;quot; fairly often. It&#039;s not a typo, I think it comes from knowing each other in real life. -- [[User:Rasen|Rasen]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::2)Matching sentences/punctuation to Japanese version. I think a number of the really long compound sentences may have been the result of Japanese-&amp;gt;Chinese. On further reflection, that&#039;s basically saying I intend to review every line of the translation. I dunno what I was smoking, but it must have been good. Still, I opened my big mouth...my cross to bear, I suppose.&lt;br /&gt;
::-- [[User:Rasen|Rasen]] 12:55, 11 November 2013‎ (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:::Really don&#039;t need to get updating the figures here since all changes are logged anyway; I see something new has been posted in this talkpage and come in looking for new discussion but no new timestamps makes things confusing. On topic tho, like the changes so far in terms of honorifics/nicknames. More recently, not so sure about seeing numbers like twenties changed to 20s; that&#039;s just my preference you don&#039;t need to go changing it back.--[[User:Drowzycow|Drowzycow]] ([[User talk:Drowzycow|talk]]) 20:16, 6 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Novel Illustrations ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seems someone from AnimeSuki already has all the illustrations up to volume 6.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Link to the message post: [http://forums.animesuki.com/showthread.php?s=65005d4bb56f58b9836e2ecf8c18ef9a&amp;amp;p=4865516#post4865516 Link]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Location of the novel illustrations: [http://imgur.com/a/BMYhZ/all Link] --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 08:34, 10 November 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Would anyone object to me trying to put the images from the novel into the approximate place where they belong in the chapters? I can only do that for the translated parts of volume 1 (its the only one i have a copy of the original work for reference)? [[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 14:44, 1 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:I dunno about anyone else, but I don&#039;t see a problem with it. Just so you know, I&#039;ve put in hidden tags showing where each page starts, for volumes 2-3, and 4 pt 1. So that should give you an idea where each image went in the original volume.  -- [[User:Rasen|Rasen]] 15:29, 1 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::Ah, I may take a stab at doing some of that then. Out of curoisoty, are those page numbers based on the Japanese or Chinese books? Is a format similar to how they do it with Mahouka okay?([[Mahouka_Koukou_no_Rettousei:Volume_1_Chapter_1]]) [[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 15:44, 1 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Incidentally, I just checked on the illustration page numbers listed in for volume 1 and a lot of them were off by a few pages (I fixed them to match the paper copy), but maybe someone with a physical copy of books 2-5 should double-check the rest? Also, I just noticed we&#039;re using the cover of the manga for the series image, should we perhaps swap that with the cover of volume 1? [[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 03:45, 3 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::I can vouch for most of the images I uploaded in volumes 2-5 being in the right places; some illustrations in volume 5 could be in the wrong places but educatated guessing of where they should be according to the missing pages I have in my raws, is how I deduced where the rest go. Another note image files in volume 1 now need to be moved/renamed to the correct pages. I&#039;ll do that when I get back and can double check the illustrations, the double pages with page numbers at the bottom are correct.--[[User:Drowzycow|Drowzycow]] ([[User talk:Drowzycow|talk]]) 14:05, 3 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Image fonts ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anyone know the font used in the translated images? Thinking about editing the annex ones. --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 09:39, 14 November 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Anime Ace : [http://www.1001fonts.com/anime-ace-font.html Link] -- [[User:LiTTleDRAgo|LiTTleDRAgo]]  ([[User_talk:LiTTleDRAgo|Talk]]) 11:40, 14 November 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Brackets ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
About those &amp;lt;&amp;gt; brackets in vol 2 chapter 4, it just seems out of place in full text because only that chapter has that brackets but others didn&#039;t. I create a new draft page for experiment uses to avoid such problems. : [[Log Horizon: Volume 2 Chapter 4 Draft]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Isn&#039;t there any feedback from other editor about the use of &amp;lt;&amp;gt; brackets? -- [[User:LiTTleDRAgo|LiTTleDRAgo]]  ([[User_talk:LiTTleDRAgo|Talk]]) 11:35, 14 November 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:I only did it in v2c4p1+2, to see what people thought about how it looked, versus the previous version. And then those two parts in particular because I think those are among the more bracket-heavy parts, with all the guild names. -- [[User:Rasen|Rasen]] 11:53, 14 November 2013‎ (CST) &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::For my point of view, the brackets is unnecessary, since the english reader (some of them and probably majority of them) is not accustomed to &amp;lt;&amp;gt; brackets. The english translation is mainly for english reader so it&#039;s pointless to copy japanese style for using 「」 brackets.&lt;br /&gt;
::Although for names and honorifics, I prefer to follow japanese ways. &lt;br /&gt;
::By the way, this is off topic, but could you use &amp;quot;&amp;lt;big&amp;gt;&amp;lt;nowiki&amp;gt;-- ~~~~&amp;lt;/nowiki&amp;gt;&amp;lt;/big&amp;gt;&amp;quot; in the end of your statement so others will know that you&#039;re the one who speaking -- [[User:LiTTleDRAgo|LiTTleDRAgo]]  ([[User_talk:LiTTleDRAgo|Talk]]) 12:15, 14 November 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:::I agree with LiTTleDRAgo, I feel the use of brackets is not totally necessary. Maybe for some special terms (&#039;the bag of holding&#039; comes to mind as an example) but with the amount of times that guild names actually show up in the text, it begins to feel cluttered. In terms of keeping to the original text, honorifics and furigana (even tho the use of furigana like &amp;lt;br&amp;gt;&amp;lt;br&amp;gt;{{furigana|Druid|Forest Mage}} &amp;lt;br&amp;gt;&amp;lt;br&amp;gt;  {{furigana|Guardian|Protector Warrior}} &amp;lt;br&amp;gt;&amp;lt;br&amp;gt; {{furigana|Enchanter|Support Mage}} &amp;lt;br&amp;gt;&amp;lt;br&amp;gt; can appear more cluttered :S) are higher in terms of priority to me. --[[User:Drowzycow|Drowzycow]] ([[User talk:Drowzycow|talk]]) 21:04, 14 November 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Alright, I think that&#039;s a clear majority then. LiTTleDRAgo, if you can get rid of that draft with the brackets? (I dunno how to go about it in a clean way) -- [[User:Rasen|Rasen]] ([[User talk:Rasen|talk]]) 23:43, 14 November 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 5, Chapter 3 ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There appears to be a mostly complete translation (about 48 of 53 pages?) at [https://docs.google.com/document/d/1sd588sQAUtHkvGscRuPWJvVMc2AjIiuNocroEU_ZxNM/edit?pli=1 here], however it appears to be a mixture of various anonymous authors. Do we want to perhaps post a comment there asking if we can post or link their translation once its complete, before all the contributors for that page disappear? I&#039;m not sure what the procedure for that sort of thing is, but given that almost all of the BT translations for Log Horizon have come from skythewood (who mentions the other translation in his twitter), if we don&#039;t attempt to secure permission or link, it might be a while before we end up with a translation of that chapter on BT. [[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 16:00, 1 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:I tried to ask today but seems that too many people are looking at the file this I cannot see the comments to make a comment. If anyone else can get in to where they be able to see the tool bars please jump at the chance to do it.&lt;br /&gt;
:--[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 00:11, 2 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::I posed the question in the google doc, near the top. Awaiting a reply... [[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 00:29, 2 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looks like they&#039;ll be okay with it, unsure what the next step in this process is... i suppose it would be easiest if one of them posted it, otherwise do we have to contact the project administrator or something? should we also check if they&#039;re okay with us editing it, etc...? I&#039;m really quite new here so I don&#039;t know what the next step is.... [[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 05:27, 2 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Yup, I saw you post and seen their reply back stating it was alright to be placed on here. Chapter 3 is finished I&#039;m sure we will start adding it soon. --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 12:32, 2 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Translation for Log Horizon Volume 5, Chapter 3 has been completed and the group seems to be okay with it being posted and edited on baka-tsuki. I&#039;ve extracted a copy of just the english text at ( http://pastebin.com/rniNFwuQ ), but I&#039;m unsure as to what the next step is... should we just post that, or do we have to check with the project administrator or something else? [[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 04:27, 3 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Your best bet would be to ask LittleDrago (Project super). Although there shouldn&#039;t be any problem as rye have given permission, just be sure to give credit on the registration page. :) [[User:All Nighter94|All Night]] ([[User talk:All Nighter94|talk]]) 06:49, 3 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::I pasted the chapter and updated the registration page as well. -- [[User:LiTTleDRAgo|LiTTleDRAgo]]  ([[User_talk:LiTTleDRAgo|Talk]]) 12:13, 3 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Changing Series Cover Image ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;d like to change the series cover image to the cover of the first volume of the light novels (its currently from the first volume of the manga), if no one objects? [[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 19:49, 3 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:While I realize it&#039;s not standard practice to use an non-LN image, I personally like the coloured manga cover more. Since it isn&#039;t a heavy spoiler image/has a proper caption indicating that&#039;s a manga cover, don&#039;t really see the harm in leaving it. --[[User:Drowzycow|Drowzycow]] ([[User talk:Drowzycow|talk]]) 21:35, 3 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::I&#039;m curious on how it LN cover looks like. --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 17:23, 4 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;div style=&amp;quot;float: left; width:100%;&amp;quot;&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image: Log Horizon light novel vol.01.jpg|420px|thumb|right|The cover of Log Horizon volume one]]&lt;br /&gt;
I personally think the LN cover looks much more awesome than the manga, and that since our focus is exclusively on the LNs it would look more professional to just use the LN cover image. @Shido, the cover looks like the image on the right, when the settings for the series cover are applied to it.&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 20:19, 4 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/div&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:They&#039;re both equally great looking covers, although I&#039;m leaning toward the manga cover because of the more vivid colors, and sharper details. [[User:All Nighter94|All Night]] ([[User talk:All Nighter94|talk]]) 20:59, 4 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::Seeing as how we have the LN covers up next to their chapters, I don&#039;t really see a reason to have the same image twice on the same page. Now, if ever they decide to take the LN covers off, then I think you have a case. --[[User:Rasen|Rasen]] ([[User talk:Rasen|talk]]) 21:28, 4 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 5 Chapter 3 non-English symbols.   ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m going to change some of these symbols that are used in other languages to what English Grammar typically uses. If no one has any issues with it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Example:&lt;br /&gt;
「Libra Festival」 to (Libra Festival)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
〈Adventurers〉 to &amp;lt;Adventurers&amp;gt; --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 17:30, 4 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:for () brackets, it already used for some other meaning (such as thoughts). I personally prefer 「」 changed to &amp;quot;&amp;quot; and delete 〈〉 to match skythewood&#039;s translation &lt;br /&gt;
:-- [[User:LiTTleDRAgo|LiTTleDRAgo]]  ([[User_talk:LiTTleDRAgo|Talk]]) 17:46, 4 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Project Page Layout==&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m thinking to change the project page layout, does anyone have a feedback?&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Log_Horizon&amp;amp;oldid=308289 Old (1 column without furigana)]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Log_Horizon&amp;amp;oldid=308419 1 column with furigana]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Log_Horizon&amp;amp;oldid=308427 2 column with furigana]&lt;br /&gt;
*[http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Log_Horizon&amp;amp;oldid=308428 2 column if resolution is too small (with furigana)] &lt;br /&gt;
-- [[User:LiTTleDRAgo|LiTTleDRAgo]]  ([[User_talk:LiTTleDRAgo|Talk]]) 07:04, 6 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Keep it the same as before. Kind of smashed in there currently and not a fan of it. --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 10:01, 6 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Don&#039;t mind the double columns, that looks okay but not convinced by the furigana. Like Shido says it looks mashed together, I wouldn&#039;t it might just be my tablet but it does look great on the PC either.--[[User:Drowzycow|Drowzycow]] ([[User talk:Drowzycow|talk]]) 06:06, 7 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 1 Page 338-339 image ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m working on this image and cleaning some of the artifacts that I&#039;ve seen on it. The Japanese words on the top of the grey area anyone know what that says? --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 19:38, 21 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:I&#039;m gonna go out on a limb and say &amp;quot;Elder Tales Class Table&amp;quot; --[[User:Rasen|Rasen]] ([[User talk:Rasen|talk]]) 19:38, 21 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Term continuity. ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m not a translator or anything, I&#039;m just trying to fix a few grammar errors when I see them (and make the script flow better... I&#039;m also new here, account and forum-wise), but I&#039;ve been seeing terms which seems as though they should be fixed being phrased in different ways.&lt;br /&gt;
* Is it &amp;quot;Elder Tale&amp;quot; or &amp;quot;Elder Tales&amp;quot;?&lt;br /&gt;
* Is it &amp;quot;League of Freedom Cities Eastal&amp;quot; or &amp;quot;Free Cities of Eastal League&amp;quot; (I&#039;ve found at least three variations. As the name of a country, shouldn&#039;t this be somewhat constant?)&lt;br /&gt;
* Is &amp;quot;People of the Land&amp;quot; a title/race name, like Human, Elf and Dwarf? It&#039;s sometimes typed with first letter capitalization, sometimes without, sometimes used to refer to both plural and singular (for e.g. &amp;quot;she was a people of the land&amp;quot; as opposed to &amp;quot;she was a person of the land&amp;quot;).&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I hope you don&#039;t mind if I standardize the above terms, as well as any similar terms I encounter (I&#039;ll be using the first example quoted, because they&#039;re the first way the name is brought up).&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Nerazim|Nerazim]] ([[User talk:Nerazim|talk]]) 00:01, 26 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:As far as I know standardizing terms across volumes is quite welcome, so long as meaning isn&#039;t changed. You can consult the translator and discuss which standard they&#039;d like. [[User:All Nighter94|All Night]] ([[User talk:All Nighter94|talk]]) 00:29, 26 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Eastal is the name of the league, so this instance &amp;quot;Free Cities of Eastal League&amp;quot; is wrong.--[[User:KuroiHikari|KuroiHikari]] ([[User_talk:KuroiHikari|Talk]] | ) 01:51, 26 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::Actually, it should either be &amp;quot;League of Free Cities, Eastal&amp;quot; or &amp;quot;Eastal League of Free Cities&amp;quot;. I believe &amp;quot;league of free cities&amp;quot; is a similar term to kingdom, empire, dukedom, all of which are political systems (see Hanseatic League). Personally, considering the location of the league, I suspect Eastal is a transliteration of Eastern.&lt;br /&gt;
::&amp;quot;People of the land&amp;quot; is how the npc&#039;s in Elder Tale were called, to differentiate them from player controlled adventurers. I would suggest for groups, &amp;quot;People of the land be used&amp;quot;, &lt;br /&gt;
::while for individuals, &amp;quot;lands(man/person/women)&amp;quot; be used instead. --[[User:Blake77|Blake77]] ([[User talk:Blake77|talk]]) 07:56, 26 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For continuity sake, keep what they have already in Volumes 3 and 4 for the league. These have already been converted to be consistent in these volumes. &lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 20:32, 26 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:I&#039;m pretty sure volume 1&#039;s image on pages 4-5 clearly supports &amp;quot;Elder Tales&amp;quot; as the name of the MMORPG, plus it probably flows better that way. [[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 21:28, 26 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::::I could have sworn I replied, but I&#039;m not seeing them... I&#039;m rather lazy to type them over, so Thank You (and yes, i agree, where applicable), to the people above...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:::::Mamare, the author, used &amp;quot;Elder Tale&amp;quot;. Hara Kazuhiro, the artist, used Elder Tales (probably for balance of the logo?). Volume 7 gives an official name to the People of the Land as &amp;quot;Landers,&amp;quot; so that will probably used at some point when the translation comes out. Also, the Settings Book calls the Round Table Alliance/Conference the &amp;quot;Conference Round Table,&amp;quot; but that sounds ridiculously stupid so I doubt we should change it. --[[Special:Contributions/74.89.132.250|74.89.132.250]] 20:59, 29 June 2014 (CDT) (Queenie-Beatrice)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;ve got a question about that raid/dungeon with nine and prison in its name. It&#039;s referred to as &#039;9 Prisons of Heroes&#039;, &#039;The 9 Big Prisons for Heroes&#039;, &#039;The Nine Prisons of Heroes&#039;, &#039;The Nine Great Prisons of the Heilos (Helios)&#039;, &#039;Prison of 9 Heroes&#039; and &#039;9 Prisons of Helios&#039;, from Volume 2 onward. This should be standardized, but I know zero Japanese and Chinese so I can&#039;t check.&lt;br /&gt;
-[[User:Rockmosis|Rockmosis]] ([[User talk:Rockmosis|talk]]) 22:00, 27 June 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It&#039;s actually a bit unclear. The Japanese reads as &amp;quot;He-i-rou-su no Kyuu Dai Kangoku.&amp;quot; Judging by the sound, I would favor &amp;quot;Heroes&amp;quot; over &amp;quot;Helios&amp;quot;, but I couldn&#039;t say over &amp;quot;Heilos.&amp;quot; That particular word is in Katakana, which tends to indicate a not-Japanese word or a proper noun. Kyuu Dai Kangoku is pretty straight-forward though as &amp;quot;9 Great Prisons&amp;quot; (Big Prisons sounds a little...derpy). So I might suggest either the &amp;quot;9 Great Prisons of Heroes&amp;quot; or &amp;quot;9 Great Prisons of Heilos.&amp;quot;  I would actually be curious to know if the Chinese version used characters for heroes or whatever random string of Chinese characters that sound close to Heilos. [[User:Rasen|Rasen]] ([[User talk:Rasen|talk]]) 22:47, 28 June 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 5 Appendices ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
So, I was wondering if we want to /can use the appendices at http://pastebin.com/hpEAm0GW . The doc seems to suggest they are not from skythewood so I don&#039;t know if he can grant permission to use them, but its also not clear who translated them, and since they&#039;re listed there, I doubt anyone else will translate them. Thoughts? [[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 00:51, 28 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:If you don&#039;t mind once you upload something please be sure to find the all of the TL notes and add reference tags to these. --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 16:27, 28 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:For the sake of order I believe it&#039;s best to limit who uploads what from the pastebin onto here. We already had an incident on the forums and the translators of Volume 5 chapter 4 wasn&#039;t happy about. We don&#039;t need to make them anymore angry and deny us from using their translations. Same goes with skythewood pastebin as sometimes he&#039;ll put a recent copy of someone&#039;s work on his pastebin page in the spirit of good faith. --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 16:27, 28 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::ah, i was wondering about the volume 5 chapter 4 thing. I&#039;ve not been following the forum side so much, but i didn&#039;t uploaded it because no one has answered my question about permissions on the google doc and it looked like it wasn&#039;t quite complete, although skythewood posted a version of it on his pastebin which said it needed editing, I&#039;m guessing thats where the confusion came from. Usually he labels materials from other sources though (which he did in that case as well). Anyways, as far as i know, I&#039;ve definitely grabbed the TL notes as well, whenever I&#039;ve grabbed stuff from skythewood&#039;s pages for translations he&#039;s completed(which I&#039;ve only done because he&#039;s explicitly stated in the past that his translations can be freely used in his pastebins). Anyways if people are unhappy with us having posted volume 5 chapter 4, perhaps we should remove it or disable it until we can secure permission properly? But definitely, it is a problem if we anger people. (thats part of why I went and asked back before we posted volume 5, chapter 3. ) Anyways, who should we limit the uploads to? (and what do we do if people overzealously bring something over without permission again?) --[[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 00:37, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Can someone confirm that we have permission to have the appendices? (the ones on skythewood&#039;s translation of it http://pastebin.com/hpEAm0GW , seem to indicate that the appendices (but not the afterword) were authored by third parties and the discussion under this talk section appears to have been leaning towards &amp;quot;no&amp;quot;)? [[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 01:16, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:I&#039;ll talk with skythewood tomorrow for that permission later tomorrow. --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 01:41, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Permission is given for Volume 5 appendices for map guy&#039;s images. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
https://twitter.com/BakaShido/status/417308444413005824&lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 09:00, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translation updates from skythewood==&lt;br /&gt;
It appears he&#039;s caught up to his raws, going by this recent tweet. He&#039;s a Chinese to English translator, with volume 6 being released in chinese on Jan 9. So unless he uses fan translations expect a slowing down of releases. --[[User:Drowzycow|Drowzycow]] ([[User talk:Drowzycow|talk]]) 05:36, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
:No one seems to be updating over here... Since he already has 3 chapters out (last i checked), does anyone mind if i just go ahead and edit-check, then post them? [[User:Nerazim|Nerazim]] ([[User talk:Nerazim|talk]]) 15:57, 19 January 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:That doesn&#039;t seem to be a good idea, since even he thinks those versions are translated from an incomplete/crappy source. It would probably be better to wait for him to get his hands on a more official source. --~~&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Well, I managed to get a Japanese copy, I just really suck with kanji. I was going to get some help from a family member and just compare his translation to my understanding of the original text (because if I translate it myself, it&#039;ll take me at least two months of constant work, ignoring studies)... Ah well, waiting does seem to be the better option. [[User:Nerazim|Nerazim]] ([[User talk:Nerazim|talk]]) 15:25, 20 January 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If someone can get in touch with him, tell him that &amp;quot;Aruraune&amp;quot; should be &amp;quot;Alraune&amp;quot; (a flower humanoid creature).--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 12:15, 1 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Epub version. ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For what is worth, I bound the first chapter into a epub after some work. It was a bit more involved then I like, but I managed to get it down to a process after some work. I used Sigil to create it. There are a number of steps involved, so it isn&#039;t just a straight copy and paste. It includes the title image and illustrations, but the chapter images didn&#039;t fit very well. I filled out the metadata, and I even added the translators to it. It only took me about 3 hours to wrap up (most of it was figuring things out). If I do any more (which depends on if this is wanted or not), it should take less time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I was not sure how to go about hosting it, so I upped them it in two different places.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Epub Download Links&lt;br /&gt;
*Volume 1: http://www.datafilehost.com/d/80ad4bfa&lt;br /&gt;
*Volume 2: http://www.datafilehost.com/d/1ac21645&lt;br /&gt;
*Volume 3: http://www.datafilehost.com/d/27321dca&lt;br /&gt;
*Volume 4: http://www.datafilehost.com/d/3d5ff1c9&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These look very good in something like Moon+, but only okay on something like Sumantra. But that isn&#039;t the epub&#039;s fault (Sumanta doesn&#039;t format intelligently).&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I would do 5, but it is pending an edit. I might put the monster files in their own epubs. Volume 4 does have the terminology section, Volume 3 doesn&#039;t (at the moment). I might have to go back and redo volume 1.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Note: These are all your work anyway, except for hammering them into the epub format. If you want to host them here, you have my permission (if needed).&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Chasesan|Chase-san]] ([[User talk:Chasesan|talk]]) 18:03, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:It&#039;s always good practice for any programmer or person making any epub to validate for any errors. This insures that your file is up to spec and should have the highest compatibility on the multiple readers apps available out there. Can check your files here: http://validator.idpf.org/&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Also I&#039;m a bit curious on why you do not include the chapter profile images at beginning of each chapter? Maybe you have your reasons like the ones you have for the monster files. I&#039;m just a bit picky when it comes to what the author and publisher had originally intended their book to be display as.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Overall a good effort loads pretty nice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:--[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 18:27, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::I wasn&#039;t aware there was a validator for it. I&#039;ll see about checking mine, and making a version 2. As for the chapter profile images, the main reason is that they are double page images. Other double pagers I split in two, but those really shouldn&#039;t be. I could put in an overly wide image, but I am not 100% sure how to force it to display on it&#039;s own (currently only the cover does that).&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::But all that will probably have to be tomorrow. If you have other suggestions please let me know.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::[[User:Chasesan|Chase-san]] ([[User talk:Chasesan|talk]]) 18:51, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:::Can say how this is done with Sigil since I don&#039;t use it; however, what you can do is use CSS and place the images in a div tag to be used as a way to force a page break before and after the image. In CSS you want to add these two properties to the div element: page-break-after:always; and page-break-before:always;&lt;br /&gt;
 &lt;br /&gt;
:::--[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 19:42, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sigil is just a epub editing tool. Pretty good for what it does. Makes working with epub fairly intuitive.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anyway, I fixed a few errors in the epubs. I removed &amp;quot;Part X&amp;quot; from the TOC, I can reverse this if no one likes it, but it was the easiest option to resolve some TOC issues. I recombined the double pages. I still didn&#039;t add the chapter images, since I couldn&#039;t find a way to get pages to work with my ebook reader. Short of giving them their own document, which may the only option for compatibility. I also redid the images in the first chapter so they are similar in quality to the later chapters.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I personally want to keep the volumes below 1 mb each. For a few reasons. First I like small files. I get positive mental feedback for making files smaller. Second, my upload is slow. So overly large files take a long time to upload. Last, and probably most persuasively, older epub readers have fits with large epub files.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Epub Download Links - Version 2&lt;br /&gt;
*Volume 1: http://www.datafilehost.com/d/702508bb&lt;br /&gt;
*Volume 2: http://www.datafilehost.com/d/a2a76c4e&lt;br /&gt;
*Volume 3: http://www.datafilehost.com/d/74138d19&lt;br /&gt;
*Volume 4: http://www.datafilehost.com/d/c5e5eaa1&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Chasesan|Chase-san]] ([[User talk:Chasesan|talk]]) 20:44, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Possible missing appendices for volume 1 ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Volume 1 may be missing it&#039;s appendices. I&#039;m asking our translator where the last 3 images sit in the book.&lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 18:35, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Yes there is one double page that could act as an appendix that I&#039;ve not uploaded (pgs 338-339) but it isn&#039;t formally considered an appendix, see the content pages in 002-003. What last 3 images are you referring to? Pgs 344-345, 346-347 towards the final pages. Author info/ads for the next book. There were other non-log horizon ads (Maoyuu Maou Yuusha I&#039;m guessing) which weren&#039;t uploaded.--[[User:Drowzycow|Drowzycow]] ([[User talk:Drowzycow|talk]]) 19:28, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Shido, at the end of the Japanese version of volume 1, there is...&lt;br /&gt;
  1) page 337: End of &amp;quot;Escape&amp;quot; (Vol 1 ch 5)&lt;br /&gt;
  2) a double page that seems to be a list of classes and subclasses or something going by the icons (&amp;quot;Log Horizon Vol01 338-339.jpg&amp;quot;)&lt;br /&gt;
  3) afterword(pages 340-343)&lt;br /&gt;
  4) a double page spread with author/artist/etc information on TOUNO Mamare, MATSUDA Shoji, HARA Kazuhiro &amp;lt;br&amp;gt;along with what looks like other publication information(&amp;quot;Log Horizon Vol01 344-345.jpg&amp;quot;)&lt;br /&gt;
  5) what appears to be a double-page advertisement for volume 2 (i&#039;m not sure of which, though clearly log horizon related, &amp;lt;br&amp;gt;there is a lot of bolded text and background text)(&amp;quot;Log Horizon Vol01 346-347.jpg&amp;quot;)&lt;br /&gt;
  6) a one page ad for something to do with Maou Yuusha&lt;br /&gt;
  7) a blank page&lt;br /&gt;
  8) the back cover&lt;br /&gt;
Aside from the Maou Yuusha ad(and obviously the blanks and afterword), they&#039;re all in the Volume 1 novel illustrations) --[[User:Madoka2029|Madoka2029]] ([[User talk:Madoka2029|talk]]) 04:03, 30 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:I already asked him about it and he already replied to me on twitter. --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 13:36, 30 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::If the translator is skythewood, can you ask him about the missing text in volume 4? (the stuff remaining in vol 2-3 may not be in the Chinese text) --Rasen&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:::More missing text from the volume 4 stuff I already reported to him from the above topic? the link I gave you on the 30th had volume 4 missing text on there already. I thought that was already added by you? http://pastebin.com/ThEzFadJ --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 19:45, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::::Sorry, I should have been more clear. Volume 4, chapter 2+. At the time, I had not yet reviewed the later chapters in the volume. --Rasen&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:::::Ok I&#039;ll ask him again. --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 21:41, 29 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rasen, he updated that one pastebin for the rest of the chapters of volume 4. Same link as before just look further down for it. http://pastebin.com/ThEzFadJ --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 01:29, 30 December 2013 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Awesome, I&#039;ve added in the new stuff, and whatever&#039;s left isn&#039;t in the Chinese version. --Rasen&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Editing Questions ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I was wondering if we should capitalize class and subclasses like Samurai, Scribe and Maid. I currently am editing them all to lower case because that is how the earlier translations were, but I&#039;m wondering if anyone has any opinions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also, should terms like League of Freedom Towns Eastal and Holy Empire Westelande have singular apostrophes around them?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
One more thing, if referring to a singular People of the Land, should it be changed to Person of the Land? I have been keeping it as &amp;quot;a People of the Land&amp;quot; although that sounds weird.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That&#039;s all the questions I have for now.&lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Rockmosis|Rockmosis]] ([[User talk:Rockmosis|talk]]) 12:23, 26 January 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:I would try to captalise classes but I&#039;m not sure about your &#039;maid&#039; example tho, depends on usage. That girl who likes Nyanta with the Maid/Housekeeper subclass, yes. Raynesia&#039;s maid- No. Like I said depends on usage.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:I don&#039;t see the need for sticking apostrophes for special terms. I removed the ones placed on Adventurers etc to match early wiki entries. Want to remove some of the apostrophes in V5C4 to be honest. &#039;Flea Market&#039; isn&#039;t really needed, and I think they gave up on it later in the chapter as well, it was there I think since translators were discussing whether &#039;bazaar&#039; would be a closer translation to the original text.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:On a &amp;quot;singular People of the Land, should it be changed to Person of the Land?&amp;quot; Yes, use Person of the Land, it just sounds better--[[User:Drowzycow|Drowzycow]] ([[User talk:Drowzycow|talk]]) 12:38, 26 January 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It isn&#039;t necessary to capitalize a class name unless the class name is being used with a person&#039;s name. I.E. Doctor John or President Clinton. &lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 23:46, 7 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Raynesia vs. Lenessia, etc. ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I got to know about this series through anime and noticed that anime subtitles use Lenessia rather than Raynesia, or Karashin = Charashin, and others. ([http://www.animenewsnetwork.com/encyclopedia/anime.php?id=15118 Look here at the listed names]) &lt;br /&gt;
Actually, I think Lenessia and Karashin (or I personally would use Carasin) sound better to me. If possible wouldn&#039;t it be good to make the name changes in the novel translation? [[User:Angelanime|Angelanime]] ([[User talk:Angelanime|talk]]) 07:05, 23 March 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
My 2 cents, I don&#039;t put much stock in the subtitles used. For instance:&lt;br /&gt;
:-They call the Catastrophe the Apocalyspse, which makes less sense (Catastrophe is just a bad thing, Apocalypse is the end of the world. As they believe they can go back, the world did not end) Also, IIRC, they used to call it the &amp;quot;Catastrophe&amp;quot; before they switched, which means the subs are inconsistent. Trying to be consistent with an inconsistent source hurts my brain. Also, the author translates it as &amp;quot;Catastrophe&amp;quot; back in volume 1, so....&lt;br /&gt;
:-On the map graphic they keep reusing, they say &amp;quot;Freedom Cities of Eastal.&amp;quot; But in the one episode where you see the rings and the flags, it&#039;s &amp;quot;Freedom Towns of Eastal.&amp;quot; Again, internal inconsistencies. I would and did go with Freedom Towns, because they actually bothered to draw/animate it, as opposed to just copy/paste the same graphic over and over.&lt;br /&gt;
:-They call the &amp;quot;Libra Festival&amp;quot; the &amp;quot;Scales Festival&amp;quot; -BLAAAAAH. Libra makes sense, not only because the fair takes place before the winter, but also because WHO THE HECK WOULD CALL IT the &amp;quot;Scales Festival&amp;quot;? &lt;br /&gt;
:-Krusty spells his name that way because he LIKES the Simpsons character, so...NO to the anime&#039;s &amp;quot;Crusty.&amp;quot; &lt;br /&gt;
:-Subs call Rundelhous &amp;quot;Rundel Haus.&amp;quot; His last name is not Haus, and his first name is not two words.  &lt;br /&gt;
:-In vol6 - Maryele gives Raynesia a nick-name that sounds COMPLETELY different if you spell it with &amp;quot;Le&amp;quot;. Also, Lenessia has a different pronunciation. The Japanese pronounce it as &amp;quot;RAY-nesshia.&amp;quot; In English, Lenessia would be something like &amp;quot;luh-nessia&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
:-They call &amp;quot;Zantleaf&amp;quot; instead of &amp;quot;Sandleaf&amp;quot;. The Japanese can do a Z sound. They don&#039;t do it for &amp;quot;sandoriifu&amp;quot; &lt;br /&gt;
:-Regarding the names of the guilds that were translated, that&#039;s a more murky area. But I already have a dim view of the subtitles, and I think skythewood came up with better-sounding names anyway. &amp;quot;Marine Systems&amp;quot; v. &amp;quot;Oceanic Systems&amp;quot; &lt;br /&gt;
:-Etc., etc, rage, rage. &lt;br /&gt;
Whenever possible, I would side with the Author&#039;s original spelling, ESPECIALLY if he spelled it out in English (Krusty, Tohya, Raynesia, Maryele, Rundelhous). --Rasen&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Kebab ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Grilled bits of meat on a skewer, does &#039;&#039;&#039;not&#039;&#039;&#039; qualify as being &amp;quot;kebab&amp;quot;. Kebab is a specific food. Either the stuff that is usually called kebab in &amp;quot;the west&amp;quot; (i.e. the rotating slab of meat, from which slices are carved. What is sometimes called doner kebab), or real kebab, which is a mix of ground meat, spices and stuff, usually grilled on a spit.--[[Special:Contributions/213.113.134.20|213.113.134.20]] 07:01, 14 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I thought that it might be possible (though &#039;&#039;highly&#039;&#039; unlikely) that &amp;quot;kebab&amp;quot; came from the original being wrong, and calling it kebab ...but no. [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/images/archive/2/2b/20131229164823!Log_Horizon_Vol05_348-349.jpg That&#039;s clearly not the case]. The original says 串焼. 串焼 does not translate as &amp;quot;kebab&amp;quot;.--[[Special:Contributions/213.113.134.20|213.113.134.20]] 21:52, 26 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kebab (also kebap or kabab) (Persian: کباب; Kabāb‎),(Arabic: کباب; Kabāb‎) is a Middle Eastern dish of pieces of meat, fish, or vegetables roasted or grilled on a skewer or spit originating in the Middle East, and later adopted in Central Asia and by the regions of the former Mongol Empire and later Ottoman Empire, before spreading worldwide. In American English, kebab with no qualification refers to shish kebab (Turkish: şiş kebap) cooked on a skewer, whereas in Europe it refers to doner kebab, sliced meat served in a pita. In the Middle East, however, kebab refers to meat that is cooked over or next to flames; large or small cuts of meat, or even ground meat; it may be served on plates, in sandwiches, or in bowls. The traditional meat for kebab is lamb, but depending on local tastes and religious prohibitions, other meats may include beef, goat, chicken, pork or fish. Like other ethnic foods brought by travellers, the kebab has remained a part of everyday cuisine in most of the Eastern Mediterranean and South Asia. It is also popular among Western youth as a snack after a night-out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kebab&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Please don&#039;t assume the whole world works the same way as wherever you live. Kebab very much means meat on a stick.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to the dictionary, while &amp;quot;kebab&amp;quot; is correct, it usually holds the nuance of &amp;quot;turkish&amp;quot; (but it&#039;s still correct). Another word to call them is &amp;quot;brochettes&amp;quot; (just for the record).--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 13:37, 6 June 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 7 ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
i assume since there hasn&#039;t been a single link change for it since vol6 was finished, that we are waiting for the volume itself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
what dates roughly are expecting for the volumes release? not so much the translation of but the availability of the volume to translators.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
^It&#039;s already been out since December and I assume that they have the volume by now- they&#039;re probably truing to find the time for translation now :D&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:AkaSora|AkaSora]] ([[User talk:AkaSora|talk]]) 20:15, 21 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Out since December has no meaning, since the translator works from the Chinese version. I dunno when it gets published in Chinese, or if it already has been.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:So this is a translation of a translation... Why? It&#039;s the only available translation, and I&#039;m already hooked though, but...--[[Special:Contributions/213.113.134.20|213.113.134.20]] 21:57, 26 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::It&#039;s a good question. Why would anyone want to sacrifice their free time to translate something on behalf of someone who not only shows no gratitude for the service, but further demeans the very value of the work being done? --[[User:Hiyono|Hiyono]] ([[User talk:Hiyono|talk]]) 02:14, 27 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Why ask why? The better question to ask is why there isn&#039;t a person fluent in Japanese who has the volume who is willing to translate. As it is, the only translator we have doesn&#039;t speak Japanese, but does Chinese.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;m just happy that someone is translating this series. Can&#039;t wait to see what happens in volume 7&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Should there be a link from end of Volume 6 to Web Chapter 55 for now until the volume translations come out? -[[User:Rockmosis|Rockmosis]] ([[User talk:Rockmosis|talk]]) 21:37, 27 June 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Looks like Npeace has already added those links. I would just keep it on there now and wait in till the actual volume gets translated. --[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 04:09, 1 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Abundant amount of editors. ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
We have quite a bit of editors here for Log Horizon. I think it&#039;s best to put those of the Google docs chapter crew into a special thanks section instead. Maybe we can put others who haven&#039;t been active in a long while in an inactive section. &lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 15:53, 29 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In my defense, I plan on being active as soon as the next volume comes out. --~~ Rasen&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I mean people who been contributing this for a while now are OK. Things we don&#039;t really need to put in like &amp;quot;Various anonymous users&amp;quot; don&#039;t need to be there. Denver Drage and Queenie Beatrice should be put in as a special thanks since those people were editors on the google docs. Sphaela isn&#039;t really an editor here for the wiki, but we did used his images (With his permission) from his website. He too should go into the special thanks section. &lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 10:12, 30 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Name Changes ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Kinjyou (volume 6/volume 7) should be changed to Kinjo, which is the way it&#039;s spelled in volume 7&#039;s character page.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Re Gan ... it&#039;s spelled as one word in English on v7&#039;s character page, but it&#039;s still written in kanji with a dot between &amp;quot;Re&amp;quot; and &amp;quot;Gan&amp;quot;. Re Gan&#039;s predecessor has &amp;quot;Gan&amp;quot; in his name as well, so I don&#039;t know if they are relatives or if &amp;quot;Gan&amp;quot; is a name that is passed down among holders of the Sage of Mirror Lake title.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anything with Kazu (I&#039;ve seen Kazu and Kazuyan so far) should be Kazuhiko.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raynesia should be changed to Rayneshia. Her grandfather&#039;s name was spelled Serjiad in the anime BD.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The light novels have Rudy&#039;s name to be Rundelhous. To date, though, I&#039;ve seen four &amp;quot;official&amp;quot; spellings (LN, CR subs, episode 20, BD4) for his name. I&#039;m not sure which one B-T uses, though.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Demikas is spelled Demiqas or Demiquas. The last two/three letters are cut off, but it&#039;s definitely something with a Q rather than a K. I wouldn&#039;t change it, though, until there&#039;s more information on how it should be spelled--[[Special:Contributions/74.89.132.250|74.89.132.250]] 16:24, 18 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Please sign in before posting since we have no idea who you are with just an IP address. Also apply a signature using the signature button on the right of the italics button. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Shido|Shido]] ([[User talk:Shido|talk]]) 14:50, 27 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lessee....&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
First, I dunno without Japanese raws how Kazuhiko is being addressed, but the alternatives you&#039;ve seen seem more like how other people are choosing to address him. &amp;quot;Kazu&amp;quot; for short, &amp;quot;Kazu-yan&amp;quot; for the Osaka-ben speakers, and if so, I don&#039;t see why those should be changed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Second, where&#039;d you get the Rayneshia and Serjiad spellings? With a very few exceptions, English characters just aren&#039;t used in the show.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Third, I question CR and BD subs, because they&#039;re just...wrong at times. &amp;quot;Scales&amp;quot; Festival. The &amp;quot;Apocalypse.&amp;quot; And inconsistent. On the reused maps, its &amp;quot;Freedom Cities Eastal,&amp;quot; while on the flags and signet rings, it&#039;s &amp;quot;Freedom Towns Eastal.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Where&#039;d you get Demikas&#039; name spelling?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[User:Rasen|Rasen]] ([[User talk:Rasen|talk]]) 16:43, 18 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:&amp;gt;Kazuhiko&lt;br /&gt;
:I doubt that they would use a nickname in the context of the sentence, where it&#039;s not a character speaking and is instead reflecting Kazuhiko&#039;s thoughts (the first chapter of the vol7 web novel). I don&#039;t think Shiroe speaks in Osaka-ben, either, it might just be from translating from a fan translation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Rayneshia&#039;s, from the character intro after the Table of Contents in volume 6. It was (somehow) determined that there was actually an H before the I, and then that was reinforced in the BDs. Serjiad&#039;s was in the BD (I don&#039;t think Crunchyroll has anything to do with the BDs, though), no light novel English spelling has been given. I&#039;d also take the BDs with a grain of salt, they use two different spellings for &#039;Rundelhous&#039; in the character profile and character cards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Demikas&#039; was also from volume 7&#039;s [https://pbs.twimg.com/media/BrLdfr6CUAA8bct.jpg:large character intro page]. Kinjo and Re Gan/Regan are on the opposite page (just google 供贄の黄金 and search under images, since it won&#039;t let me link directly to the picture). --[[Special:Contributions/74.89.132.250|74.89.132.250]] 19:04, 18 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
::[http://i.imgur.com/KVIDPMd.jpg First character intro page], [http://i.imgur.com/hjjxW24.jpg Second character intro page] in volume 7. I have some of the other scans from the volume in high quality, but I don&#039;t know the order nor do I have a set of complete scans for vol7. --[[Special:Contributions/74.89.132.250|74.89.132.250]] 09:49, 21 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Changed Demikas to Demiqas and Re~Gun to ReGan, as a way of making it one word, while also acknowledging Re and Gan had a dot in between without actually putting a dot in between.[[User:Rasen|Rasen]] ([[User talk:Rasen|talk]]) 15:33, 27 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Is Kinjyou/Kinjo staying as Kinjyou or is it being changed to Kinjo?&lt;br /&gt;
--[[User:Rockmosis|Rockmosis]] ([[User talk:Rockmosis|talk]]) 22:27, 27 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Made the change from Kinjyou to Kinjo in volume 6. Not touching the webnovel chapters, because I&#039;m saving my energy for the LN. Also, still hoping to get my grubby hands on a JP volume 7 to bring the formatting, terminology, honorifics, etc. back. [[User:Rasen|Rasen]] ([[User talk:Rasen|talk]]) 23:37, 27 July 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 08 ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally the new book (volume 08) has been announced. Log horizon is one of the few novels I can&#039;t stop reading till it ends at a certain point for example I read book 03 then had to read book 04 and before I knew it the sun was almost up :P&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Mushoku_Tensei:Web_Chapter_54&amp;diff=378778</id>
		<title>Talk:Mushoku Tensei:Web Chapter 54</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Mushoku_Tensei:Web_Chapter_54&amp;diff=378778"/>
		<updated>2014-08-06T13:46:22Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: Created page with &amp;quot;&amp;quot;In my hands is a wooden bucket and &amp;#039;&amp;#039;&amp;#039;soup&amp;#039;&amp;#039;&amp;#039; for the purpose of laundry&amp;quot;? Soup for doing laundry? Interesting. Must something like sock soup :P You might wanna consider writ...&amp;quot;&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;&amp;quot;In my hands is a wooden bucket and &#039;&#039;&#039;soup&#039;&#039;&#039; for the purpose of laundry&amp;quot;? Soup for doing laundry? Interesting. Must something like sock soup :P You might wanna consider writing &amp;quot;soap&amp;quot; instead tho XD&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:ELYSION_virtual_region&amp;diff=358205</id>
		<title>Talk:ELYSION virtual region</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:ELYSION_virtual_region&amp;diff=358205"/>
		<updated>2014-06-04T05:40:29Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;Man love this the moment I saw its first release on Mediafactory! Thnaks a lot for picking this up my men! Hope to see more! [[User:DoomCalibur]] 25th January 2014&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
My normal voice being restricted due to being at work, I let out a &amp;quot;YOSHA!&amp;quot; so loud it could of broke the mental comunication db rate when I heard when volume 03 is coming out. :P  [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 00:37, 4 June 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Translating both series at once? ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I like it, it seems like a pretty interesting series. I can say that I definitely prefer Antimagic Academy&#039;s setting though. If you were to decide to pick this up, would you be translating both series at once?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I am considering that, mainly because this series has only 1 volume out, which came almost exactly a month ago. If I were to pick it up and finish vol 1, it would be caught up with japanese release - it would be totally different if it had multiple volumes, that would mean I&#039;d have to alternate between Antimagic Academy and ELYSION or pick one to concentrate on. And yeah, I have no intention whatsoever of stopping Antimagic Academy translation. Though I have not yet decided on picking ELYSION yet. --[[User:Krytyk|Krytyk]] ([[User talk:Krytyk|talk]]) 11:20, 25 January 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That&#039;s good to know. I&#039;m really enjoying Antimagic Academy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Translation ===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Decided to pick this series up, however I will translate this after I&#039;m done translating Antimagic Academy volume 2. --[[User:Krytyk|Krytyk]] ([[User talk:Krytyk|talk]]) 22:52, 26 January 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This novel seems like it&#039;s gonna be good, I&#039;ll surely help with editing this :)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:ELYSION_virtual_region&amp;diff=358203</id>
		<title>Talk:ELYSION virtual region</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:ELYSION_virtual_region&amp;diff=358203"/>
		<updated>2014-06-04T05:37:07Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;Man love this the moment I saw its first release on Mediafactory! Thnaks a lot for picking this up my men! Hope to see more! [[User:DoomCalibur]] 25th January 2014&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
My normal voice being restricted due to being at work, I let out a &amp;quot;YOSHA!&amp;quot; so loud it could of broke the mental comunication db rate :P [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 00:37, 4 June 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Translating both series at once? ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I like it, it seems like a pretty interesting series. I can say that I definitely prefer Antimagic Academy&#039;s setting though. If you were to decide to pick this up, would you be translating both series at once?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I am considering that, mainly because this series has only 1 volume out, which came almost exactly a month ago. If I were to pick it up and finish vol 1, it would be caught up with japanese release - it would be totally different if it had multiple volumes, that would mean I&#039;d have to alternate between Antimagic Academy and ELYSION or pick one to concentrate on. And yeah, I have no intention whatsoever of stopping Antimagic Academy translation. Though I have not yet decided on picking ELYSION yet. --[[User:Krytyk|Krytyk]] ([[User talk:Krytyk|talk]]) 11:20, 25 January 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That&#039;s good to know. I&#039;m really enjoying Antimagic Academy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Translation ===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Decided to pick this series up, however I will translate this after I&#039;m done translating Antimagic Academy volume 2. --[[User:Krytyk|Krytyk]] ([[User talk:Krytyk|talk]]) 22:52, 26 January 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This novel seems like it&#039;s gonna be good, I&#039;ll surely help with editing this :)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Psycho_Love_Comedy&amp;diff=358099</id>
		<title>Talk:Psycho Love Comedy</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Psycho_Love_Comedy&amp;diff=358099"/>
		<updated>2014-06-03T05:59:55Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;I was simply raising theories. Can&#039;t wait for the next chapter.--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 16:34, 12 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
:Plus, I was wrong.--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 17:40, 14 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey, thanks for the TL. Really enjoying this so far. [[User:Rizo536|Rizo536 - Possibly Editing]] ([[User talk:Rizo536|talk]]) 03:07, 15 March 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Why are the ending illust for vol 2 and 3 same? Is it really like that? [[User:Castor212|Castor212]] ([[User talk:Castor212|talk]]) 03:32, 24 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Because some people are very sloppy when uploading illustrations and don&#039;t clean up their messes. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Thanks for pointing out the error. --[[User:ServingCatsAndDogs|ServingCatsAndDogs]] ([[User talk:ServingCatsAndDogs|talk]]) 05:59, 24 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
:: You&#039;re welcome.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the last chapter (volume 01) there is a &amp;quot;mete&amp;quot; which I think should be meet, didn&#039;t want to edit it cause I didn&#039;t know if it was on purpose. [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 19:48, 29 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
:The word &#039;mete&#039; is correct. It basically means to measure out, usually in bibilical terms. So, to mete out justice or punishment. Yay for learning new words~ [[User:Axyraandas|Axyraandas]] ([[User talk:Axyraandas|talk]]) 21:00, 2 June 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks you very much for explaining. XD [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 00:59, 3 June 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=User_talk:Joegargery&amp;diff=357497</id>
		<title>User talk:Joegargery</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=User_talk:Joegargery&amp;diff=357497"/>
		<updated>2014-05-31T06:20:44Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;Are you willing to do volume 02 since that you finished doing volume 07? [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 01:20, 31 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Psycho_Love_Comedy&amp;diff=357196</id>
		<title>Talk:Psycho Love Comedy</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Psycho_Love_Comedy&amp;diff=357196"/>
		<updated>2014-05-30T00:48:06Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;I was simply raising theories. Can&#039;t wait for the next chapter.--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 16:34, 12 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
:Plus, I was wrong.--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 17:40, 14 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hey, thanks for the TL. Really enjoying this so far. [[User:Rizo536|Rizo536 - Possibly Editing]] ([[User talk:Rizo536|talk]]) 03:07, 15 March 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Why are the ending illust for vol 2 and 3 same? Is it really like that? [[User:Castor212|Castor212]] ([[User talk:Castor212|talk]]) 03:32, 24 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Because some people are very sloppy when uploading illustrations and don&#039;t clean up their messes. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Thanks for pointing out the error. --[[User:ServingCatsAndDogs|ServingCatsAndDogs]] ([[User talk:ServingCatsAndDogs|talk]]) 05:59, 24 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
:: You&#039;re welcome.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the last chapter (volume 01) there is a &amp;quot;mete&amp;quot; which I think should be meet, didn&#039;t want to edit it cause I didn&#039;t know if it was on purpose. [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 19:48, 29 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Black_Bullet&amp;diff=356829</id>
		<title>Talk:Black Bullet</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Black_Bullet&amp;diff=356829"/>
		<updated>2014-05-28T14:24:50Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;looks interesting, ill help with the editing if u want [[User:Monsterbandage|Monsterbandage]] ([[User_talk:Monsterbandage|Talk]]) 00:12, 18 December 2012 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Someone started releasing chapters of this series&#039;s manga. You can check it out here at [http://www.mangapanda.com/black-bullet Mangapanda] Maybe someone will want to start translations after reader it? [[User:Swiftelf|Swiftelf]] ([[User talk:Swiftelf|talk]]) 22:33, 13 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Is it the translator or editor who wrote which I can only guess &amp;quot;Kisara-san&amp;quot; as &amp;quot;Miss Kisara&amp;quot; in volume 01? [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 09:24, 28 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Gakusen_Toshi_Asterisk&amp;diff=356165</id>
		<title>Gakusen Toshi Asterisk</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Gakusen_Toshi_Asterisk&amp;diff=356165"/>
		<updated>2014-05-25T18:32:49Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Series Overview */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;[[File:Gakusen_v01_cover.jpg|thumb|250px]]&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Gakusen Toshi Asterisk&#039;&#039;&#039; (学戦都市アスタリスク) is a Japanese light novel series written by [[:Category:Yuu Miyazaki|Yuu Miyazaki]] with illustrations by okiura. The first volume of the novel was published on September 22, 2012. As of March 25, 2014, five volumes have been published by Media Factory under their MF Bunko J label. A manga adaptation by Ningen began its serialization in January 2013 in the Media Factory&#039;s seinen manga magazine, Comic Alive.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Story Synopsis==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;!-- from jcafe --&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
The Academy City on water, &amp;quot;Rikka&amp;quot;. This city, otherwise known as &#039;Asterisk&#039;, was famous for being the world&#039;s largest stage for the integrated battle entertainment &amp;lt;Star Wars Festival&amp;gt;. The young boys and girls of the &amp;lt;Starpulse Generation&amp;gt; belonging to the six academies made their wishes with Shining Armaments in their hands, vying for supremacy -- Amagiri Ayato is one of them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ayato arrived at Rikka at the invitation of the Student Council President of the Seidoukan Academy, Claudia, and right after that he incurred the wrath of the &amp;lt;Petalblaze Witch&amp;gt; Julis, and ended up having to duel her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Series Information==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*&#039;&#039;&#039;Genre&#039;&#039;&#039;: Action, Science Fiction, School, Romantic Comedy&lt;br /&gt;
*&#039;&#039;&#039;Original Title&#039;&#039;&#039;: 学戦都市アスタリスク&lt;br /&gt;
*&#039;&#039;&#039;Author&#039;&#039;&#039;: Yuu Miyazaki&lt;br /&gt;
*&#039;&#039;&#039;Ilustrator&#039;&#039;&#039;: okiura&lt;br /&gt;
*&#039;&#039;&#039;Published Volume&#039;&#039;&#039;: 1-5&lt;br /&gt;
*&#039;&#039;&#039;Series Status&#039;&#039;&#039;: Ongoing&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Format Standards===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Every chapter (after editing) must conform to the general format guidelines.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Format_guideline|General Format/Style Guideline]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Terminology and Guidelines]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Registration Page|Registration page]]===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Translators are asked to [[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Registration Page|Register]] the chapters they want to work on.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Feedback Thread===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;If you enjoyed the translation, why don&#039;t you tell us at the [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=15&amp;amp;t=5536 Feedback Thread].&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Updates==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*&#039;&#039;&#039;30-Jul-2013&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*Gakusen Toshi Asterisk project started&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*&#039;&#039;&#039;18-Aug-2013&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
**Volume 1 completed&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*&#039;&#039;&#039;08-Sep-2013&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
**Volume 2 completed&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*&#039;&#039;&#039;06-Dec-2013&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
**Volume 3 completed&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*&#039;&#039;&#039;31-Jan-2014&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
**Volume 4 completed&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*&#039;&#039;&#039;25-May-2014&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
**Volume 5 completed&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Gakusen Toshi Asterisk by Yuu Miyazaki==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Please go here to get full volumes in ([http://www.mediafire.com/folder/6e41mou1aipa5/ MOBI]) format&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 1 - A Chance Meeting with the Flame Princess ([[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume1|Full Text]])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Gakusen_v01_cover.jpg|thumb|x180px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume1_Illustrations|Novel Ilustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume1_Chapter1|Chapter 1 - {{furigana|The Petalblaze Witch|Gruene Rose}}]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume1_Chapter2|Chapter 2 - War-Academy City]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume1_Chapter3|Chapter 3 - Noble Eyes]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume1_Chapter4|Chapter 4 - Reminiscence and Reunion]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume1_Chapter5|Chapter 5 - Demon Sword of the Black Furnace]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume1_Chapter6|Chapter 6 - The Pair&#039;s Day Off]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume1_Chapter7|Chapter 7 - Liberator]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume1_Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 2 - The Silver Beauty&#039;s Awakening ([[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume2|Full Text]])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Gakusen v02 cover.jpg|thumb|x180px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume2_Illustrations|Novel Ilustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume2_Chapter1|Chapter 1 - Rikka Garden Council]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume2_Chapter2|Chapter 2 - The Dusk Owl&#039;s Secret Movements]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume2_Chapter3|Chapter 3 - Gusting Wind, Bladed Thunder]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume2_Chapter4|Chapter 4 - Entangled Motives]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume2_Chapter5|Chapter 5 - Her True Face]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume2_Chapter6|Chapter 6 - Evil in the Shadows]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume2_Chapter7|Chapter 7 - Resolve and Resolution]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume2_Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 3 - The Phoenix Rebellious Warrior ([[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume3|Full Text]])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Gakusen v03 cover.jpg|thumb|x180px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume3_Illustrations|Novel Ilustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume3_Chapter1|Chapter 1 - The Opening Eve]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume3_Chapter2|Chapter 2 - The {{furigana|Phoenix Star Warrior Festival|Phoenix}}]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume3_Chapter3|Chapter 3 - Ardi and Rimsi]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume3_Chapter4|Chapter 4 - The {{furigana|Violent Vampire Princess|Lamilexia}}]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume3_Chapter5|Chapter 5 - The Sisters of Le Wolfe]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume3_Chapter6|Chapter 6 - Power and Price]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume3_Chapter7|Chapter 7 - The {{furigana|Bloody Scythe of Supreme Destruction|Gravi-Sheath}}]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume3_Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 4 - Shattered Recollection ([[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume4|Full Text]])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Gakusen v04 cover.jpg|thumb|x180px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume4_Illustrations|Novel Ilustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume4_Chapter1|Chapter 1 - The Master of World Dragon]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume4_Chapter2|Chapter 2 - The Fifth Round]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume4_Chapter3|Chapter 3 - The Visitor]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume4_Chapter4|Chapter 4 - Hesitation]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume4_Chapter5|Chapter 5 - Elder Sister and Childhood Friend]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume4_Chapter6|Chapter 6 - The Second Key]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume4_Chapter7|Chapter 7 - Unyielding Feelings]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume4_Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 5 - Phoenix Champion&#039;s Decisive Battle ([[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume5|Full Text]])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[File:Gakusen v05 cover.jpg|thumb|x180px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume5_Illustrations|Novel Ilustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume5_Chapter1|Chapter 1 - The First Semifinal Match]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume5_Chapter2|Chapter 2 - Unscrupulous Winding Thread]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume5_Chapter3|Chapter 3 - The Second Semifinal Match]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume5_Chapter4|Chapter 4 - Efforts]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume5_Chapter5|Chapter 5 - A Chance Meeting]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume5_Chapter6|Chapter 6 - Each Decisive Battle]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume5_Chapter7|Chapter 7 - Post-night Festival]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Gakusen Toshi Asterisk:Volume5_Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Project Staff==&lt;br /&gt;
* Supervisor:&lt;br /&gt;
* Project Manager:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==== Translators ====&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Active&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[user:‎Setsuna86|‎Setsuna86]]([http://setsuna86blog.wordpress.com Blog])&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Hiyono|Hiyono]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Inactive&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==== Editors ====&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Active&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:denormative|denormative]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Aoi uchuu|Aoi uchuu]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Dual Blades|Dual Blades]] &lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Yascob99|&amp;lt;span style=&amp;quot;color:green&amp;quot;&amp;gt;Yascob99]](Editting for Setsuna before it gets to BT. [http://setsuna86blog.wordpress.com Blog])&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Inactive&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:AshenRaven|AshenRaven]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Series Overview==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:MF Bunko J]]&lt;br /&gt;
  &lt;br /&gt;
Gakusen Toshi Asterisk 01.A Chance Meeting with the Flame Princess (学戦都市アスタリスク 01 姫焔邂逅) (September 22, 2012)  ISBN 978-4840148238&amp;lt;br /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
Gakusen Toshi Asterisk 02.The Silver Beauty&#039;s Awakening (学戦都市アスタリスク 02 銀綺覚醒) (January 24, 2013)  ISBN 978-4840149631&amp;lt;br /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
Gakusen Toshi Asterisk 03.The Phoenix Rebellious Warrior (学戦都市アスタリスク 03 鳳凰乱武) (May 23, 2013)  ISBN 978-4840151887&amp;lt;br /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
Gakusen Toshi Asterisk 04.Shattered Recollection (学戦都市アスタリスク 04 追憶闘破) (September 25, 2013) ISBN 978-4840154178&amp;lt;br /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
Gakusen Toshi Asterisk 05.Phoenix Champion&#039;s Decisive Battle(学戦都市アスタリスク 05 覇凰決戦)(March 25,2014)ISBN 978-4-04-066311-1&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
Gakusen Toshi Asterisk 06. (学戦都市アスタリスク 06.　懐国凱戦)(June 25,2014)ISBN 978-4-04-066779-9&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Light novel (English)]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Yuu Miyazaki]]&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=User_talk:Yascob99&amp;diff=356009</id>
		<title>User talk:Yascob99</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=User_talk:Yascob99&amp;diff=356009"/>
		<updated>2014-05-25T06:14:27Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Put comments or questions you may have for me here: */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;===Put comments or questions you may have for me here:===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Try www.lrnj.com for kanji and stuff.&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis&amp;diff=355945</id>
		<title>Madan no Ou to Vanadis</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis&amp;diff=355945"/>
		<updated>2014-05-24T20:35:35Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;[[Image:Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis_Volume_01_cover.jpg|300px|thumb|Volume 1 cover]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The &#039;&#039;Madan no Ou to Vanadis&#039;&#039; series is also available in the following languages:&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Madan no Ou to Vanadis (Macedonian)|Македонски (Macedonian)]]&lt;br /&gt;
(Note: Translation progress varies for each version.)&lt;br /&gt;
----&lt;br /&gt;
Madan no Ou to Vanadis (魔弾の王と戦姫) is a light novel written by Tsukasa Kawaguchi (川口士) and illustrated by Yoshi☆o (よし☆ヲ), published by MF Bunko J.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The series currently has 9 volumes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A manga adaptation began in 2011, illustrated by Yanai Nobuhiko (柳井伸彦), published by Media Factory on Comic Flapper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The upcoming anime adaptation has been [http://www.animenewsnetwork.com/news/2013-07-28/madan-no-o-to-vanadis-light-novels-gets-tv-anime announced.]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Story Synopsis==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In times of war, set in Western Europe, Eleonora Viltaria, one of the seven Vanadis of Zhcted, leads the war into Brune. There are actually seven Vanadis, named like this because they each received a powerful weapon from the dragon, to reign over 7 territories, each possessing their own. The power of the Vanadis causes dread and fear toward their enemies. An Earl in the service of the country of Brune, a young archer called Tigre, got a taste of it after he was defeated on the battlefield&lt;br /&gt;
by Ellen (Eleonora). However, Ellen decided to spare his life after seeing his skills. In exchange, he is asked to serve Ellen...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Format Standards===&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Every Chapter (after editing) must conform to the general format guidelines.&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;br&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;All translations are to be in British English.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Format_guideline|General Format/Style Guideline]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Names and Terminology Guideline|Project specific Guidelines: Names and Terminology]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Registration Page|Registration]] ===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Translators are asked to [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Registration Page|register]] which chapters they&#039;re working on.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Feedback ===&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;If  you enjoyed the teasers, why don&#039;t you tell us in the  [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=23&amp;amp;t=5459 Feedback  thread]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Updates ==&lt;br /&gt;
*8 September 2012 - Madan no Ou to Vanadis teaser project begun&lt;br /&gt;
*8 September 2012 - Volume 1 Prologue completed&lt;br /&gt;
*14 September 2012 - Volume 1 Chapter 1 completed&lt;br /&gt;
*18 October 2012 - Volume 1 Preview completed&lt;br /&gt;
*25 October 2012 - Volume 3 Preview completed&lt;br /&gt;
*17 November 2012 - Volume 2, 4, 5 Preview completed&lt;br /&gt;
*27 June 2013 - Volume 6 completed&lt;br /&gt;
*03 November 2013 - Volume 7 completed&lt;br /&gt;
*11 April 2014 - Volume 8 completed&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==The &#039;&#039;Madan no Ou to Vanadis&#039;&#039; series by Tsukasa Kawaguchi==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 1 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Preview|Full Preview]] – [http://www.mediafire.com/?54nswoyy2kn0h16 Preview PDF]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis_Volume_01_cover.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume01_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume01_Prologue|Prologue]] [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Prologue_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume01_Chapter1|Chapter 1 - Encounter with the Vanadis]] [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Chapter1_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 2 - Leitmeritz [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Chapter2_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 3 - The Vanadis&#039; Invitation and the Maid&#039;s Prayer [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Chapter3_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 4 - The Life of a Public Official [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Chapter4_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 5 - The Vanadis&#039; Castle [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Chapter5_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 6 - Awakening of the Magic Bullet [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Chapter6_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Epilogue [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Epilogue_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 2 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Preview|Full Preview]] - [http://www.mediafire.com/?8weino2q111721k Preview PDF])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Vanadis V02 - Cover.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume02_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 1 - Dream of a Distant Day [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Chapter_1_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 2 - The Two Vanadis [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Chapter_2_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 3 - Territoire [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Chapter_3_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 4 - {{furigana|Snow Princess of the Frozen Wave|Michelia}} [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Chapter_4_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 5 - Cold Snow and Something Warm [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Chapter_5_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Epilogue [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Epilogue_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 3 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Preview|Full Preview]] - [http://www.mediafire.com/?bd1zlew18lwohzh Preview PDF]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Vanadis V03 - Cover.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume03_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 1 - Black Knight [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Chapter_1_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 2 - Ganelon&#039;s Plan [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Chapter_2_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 3 - {{furigana|Brilliant Princess of the Light Flower|Presuvet}} [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Chapter_3_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 4 - Sword of Invincibility [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Chapter_4_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 5 - Tir na Fal [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Chapter_5_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Epilogue [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Epilogue_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 4 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Preview|Full Preview]] - [http://www.mediafire.com/?hb4i0u0go6r4b6g Preview PDF])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Vanadis V04 - Cover.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume04_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 1 - Temporary Farewell [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Chapter_1_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 2 - Two Thousand and Twenty Thousand [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Chapter_2_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 3 - {{furigana|[Rainbow Eyes]|Laziris}} [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Chapter_3_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 4 - Gathering [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Chapter_4_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 5 - The Revelation [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Chapter_5_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Epilogue [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Epilogue_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 5 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Preview|Full Preview]] - [http://www.mediafire.com/?72aixyfnbb552h8 Preview PDF])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Vanadis V05 - Cover.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume05_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 1 - March of Dragons [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Chapter_1_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 2 - {{furigana|Fire Drake|Prani}} and {{furigana|Double Headed Dragon|Gara Dova}} [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Chapter_2_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 3 - Interlude [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Chapter_3_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 4 - {{furigana|Sacred Caverns of the Palace|Sangroel}} [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Chapter_4_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 5 - Decisive Battle [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Chapter_5_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Epilogue [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Epilogue_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 6 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06|Full Text]])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Vanadis V06 - Cover.jp.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume06_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06_Chapter_1_|Chapter 1 - Emissary]]&amp;lt;!--密使--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06_Chapter_2_|Chapter 2 - The Blue World and the Traveling Girl]]&amp;lt;!--碧の世界と旅の少女--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06_Chapter_3_|Chapter 3 - A Foreign Land]]&amp;lt;!--異国--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06_Chapter_4_|Chapter 4 - Tallard Graham]]&amp;lt;!--タラード＝グラム--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06_Chapter_5_|Chapter 5 - The Fall of Fort Lux]]&amp;lt;!--ルクス城砦攻略戦--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06_Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 7 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_07|Full text]])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Madan no Ou to Vanadis V7 Cover.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume07_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_07_Chapter_1_|Chapter 1 - Burning the Villages]]&amp;lt;!--村を、焼く--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_07_Chapter_2_|Chapter 2 - Cornered, and No Way Out]]&amp;lt;!--追いっめ、過いつめられて--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_07_Chapter_3_|Chapter 3 - A Ruler&#039;s Cruelty]]&amp;lt;!--為政者の非道--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_07_Chapter_4_|Chapter 4 - The {{furigana|Princess of the Dancing Blades|Cortisa}}]]&amp;lt;!--刃の舞姫--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 8 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_08|Full text]])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Madan no Ou to Vanadis V8 Cover.jpg|thumb|x210px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume08_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_08_Prologue_|Prologue]]&amp;lt;!--序--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_08_Chapter_1_|Chapter 1 - Olsina]]&amp;lt;!--オルシーナ--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_08_Chapter_2_|Chapter 2 - {{furigana|Bird of Fire|Phoenix}}]]&amp;lt;!--火の鳥--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_08_Chapter_3_|Chapter 3 - Successors]]&amp;lt;!--継承者たち--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_08_Chapter_4_|Chapter 4 - Behind the Scenes]]&amp;lt;!--暗躍--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 9 ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Madan no Ou to Vanadis V9 Cover.jpg|thumb|x210px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume09_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_09_Chapter_1_|Chapter 1 - Past and Fate]]&amp;lt;!--過去と因縁--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_09_Chapter_2_|Chapter 2 - Before Dawn]]&amp;lt;!--夜明け前--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_09_Chapter_3_|Chapter 3 - Departure]]&amp;lt;!--出発--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_09_Chapter_4_|Chapter 4 - Lebus&#039; daily]]&amp;lt;!--ルヴーシュの日々--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_09_Chapter_5_|Chapter 5 - Baba Yaga]]&amp;lt;!--バーバ=ヤガー--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Short story ===&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Short Story|Short Story]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Project Staff==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*Supervisor: N/A&lt;br /&gt;
*Project Manager: N/A&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Translators===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;ACTIVE&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[user:EnigmaticAxiom|EnigmaticAxiom]] - Preview (Machine) Script&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[user:Par74583|Par74583]] (short stories_CH)&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[user:‎Setsuna86|‎Setsuna86]]([http://setsuna86blog.wordpress.com Blog])&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;INACTIVE&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;small&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;RETIRED&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/small&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[user:Florza|Florza]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Editors===&lt;br /&gt;
All editors who speak English proficiently are welcomed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Alexpte|Alexpte]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Cliff|Cliff]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Roxcrosser|Roxcrosser]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[User:Genesis|Genesis]] &lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Chancs|Chancs]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Yumm|Yumm]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:EviL|EviL]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:krytyk|krytyk]] (Illustrations Editor)&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Tasear|Tasear]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:ZAIZEAH|ZAIZEAH]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Zack77070|Zack77070]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Memento Mori|Memento Mori]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Dual Blades|Dual Blades]] ( I edit whole chapter(s) as they are released)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;small&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;TLC&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/small&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Kira0802|Kira0802]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Series Overview ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉 (25 April 2011, ISBN 978-4-8401-3857-4)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉2 (25 August 2011, ISBN 978-4-8401-3970-0)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉3 (22 December 2011, ISBN 978-4-8401-4339-4)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉4 (25 April 2012, ISBN 978-4-8401-4553-4)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉5 (24 August 2012, ISBN 978-4-8401-4685-2)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉6 (25 January 2013, ISBN 978-4-8401-4962-4)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉7 (25 July 2013, ISBN 978-4-8401-5187-0)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉8 (24 January 2014,ISBN 978-4-04-066154-4)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉9 (23 May 2014,ISBN 978-4-04-066749-2)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:MF Bunko J]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Genre - Action]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Light novel (English)]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Tsukasa Kawaguchi]]&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis&amp;diff=355399</id>
		<title>Madan no Ou to Vanadis</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis&amp;diff=355399"/>
		<updated>2014-05-23T03:02:52Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* The Madan no Ou to Vanadis series by Tsukasa Kawaguchi */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;[[Image:Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis_Volume_01_cover.jpg|300px|thumb|Volume 1 cover]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The &#039;&#039;Madan no Ou to Vanadis&#039;&#039; series is also available in the following languages:&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Madan no Ou to Vanadis (Macedonian)|Македонски (Macedonian)]]&lt;br /&gt;
(Note: Translation progress varies for each version.)&lt;br /&gt;
----&lt;br /&gt;
Madan no Ou to Vanadis (魔弾の王と戦姫) is a light novel written by Tsukasa Kawaguchi (川口士) and illustrated by Yoshi☆o (よし☆ヲ), published by MF Bunko J.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The series currently has 8 volumes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A manga adaptation began in 2011, illustrated by Yanai Nobuhiko (柳井伸彦), published by Media Factory on Comic Flapper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The upcoming anime adaptation has been [http://www.animenewsnetwork.com/news/2013-07-28/madan-no-o-to-vanadis-light-novels-gets-tv-anime announced.]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Story Synopsis==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In times of war, set in Western Europe, Eleonora Viltaria, one of the seven Vanadis of Zhcted, leads the war into Brune. There are actually seven Vanadis, named like this because they each received a powerful weapon from the dragon, to reign over 7 territories, each possessing their own. The power of the Vanadis causes dread and fear toward their enemies. An Earl in the service of the country of Brune, a young archer called Tigre, got a taste of it after he was defeated on the battlefield&lt;br /&gt;
by Ellen (Eleonora). However, Ellen decided to spare his life after seeing his skills. In exchange, he is asked to serve Ellen...&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Translation==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Format Standards===&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Every Chapter (after editing) must conform to the general format guidelines.&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;br&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;All translations are to be in British English.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Format_guideline|General Format/Style Guideline]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Names and Terminology Guideline|Project specific Guidelines: Names and Terminology]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Registration Page|Registration]] ===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Translators are asked to [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Registration Page|register]] which chapters they&#039;re working on.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Feedback ===&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;If  you enjoyed the teasers, why don&#039;t you tell us in the  [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=23&amp;amp;t=5459 Feedback  thread]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Updates ==&lt;br /&gt;
*8 September 2012 - Madan no Ou to Vanadis teaser project begun&lt;br /&gt;
*8 September 2012 - Volume 1 Prologue completed&lt;br /&gt;
*14 September 2012 - Volume 1 Chapter 1 completed&lt;br /&gt;
*18 October 2012 - Volume 1 Preview completed&lt;br /&gt;
*25 October 2012 - Volume 3 Preview completed&lt;br /&gt;
*17 November 2012 - Volume 2, 4, 5 Preview completed&lt;br /&gt;
*27 June 2013 - Volume 6 completed&lt;br /&gt;
*03 November 2013 - Volume 7 completed&lt;br /&gt;
*11 April 2014 - Volume 8 completed&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==The &#039;&#039;Madan no Ou to Vanadis&#039;&#039; series by Tsukasa Kawaguchi==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 1 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Preview|Full Preview]] – [http://www.mediafire.com/?54nswoyy2kn0h16 Preview PDF]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis_Volume_01_cover.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume01_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume01_Prologue|Prologue]] [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Prologue_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume01_Chapter1|Chapter 1 - Encounter with the Vanadis]] [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Chapter1_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 2 - Leitmeritz [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Chapter2_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 3 - The Vanadis&#039; Invitation and the Maid&#039;s Prayer [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Chapter3_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 4 - The Life of a Public Official [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Chapter4_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 5 - The Vanadis&#039; Castle [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Chapter5_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 6 - Awakening of the Magic Bullet [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Chapter6_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Epilogue [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_01_Epilogue_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 2 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Preview|Full Preview]] - [http://www.mediafire.com/?8weino2q111721k Preview PDF])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Vanadis V02 - Cover.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume02_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 1 - Dream of a Distant Day [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Chapter_1_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 2 - The Two Vanadis [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Chapter_2_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 3 - Territoire [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Chapter_3_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 4 - {{furigana|Snow Princess of the Frozen Wave|Michelia}} [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Chapter_4_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 5 - Cold Snow and Something Warm [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Chapter_5_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Epilogue [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_02_Epilogue_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 3 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Preview|Full Preview]] - [http://www.mediafire.com/?bd1zlew18lwohzh Preview PDF]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Vanadis V03 - Cover.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume03_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 1 - Black Knight [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Chapter_1_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 2 - Ganelon&#039;s Plan [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Chapter_2_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 3 - {{furigana|Brilliant Princess of the Light Flower|Presuvet}} [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Chapter_3_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 4 - Sword of Invincibility [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Chapter_4_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 5 - Tir na Fal [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Chapter_5_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Epilogue [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_03_Epilogue_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 4 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Preview|Full Preview]] - [http://www.mediafire.com/?hb4i0u0go6r4b6g Preview PDF])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Vanadis V04 - Cover.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume04_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 1 - Temporary Farewell [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Chapter_1_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 2 - Two Thousand and Twenty Thousand [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Chapter_2_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 3 - {{furigana|[Rainbow Eyes]|Laziris}} [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Chapter_3_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 4 - Gathering [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Chapter_4_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 5 - The Revelation [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Chapter_5_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Epilogue [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_04_Epilogue_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Volume 5 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Preview|Full Preview]] - [http://www.mediafire.com/?72aixyfnbb552h8 Preview PDF])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Vanadis V05 - Cover.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume05_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 1 - March of Dragons [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Chapter_1_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 2 - {{furigana|Fire Drake|Prani}} and {{furigana|Double Headed Dragon|Gara Dova}} [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Chapter_2_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 3 - Interlude [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Chapter_3_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 4 - {{furigana|Sacred Caverns of the Palace|Sangroel}} [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Chapter_4_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Chapter 5 - Decisive Battle [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Chapter_5_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*Epilogue [[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_05_Epilogue_Preview|(Preview)]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 6 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06|Full Text]])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Vanadis V06 - Cover.jp.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume06_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06_Chapter_1_|Chapter 1 - Emissary]]&amp;lt;!--密使--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06_Chapter_2_|Chapter 2 - The Blue World and the Traveling Girl]]&amp;lt;!--碧の世界と旅の少女--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06_Chapter_3_|Chapter 3 - A Foreign Land]]&amp;lt;!--異国--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06_Chapter_4_|Chapter 4 - Tallard Graham]]&amp;lt;!--タラード＝グラム--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06_Chapter_5_|Chapter 5 - The Fall of Fort Lux]]&amp;lt;!--ルクス城砦攻略戦--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_06_Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 7 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_07|Full text]])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Madan no Ou to Vanadis V7 Cover.jpg|thumb|x175px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume07_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_07_Chapter_1_|Chapter 1 - Burning the Villages]]&amp;lt;!--村を、焼く--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_07_Chapter_2_|Chapter 2 - Cornered, and No Way Out]]&amp;lt;!--追いっめ、過いつめられて--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_07_Chapter_3_|Chapter 3 - A Ruler&#039;s Cruelty]]&amp;lt;!--為政者の非道--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_07_Chapter_4_|Chapter 4 - The {{furigana|Princess of the Dancing Blades|Cortisa}}]]&amp;lt;!--刃の舞姫--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 8 ([[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_08|Full text]])===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Madan no Ou to Vanadis V8 Cover.jpg|thumb|x210px]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume08_Illustrations|Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_08_Prologue_|Prologue]]&amp;lt;!--序--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_08_Chapter_1_|Chapter 1 - Olsina]]&amp;lt;!--オルシーナ--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_08_Chapter_2_|Chapter 2 - {{furigana|Bird of Fire|Phoenix}}]]&amp;lt;!--火の鳥--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_08_Chapter_3_|Chapter 3 - Successors]]&amp;lt;!--継承者たち--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Volume_08_Chapter_4_|Chapter 4 - Behind the Scenes]]&amp;lt;!--暗躍--&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 9 ===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Short story ===&lt;br /&gt;
::*[[Madan_no_Ou_to_Vanadis:Short Story|Short Story]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Project Staff==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*Supervisor: N/A&lt;br /&gt;
*Project Manager: N/A&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Translators===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;ACTIVE&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[user:EnigmaticAxiom|EnigmaticAxiom]] - Preview (Machine) Script&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[user:Par74583|Par74583]] (short stories_CH)&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[user:‎Setsuna86|‎Setsuna86]]([http://setsuna86blog.wordpress.com Blog] - not yet complete!)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;INACTIVE&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;small&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;RETIRED&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/small&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[user:Florza|Florza]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Editors===&lt;br /&gt;
All editors who speak English proficiently are welcomed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Alexpte|Alexpte]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Cliff|Cliff]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Roxcrosser|Roxcrosser]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[User:Genesis|Genesis]] &lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Chancs|Chancs]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Yumm|Yumm]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:EviL|EviL]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:krytyk|krytyk]] (Illustrations Editor)&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Tasear|Tasear]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:ZAIZEAH|ZAIZEAH]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Zack77070|Zack77070]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Memento Mori|Memento Mori]]&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Dual Blades|Dual Blades]] ( I edit whole chapter(s) as they are released)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;small&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;TLC&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/small&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
:* [[User:Kira0802|Kira0802]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Series Overview ==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;big&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;Light Novel&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/big&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉 (25 April 2011, ISBN 978-4-8401-3857-4)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉2 (25 August 2011, ISBN 978-4-8401-3970-0)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉3 (22 December 2011, ISBN 978-4-8401-4339-4)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉4 (25 April 2012, ISBN 978-4-8401-4553-4)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉5 (24 August 2012, ISBN 978-4-8401-4685-2)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉6 (25 January 2013, ISBN 978-4-8401-4962-4)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉7 (25 July 2013, ISBN 978-4-8401-5187-0)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉8 (24 January 2014,ISBN 978-4-04-066154-4)&lt;br /&gt;
#魔弾の王と戦姫〈ヴァナディース〉9 (23 May 2014,ISBN 978-4-04-066749-2)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;big&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;Manga&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/big&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
*魔弾の王と戦姫 1 (23 April 2012,ISBN 978-4840144575) &lt;br /&gt;
*魔弾の王と戦姫 2 (23 January 2013,ISBN 978-4840147897) &lt;br /&gt;
*魔弾の王と戦姫 3 (23 March 2013,ISBN 978-4840150354) &lt;br /&gt;
*魔弾の王と戦姫 4 (23 October 2013,ISBN 978-4840153416) &lt;br /&gt;
*魔弾の王と戦姫 5 (23 April 2014,ISBN 978-4040665450) &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:MF Bunko J]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Genre - Action]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Light novel (English)]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Tsukasa Kawaguchi]]&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Mondaiji-tachi_ga_isekai_kara_kuru_soudesu_yo&amp;diff=355321</id>
		<title>Talk:Mondaiji-tachi ga isekai kara kuru soudesu yo</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Mondaiji-tachi_ga_isekai_kara_kuru_soudesu_yo&amp;diff=355321"/>
		<updated>2014-05-22T21:54:56Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;Lets start up this discussion page since this has been picked up :3 [[User:All Nighter94|All Night]] ([[User talk:All Nighter94|talk]])&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;ll just assume from the volume titles that the anime covers the first two volumes, though not 100% sure of how detailed until after it has been translated and I&#039;ve read though. Thanks to [[user: Firebird|Firebird]], [[user: Mizuho|Mizuho]], and [[user: Drinkingwater|Drinkingwater]] for this :3. [[User:All Nighter94|All Night]] ([[User talk:All Nighter94|talk]]) 10:37, 24 April 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I love you for doing this. [[User:Astralmeson|Astralmeson]] ([[User talk:Astralmeson|talk]]) 11:27, 21 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Actually, quick question. Are you consistently using &amp;quot;Lily&amp;quot; or &amp;quot;Riri&amp;quot; for the fox-girl- I saw it written both ways in Vol3Ch2. [[User:Astralmeson|Astralmeson]]([[User talk:Astralmeson|talk]]) 1:47, 24 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just another question: why do you call Pest &amp;quot;Percher&amp;quot; when the original text writes it as &amp;quot;Pest&amp;quot; (or PESUTO, to be exact).?--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 08:10, 23 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Hi Kemm! In regards to your question, do you mean calling Pest &amp;quot;Percher&amp;quot; in Volume 3 or 5? If so, then it is just because magref has an affinity for calling Pest &amp;quot;Percher&amp;quot;. Percher is his favorite character and while it is easier to simply call her Pest, magref prefers to call her Percher. To each his own I guess ¯\_(ツ)_/¯ - [[User:BionicMeerkat|BionicMeerkat]] ([[User talk:BionicMeerkat|talk]]) 08:49, 23 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
:: Good, then. But I won&#039;t touch five until four is due. As a side note, I know that Percher is one of Pest&#039;s titles (or a part of it), but I haven&#039;t found any reason to back it up (the most similar meaning would be someone who treats skin to make leather), so may I suppose it is an archaism?--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 15:35, 23 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
:::Sorry about the late reply! Firebird responded in the BT forums about the Percher/Pest name and and said her name was Pest while her Gift Name is [Black Percher]. Thus, we decided to include this note: This is a name that has been made from the pronunciation of her name. Pronunciation of it in jap is Pest. But since the author is playing with pronunciation and did not write Pest explicitly, the translator is also feinting ignorance and calling her Percher. At the end of volume 6, a poll will be held to decide if her name is to be called Pest or Percher. Hope this helps! - [[User:BionicMeerkat|BionicMeerkat]] ([[User talk:BionicMeerkat|talk]]) 20:15, 23 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
== Mondaiji-tachi Volume 9? ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
About the newest release, you guys written it as Volume 9 but at a lot of the Chinese Translated Version of Mondaji-tachi, it says Volume 8.5... Are you sure that it&#039;s Volume 9?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just one small question, we sure that the 10th book is actually gonna be out on &amp;quot;April First&amp;quot;? or is it an &amp;quot;April First&amp;quot;? [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 16:25, 1 March 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:To the question of is it Volume 8.5 or 9, it is Volume 9. They are currently selling all the released Volumes over in the Japan Amazon and it lists it as 1-9. [http://www.amazon.co.jp/%E5%95%8F%E9%A1%8C%E5%85%90%E3%81%9F%E3%81%A1%E3%81%8C%E7%95%B0%E4%B8%96%E7%95%8C%E3%81%8B%E3%82%89%E6%9D%A5%E3%82%8B%E3%81%9D%E3%81%86%E3%81%A7%E3%81%99%E3%82%88-%E6%96%87%E5%BA%AB-1-9%E5%B7%BB%E3%82%BB%E3%83%83%E3%83%88-%E8%A7%92%E5%B7%9D%E3%82%B9%E3%83%8B%E3%83%BC%E3%82%AB%E3%83%BC%E6%96%87%E5%BA%AB-%E7%AB%9C%E3%83%8E%E6%B9%96/dp/B00GM69H64/ref=sr_1_19?s=books&amp;amp;ie=UTF8&amp;amp;qid=1393708688&amp;amp;sr=1-19&amp;amp;keywords=%E5%95%8F%E9%A1%8C%E5%85%90%E3%81%9F%E3%81%A1%E3%81%8C%E7%95%B0%E4%B8%96%E7%95%8C%E3%81%8B%E3%82%89%E6%9D%A5%E3%82%8B%E3%81%9D%E3%81%86%E3%81%A7%E3%81%99%E3%82%88 Volume Set]. In regards to the 10th book, Sneaker Bunko always puts out a list of LN that will be released and Mondaiji was confirmed to be in the list. The date for its release is April 1st, 2014. It is the one at the very bottom of the this [http://sneakerbunko.jp/release/next.php page]. Hope this helps! - [[User:BionicMeerkat|BionicMeerkat]] ([[User talk:BionicMeerkat|talk]]) 16:36, 1 March 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 1 ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just throwing this quick question out there, but is volume 1 going to be completely translated or not? just wondering before i try and start reading this series would like to know and thanks for translating guys i would do it myself if i could lol&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I believe, the first and second volumes are pretty much covered in the anime. [[User:All Nighter94|All Night]] ([[User talk:All Nighter94|talk]]) 14:48, 17 April 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I have read volume 2 and watched the anime and there is not much difference in them to be honest&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Sakamachi Izayoi ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leaving aside all the references to the &amp;quot;sixteenth day moon&amp;quot; throughout the series, Izayoi&#039;s true identity (and his Gift) are treated as a key point. At volume 5, the Saurian Demon King mentioned that he has the same body type as Sun Wukong and seemed to have guessed his true identity. Also, I&#039;ve just noticed that Izayoi&#039;s motto of &amp;quot;The heavens did not create man above myself&amp;quot; is very similar to a quote credited to Sun Wukong. Would that hint to some kind of relation, despite Izayoi being a pure human and Sun Wukong unable to reincarnate?--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 09:13, 11 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Images ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
there is someone able to upload or find HQ images for volumes 1-5?&lt;br /&gt;
i&#039;ve started reading the novel with the epub downloaded and i&#039;ve noticed that the images are not really good until volume 6.&lt;br /&gt;
i&#039;ve tried looking around for the raws but i haven&#039;t found any HQ ones :(&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
got it, i will upload it soon..&lt;br /&gt;
just volume 1-5 right?? [[User:Zechs|Zechs]] ([[User talk:Zechs|talk]]) 13:09, 14 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
thx for the fast reply :)the ones in volume 1 seems good (the epub is not out yet so i&#039;ve read it with the app). i&#039;ve rechecked the illustrations for all the volumes and it seems that besides the volumes 2-5 the others are all HQ though in some volumes there isn&#039;t the &amp;quot;next volume preview&amp;quot; image (the ones with the chibi characters).&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Strom? ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strom is a german word and means electricity or current. But they mean Storm an that would be Sturm or Gewitter or Unwetter in german.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 04 afterword ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I added a suggestion and I request for future readers a link to return to and/or continue to the next volume to be added to the end be done too. [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 07:36, 20 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 05 ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Interlude Sun Wu-Kong is referred to as a &amp;quot;her&amp;quot; is that how the author wrote it? Cause I thought that Sun Wu-Kong is a he and &amp;quot;he&amp;quot; was reference in earlier chapters as such. [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 16:54, 22 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Mondaiji-tachi_ga_isekai_kara_kuru_soudesu_yo&amp;diff=354805</id>
		<title>Talk:Mondaiji-tachi ga isekai kara kuru soudesu yo</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Mondaiji-tachi_ga_isekai_kara_kuru_soudesu_yo&amp;diff=354805"/>
		<updated>2014-05-20T12:36:33Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;Lets start up this discussion page since this has been picked up :3 [[User:All Nighter94|All Night]] ([[User talk:All Nighter94|talk]])&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I&#039;ll just assume from the volume titles that the anime covers the first two volumes, though not 100% sure of how detailed until after it has been translated and I&#039;ve read though. Thanks to [[user: Firebird|Firebird]], [[user: Mizuho|Mizuho]], and [[user: Drinkingwater|Drinkingwater]] for this :3. [[User:All Nighter94|All Night]] ([[User talk:All Nighter94|talk]]) 10:37, 24 April 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I love you for doing this. [[User:Astralmeson|Astralmeson]] ([[User talk:Astralmeson|talk]]) 11:27, 21 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Actually, quick question. Are you consistently using &amp;quot;Lily&amp;quot; or &amp;quot;Riri&amp;quot; for the fox-girl- I saw it written both ways in Vol3Ch2. [[User:Astralmeson|Astralmeson]]([[User talk:Astralmeson|talk]]) 1:47, 24 June 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just another question: why do you call Pest &amp;quot;Percher&amp;quot; when the original text writes it as &amp;quot;Pest&amp;quot; (or PESUTO, to be exact).?--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 08:10, 23 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:Hi Kemm! In regards to your question, do you mean calling Pest &amp;quot;Percher&amp;quot; in Volume 3 or 5? If so, then it is just because magref has an affinity for calling Pest &amp;quot;Percher&amp;quot;. Percher is his favorite character and while it is easier to simply call her Pest, magref prefers to call her Percher. To each his own I guess ¯\_(ツ)_/¯ - [[User:BionicMeerkat|BionicMeerkat]] ([[User talk:BionicMeerkat|talk]]) 08:49, 23 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
:: Good, then. But I won&#039;t touch five until four is due. As a side note, I know that Percher is one of Pest&#039;s titles (or a part of it), but I haven&#039;t found any reason to back it up (the most similar meaning would be someone who treats skin to make leather), so may I suppose it is an archaism?--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 15:35, 23 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
:::Sorry about the late reply! Firebird responded in the BT forums about the Percher/Pest name and and said her name was Pest while her Gift Name is [Black Percher]. Thus, we decided to include this note: This is a name that has been made from the pronunciation of her name. Pronunciation of it in jap is Pest. But since the author is playing with pronunciation and did not write Pest explicitly, the translator is also feinting ignorance and calling her Percher. At the end of volume 6, a poll will be held to decide if her name is to be called Pest or Percher. Hope this helps! - [[User:BionicMeerkat|BionicMeerkat]] ([[User talk:BionicMeerkat|talk]]) 20:15, 23 February 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
== Mondaiji-tachi Volume 9? ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
About the newest release, you guys written it as Volume 9 but at a lot of the Chinese Translated Version of Mondaji-tachi, it says Volume 8.5... Are you sure that it&#039;s Volume 9?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just one small question, we sure that the 10th book is actually gonna be out on &amp;quot;April First&amp;quot;? or is it an &amp;quot;April First&amp;quot;? [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 16:25, 1 March 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:To the question of is it Volume 8.5 or 9, it is Volume 9. They are currently selling all the released Volumes over in the Japan Amazon and it lists it as 1-9. [http://www.amazon.co.jp/%E5%95%8F%E9%A1%8C%E5%85%90%E3%81%9F%E3%81%A1%E3%81%8C%E7%95%B0%E4%B8%96%E7%95%8C%E3%81%8B%E3%82%89%E6%9D%A5%E3%82%8B%E3%81%9D%E3%81%86%E3%81%A7%E3%81%99%E3%82%88-%E6%96%87%E5%BA%AB-1-9%E5%B7%BB%E3%82%BB%E3%83%83%E3%83%88-%E8%A7%92%E5%B7%9D%E3%82%B9%E3%83%8B%E3%83%BC%E3%82%AB%E3%83%BC%E6%96%87%E5%BA%AB-%E7%AB%9C%E3%83%8E%E6%B9%96/dp/B00GM69H64/ref=sr_1_19?s=books&amp;amp;ie=UTF8&amp;amp;qid=1393708688&amp;amp;sr=1-19&amp;amp;keywords=%E5%95%8F%E9%A1%8C%E5%85%90%E3%81%9F%E3%81%A1%E3%81%8C%E7%95%B0%E4%B8%96%E7%95%8C%E3%81%8B%E3%82%89%E6%9D%A5%E3%82%8B%E3%81%9D%E3%81%86%E3%81%A7%E3%81%99%E3%82%88 Volume Set]. In regards to the 10th book, Sneaker Bunko always puts out a list of LN that will be released and Mondaiji was confirmed to be in the list. The date for its release is April 1st, 2014. It is the one at the very bottom of the this [http://sneakerbunko.jp/release/next.php page]. Hope this helps! - [[User:BionicMeerkat|BionicMeerkat]] ([[User talk:BionicMeerkat|talk]]) 16:36, 1 March 2014 (CST)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 1 ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just throwing this quick question out there, but is volume 1 going to be completely translated or not? just wondering before i try and start reading this series would like to know and thanks for translating guys i would do it myself if i could lol&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I believe, the first and second volumes are pretty much covered in the anime. [[User:All Nighter94|All Night]] ([[User talk:All Nighter94|talk]]) 14:48, 17 April 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I have read volume 2 and watched the anime and there is not much difference in them to be honest&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Sakamachi Izayoi ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Leaving aside all the references to the &amp;quot;sixteenth day moon&amp;quot; throughout the series, Izayoi&#039;s true identity (and his Gift) are treated as a key point. At volume 5, the Saurian Demon King mentioned that he has the same body type as Sun Wukong and seemed to have guessed his true identity. Also, I&#039;ve just noticed that Izayoi&#039;s motto of &amp;quot;The heavens did not create man above myself&amp;quot; is very similar to a quote credited to Sun Wukong. Would that hint to some kind of relation, despite Izayoi being a pure human and Sun Wukong unable to reincarnate?--[[User:Kemm|Kemm]] ([[User talk:Kemm|talk]]) 09:13, 11 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Images ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
there is someone able to upload or find HQ images for volumes 1-5?&lt;br /&gt;
i&#039;ve started reading the novel with the epub downloaded and i&#039;ve noticed that the images are not really good until volume 6.&lt;br /&gt;
i&#039;ve tried looking around for the raws but i haven&#039;t found any HQ ones :(&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
got it, i will upload it soon..&lt;br /&gt;
just volume 1-5 right?? [[User:Zechs|Zechs]] ([[User talk:Zechs|talk]]) 13:09, 14 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
thx for the fast reply :)the ones in volume 1 seems good (the epub is not out yet so i&#039;ve read it with the app). i&#039;ve rechecked the illustrations for all the volumes and it seems that besides the volumes 2-5 the others are all HQ though in some volumes there isn&#039;t the &amp;quot;next volume preview&amp;quot; image (the ones with the chibi characters).&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Strom? ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strom is a german word and means electricity or current. But they mean Storm an that would be Sturm or Gewitter or Unwetter in german.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Volume 04 afterword ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
I added a suggestion and I request for future readers a link to return to and/or continue to the next volume to be added to the end be done too. [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 07:36, 20 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Mondaiji-tachi_ga_isekai_kara_kuru_soudesu_yo:Volume_4_Afterwords&amp;diff=354804</id>
		<title>Talk:Mondaiji-tachi ga isekai kara kuru soudesu yo:Volume 4 Afterwords</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Mondaiji-tachi_ga_isekai_kara_kuru_soudesu_yo:Volume_4_Afterwords&amp;diff=354804"/>
		<updated>2014-05-20T12:33:49Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: Created page with &amp;quot;I think it should be &amp;quot;Kuro Usagi &amp;#039;&amp;#039;&amp;#039;hasn&amp;#039;t&amp;#039;&amp;#039;&amp;#039; been teased enough&amp;quot; here.&amp;quot;&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;I think it should be &amp;quot;Kuro Usagi &#039;&#039;&#039;hasn&#039;t&#039;&#039;&#039; been teased enough&amp;quot; here.&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi&amp;diff=354095</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi&amp;diff=354095"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T16:29:26Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;[[Image:Seikoku cover.jpg|280px|thumb|Volume 1 cover]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039; (星刻の竜騎士, lit. &#039;&#039;The Star-Marked {{furigana|Dragon Knight|Dragner}}&#039;&#039;), also very well known as &#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;Seikoku no Dragner&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;&#039;, is a Japanese light novel series written by Shiki Mizuchi and illustrated by Kohada Shimesaba. The series has currently 15 volumes and is published by [http://ja.wikipedia.org/wiki/MF%E6%96%87%E5%BA%ABJ/MF_Bunko_J MF Bunko J]. Anime series started aring from April 5th,2014. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Story Synopsis ==&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan Dragon Riding Academy is for boys and girls who had made contracts with dragons. Ash Blake had a Seikoku on his hand, a proof of being a contractor, but he didn&#039;t have any dragons for his partner. One day, a dragon within him wakes up from a certain incident. However, the dragon that appeared was different from other dragons. It wasn&#039;t in a form of a dragon but had a form of a girl!? &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;&#039;&#039;You&#039;&#039; are not my master; &#039;&#039;I&#039;m&#039;&#039; the one who is your master,&amp;quot; she says.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Courtesy of FairGame&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Story Arcs ===&lt;br /&gt;
Story Arc 1: &#039;&#039;&#039;The Knight of Eco&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
* Volumes 1–5&lt;br /&gt;
Story Arc 2: &#039;&#039;&#039;The Avalon Knight Dragner&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;!-- Official English romanization confirmed by author according to RAWs --&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
* Volumes 6–10&lt;br /&gt;
Story Arc 3: &#039;&#039;&#039;The Ancient Bloodline&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
* Volumes 11–present&lt;br /&gt;
                                                    		                          				                          									  			                                                        		                          				                          									  &lt;br /&gt;
== Translation == &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi:Registration Page|Registration]] ===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Translators are asked to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi:Registration Page|register]] for chapters they want to work on&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Format Standards===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;Every Chapter (after editing) must conform to the general format guidelines.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Format_guideline|General Format/Style Guideline]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Names and Terminology Guidelines]]&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;All edited translations are to be in British English.&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Appreciation===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;If you appreciate the efforts of the translators/editors of the Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi Baka-tsuki Project, why don&#039;t you thank them in this [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=15&amp;amp;t=5457 forum]&#039;&#039;&#039; &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Feedback===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;If you enjoyed the teaser, why don&#039;t you tell us in the [http://www.baka-tsuki.org/forums/viewtopic.php?f=23&amp;amp;t=5484 Feedback thread]&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Updates ==&lt;br /&gt;
:*6  May,       2014 - Volume 5 Chapter 2 completed&lt;br /&gt;
:*26 April,     2014 - Volume 5 Chapter 1 completed&lt;br /&gt;
:*22 April,     2014 - Volume 5 prologue completed&lt;br /&gt;
:*18 April,     2014 - Volume 1 &#039;&#039;&#039;completed&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
:*18 April,     2014 - Volume 1 Epilogue  completed&lt;br /&gt;
:*17 April,     2014 - Volume 1 Chapter 2 completed&lt;br /&gt;
:*15 April,     2014 - Volume 1 Chapter 3 completed&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== The &#039;&#039;Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi&#039;&#039; series by Shiki Mizuchi ==&lt;br /&gt;
{| class=&amp;quot;collapsible collapsed&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;text-align:left; margin: 5px 20px clear:both; font-size:100%; background:transparent; width:100%;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
! style=&amp;quot;background:#cee0f2;&amp;quot; align=&amp;quot;center&amp;quot;| &amp;lt;h2&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;Story Arc 1: The Knight of Eco.&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/h2&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
{|&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| width=&amp;quot;20%&amp;quot;style=&amp;quot;background:#cee0f2; padding:0.3em; text-align:center;&amp;quot;|[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi 001.jpg|thumb|x200px|link=Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1|Volume 1]]&lt;br /&gt;
| style=&amp;quot;background:#cee0f2; padding:0.3em; text-align:center;&amp;quot;|[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v2 p001.jpg|thumb|x200px|link=Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 2|Volume 2]]&lt;br /&gt;
| style=&amp;quot;background:#cee0f2; padding:0.3em; text-align:center;&amp;quot;|[[Image:SnRK V03 001.jpg|thumb|x200px|link=Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 3|Volume 3]]&lt;br /&gt;
| style=&amp;quot;background:#cee0f2; padding:0.3em; text-align:center;&amp;quot;|[[Image:SnRK V04 001.jpg|thumb|x200px|link=Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4|Volume 4]]&lt;br /&gt;
| style=&amp;quot;background:#cee0f2; padding:0.3em; text-align:center;&amp;quot;|[[Image:SnRK v05 004.jpg|thumb|x200px|link=Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 5|Volume 5]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 1 ([[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi 001.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Eco the Dragon Girl]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - The Streets of Ansarivan]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Necromancia&#039;s Attack]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 2 ([[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 2|Full Text]])  ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v2 p001.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 2 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 2 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 2 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Silver Knight]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 2 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Ironblood Valkyrie]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 2 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Veronica and Silvia]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 2 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Avdocha the Convicted]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 2 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 3 ([[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 3|Full Text]]) ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:SnRK V03 001.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 3 Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 3 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 3 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - The Month of Gemini&#039;s Selective Training Camp]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 3 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Rebecca&#039;s Dangerous Command]] &lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 3 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - The Lakeside Vacation]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 3 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - The Battle at Willingham Mausoleum]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 3 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 4 ([[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4|Full Text]])  ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:SnRK V04 001.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4 Novel Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Knight Princess&#039;s proposal]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Fontaine City, the capital of the Knights]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Paladin Oswald]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Beowolf&#039;s conspiracy]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4 Chapter 5|Chapter 5 - Mordred&#039;s tombstone]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4 Chapter 6|Chapter 6 - Ancient palace&#039;s abandoned garden]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4 Chapter 7|Chapter 7 - Masquerade]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4 Chapter 8|Chapter 8 - Avalon&#039;s Imperial Princess]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 4 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 5 ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:SnRK v05 004.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 5 Novel Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 5 Prologue|Prologue]] &lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 5 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Tragedy of Apolo house and Mirabel&#039;s decision]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 5 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Ash&#039;s and Silvia&#039;s study group]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 5 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Navi&#039;s visit and practical skill test]](40%)&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 5 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Lost memories, Albion Forest]](0%)&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 5 Epilogue|Epilogue]](0%)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| class=&amp;quot;collapsible collapsed&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;text-align:left; margin: 5px 20px clear:both; font-size:100%; background:transparent; width:100%;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
! style=&amp;quot;background:#cee0f2;&amp;quot; align=&amp;quot;center&amp;quot;| &amp;lt;h2&amp;gt;&#039;&#039;&#039;Story Arc 2: The Avalon Knight Dragner.&#039;&#039;&#039;&amp;lt;/h2&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
{|&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| width=&amp;quot;20%&amp;quot;style=&amp;quot;background:#cee0f2; padding:0.3em; text-align:center;&amp;quot;|[[Image:SnRK V06 004.jpg|thumb|x200px|link=Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 6|Volume 6]]&lt;br /&gt;
| style=&amp;quot;background:#cee0f2; padding:0.3em; text-align:center;&amp;quot;|[[Image:SnRK V07 004.jpg|thumb|x200px|link=Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 7|Volume 7]]&lt;br /&gt;
| style=&amp;quot;background:#cee0f2; padding:0.3em; text-align:center;&amp;quot;|[[Image:SnRK V08 000b.jpg|thumb|x200px|link=Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 8|Volume 8]]&lt;br /&gt;
| style=&amp;quot;background:#cee0f2; padding:0.3em; text-align:center;&amp;quot;|[[Image:SnRK V09 003.jpg|thumb|x200px|link=Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9|Volume 9]]&lt;br /&gt;
| style=&amp;quot;background:#cee0f2; padding:0.3em; text-align:center;&amp;quot;|[[Image:SnRK V10 003.jpg|thumb|x200px|link=Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 10|Volume 10]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 6 ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:SnRK V06 004.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi:Volume 6 Novel Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 6 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 6 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 6 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 6 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 6 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 6 Chapter 5|Chapter 5 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 6 Chapter 6|Chapter 6 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 6 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 7 ===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:SnRK V07 004.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi:Volume 7 Novel Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 7 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 7 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 7 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 7 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 7 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 7 Chapter 5|Chapter 5 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 7 Chapter 6|Chapter 6 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 7 Chapter 7|Chapter 7 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 7 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 8 ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:SnRK V08 000b.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi:Volume 8 Novel Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 8 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 8 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 8 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 8 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 8 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 8 Chapter 5|Chapter 5 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 8 Chapter 6|Chapter 6 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 8 Chapter 7|Chapter 7 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 8 Chapter 8|Chapter 8 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 8 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 9 ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:SnRK V09 003.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi:Volume 9 Novel Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9 Chapter 5|Chapter 5 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9 Chapter 6|Chapter 6 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9 Chapter 7|Chapter 7 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9 Chapter 8|Chapter 8 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9 Chapter 9|Chapter 9 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9 Chapter 10|Chapter 10 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 9 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 10 ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:SnRK V10 003.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi:Volume 10 Novel Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 10 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 10 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 10 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 10 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 10 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 10 Chapter 5|Chapter 5 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 10 Chapter 6|Chapter 6 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 10 Chapter 7|Chapter 7 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 10 Chapter 8|Chapter 8 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 10 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 11 ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku_No_Dragner_11_001.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 11 Novel Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 11 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 11 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 - Ash&#039;s decision and new Student Council system]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 11 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 - Rebecca&#039;s graduation ceremony]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 11 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 - Ash&#039;s little sister]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 11 Chapter 3.5|Chapter 3.5 - Linda&#039;s &amp;quot;Star Mark&amp;quot;]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 11 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 - Aries&#039;s party aboard a warship]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 11 Chapter 4.5|Chapter 4.5 - Linda&#039;s miscalculation]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 11 Chapter 5|Chapter 5 - Darkness Princess and mechanical dragon]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 11 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 12 ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:SnRK V12 001.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi:Volume 12 Novel Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 12 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 12 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 12 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 12 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 12 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 12 Chapter 5|Chapter 5 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 12 Chapter 6|Chapter 6 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 12 Chapter 7|Chapter 7 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 12 Chapter 8|Chapter 8 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 12 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
=== Volume 13 ===&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:SnRK V13 002.jpg|thumb|x200px]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi:Volume 13 Novel Illustrations|Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 13 Prologue|Prologue]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 13 Chapter 1|Chapter 1 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 13 Chapter 2|Chapter 2 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 13 Chapter 3|Chapter 3 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 13 Chapter 4|Chapter 4 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 13 Chapter 5|Chapter 5 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 13 Chapter 6|Chapter 6 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 13 Chapter 6.5|Chapter 6.5 ]] &lt;br /&gt;
:*[[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 13 Chapter 7|Chapter 7 ]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;br style=&amp;quot;clear:both&amp;quot;/&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==Project Staff==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*Supervisor: &lt;br /&gt;
*Project Manager: &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Translators===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;ACTIVE&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:TJYYEO|TJYYEO]]&amp;lt;br /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Kenji|Kenji]]&amp;lt;br /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Editors===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&#039;ACTIVE&#039;&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:ClavelSangrante|ClavelSangrante]] ([[User talk:ClavelSangrante|talk]])&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Alviam099|Alviam099]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Tjobbear|Tjobbear]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:JesseAlexander|JesseAlexander]]&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Yoyoyo5678|&amp;lt;span style=&amp;quot;color:blue&amp;quot;&amp;gt;Yoyoyo5678&amp;lt;/span&amp;gt;]] ([[User talk:Yoyoyo5678|&amp;lt;span style=&amp;quot;color:blue&amp;quot;&amp;gt;talk&amp;lt;/span&amp;gt;]])&lt;br /&gt;
*[[User:Winlex|Winlex]] ([[User talk:Winlex|talk]])&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
== Series Overview ==&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士（ドラグナー） (June 25, 2010) ISBN 978-4-8401-3420-0&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 II (September 24, 2010) ISBN 978-4-8401-3508-5&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 III (January 25, 2011) ISBN 978-4-8401-3696-9&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 IV (April 25, 2011) ISBN 978-4-8401-3895-6&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 V (July 25, 2011) ISBN 978-4-8401-3975-5&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 VI (October 25, 2011) ISBN 978-4-8401-4271-7&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 VII (January 25, 2012) ISBN 978-4-8401-4374-5&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 VIII (April 25, 2012) ISBN 978-4-8401-4548-0&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 IX (July 25, 2012) ISBN 978-4-8401-4645-6&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 X (October 25, 2012) ISBN 978-4-8401-4847-4&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 XI (January 25, 2013) ISBN 978-4-8401-4960-0&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 XII (April 25, 2013) ISBN 978-4-8401-5157-3&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 XIII (July 25, 2013) ISBN 978-4-8401-5246-4&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 XIV (November 25, 2013) ISBN 978-4-0406-6072-1&lt;br /&gt;
:*星刻の竜騎士 XV (April 25, 2014) ISBN 978-4-0406-6377-7&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:MF Bunko J]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Genre - Action]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Light novel (English)]]&lt;br /&gt;
[[Category:Shiki Mizuchi]]&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Epilogue&amp;diff=354094</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Epilogue</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Epilogue&amp;diff=354094"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T16:28:18Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 9 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Epilogue==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
Year 1356 A.S.B. The month of Aeries.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Inside the deep forest is a meeting of a boy and a girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
Not long after her seventh birthday, Silvia had departed from Fontaine City and had arrived at Albion Forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Albion Forest- A holy place where the mother dragon resides.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Needless to say, she came here for the Orphan Ceremony which was an obligation stated by the Royal Knight Family.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once a person was selected by the mother dragon, he or she would become a Breeder.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia had sworn that she would return as a Breeder.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was unable to forget about the sudden disappearance of her brother.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As the heir to the throne, Julius who was granted the title Dragner at his teens was being called the Dragon Slayer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to the rumours, Julius had killed his Pal. However, Silvia was not able to understand why her gentle brother would commit such a &lt;br /&gt;
crime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia really would like to question her brother face to face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With those thoughts, she challenged the Orphan Ceremony…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Since they were children, all of the conversation language used were quite simple. If there were to be any tough language used it would be because of the translation.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
“Stoooooop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although her determination was touching, Albion forest is not as easy as it seems.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The trees were so high that they reached the skies and the air around was humid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The rotting leaves and the dirt didn’t give a pleasant smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time she saw a rat, a snake or even a spider, she would run away crying. Although she yearns to be a knight, Silvia was really timid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, she fell and twisted her leg.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pain was so immense that she couldn’t even take another step.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&#039;&#039;*Sob*&#039;&#039;…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her only support was a stuff toy that was brought with her as a lucky charm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a very important stuff toy to Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was called Lancelot. A few years before, when she went to Arkham the capital of the Chevron Kingdom, she had gotten it at the market there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She thought that Lancelot was cute but that was not the case for the people around her. Even the maids who served her said that Lancelot doesn’t look like a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her tears were staring to flow out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Orphan Ceremony was about to end and she will have to go home empty handed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“*Sob*…*Sob*…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She hated her incompetence. Even though she knew that she must not remain at this place, her legs were ignoring her will.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she started crying, there were rustles in the bushes in front of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hic…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A boy appeared in front of Silvia who was trying to run away. Like Silvia he must have been one of the attendees of the Orphan Ceremony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy walked towards Silvia and stretched out his hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you hurt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy asked without hesitating but was scolded by Silvia. To Silvia, the boy’s words hurt her pride as a royal princess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-No!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But the situation seemed to be the other way round. Silvia looked to be in pain when she tried to stand and at the same time, Lancelot &lt;br /&gt;
fell on to the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy picked up Lancelot with a look of surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is this… a Chimera?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia with red cheeks objected and tried to grab Lancelot back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haha…So it is a dragon. My bad.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy showed a bitter smile. He then turned around and knelled down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What kind of a behavior is this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was not able to understand what the boy had in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t it obvious? I am going to bring you to the entrance of this forest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What! Doesn’t this mean that I am going back? And didn’t it also mean that I am going to give up on this Orphan Ceremony?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy nodded his head as if that was the most obvious thing to do.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. How can you even search for a dragon with an injured leg?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Shut up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s scold gave the boy a shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I need a Pal! Going back is out of the topic!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the thing that you call Pal?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was in rage when she saw the boy stare at her confusedly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-As a citizen of the Knight Country, how can you not know what a Pal is! Remember this! A Pal is a dragon who would become your &lt;br /&gt;
partner! It is a sacred word!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“R-Right…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Silvia did not intent to end it just like that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“By the way, what are you even doing? Since you have time to mind about me, why don’t you spend your time looking for dragons? Could it be &lt;br /&gt;
that, you…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What about me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia approached him. The boy’s face was red from embarrassment and he looked away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Or maybe you are just pretending to search? Recently, I had heard rumours that spiritless children like you were increasing…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that… I also want to meet a dragon… I think?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although his words don’t match with each other, Silvia had at least forgiven him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then, let’s go! I will now tell you my family motto! Listen carefully!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia straightened her back and spoke in a loud voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A knight’s pride is with his dragon!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! If I am to look for the dragon, what about you? Won’t you be lonely?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned silent. The word ‘lonely; had pierced through her heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… You really shouldn’t act strong.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… To give up because of some injuries…. Never! That will never happen to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy laughs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now I understand. You wanted an Orphan no matter what, no?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That&#039;s it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If that’s the case, then there is only one option left.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy clenched his fist as he stared at Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His gallant looks made Silvia’s heart skipped a beat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will look for the mother dragon together. I will give you a piggyback.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was lost in words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Really?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again, the boy turned around and knelled down. Silvia continued to doubt for a moment but she was finally able to make up her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her heart was beating quickly when their bodies were touching against each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy started walking with Silvia on his back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
…The dream ends.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Epona House the girls’ dormitory for the advance class students.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the top most floor, in a room specially designed for royals, Silvia slowly opened her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The night had ended and the morning rays pierced through the gaps in the curtains.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia sat up after rubbing her sleepy eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop, Princess-sama… That is bad…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sleeping on a bed next to her, Cosette was having a weird dream.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was having a headache thinking what kind of a dream she was dreaming.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Dream?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not long after her seventh birthday, Silvia had visited Albion Forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She met a boy there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia unbuttoned her pajamas and exposed her bare chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her Seikoku was imprinted at the middle of her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was about the size of her palm and was looked similar to the ancient language.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia touched her Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I wonder when he is…?’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She felt nostalgic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That being said…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before parting, Silvia gave the boy her Lancelot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was to show him her gratitude.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She also hoped that the boy will never forget about her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although her memories of that time was not clear, she could still clearly remember that the boy took it with a smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
It had been three days since the attack on Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to Ash and Eco, the dragon who caused all this trouble was called a Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were about thirty people injured in this incident and luckily there were no casualties.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As for the building, four of them were totally destroyed and one was half destroyed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
St Durham Square was temporarily closed to the public while the restoring works were on going.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thinking carefully, this kind of destruction is a miracle considering the amount of magic that the Necromancia possessed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, these were all thanks to Ash and everyone’s effort that had minimized the destruction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The investigation on the Necromancia had only started.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
In Ansarivan, there was a tradition where friends will celebrate the birth of a Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was also known as the Pal Party.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Usually, every person’s Pal was born on their first year in the basic class.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Ash’s Pal never born during the three years of his basic class years and he was now a advance class student.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seemed that he had forgotten about this tradition.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The attack from the Necromancia had given them a day off by the academy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was Rebecca who suggested organizing a Pal Party.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Ash was very grateful, his room was in a total mess. Max had clean it for him a month before but it had returned to its original &lt;br /&gt;
state.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright… I guess we have to clean it until tonight.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash started dusting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it was Max, it would have been done in just a few moments. Max would probably clean it with great vigour the moment he saw his room. &lt;br /&gt;
However, Max was injured and Ash shouldn’t be asking for his help.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zzz… Zzz….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now was the time for Eco to take her afternoon nap. Ash continued with his cleaning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
First, Ash threw away all the rubbish that was lying on the floor. He then made up his mind to throw away all the unwanted things too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Next, he took out all the unwanted clothings and book from the closet that he no longer needs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly stopped cleaning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Something strange had fallen out from the closet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stuffed toy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash didn’t not have any habits of collecting stuffed toys. To say nothing of the stuffed toy that didn’t look cute at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On a second though looked a little like a dragon but somehow, he felt that it looked more like a Chimera that appears in myth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash scratched his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err… What is this thing…? I can’t remember at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could vaguely remember that this toy was important to him. But he couldn’t remember why it was important at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, I better leave it in the closet. They would be sure to laugh at me if they saw it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
Ash continued to clean his room until the evening.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Almost done.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s voice had woken up Eco from her afternoon nap.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! You are irritating! “&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash replied patiently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Whatever the case, today’s party is for me and you. There will be many things to eat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was in charge of the food for the party. Everyone was looking forward to it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eh? Really?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco became wide awake the moment she heard that there will be many foods.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ash, it’s me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s voice could be heard from the other side of the door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Coming!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash ran to open the door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hallo Ash. Have you done with your cleaning?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca asked an important question the moment they meet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How did you know!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Naw… I just have a hunch. Well, well, I also brought an important guest with me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was hiding behind Rebecca’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I didn’t really intend on coming but I was dragged here by the president. It is not like what it seems!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was scolding him the moment they met.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly had a strange feeling. After noticing it, his heart was pumping up and down nonstop. The Silvia right now was not wearing her &lt;br /&gt;
usual Dragsuit but an evening dress.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 245.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu… I came here because I haven’t seen Princess-sama being this interesting for a long time. By the way, the Princess took three hours &lt;br /&gt;
to choose her dress.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette was laughing from Silvia’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“S-Shut up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With Rebecca, Silvia, Cosette and non the least Eco when she was quiet, Ash’s room was full of beautiful girls.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Don’t forget about us! We won’t be missing out from such a nice event!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Raymond’s voice had brought him back from paradise. Right beside Raymond, stood Max.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Keeping an eye on the president was also a job for me who is in charge of the accounts. I am not here for the celebration!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max was no better than Silvia. When did the job of keeping an eye on the president had fallen on the person who keeps tracks of the &lt;br /&gt;
account.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Raymond and Max were holding a huge bag. They were probably using it as an excuse to join the party.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, the Pal Party begins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
Lights powered by Bright Dragon crystals had brighten up the room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Many foods for the party had been lined up on the table. One of the best few was roast chicken with herbs. Eco felt like she was dreaming.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Glup!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly her eyes rolled in agony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Do you have heartburn? You shouldn’t have eaten too much of fatty food.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice. It was because the chicken was too delicious!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please don’t push the blame to the chicken.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, alright. There are still many more chickens. Anyway, Eco is our main character for today. Just eat as many as you like.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash turned confuse once he heard what Rebecca had said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Isn’t it me who is the main character?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm, now I remember. I totally forgot about it after I saw how Eco eats.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca made a bitter smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
‘No matter when it is, cuteness is always justice. A bastard like you should just move aside!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond spoke of a terrible thing casually.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A healthy room means a healthy life… What a bunch of work to be done.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time Eco finished the food on her plate, Max would definitely clean it away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The dragon is the symbol of our country. That is why Eco is our main character.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only Cosette was smiling while bringing them new bottles of drinks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
After some time, everyone was getting dizzy and most of the people stopped speaking. Raymond and Max were fast asleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huff…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who had satisfied her stomach was almost asleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you sleepy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash asked but he was scolded by Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph… What did you take me as…? I still want to eat…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she stubbornly tried to stay awake, she could not resist the urge to sleep. Ash could only carry her and place her on the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, it was weird for Raymond who usually stays up late to fall asleep this early. Also, it was unnatural for Max who valued his pride &lt;br /&gt;
highly to sleep unprotected in front of everyone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Nnn?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By taking a closer look, their faces were red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that… Rebecca-san, what actually is in this bottle?’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca calmly took the bottle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ Muscat &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;A type of grape.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;juice. A popular product from Asarivan. What about it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Juice?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile. Anyone would have known if they just read the label on the bottle. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anyway, it was a party night. It wouldn’t matter much.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem is, even though they had emptied three bottles of juice, Rebecca’s face never show a hint of change.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! The &#039;&#039;&#039;simpleton&#039;&#039;&#039; over there!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, someone was smacking his back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being called a simpleton is not something he fancied.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling. When he turned around, he found out that Silvia was glaring at him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What’s the matter?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was obviously drunk.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The hem of her dress was in a mess and her inner thighs could be seen. Her face was red and her eyes were watery.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To begin with, since a long time ago, I had started to hate you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why can you ride on other student’s Pal? Isn’t it weird? What the hell is with ‘The boy who can ride on any dragon’! You are bending the &lt;br /&gt;
law of nature!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I also don’t know…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash glanced at Rebecca in hope that she come to his help. Unfortunately, Rebecca was search for a bottle opener with Cosette while she was &lt;br /&gt;
holding a new bottle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t look around when someone was talking to you! This is from my family motto!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was crawling towards Ash. Ash could see her cleavage.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia may look like a slender type but in fact, her size was giving Ash trouble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since you are born with such great talent, why don’t you work hard in your studies? No matter how much talent you posses, you won’t turn &lt;br /&gt;
out successful if there is no hard work!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are completely right…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash gave a simple reply, Silvia swallowed a full cup in a one-go and started spurting nonsense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The worst thing is…. Why would I even be bothered by a problem child like you…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You can never be compared with &#039;&#039;&#039;that boy&#039;&#039;&#039;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That boy? Who is he?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s slip of her tongue had caught everyone’s interest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is totally unexpected. For there exist a boy who is able to stole Her Highness’s heart. By all mean, could you please tell us who &lt;br /&gt;
the lucky guy was?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was totally into it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh? T-This… That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia seemed to be in a pinch. Her face turned from red to white. Suddenly, she was no longer drunk.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-Nothing! Just forget about it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How could it be nothing? Your face moments ago looked just like the face of a girl in love.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I never make such a face!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible. Nothing can deceive this Rebecca onee-san’s eyes. Well, the night is still young. Why don’t you tell us more about the &lt;br /&gt;
boy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you are talking about such a topic, I must also take part in it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette immediately approached Silvia. Right now, Silvia was totally surrounded and was shaken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That is a story from a long time ago…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was red in her face and her eyes kept wondering around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, alright. We won’t question you anymore. By the way, I would like to tell you the reason for me to organize this party.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her smile disappeared and was replaced by a serious look. Both Ash and Silvia exchange glances and there was no longer a relax feeling in &lt;br /&gt;
the party.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia straighten their bodies and sat properly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“During that incident, I was sad that the student council doesn&#039;t have enough man power. By including me, right now there are only four &lt;br /&gt;
members in the student council. That is why I would like to invite the both of to to join the student council.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was the second time Ash was invited.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was the first to reply:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot and I will gladly join. I will not let such a thing happen another time. During that incident, there was nothing that I was able &lt;br /&gt;
to do…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! How you dare act humble! Without you and Lancelot, I am the one who is not able to do anything.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Shut up! You don’t even know how I feel.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash tried to comfort Silvia but it came to an opposite result.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are always steps in front of me! Do you even know what you had done? For example, although your Ark was a mimic…. But you were still &lt;br /&gt;
an Ark Dragner at that time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally realized after it was mentioned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s innocent answer was adding oil to fire.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you making fun of me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Calm down both of you. I am right to say that the Princess’s reply was OK?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca changed the topic and stare at Silvia intently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes! I will do my best! By the way… I want you to call me by my name. At least at the Student Council, please call me Silvia. I don’t &lt;br /&gt;
want to be treated like a princess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca nodded in satisfaction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood. What about you, Ash?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as he was speaking, he felt an immersed pressure coming from beside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was Silvia who was glaring at him as if she was telling him not to hesitate.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Alright! I will join!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although he felt that he was forced to join, he could only move forward step by step since he had made his promise.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am grateful for both of you! Then let us proceed to the simple welcoming ceremony.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was confused, Rebecca made her move. Her lips were placed on Ash’s face. He could clearly feel her heat and smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“President…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had not yet recover looked at Rebecca as her lips left his face. It was probably because of the shock, he somehow felt that her &lt;br /&gt;
eyes were charming.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! You call yourself a man from the Knight Country? Tsk…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! You as my dog how dare you acting all lovey dovey with all these females!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was Eco voice that had over shadowed Silvia’s. Though she had been sleeping before this, right now, she was like a raging ball of fire.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was rare to see that Eco and Silvia agrees with each other. But it was Rebecca who stepped forward and protected Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now I see… Both of you are jealous.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco and Silvia were in lost of words when Rebecca hits the bull’s eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-Never! I would never be shaken by such a trivial matter!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That’s right! Jealousy only exits in the feelings of the dumb humans!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that Eco and Silvia were trying to explain themselves out from this mess, Rebecca roared in laughter.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu. It feels quite nice toying with both of you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After saying, Rebecca kissed Eco and Silvia on their cheeks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco and Silvia were silenced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright! With this, the ceremony ends. Welcome to the student council!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right after Rebecca declared…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“P-President…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A weak voice like an old man came from behind Ash. Max who had woken up was looking at them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“During the time when I join the student council, why wasn&#039;t there any ceremony… &#039;&#039;Ouch!&#039;&#039;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The glass that Rebecca was holding smashed into his forehead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max fainted immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who witnessed the entire incident felt shivers.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca continued to smile as if nothing had happened. Ash felt as if he was seeing a devil.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, both of you should have known Max from the accounts. As for the vice president and the secretary I will introduce them to you on &lt;br /&gt;
another day. Although both of them are a little hard to deal with, they are nothing lest from a great Dragner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Ash heard the words ‘a little hard to deal with’ instinct told him it was nothing good. Thinking again, only Rebecca and Max were &lt;br /&gt;
present during the Necromancia’s attack. What kind of students are they to make Rebecca describe them as ‘a little hard to deal with’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Ash’s attention was averted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Cheers!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette happily filled everyone’s glasses with an amber colour liquid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The last person that Cosette went to was Angela. Cosette was not at all surprise and continued to fill up her glass.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Ash was shocked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! Why are you here!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;When did she manage to get in?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He definitely could not feel her presence until just a moment ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco-chan and Ash-kun are both precious sample for my research. Since I am not allowed to dissect, I could at least do some close &lt;br /&gt;
observation.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela then smiled coldly to them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had heard of all of your good deeds at St Durham Square. Now, I must listen to the details from you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After gulping down the entire glass of wine, Angela’s cheeks turned rosy. In an instant, her cold attitude disappeared and was replaced by &lt;br /&gt;
an adult feel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, there was not a hint of smile coming from her eyes. It gave the feeling of being dissected by them. Ash felt as if he was a frog &lt;br /&gt;
being targeted by a snake.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without knowing what Ash was thinking, Eco and Silvia scolded at the same time:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Why are you being attracted by this female!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you even a man of the proud Lautreamont Knight Country!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco and Silvia took Ash as being falling in love. He however was innocent to begin with.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The nonsense will stop here.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca raised her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stood up majestically and gracefully lifted her glass. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For the new members who joined the student council…. Cheers!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The night had just begun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;The Knight of ECO I&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3|Chapter 3]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 2 Illustrations|Volume 2 Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Epilogue&amp;diff=354093</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Epilogue</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Epilogue&amp;diff=354093"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T16:20:24Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 9 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Epilogue==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
Year 1356 A.S.B. The month of Aeries.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Inside the deep forest is a meeting of a boy and a girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
Not long after her seventh birthday, Silvia had departed from Fontaine City and had arrived at Albion Forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Albion Forest- A holy place where the mother dragon resides.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Needless to say, she came here for the Orphan Ceremony which was an obligation stated by the Royal Knight Family.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once a person was selected by the mother dragon, he or she would become a Breeder.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia had sworn that she would return as a Breeder.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was unable to forget about the sudden disappearance of her brother.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As the heir to the throne, Julius who was granted the title Dragner at his teens was being called the Dragon Slayer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to the rumours, Julius had killed his Pal. However, Silvia was not able to understand why her gentle brother would commit such a &lt;br /&gt;
crime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia really would like to question her brother face to face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With those thoughts, she challenged the Orphan Ceremony…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Since they were children, all of the conversation language used were quite simple. If there were to be any tough language used it would be because of the translation.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
“Stoooooop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although her determination was touching, Albion forest is not as easy as it seems.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The trees were so high that they reached the skies and the air around was humid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The rotting leaves and the dirt didn’t give a pleasant smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time she saw a rat, a snake or even a spider, she would run away crying. Although she yearns to be a knight, Silvia was really timid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, she fell and twisted her leg.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pain was so immense that she couldn’t even take another step.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&#039;&#039;*Sob*&#039;&#039;…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her only support was a stuff toy that was brought with her as a lucky charm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a very important stuff toy to Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was called Lancelot. A few years before, when she went to Arkham the capital of the Chevron Kingdom, she had gotten it at the market there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She thought that Lancelot was cute but that was not the case for the people around her. Even the maids who served her said that Lancelot doesn’t look like a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her tears were staring to flow out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Orphan Ceremony was about to end and she will have to go home empty handed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“*Sob*…*Sob*…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She hated her incompetence. Even though she knew that she must not remain at this place, her legs were ignoring her will.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she started crying, there were rustles in the bushes in front of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hic…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A boy appeared in front of Silvia who was trying to run away. Like Silvia he must have been one of the attendees of the Orphan Ceremony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy walked towards Silvia and stretched out his hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you hurt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy asked without hesitating but was scolded by Silvia. To Silvia, the boy’s words hurt her pride as a royal princess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-No!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But the situation seemed to be the other way round. Silvia looked to be in pain when she tried to stand and at the same time, Lancelot &lt;br /&gt;
fell on to the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy picked up Lancelot with a look of surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is this… a Chimera?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia with red cheeks objected and tried to grab Lancelot back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haha…So it is a dragon. My bad.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy showed a bitter smile. He then turned around and knelled down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What kind of a behavior is this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was not able to understand what the boy had in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t it obvious? I am going to bring you to the entrance of this forest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What! Doesn’t this mean that I am going back? And didn’t it also mean that I am going to give up on this Orphan Ceremony?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy nodded his head as if that was the most obvious thing to do.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. How can you even search for a dragon with an injured leg?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Shut up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s scold gave the boy a shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I need a Pal! Going back is out of the topic!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the thing that you call Pal?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was in rage when she saw the boy stare at her confusedly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-As a citizen of the Knight Country, how can you not know what a Pal is! Remember this! A Pal is a dragon who would become your &lt;br /&gt;
partner! It is a sacred word!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“R-Right…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Silvia did not intent to end it just like that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“By the way, what are you even doing? Since you have time to mind about me, why don’t you spend your time looking for dragons? Could it be &lt;br /&gt;
that, you…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What about me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia approached him. The boy’s face was red from embarrassment and he looked away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Or maybe you are just pretending to search? Recently, I had heard rumours that spiritless children like you were increasing…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that… I also want to meet a dragon… I think?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although his words don’t match with each other, Silvia had at least forgiven him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then, let’s go! I will now tell you my family motto! Listen carefully!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia straightened her back and spoke in a loud voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A knight’s pride is with his dragon!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! If I am to look for the dragon, what about you? Won’t you be lonely?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned silent. The word ‘lonely; had pierced through her heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… You really shouldn’t act strong.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… To give up because of some injuries…. Never! That will never happen to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy laughs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now I understand. You wanted an Orphan no matter what, no?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That&#039;s it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If that’s the case, then there is only one option left.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy clenched his fist as he stared at Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His gallant looks made Silvia’s heart skipped a beat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will look for the mother dragon together. I will give you a piggyback.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was lost in words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Really?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again, the boy turned around and knelled down. Silvia continued to doubt for a moment but she was finally able to make up her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her heart was beating quickly when their bodies were touching against each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy started walking with Silvia on his back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
…The dream ends.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Epona House the girls’ dormitory for the advance class students.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the top most floor, in a room specially designed for royals, Silvia slowly opened her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The night had ended and the morning rays pierced through the gaps in the curtains.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia sat up after rubbing her sleepy eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop, Princess-sama… That is bad…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sleeping on a bed next to her, Cosette was having a weird dream.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was having a headache thinking what kind of a dream she was dreaming.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Dream?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not long after her seventh birthday, Silvia had visited Albion Forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She met a boy there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia unbuttoned her pajamas and exposed her bare chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her Seikoku was imprinted at the middle of her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was about the size of her palm and was looked similar to the ancient language.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia touched her Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I wonder when he is…?’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She felt nostalgic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That being said…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before parting, Silvia gave the boy her Lancelot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was to show him her gratitude.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She also hoped that the boy will never forget about her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although her memories of that time was not clear, she could still clearly remember that the boy took it with a smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
It had been three days since the attack on Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to Ash and Eco, the dragon who caused all this trouble was called a Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were about thirty people injured in this incident and luckily there were no casualties.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As for the building, four of them were totally destroyed and one was half destroyed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
St Durham Square was temporarily closed to the public while the restoring works were on going.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thinking carefully, this kind of destruction is a miracle considering the amount of magic that the Necromancia possessed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, these were all thanks to Ash and everyone’s effort that had minimized the destruction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The investigation on the Necromancia had only started.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
In Ansarivan, there was a tradition where friends will celebrate the birth of a Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was also known as the Pal Party.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Usually, every person’s Pal was born on their first year in the basic class.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Ash’s Pal never born during the three years of his basic class years and he was now a advance class student.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seemed that he had forgotten about this tradition.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The attack from the Necromancia had given them a day off by the academy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was Rebecca who suggested organizing a Pal Party.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Ash was very grateful, his room was in a total mess. Max had clean it for him a month before but it had returned to its original &lt;br /&gt;
state.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright… I guess we have to clean it until tonight.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash started dusting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it was Max, it would have been done in just a few moments. Max would probably clean it with great vigour the moment he saw his room. &lt;br /&gt;
However, Max was injured and Ash shouldn’t be asking for his help.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zzz… Zzz….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now was the time for Eco to take her afternoon nap. Ash continued with his cleaning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
First, Ash threw away all the rubbish that was lying on the floor. He then made up his mind to throw away all the unwanted things too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Next, he took out all the unwanted clothings and book from the closet that he no longer needs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly stopped cleaning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Something strange had fallen out from the closet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stuffed toy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash didn’t not have any habits of collecting stuffed toys. To say nothing of the stuffed toy that didn’t look cute at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On a second though looked a little like a dragon but somehow, he felt that it looked more like a Chimera that appears in myth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash scratched his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err… What is this thing…? I can’t remember at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could vaguely remember that this toy was important to him. But he couldn’t remember why it was important at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, I better leave it in the closet. They would be sure to laugh at me if they saw it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
Ash continued to clean his room until the evening.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Almost done.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s voice had woken up Eco from her afternoon nap.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! You are irritating! “&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash replied patiently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Whatever the case, today’s party is for me and you. There will be many things to eat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was in charge of the food for the party. Everyone was looking forward to it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eh? Really?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco became wide awake the moment she heard that there will be many foods.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ash, it’s me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s voice could be heard from the other side of the door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Coming!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash ran to open the door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hallo Ash. Have you done with your cleaning?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca asked an important question the moment they meet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How did you know!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Naw… I just have a hunch. Well, well, I also brought an important guest with me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was hiding behind Rebecca’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I didn’t really intend on coming but I was dragged here by the president. It is not like what it seems!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was scolding him the moment they met.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly had a strange feeling. After noticing it, his heart was pumping up and down nonstop. The Silvia right now was not wearing her &lt;br /&gt;
usual Dragsuit but an evening dress.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 245.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu… I came here because I haven’t seen Princess-sama being this interesting for a long time. By the way, the Princess took three hours &lt;br /&gt;
to choose her dress.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette was laughing from Silvia’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“S-Shut up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With Rebecca, Silvia, Cosette and non the least Eco when she was quiet, Ash’s room was full of beautiful girls.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Don’t forget about us! We won’t be missing out from such a nice event!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Raymond’s voice had brought him back from paradise. Right beside Raymond, stood Max.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Keeping an eye on the president was also a job for me who is in charge of the accounts. I am not here for the celebration!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max was no better than Silvia. When did the job of keeping an eye on the president had fallen on the person who keeps tracks of the &lt;br /&gt;
account.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Raymond and Max were holding a huge bag. They were probably using it as an excuse to join the party.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, the Pal Party begins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
Lights powered by Bright Dragon crystals had brighten up the room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Many foods for the party had been lined up on the table. One of the best few was roast chicken with herbs. Eco felt like she was dreaming.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Glup!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly her eyes rolled in agony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Do you have heartburn? You shouldn’t have eaten too much of fatty food.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice. It was because the chicken was too delicious!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please don’t push the blame to the chicken.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, alright. There are still many more chickens. Anyway, Eco is our main character for today. Just eat as many as you like.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash turned confuse once he heard what Rebecca had said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Isn’t it me who is the main character?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm, now I remember. I totally forgot about it after I saw how Eco eats.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca made a bitter smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
‘No matter when it is, cuteness is always justice. A bastard like you should just move aside!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond spoke of a terrible thing casually.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A healthy room means a healthy life… What a bunch of work to be done.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time Eco finished the food on her plate, Max would definitely clean it away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The dragon is the symbol of our country. That is why Eco is our main character.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only Cosette was smiling while bringing them new bottles of drinks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
After some time, everyone was getting dizzy and most of the people stopped speaking. Raymond and Max were fast asleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huff…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who had satisfied her stomach was almost asleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you sleepy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash asked but he was scolded by Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph… What did you take me as…? I still want to eat…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she stubbornly tried to stay awake, she could not resist the urge to sleep. Ash could only carry her and place her on the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, it was weird for Raymond who usually stays up late to fall asleep this early. Also, it was unnatural for Max who valued his pride &lt;br /&gt;
highly to sleep unprotected in front of everyone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Nnn?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By taking a closer look, their faces were red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that… Rebecca-san, what actually is in this bottle?’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca calmly took the bottle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ Muscat &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;A type of grape.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;juice. A popular product from Asarivan. What about it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Juice?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile. Anyone would have known if they just read the label on the bottle. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anyway, it was a party night. It wouldn’t matter much.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem is, even though they had emptied three bottles of juice, Rebecca’s face never show a hint of change.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! The &#039;&#039;&#039;simpleton&#039;&#039;&#039; over there!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, someone was smacking his back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being called a simpleton is not something he fancied.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling. When he turned around, he found out that Silvia was glaring at him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What’s the matter?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was obviously drunk.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The hem of her dress was in a mess and her inner thighs could be seen. Her face was red and her eyes were watery.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To begin with, since a long time ago, I had started to hate you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why can you ride on other student’s Pal? Isn’t it weird? What the hell is with ‘The boy who can ride on any dragon’! You are bending the &lt;br /&gt;
law of nature!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I also don’t know…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash glanced at Rebecca in hope that she come to his help. Unfortunately, Rebecca was search for a bottle opener with Cosette while she was &lt;br /&gt;
holding a new bottle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t look around when someone was talking to you! This is from my family motto!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was crawling towards Ash. Ash could see her cleavage.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia may look like a slender type but in fact, her size was giving Ash trouble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since you are born with such great talent, why don’t you work hard in your studies? No matter how much talent you posses, you won’t turn &lt;br /&gt;
out successful if there is no hard work!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are completely right…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash gave a simple reply, Silvia swallowed a full cup in a one-go and started spurting nonsense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The worst thing is…. Why would I even be bothered by a problem child like you…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You can never be compared with &#039;&#039;&#039;that boy&#039;&#039;&#039;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That boy? Who is he?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s slip of her tongue had caught everyone’s interest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is totally unexpected. For there exist a boy who is able to stole Her Highness’s heart. By all mean, could you please tell us who &lt;br /&gt;
the lucky guy was?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was totally into it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh? T-This… That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia seemed to be in a pinch. Her face turned from red to white. Suddenly, she was no longer drunk.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-Nothing! Just forget about it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How could it be nothing? Your face moments ago looked just like the face of a girl in love.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I never make such a face!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible. Nothing can deceive this Rebecca onee-san’s eyes. Well, the night is still young. Why don’t you tell us more about the &lt;br /&gt;
boy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you are talking about such topic, I must also take part in it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette immediately approached Silvia. Right now, Silvia was totally surrounded and was shaken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That is a story from a long time ago…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was red in her face and her eyes kept wondering around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, alright. We won’t question you anymore. By the way, I would like to tell you the reason for me to organize this party.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her smile disappeared and was replaced by a serious look. Both Ash and Silvia exchange glances and there was no longer a relax feeling in &lt;br /&gt;
the party.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia straighten their bodies and sat properly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“During that incident, I was sad that the student council don’t have enough man power. By including me, right now there are only four &lt;br /&gt;
members in the student council. That is why I would like to invite the both of to to join the student council.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was the second time Ash was invited.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was the first to reply:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot and I will gladly join. I will not let such a thing happen another time. During that incident, there is nothing that I am able &lt;br /&gt;
to do…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! How you dare act humble! Without you and Lancelot, I am the one who is not able to do anything.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Shut up! You don’t even know how I feel.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash tried to comfort Silvia but it came to an opposite result.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are always steps in front of me! Do you even know what you had done? For example, although your Ark was a mimic…. But you were still &lt;br /&gt;
an Ark Dragner at that time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally realized after it was mentioned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s innocent answer was adding oil to fire.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you making fun of me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Calm down both of you. I am right to say that the Princess’s reply was OK?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca changed the topic and stare at Silvia intently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes! I will do my best! By the way… I want you to call me by my name. At least at the Student Council, please call me Silvia. I don’t &lt;br /&gt;
want to be treated like a princess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca nodded in satisfaction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood. What about you, Ash?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as he was speaking, he felt an immersed pressure coming from beside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was Silvia who was glaring at him as if she was telling him not to hesitate.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Alright! I will join!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although he felt that he was forced to join, he could only move forward step by step since he had made his promise.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am grateful for both of you! Then let us proceed to the simple welcoming ceremony.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was confused, Rebecca made her move. Her lips were placed on Ash’s face. He could clearly feel her heat and smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“President…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had not yet recover looked at Rebecca as her lips left his face. It was probably because of the shock, he somehow felt that her &lt;br /&gt;
eyes were charming.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! You call youself a man from the Knight Country? Tsk…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! You as my dog how dare you acting all lovey dovey with all these females!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was Eco voice that had over shadowed Silvia’s. Though she had been sleeping before this, right now, she was like a raging ball of fire.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was rare to see that Eco and Silvia agrees with each other. But it was Rebecca who stepped forward and protected Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now I see… Both of you are jealous.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco and Silvia were in lost of words when Rebecca hits the bull’s eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-Never! I would never be shaken by such a trivial matter!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That’s right! Jealousy only exits in the feelings of the dumb humans!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that Eco and Silvia were trying to explain themselves out from this mess, Rebecca roared in laughter.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu. It feels quite nice toying with both of you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After saying, Rebecca kissed Eco and Silvia on their cheeks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco and Silvia were silenced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright! With this, the ceremony ends. Welcome to the student council!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right after Rebecca declared…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“P-President…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A weak voice like an old man came from behind Ash. Max who had woken up was looking at them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“During the time when I join the student council, why isn’t there any ceremony… &#039;&#039;Ouc!&#039;&#039;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The glass that Rebecca was holding smashed into his forehead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max fainted immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who witnessed the entire incident felt shivers.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca continued to smile as if nothing had happened. Ash felt as if he was seeing a devil.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, both of you should have known Max from the accounts. As for the vice president and the secretary I will introduce them to you on &lt;br /&gt;
another day. Although both of them are a little hard to deal with, they are nothing lest from a great Dragner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Ash heard the words ‘a little hard to deal with’ instinct told him it was nothing good. Thinking again, only Rebecca and Max were &lt;br /&gt;
present during the Necromancia’s attack. What kind of students are they to make Rebecca describe them as ‘a little hard to deal with’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Ash’s attention was averted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Cheers!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette happily filled everyone’s glasses with an amber colour liquid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The last person that Cosetee went to was Angela. Cosette was not at all surprise and continued to fill up her glass.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Ash was shocked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! Why are you here!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;When did she manage to get in?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He definitely could not feel her presence until just a moment ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco-chan and Ash-kun are both precious sample for my research. Since I am not allowed to dissect, I could a least do some close &lt;br /&gt;
observation.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela then smiled coldly to them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had heard of all of your good deeds at St Durham Square. Now, I must listen to the details from you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After gulping down the entire glass of wine, Angela’s cheeks turned rosy. In an instant, her cold attitude disappeared and was replaced by &lt;br /&gt;
an adult feel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, there was not a hint of smile coming from her eyes. It gave the feeling of being dissected by them. Ash felt as if he was a frog &lt;br /&gt;
being targeted by a snake.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without knowing what Ash was thinking, Eco and Silvia scolded at the same time:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Why are you being attracted by this female!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you even a man of the proud Lautreamont Knight Country!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco and Silvia took Ash as being falling in love. He however was innocent to begin with.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The nonsense will stop here.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca raised her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stood up majestically and gracefully lifted her glass. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For the new members who join the student council…. Cheers!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The night had just begun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;The Knight of ECO I&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3|Chapter 3]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 2 Illustrations|Volume 2 Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Epilogue&amp;diff=354092</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Epilogue</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Epilogue&amp;diff=354092"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T16:16:58Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 7 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Epilogue==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
Year 1356 A.S.B. The month of Aeries.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Inside the deep forest is a meeting of a boy and a girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
Not long after her seventh birthday, Silvia had departed from Fontaine City and had arrived at Albion Forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Albion Forest- A holy place where the mother dragon resides.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Needless to say, she came here for the Orphan Ceremony which was an obligation stated by the Royal Knight Family.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once a person was selected by the mother dragon, he or she would become a Breeder.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia had sworn that she would return as a Breeder.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was unable to forget about the sudden disappearance of her brother.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As the heir to the throne, Julius who was granted the title Dragner at his teens was being called the Dragon Slayer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to the rumours, Julius had killed his Pal. However, Silvia was not able to understand why her gentle brother would commit such a &lt;br /&gt;
crime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia really would like to question her brother face to face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With those thoughts, she challenged the Orphan Ceremony…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;Since they were children, all of the conversation language used were quite simple. If there were to be any tough language used it would be because of the translation.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
“Stoooooop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although her determination was touching, Albion forest is not as easy as it seems.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The trees were so high that they reached the skies and the air around was humid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The rotting leaves and the dirt didn’t give a pleasant smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time she saw a rat, a snake or even a spider, she would run away crying. Although she yearns to be a knight, Silvia was really timid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, she fell and twisted her leg.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pain was so immense that she couldn’t even take another step.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“&#039;&#039;*Sob*&#039;&#039;…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her only support was a stuff toy that was brought with her as a lucky charm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a very important stuff toy to Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was called Lancelot. A few years before, when she went to Arkham the capital of the Chevron Kingdom, she had gotten it at the market there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She thought that Lancelot was cute but that was not the case for the people around her. Even the maids who served her said that Lancelot doesn’t look like a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her tears were staring to flow out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Orphan Ceremony was about to end and she will have to go home empty handed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“*Sob*…*Sob*…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She hated her incompetence. Even though she knew that she must not remain at this place, her legs were ignoring her will.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she started crying, there were rustles in the bushes in front of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hic…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A boy appeared in front of Silvia who was trying to run away. Like Silvia he must have been one of the attendees of the Orphan Ceremony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy walked towards Silvia and stretched out his hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you hurt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy asked without hesitating but was scolded by Silvia. To Silvia, the boy’s words hurt her pride as a royal princess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-No!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But the situation seemed to be the other way round. Silvia looked to be in pain when she tried to stand and at the same time, Lancelot &lt;br /&gt;
fell on to the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy picked up Lancelot with a look of surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is this… a Chimera?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia with red cheeks objected and tried to grab Lancelot back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haha…So it is a dragon. My bad.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy showed a bitter smile. He then turned around and knelled down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What kind of a behavior is this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was not able to understand what the boy had in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t it obvious? I am going to bring you to the entrance of this forest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What! Doesn’t this mean that I am going back? And didn’t it also mean that I am going to give up on this Orphan Ceremony?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy nodded his head as if that was the most obvious thing to do.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. How can you even search for a dragon with an injured leg?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Shut up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s scold gave the boy a shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I need a Pal! Going back is out of the topic!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the thing that you call Pal?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was in rage when she saw the boy stare at her confusedly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-As a citizen of the Knight Country, how can you not know what a Pal is! Remember this! A Pal is a dragon who would become your &lt;br /&gt;
partner! It is a sacred word!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“R-Right…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Silvia did not intent to end it just like that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“By the way, what are you even doing? Since you have time to mind about me, why don’t you spend your time looking for dragons? Could it be &lt;br /&gt;
that, you…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What about me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia approached him. The boy’s face was red from embarrassment and he looked away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Or maybe you are just pretending to search? Recently, I had heard rumours that spiritless children like you were increasing…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that… I also want to meet a dragon… I think?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although his words don’t match with each other, Silvia had at least forgiven him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then, let’s go! I will now tell you my family motto! Listen carefully!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia straightened her back and spoke in a loud voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A knight’s pride is with his dragon!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! If I am to look for the dragon, what about you? Won’t you be lonely?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned silent. The word ‘lonely; had pierced through her heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… You really shouldn’t act strong.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… To give up because of some injuries…. Never! That will never happen to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy laughs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now I understand. You wanted an Orphan no matter what, no?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That&#039;s it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If that’s the case, then there is only one option left.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy clenched his fist as he stared at Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His gallant looks made Silvia’s heart skipped a beat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will look for the mother dragon together. I will give you a piggyback.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was lost in words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Really?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again, the boy turned around and knelled down. Silvia continued to doubt for a moment but she was finally able to make up her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her heart was beating quickly when their bodies were touching against each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy started walking with Silvia on his back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
…The dream ends.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Epona House the girls’ dormitory for the advance class students.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the top most floor, in a room specially designed for royals, Silvia slowly opened her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The night had ended and the morning rays pierced through the gaps in the curtains.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia sat up after rubbing her sleepy eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop, Princess-sama… That is bad…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sleeping on a bed next to her, Cosette was having a weird dream.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was having a headache thinking what kind of a dream she was dreaming.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Dream?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not long after her seventh birthday, Silvia had visited Albion Forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She met a boy there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia unbuttoned her pajamas and exposed her bare chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her Seikoku was imprinted at the middle of her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was about the size of her palm and was looked similar to the ancient language.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia touched her Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I wonder when he is…?’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She felt nostalgic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That being said…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before parting, Silvia gave the boy her Lancelot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was to show him her gratitude.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She also hoped that the boy will never forget about her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although her memories of that time was not clear, she could still clearly remember that the boy took it with a smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
It had been three days since the attack on Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to Ash and Eco, the dragon who caused all this trouble was called a Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were about thirty people injured in this incident and luckily there were no casualties.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As for the building, four of them were totally destroyed and one was half destroyed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
St Durham Square was temporarily closed to the public while the restoring works were on going.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thinking carefully, this kind of destruction is a miracle considering the amount of magic that the Necromancia possessed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, these were all thanks to Ash and everyone’s effort that had minimized the destruction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The investigation on the Necromancia had only started.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
In Ansarivan, there was a tradition where friends will celebrate the birth of a Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was also known as the Pal Party.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Usually, every person’s Pal was born on their first year in the basic class.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Ash’s Pal never born during the three years of his basic class years and he was now a advance class student.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seemed that he had forgotten about this tradition.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The attack from the Necromancia had given them a day off by the academy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was Rebecca who suggested organizing a Pal Party.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Ash was very grateful, his room was in a total mess. Max had clean it for him a month before but it had returned to its original &lt;br /&gt;
state.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright… I guess we have to clean it until tonight.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash started dusting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it was Max, it would have been done in just a few moments. Max would probably clean it with great vigour the moment he saw his room. &lt;br /&gt;
However, Max was injured and Ash shouldn’t be asking for his help.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zzz… Zzz….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now was the time for Eco to take her afternoon nap. Ash continued with his cleaning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
First, Ash threw away all the rubbish that was lying on the floor. He then made up his mind to throw away all the unwanted things too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Next, he took out all the unwanted clothings and book from the closet that he no longer needs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly stopped cleaning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Something strange had fallen out from the closet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stuffed toy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash didn’t not have any habits of collecting stuffed toys. To say nothing of the stuffed toy that didn’t look cute at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On a second though looked a little like a dragon but somehow, he felt that it looked more like a Chimera that appears in myth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash scratched his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err… What is this thing…? I can’t remember at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could vaguely remember that this toy was important to him. But he couldn’t remember why it was important at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, I better leave it in the closet. They would be sure to laugh at me if they saw it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
Ash continued to clean his room until the evening.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Almost done.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s voice had woken up Eco from her afternoon nap.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! You are irritating! “&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash replied patiently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Whatever the case, today’s party is for me and you. There will be many things to eat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was in charge of the food for the party. Everyone was looking forward to it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eh? Really?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco became wide awake the moment she heard that there will be many foods.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ash, it’s me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s voice could be heard from the other side of the door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Coming!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash ran to open the door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hallo Ash. Have you done with your cleaning?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca asked an important question the moment they meet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How did you know!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Naw… I just have a hunch. Well, well, I also brought an important guest with me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was hiding behind Rebecca’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I didn’t really intend on coming but I was dragged here by the president. It is not like what it seems!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was scolding him the moment they met.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly had a strange feeling. After noticing it, his heart was pumping up and down nonstop. The Silvia right now was not wearing her &lt;br /&gt;
usual Dragsuit but an evening dress.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 245.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu… I came here because I haven’t seen Princess-sama being this interesting for a long time. By the way, the Princess took three hours &lt;br /&gt;
to choose her dress.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette was laughing from Silvia’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“S-Shut up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With Rebecca, Silvia, Cosette and non the least Eco when she was quiet, Ash’s room was full of beautiful girls.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Don’t forget about us! We won’t be missing out from such a nice event!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Raymond’s voice had brought him back from paradise. Right beside Raymond, stood Max.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Keeping an eye on the president was also a job for me who is in charge of the accounts. I am not here for the celebration!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max was no better than Silvia. When did the job of keeping an eye on the president had fallen on the person who keeps tracks of the &lt;br /&gt;
account.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Raymond and Max were holding a huge bag. They were probably using it as an excuse to join the party.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, the Pal Party begins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
Lights powered by Bright Dragon crystals had brighten up the room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Many foods for the party had been lined up on the table. One of the best few was roast chicken with herbs. Eco felt like she was dreaming.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Glup!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly her eyes rolled in agony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Do you have heartburn? You shouldn’t have eaten too much of fatty food.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice. It was because the chicken was too delicious!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please don’t push the blame to the chicken.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, alright. There are still many more chickens. Anyway, Eco is our main character for today. Just eat as many as you like.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash turned confuse once he heard what Rebecca had said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Isn’t it me who is the main character?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm, now I remember. I totally forgot about it after I saw how Eco eats.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca made a bitter smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
‘No matter when it is, cuteness is always justice. A bastard like you should just move aside!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond spoke of a terrible thing casually.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A healthy room means a healthy life… What a bunch of work to be done.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time Eco finished the food on her plate, Max would definitely clean it away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The dragon is the symbol of our country. That is why Eco is our main character.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only Cosette was smiling while bringing them new bottles of drinks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
After some time, everyone was getting dizzy and most of the people stopped speaking. Raymond and Max were fast asleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huff…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who had satisfied her stomach was almost asleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you sleepy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash asked but he was scolded by Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph… What did you take me as…? I still want to eat…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she stubbornly tried to stay awake, she could not resist the urge to sleep. Ash could only carry her and place her on the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, it was weird for Raymond who usually stays up late to fall asleep this early. Also, it was unnatural for Max who valued his pride &lt;br /&gt;
highly to sleep unprotected in front of everyone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Nnn?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By taking a closer look, their faces were red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that… Rebecca-san, what actually is in this bottle?’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca calmly took the bottle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“ Muscat &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;A type of grape.&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;juice. A popular product from Asarivan. What about it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Juice?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile. Anyone would have known if they just read the label on the bottle. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anyway, it was a party night. It wouldn’t matter much.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem is, even though they had emptied three bottles of juice, Rebecca’s face never show a hint of change.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! The &#039;&#039;&#039;simpleton&#039;&#039;&#039; over there!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, someone was smacking his back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being called a simpleton is not something he fancied.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling. When he turned around, he found out that Silvia was glaring at him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What’s the matter?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was obviously drunk.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The hem of her dress was in a mess and her inner thighs could be seen. Her face was red and her eyes were watery.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To begin with, since a long time ago, I had started to hate you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why can you ride on other student’s Pal? Isn’t it weird? What the hell is with ‘The boy who can ride on any dragon’! You are bending the &lt;br /&gt;
law of nature!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I also don’t know…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash glanced at Rebecca in hope that she come to his help. Unfortunately, Rebecca was search for a bottle opener with Cosette while she was &lt;br /&gt;
holding a new bottle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t look around when someone was talking to you! This is from my family motto!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was crawling towards Ash. Ash could see her cleavage.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia may look like a slender type but in fact, her size was giving Ash trouble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since you are born with such great talent, why don’t you work hard in your studies? No matter how much talent you posses, you won’t turn &lt;br /&gt;
out successful if there is no hard work!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are complexly right…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash gave a simple reply, Silvia swallowed a full cup in a one-go and started spurting nonsense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The worst thing is…. Why would I even be bothered by a problem child like you…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You can never be compared with &#039;&#039;&#039;that boy&#039;&#039;&#039;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That boy? Who is he?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s slip of her tongue had caught everyone’s interest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is totally unexpected. For there exist a boy who is able to stole Her Highness’s heart. By all mean, could you please tell us who &lt;br /&gt;
the lucky guy was?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was totally into it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eh? T-This… That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia seemed to be in a pinch. Her face turned from red to white. Suddenly, she was no longer drunk.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-Nothing! Just forget about it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How could it be nothing? Your face moments ago looked just like the face of a girl in love.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I never make such a face!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible. Nothing can deceive this Rebecca onee-san’s eyes. Well, the night is still young. Why don’t you tell us more about the &lt;br /&gt;
boy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you are talking about such topic, I must also take part in it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette immediately approached Silvia. Right now, Silvia was totally surrounded and was shaken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That is a story from a long time ago…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was red in her face and her eyes kept wondering around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, alright. We won’t question you anymore. By the way, I would like to tell you the reason for me to organize this party.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her smile disappeared and was replaced by a serious look. Both Ash and Silvia exchange glances and there was no longer a relax feeling in &lt;br /&gt;
the party.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia straighten their bodies and sat properly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“During that incident, I was sad that the student council don’t have enough man power. By including me, right now there are only four &lt;br /&gt;
members in the student council. That is why I would like to invite the both of to to join the student council.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was the second time Ash was invited.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was the first to reply:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot and I will gladly join. I will not let such a thing happen another time. During that incident, there is nothing that I am able &lt;br /&gt;
to do…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! How you dare act humble! Without you and Lancelot, I am the one who is not able to do anything.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Shut up! You don’t even know how I feel.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash tried to comfort Silvia but it came to an opposite result.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are always steps in front of me! Do you even know what you had done? For example, although your Ark was a mimic…. But you were still &lt;br /&gt;
an Ark Dragner at that time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally realized after it was mentioned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s innocent answer was adding oil to fire.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you making fun of me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Calm down both of you. I am right to say that the Princess’s reply was OK?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca changed the topic and stare at Silvia intently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes! I will do my best! By the way… I want you to call me by my name. At least at the Student Council, please call me Silvia. I don’t &lt;br /&gt;
want to be treated like a princess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca nodded in satisfaction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood. What about you, Ash?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as he was speaking, he felt an immersed pressure coming from beside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was Silvia who was glaring at him as if she was telling him not to hesitate.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Alright! I will join!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although he felt that he was forced to join, he could only move forward step by step since he had made his promise.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am grateful for both of you! Then let us proceed to the simple welcoming ceremony.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was confused, Rebecca made her move. Her lips were placed on Ash’s face. He could clearly feel her heat and smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“President…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had not yet recover looked at Rebecca as her lips left his face. It was probably because of the shock, he somehow felt that her &lt;br /&gt;
eyes were charming.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! You call youself a man from the Knight Country? Tsk…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! You as my dog how dare you acting all lovey dovey with all these females!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was Eco voice that had over shadowed Silvia’s. Though she had been sleeping before this, right now, she was like a raging ball of fire.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was rare to see that Eco and Silvia agrees with each other. But it was Rebecca who stepped forward and protected Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now I see… Both of you are jealous.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco and Silvia were in lost of words when Rebecca hits the bull’s eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-Never! I would never be shaken by such a trivial matter!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That’s right! Jealousy only exits in the feelings of the dumb humans!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that Eco and Silvia were trying to explain themselves out from this mess, Rebecca roared in laughter.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu. It feels quite nice toying with both of you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After saying, Rebecca kissed Eco and Silvia on their cheeks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco and Silvia were silenced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright! With this, the ceremony ends. Welcome to the student council!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right after Rebecca declared…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“P-President…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A weak voice like an old man came from behind Ash. Max who had woken up was looking at them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“During the time when I join the student council, why isn’t there any ceremony… &#039;&#039;Ouc!&#039;&#039;”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The glass that Rebecca was holding smashed into his forehead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max fainted immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who witnessed the entire incident felt shivers.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca continued to smile as if nothing had happened. Ash felt as if he was seeing a devil.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, both of you should have known Max from the accounts. As for the vice president and the secretary I will introduce them to you on &lt;br /&gt;
another day. Although both of them are a little hard to deal with, they are nothing lest from a great Dragner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Ash heard the words ‘a little hard to deal with’ instinct told him it was nothing good. Thinking again, only Rebecca and Max were &lt;br /&gt;
present during the Necromancia’s attack. What kind of students are they to make Rebecca describe them as ‘a little hard to deal with’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Ash’s attention was averted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Cheers!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette happily filled everyone’s glasses with an amber colour liquid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The last person that Cosetee went to was Angela. Cosette was not at all surprise and continued to fill up her glass.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But Ash was shocked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! Why are you here!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;When did she manage to get in?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He definitely could not feel her presence until just a moment ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco-chan and Ash-kun are both precious sample for my research. Since I am not allowed to dissect, I could a least do some close &lt;br /&gt;
observation.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela then smiled coldly to them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had heard of all of your good deeds at St Durham Square. Now, I must listen to the details from you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After gulping down the entire glass of wine, Angela’s cheeks turned rosy. In an instant, her cold attitude disappeared and was replaced by &lt;br /&gt;
an adult feel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, there was not a hint of smile coming from her eyes. It gave the feeling of being dissected by them. Ash felt as if he was a frog &lt;br /&gt;
being targeted by a snake.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without knowing what Ash was thinking, Eco and Silvia scolded at the same time:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Why are you being attracted by this female!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you even a man of the proud Lautreamont Knight Country!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco and Silvia took Ash as being falling in love. He however was innocent to begin with.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The nonsense will stop here.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca raised her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stood up majestically and gracefully lifted her glass. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For the new members who join the student council…. Cheers!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The night had just begun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;The Knight of ECO I&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3|Chapter 3]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 2 Illustrations|Volume 2 Novel Illustrations]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354091</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354091"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T15:57:57Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 23 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 3 - Necromancia&#039;s Attack==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
The month of Aries had ended and it was the arrival of the month of Taurus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem concerning Eco&#039;s lodging was put on hold and no decision had been made yet because of the incident where Angela had become a teacher in just a flash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In short, Eco was still sleeping on Ash&#039;s bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem they were facing was, Apollo House which was the dormitory where Ash was staying at is a male&#039;s dorm. Furthermore, Eco is an extremely beautiful girl as long as she kept her mouth shut.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ash was staying with such a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was obvious some weird rumours would emerge among the students who were living in Apollo House.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
The class room of the first year advanced course.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When school was about to dismissed, Raymond walked towards Ash&#039;s table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yo, Ash. Why don’t we go and have some fun since we are free?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, I have to go to the student council’s office.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Student council…? Why?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err, the president asked for me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had informed Ash to find a free time to visit the student council’s office about a week ago. Since Eco had gotten used to the campus &lt;br /&gt;
life, it should be about time for him to make his visit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it true? I think Rebecca Nee-san should have many questions for you. Or many she wants to blame you for something… Just by thinking…&lt;br /&gt;
Haaa… Haaa.” &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have nothing to say to you…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err… did &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; goes well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash asked while Raymond pushed his face nearer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond was looking totally serious.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Aren’t you teaching Eco on the bed?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Raymond had ended his sentence, the entire class turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was looking at Ash with suspicious eyes. Everyone in the academy knew that Ash’s pal was born as a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t say something that will make people misunderstood! Don’t you know that Eco is a dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond smile sinisterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Right, anyway I knew that you don’t even have the guts to do &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then just don’t say something that will make people misunderstood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haha… Could it be that you are the one who was being taught?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because Raymond who had hit the bull’s eye with just a guess, Ash was a little taken aback but he dare not speak back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
The student council office was located at the highest floor of the academy’s centre tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gulped when he was standing in front of the grand door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From a long time ago, Ansarivan’s student council had a huge power. They not only dealt with the academy’s council but they also have the right &lt;br /&gt;
of speech in the city council. According to some rumours, the student council president’s power is superior to the mayor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please enter.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before he even knocked, the student council president’s voice could be heard. This made Ash tremble a little.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for interrupting.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He timidly opened the door and walked into the office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was crossing her arms while standing by the window that was at the far end of the room. There wasn’t another soul in this room. When he &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that they were alone, Ash who had felt uneasy from the start was now sweating nervously.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahhh, Ash. You finally came!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca turned around and stared at Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With her marble statue like beauty together with her crimson coloured hair, it let out an amazing feeling. Even her body proportion outshone &lt;br /&gt;
other people. Her curves were perfect and not even her uniform could hide it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca Randall who had received the Ark-Dragner title was not only well known in Ansarivan. Her name was widely spread in the entire Knight &lt;br /&gt;
Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even in the well known Holy Dragners of Lautreamont had only one in a ten of their members who received the title Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from that, the requirements to obtain the title Ark-Dragner is very strict.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fuu. Don’t be shy. Just take a seat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-Yes…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat at a corner of the sofa, frightened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca sat beside Ash without even a second thought. He smelled something refreshing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was uneasy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was nervous because of their close distance where they can feel each other’s breath. Since there was also a sofa located right opposite, &lt;br /&gt;
logically speaking, Rebecca should have sat there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Rebecca showed a playful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To get to know another person better, sitting side by side is the best choice, this is common knowledge for dating.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Is it…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Young man, you must remember it. Next time, if you are on a date, remember not to sit opposite of her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, dates or whatever… It is still a far away dream.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was blushing in embarrassment while Rebecca unexpectedly was enjoying that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… In another words, no one had noticed your true value yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“True value?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If for me, I still haven’t determined how good of a man you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly stopped smiling and moved towards the main topic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In short, I am here to discuss the things regarding Eco with you… Saying that, what is she doing when you are in class? You can’t just keep &lt;br /&gt;
her in the man’s dormitory right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, Cosette is helping me with that. I don’t think that it will be a problem.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the kidnapping incident a few days ago had ended, Ash had told Cosette his trouble when they were chit chatting. Cosette immediately &lt;br /&gt;
volunteered to help take care of Eco. Since Costte also had nothing to do when Silvia was attending classes, she can accompany Eco in Ash’s &lt;br /&gt;
place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only think he worried about was whether Eco will accept Cosette. Until today, it seemed like there was no such problem. In front of &lt;br /&gt;
Cosette, Eco was always acting mature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Cosette huh? There won’t be a problem if it is her. I had met Cosette a few times before and she is not someone to be underestimated.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So Rebecca-san also thinks so?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile because he was thinking something bad about Cosette.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Umm… It is said that when the Paladin sent Princess Silvia to Ansarivan, about a hundred maids and guards were sent together.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! It must be troublesome…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Princess of course had gone against the Paladin’s will. In the end, because the Paladin insisted, she brought Cosette alone along with &lt;br /&gt;
her. Judging from that, Cosette is something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Back to the topic, you are also something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was looking at him sharply until he started to sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you talking about?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When had you started to have this close relationship with Cosette?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s beautiful face was getting closer. The refreshing smell was getting stronger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being asked something unexpected, Ash’s head started spinning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How dare you hide something from me? It isn’t good you know. By the way, you are not thinking that Rebecca Randall is someone simple &lt;br /&gt;
right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s face was getting closer and closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought there was a faint hint of a smile by her lips, her eyes were not smiling at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Alright! Please promise me that… Don’t tell anyone about this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, I guess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca nodded and moved her head backwards back to her original position.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash took a deep breath and told her everything about the incident where Eco had been kidnapped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
The seventh dragon house was specially built for Maestros. Apart from Rebecca’s Cú Chulainn, there were four more Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Take it slowly, there are many more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Lancelot was gulping down the thickly sliced meat, Silvia smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Normally, jobs like feeding, preparing the beds, balancing the nutrients, cleaning… were done by the groom of the dragon house. The breeders &lt;br /&gt;
on the other hand just need to focus their thoughts on studying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However Silvia had always taken care of Lancelot on her own.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyday, she will always visit the dragon house five times. She will feed it on her own, clean the dragon house and even give Lancelot a bath. &lt;br /&gt;
If Lancelot felt itchy, she will sure to be there to give a scratch on that spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Silvia’s care, Lancelot who was born as a Strada had grown into a beautiful Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her achievement was acknowledged and she had received the title Dragner in the young age of fourteen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The title Dragner can only be received by a breeder whose Pal is a Maestro. It had been a tradition in the Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Silvia was never satisfied with her current achievement. Her aim was to become a ‘Great Dragner’. Just the title Dragner could &lt;br /&gt;
never satisfy her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright Lancelot… Next will be an Ark-Dragner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia patted Lancelot after she spoke out her thought. Its silvery white fur was tick and felt nice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Silvia pressed her hands against her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s proof of a Breeder the Seikoku was at the middle of her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her memories when she was seven came into her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To obtain an orphan from the mother dragon, Silvia had entered Albion Forest alone. However, she injured her leg and was crying while standing. &lt;br /&gt;
She left the palace with the thought of she will definitely become a breeder but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then there was a young boy who reached out to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Like Silvia, the young guy was here on the same day for the Orphan Ceremony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-I will give you a piggyback while we look for mother dragon together.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s heart beat increased when she thought about the guy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If not for his help, Silvia would never have become a Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… I had made a promise with him. I will become a great knight. If I did anything that should not be done by an owner, I want you &lt;br /&gt;
to scold me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadly, Lancelot only had its eyes on the meat and was not bothered by Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk, what a child you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia shook her head and gave a wry smile. Although it had become a Maestro, it was still a young dragon. Compare to Cú Chulainn, its body &lt;br /&gt;
size was definitely smaller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Speaking of that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was thinking about Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only student who dared to challenge Silvia Lautreamont.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, Silvia had won the match but she didn’t have the feeling of victory. On the other hand it can be said as a losing feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had given Silvia a help on the race’s position arrangement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She clearly understood her attitude of looking down on her enemy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only that she had never thought that such a despicable method will be used. If not for Ash who made use of the chance, Silvia would not be &lt;br /&gt;
able to win.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash Blake… I have never seen such an irregular guy. He could even ride on other people’s Pal as he liked which is out of common knowledge. In the &lt;br /&gt;
end, what is the trick he was using-?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Silvia was mumbling, there was a cry of help from outside of the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon has gone mad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash had told her everything, Rebecca sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… For such a thing to happen. Angela-sensei is also a troublesome person. She is one of the best in the continent in dragon researching.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had never thought that teacher could be such a great person…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is a total dragon maniac. She had thought of becoming a Dragner since she was still a child. In the end, she was not selected in the &lt;br /&gt;
Orphan Ceremony…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will never hand an orphan to her if I am the mother dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Perhaps not being selected had left her with traumas until today. However, Angela-sensei’s skills and knowledge are the real stuff. Lets observe her for the time being.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Observe…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t hide his sad looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it is possible, he doesn’t want to have anything to do with her for a second time…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right! There is one more thing about Eco. It is about when you are in the forest and you said that you had encountered some uninvited &lt;br /&gt;
guest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash with a ‘Hah’ lifted his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Many things had happened after Eco was born and he had forgotten about it. The suspected to be Empire’s soldier was lurking around in the &lt;br /&gt;
Knight Country territory. This is not something to be overlooked.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In the end, just who are those two?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The masked man called Milgauss with an extraordinary temperament.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl who wanted to have Ash killed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… ‘Milgauss’ should be a nickname. It doesn’t look like an Empire’s surname. Perhaps he could be the Empire’s agent. If that’s the case, &lt;br /&gt;
this is not a problem that a mere student could solve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had never thought of Rebecca as a ‘mere student’, but he chose to keep this thought to himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, I will pass your message to the peace keepers’ office. However, if the masked man is from the Empire’s army, I am afraid that the &lt;br /&gt;
peace keepers will also be helpless.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she remained calm, the way she had spoken was terrifying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It should be alright, right? Ansarivan is an academy for breeders and not a military school. It shouldn’t be targeted by the Empire.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We are not the military’s backup. The paths that a Breeder can take is not only limited to joining the Knight corps or the dragon elite troops. What’s more, Lautreamont Knight Country was built with the rules that no dragons were allowed in the military. However, it is still the truth that &#039;&#039;&#039;THAT WAR&#039;&#039;&#039; had changed Lautreamont Knight Country and Ansarivan.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-That war. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the ‘Xenoglavia War’ that was triggered fifty two years before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Lautreamont Knight Country was established, it was the first time that the dragons were sent to war.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It all begins when the Zepharos Empire’s armies from the north attacked Chevron Kingdom’s territory in the south.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Empire’s armies were armed with many mechanical weapons and had a huge amount of destruction force. In just a short moment, Chevron’s &lt;br /&gt;
Royal Knights that was said to be strongest mounted troops in the whole continent was wiped out. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Chevron’s king who was worried sent a secret messenger to Lautreamont Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, the dragons who were not involved in any wars for four hundred and fifty years flew towards the battle field once again to save &lt;br /&gt;
their allies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Holy Dragners of Lautreamont led by the Paladin himself joined the battle and the Empire’s armies that had suffered great causality were &lt;br /&gt;
forced to retreat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, the Kingdom and the Empire signed a truce.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To the Empire, Ansarivan was not only a place for the military backup, but also a factory that produces mass destructions weapons. In another &lt;br /&gt;
words, it is a military base. Just by judging from this, it is highly possible that Ansarivan is their target for the preparation for the next &lt;br /&gt;
war.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that Ash had turned pale, Rebecca smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t have to be surprised, Ash. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That… It is you, Rebecca-san.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That&#039;s it. Cú Chulainn and I will protect Ansarivan at all cost. That is why I want you to join us.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, even you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca pressed forward and their shoulders were touching each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you not want to join the student council?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked by the unexpected invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible! Since all the student council members are Dragners.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So one cannot join the student council if they are not a Dragner? I don’t remember such rules. It was just by chance that it looked like that &lt;br /&gt;
in this year.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I heard from every person around you that you are called as ‘The Boy Who Can Ride Any Dragon’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that exaggeration is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You don’t have to act humble. Even I could not ride on another person’s Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before anyone noticed, they are at the distance where their nose could touch. Rebecca’s beauty was drawing closer.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 149.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly noticed that Rebecca’s palm was on his knee.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s body heat could be felt by Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s heart was at the verge of exploding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be exact, I want you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can you please think about it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, but… If I… The student council-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At this moment, as if helping Ash who was getting anxious, the bell rang. Compare to the normal bells, this bell doesn’t sound stable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from the continuous ringing of the bell, it should be the emergency bell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Level two emergency state…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had recognized the meaning of the bell in just a short time and moved towards the side of the window. Ash too was taking a peep &lt;br /&gt;
outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The ‘level two emergency state’ in Ansarivan means that a certain dragon had caused havoc and had flown out from the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The entire school ground could be seen from the student council office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, a Strada was running amok. Its body was small and it looked as if it was just born days before. It still couldn’t spread its &lt;br /&gt;
wings let alone flying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca gave a wry smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa, this happens usually during this time of year. It will end in a short while.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected of the student council president Rebecca, she was calm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few grooms had arrived at the scene and had the dragon surrounded with nets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragons are living things with high intelligence, however they are also short tempered. Especially during the times when they were young, it &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
was not unusual for them to turn mad because of some small matters. Even their owners could do nothing about it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course all the grooms working in the dragon house had undergone special training to handle such situation. Just as Rebecca had said, the &lt;br /&gt;
incident could be settled in a short moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash himself had lost interest in the incident and wanted to leave the window side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who arrived at the scene jumped on the young dragon that had gone mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She looked like she was trying to suppress the young dragon with her own power. Her actions doesn’t match her usual self for it was a &lt;br /&gt;
foolhardy decision.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from their owner who they acknowledged, the dragons will never allow anyone to ride on their back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Silvia was trying her best to just cling on the dragon’s back. She was in a fix because she could be thrown out anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s action had obviously caused trouble to the grooms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is she an idiot! What is princess-sama trying to pull…?!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is most probably because of her ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t understand what Rebecca was saying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From what I can see, Her Highness is a perfectionist. No matter what kind of losing it is, she hates it. When there is a classmate who can &lt;br /&gt;
ride any dragon exist, she was burning with the ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just because of such things…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash frowned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To Her Highness, it was never ‘Just because of such things’.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… If that’s the case, I will go and help her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There is no need for that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The voice that hurts like a whip forced Ash to stop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true that you have some unusual talent. However, are you confident enough that you will be able to suppress the young dragon and at the &lt;br /&gt;
same time prevent Her Highness from getting hurt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s sharp words had made Ash speechless. If it was to calm down the young dragon, Ash himself was more than enough.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Ash doesn’t have to confidence to guarantee to be able to save Silvia without getting her hurt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, what she we do…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I had said it just before. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Rebecca humped onto the window frame. Her red hair that looked like it was on fire was dancing with the winds. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on…! Rebecca-san? What do you think-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will end this quickly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, Rebecca disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca jumped down from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked and took a peek downwards from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Answer my summon…Cú Chulainn!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Out of a sudden, there was a twist in the space beneath Rebecca and Cú Chulainn appeared majestically.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she had landed safely on Cú Chulainn’s back, she spoke strictly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“In my name Rebecca Randall, present me the Ark you created!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn roared in respond to Rebecca’s summon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was light surrounding Rebecca’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her uniform that she had worn until just now had dissolved in the sea of lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a short time, her naked body was exposed. However, because of the excessive brightness, Ash was unable to look at her clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next time Ash opened his eyes, Rebecca’s body was already surrounded by a dazzling knight’s armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was just like a knight from the legends looked godly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is… the Ark!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had heard before about it in the rumours but today was the first time he witnessed it with his own eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was the proof of an absolute loyalty from a Maestro to its owner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment a Dragner received an Ark from his Pal, he will be known as an Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Whoosh!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn’s huge body had flew up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong wind pressure nearly had Ash who was standing by the window blown off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s scream was heard from down below. She was floating in mid air as if she was sent flying by a chariot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash leaned his body out from the window frame and shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just before Silvia lands on the ground, Cú Chulainn accelerating downwards. In Ash eyes, Cú Chulainn was like teleporting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Cú Chulainn was again flying upwards, Rebecca had caught Silvia&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash, Her Highness is in your care!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could even respond to it, Rebecca had her eyes poised at the student council’s office’s window and threw out Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the distance was not even two meters, but to throw a country’s princess, it was not at all normal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in surprise and caught Silvia. They were in the so called ‘Princess carry’ situation and he must stand firm no matter what.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Ash&#039;s arms, Silvia had lost her consciousness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even under such situation, Ash’s heart was beating rapidly. His left hand that was supporting Silvia’s lower half was touching something soft &lt;br /&gt;
and elastic. Also, the was a flower like fragrance coming from her dazzling golden hair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, he heard Rebecca’s spell coming from outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&amp;quot;Appear… The certain hit magic spear…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The was a flash in respond to Rebecca’s spell and an enormous spear had appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the Ark-Weapon that only an Ark-Dragner could use.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An Ark was not just simply an armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was stored with strong magic and it comes with a one and only Ark-Weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Gáe Bolg!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Ash’s eyes, Rebecca swung the magic spear Gáe Bolg!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong magic transformed into a ray of light and was shot down onto the ground. There was a small explosion on the ground beside the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging young dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there was a slight mistake, the young dragon will definitely die. However, it was Rebecca that we were talking about. The shock from the &lt;br /&gt;
explosion had caused the young dragon to faint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a while since Rebecca had the young dragon suppressed, Silvia woke up while lying in Ash’s arms. When she found out that she was carried by Ash-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wha…! What are you doing…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was blushing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! Don’t move around! I can’t hold on any longer!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he warned, Silvia fell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was glaring at Ash with tears in her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I warn you that you will fall! Anyway why did you do that? You would have been dead &lt;br /&gt;
if not because of Rebecca’s help!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Don’t even understand how it feels!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment she shouted, tears were dripping from her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To hide her crying looks, Silvia turned around and ran out from the student &lt;br /&gt;
council’s office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the matter, Princess-sama…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled. Next, there was a voice coming from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry. It is my duty to deal with the Princess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, Rebecca who had changed back into her uniform was sitting on the &lt;br /&gt;
window frame and was with a smile full of confidence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
The next day after the young dragon’s incident was a school holiday.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had again accompanied Eco to Ansarivan City. In truth, Ash wanted to pass &lt;br /&gt;
his time in the dorm, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The crepes are calling out to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With this reason alone, Ash went out with Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, let’s hunt down the crepe stall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After passing by the main door that separates the academy and the city, Eco &lt;br /&gt;
immediately dragged Ash with her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Does a food made by a stupid and ignorant human being taste that well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sh-Shut up! It is the humans that are stupid and ignorant! The crepes had &lt;br /&gt;
nothing to do with this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned red when she replied to Ash’s tease and she continued to march &lt;br /&gt;
on forward. Eco’s respond made Ash felt a little bad… Maybe he should reflect &lt;br /&gt;
on that a little. Ash chased after Eco’s small back and knocked into someone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash just lost his balance for just a moment but the other person had fell on the &lt;br /&gt;
ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, it was my bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately held out his hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… Me too. Because I am careless…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person answering was a girl at Ash’s age range. There was also a flower &lt;br /&gt;
basket by her feet. The combination of her black hair and her oat colour skin &lt;br /&gt;
was very striking. Her worrisome looks together with her exotic face gave a &lt;br /&gt;
special feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment she saw Ash, her face stiffen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-You…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is there anything… On my face?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl grabbed the flower basket and flee. In a short moment, she managed to &lt;br /&gt;
blend into the crowd.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All the pedestrians beside was looking at Ash with the eyes that list him &lt;br /&gt;
as a pervert.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That’s not the case! I did nothing at all!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he explained to the people around him, Ash left the place as if him was &lt;br /&gt;
running away from something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Running away after looking at a person’s face, what a rude child she is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While cursing, he arrived at the crepe stall. Although she doesn’t even had any &lt;br /&gt;
money with her, Eco was calling out to the stall keeper just like a regular customer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me one Ansal Crepe!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
Anya who was the girl who pretended to be the flower seller was breathing heavily while hiding in an alley where there is no sign of other life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Previously, the moment she saw the guys face, she thought she had seen a ghost.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Last month, the guy who should have been dead was walking on the streets leisurely. Just that had given her a great shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;He should have been dead.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He had fallen into a pit less ravine and it will be impossible for him to be unscathed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It should have been more logical if it is another guy with the same looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that’s not it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be a mistake. That face, that voice, that tone… He was the one Anya met and killed in the forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;If that’s the case, why is he alive?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to logic, the chances for him to be able to survive were zero.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it was still the truth that he was alive. She had seen it with her own eyes, it was undoubtable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was surprising for the guy not to recognize Anya. However, thinking carefully, during that time, Anya had a mask on her face and she was &lt;br /&gt;
wearing her Tantalos battle suit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, no matter how you look at it, right now, Anya was just a flower seller. It was understandable if Ash couldn’t recognize &lt;br /&gt;
her. That is her only life saver.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What should I do…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That day, when she had returned back to Milgauss from the ravine, Anya had thought that it was impossible for the guy to survive so she &lt;br /&gt;
reported with ‘He was terminated’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss only replied with a ‘Thanks for the hard work’. Apart from that, he didn’t ask the specifics. To Milgauss, that guy was not at all &lt;br /&gt;
important.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was lost. Should she change the report that she had told Milgauss?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-The guy who fell into the ravine was actually still alive.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only until today she was going to show her report to Milgauss, that’s ridicules.&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the problem was not that simple.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For some time, Anya felt that there was a thorn that was piercing her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the time when the cliff was falling, the guy had given Anya a push. Thanks to that, it was not Anya who fell down the cliff.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even at the moment he was fated to die, he had chosen to save Anya.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To Anya who had spent her life living in the mountains, she couldn’t understand any of his actions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If the guy uses her as a stepping stone and saved himself, she could at least understand that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Anya’s village, there were many people who acted that way. From another perspective, if they are not tough enough, they mustn’t think about &lt;br /&gt;
surviving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya mumbled while she was staring at the basket of flowers blankly.&lt;br /&gt;
Her mind was in a mess. If she did not meet up with the guy, she won’t have to face any trouble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, if I was born as a flower seller… Will I be happier?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya suddenly turned angry and her flower basket fell on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She won’t allow herself to think about stupid stuffs for even a single moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stomped on the flowers that had scattered on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am an idiot! I had already decided to follow Milgauss-sama! Being besides Milgauss-sama is my source of happiness!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Anya was shouting out to her own self, the bell that signified noon rang. It was about time for her to return to Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
The noon bell had rung.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash and Eco arrived at St Durham square after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco immediately took a bite of the vanilla flavoured crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because she was not allowed to buy the ansal flavoured crepe, Eco didn&#039;t seem happy after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Vanilla is also not bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes glittered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s good to hear.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thankful for the vanilla flavoured crepe from the bottom of his heart. With just a mere fifty Glorins in exchange for a smile, it was worth the price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm, a holiday like this is not bad at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While Eco ate the vanilla flavoured crepe as if she was in heaven, Ash looked around the entire square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In addition to the locals, there were many tourists. They should be tourist from Chevron Kingdom that was located adjacent to the Knight’s country. &lt;br /&gt;
Although they were the same race as the Knight Country’s citizens, they could be differentiated by their speech pattern and their clothing design.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, why are they gathering there?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco asked after she finished her crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course they are there to look at the sacred statue.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking at ‘St Durham’s statue’ from afar. It was one of the most important cultural properties in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Whose statue… Is that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The first Paladin, Durham Lautreamont. He was a historical figure dating to five hundred years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The armour on the statue… Isn’t it like an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was proud of Eco for her to be this sharp.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You knew it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. The blue print for the Ark was kept in the Dragweiss.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, using that blueprint, could you make an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco was glaring at him and Ash was shrinking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot? That will be just a mimic. The blueprint design passed down by ancestral-sama is only intended as a reference. The exact thing could never be re-created.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so… Now I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash believed everything she said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, Eco, you will create an Ark for me, no? Before that, you should first become a Maestro- Ouch!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His foot was stomped on by Eco and made him jump around in pain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash barked back however Eco’s face was unexpectedly red. She was acting shy and was avoiding Ash&#039;s sight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What happened?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Quit joking! Why would I… As the owner make an Ark for my pet dog? Isn’t that illogical!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Eco ran off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then, Ash remembered his past lessons.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;To the dragons, to present their owner with the Ark also bears the important meaning of ‘Giving their everything to their owner.’&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
No wonder Eco denied it with her face red. At the same time, Eco was a little cute at that moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, wait for me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled and chased after Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 10===&lt;br /&gt;
They had been walking until Eco stopped her steps in front of a café that was facing St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The café was called Essarois. It is famous for its herbal teas and is especially popular in among the girls. The designs of its interior are also stylish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shop is always full of couples during the weekends. For Ash who had never dated before is a must avoid spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By looking through the glass window, even at that moment, the shop was full of couples.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just in case, there is something that I would like to make sure… Are you interested in such shops?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a nice smell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sniffing around. Although she looked like a girl, she is totally like a young dragon when she was doing so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally noticed the sweet smell coming from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t this Ansal! No, definitely not!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the shop is famous for its herbal tea, of course Ansal tea would also be on the menu. Naturally, Eco who is a dragon would also react to it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh… Why bother. Don’t you know that Ansal is in the cultural of the dragons and it is the so called taste of an adult dragon.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about! You are still a young dragon! Do you even want to repeat the previous incident again!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What happened previously?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Great! So you don’t remember anything after you became drunk! I guess all the more we should just forget about this conversation! From now &lt;br /&gt;
on, you are forbid to go near any Ansal till you become an adult!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh! I won’t forgive you! I won’t allow such thing to happen!…Nnnn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly squeaked and bend her body down. She was rubbing her thighs against each other as if she was trying to endure from using the &lt;br /&gt;
toilet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Unn…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco embraced his chest. Even though he had his clothes on, he could still feel Eco’s hot breath clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, don’t tell me that… You had gotten yourself drunk just from the smell?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa… Haa… Please… My chest is tightening.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes had turned wet and her cheeks had turned red. Her entire body was heating up. Ash felt like he was hugging a massive pile of &lt;br /&gt;
flame.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What a troublesome shop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His priority is to bring Eco away from this shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If such a thing continues, Ash feared that he could not remain calm. Just in case is he was spotted in a place like this by his &lt;br /&gt;
schoolmates…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, isn’t that Ash? Doesn&#039;t he look lovey dovey!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, it happens that it was Rebecca who was talking from behind. Besides, there was also a girl who was standing behind Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shuddering. Again, he had prepared himself to face Silvia’s iron fist, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps she was still troubled by yesterday’s young dragon’s incident, she was hiding behind Rebecca and remained silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 11===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To go to a place where the Ansal is absent, Rebecca brought the gang to the Dragon Fang public restaurant in an alley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is… Dragon Fang?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was slightly disappointed because he thought that Rebecca would bring them to a classy restaurant.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragon Fang is a restaurant for the public that provides good food with low price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm. It is a good restaurant. I have no complains on its quality and quantity. Also, it is half price for the student council members.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a lively shop full of laborers with well built bodies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since there is just an empty table for four, Rebecca sat together with Silvia while facing Ash and Eco on the other side of the table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Namely, Scarlet Empress and Ice Blue Princess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The two great beauties of the academy were sitting together with Ash. If they are spotted by Raymond or the rest, it would be natural if &lt;br /&gt;
they died in a fit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned her head to a side since she don’t intend to even utter a word. She was definitely still shadowed by yesterday’s incident. &lt;br /&gt;
Even though he felt like comforting her, however he had his hands full with Eco. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fyunn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco still looked like she was not fully awakened yet. Since that’s the case, he tried feeding her a few sips of water.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Rebecca ordered a three people’s sets, she smiled wryly at Ash and Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be frank, you had never failed to impress me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, you don’t have to apologize. Rather than that, I am actually enjoying myself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Enjoy…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was distressed and heartbroken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, remember to be careful and beware of the Ansal herb. Next time, it is better for you not to get close to Essarois. Though the Ansal Tea there is of top quality, it is still too early for Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will keep that in mind.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash answered, no one spoke a word. The reason was caused by none other than Silvia. She had kept her mouth shut for whole time &lt;br /&gt;
caused the people around her to become nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That being said… It is rare to see Rebecca-san together with Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, it was me who invited her out.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the incident of the young dragon had ended yesterday, Rebecca had indicated “ I will take care of the Princess herself.” However, it &lt;br /&gt;
seems that what is happening today had nothing to do with yesterday’s promise. It is also a surprise that Silvia would accept Rebecca’s &lt;br /&gt;
invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it was an order from the student council president, Silvia is still the country’s princess. She could have rejected the offer anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca smiled cheekily and took out a piece of paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you still remember the ticket for the one day date? The attached prize for the dragon riding festival. I must fulfill my promise and &lt;br /&gt;
Silvia had her duty to perform as the winner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh… Now I remember.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now it had started to make sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had totally forgotten about it. The winner in the dragon riding festival, could have a day’s date with Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the stubborn Silvia, the words ‘Duty of the winner’ is definitely the irresistible sure kill words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Together with yesterday’s problem, the princess had her mind crowded with many problems. Though I did try my best to help her, she had &lt;br /&gt;
been this way since the start.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Rebecca was regretting this, she still managed to squeeze out a cheerful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for the wait.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the moment, the waitress had arrived with their dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 12===&lt;br /&gt;
“I am back, Milgauss-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was enjoying the full view of Ansarivan, in the clock tower. With his mantle waving in the direction of the wind, he looked like &lt;br /&gt;
a veteran solider.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was in the disguised of a flower girl while Milgauss himself was dressed up as a mercenary.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 173.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was very silent on the top floor of the clock tower of the old shrine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the noisy streets looked as if they were from another world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Gazing at Milgauss back from behind, Anya thought that he was an ‘Unpredictable man…’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shrine that was facing St Durham Square was indeed very old. Usually it was not open to visitors. In addition to problem that was cause &lt;br /&gt;
by technical errors, the renovations for this shrine could not be continued and since then, it had remained closed for ten years.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Moreover, the security was light and anyone could break into the shrine after breaking open the lock at the back door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who knew this information is none other than Milgauss. Even when it is only information that only the locals knew of, Milgauss &lt;br /&gt;
treated it as if it was obvious to anyone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had always been curious of Milgauss&#039;s origin since the beginning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was a military man in the Empire’s army, his movement had always been graceful. It even felt like he was born in a noble &lt;br /&gt;
family. Even his pronunciations are beautiful and are fluent in both the Chevron language and Empire’s language.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How are the streets?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss’s question brought Anya back to her sense. Even though he was looking at her coldly through the mask, it still made Anya nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from Milgauss and Anya, there was not a third person in the clock tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though they are still on the job, Anya was a little disappointed. She certainly could not show the girly side of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was peaceful on the streets. Nobody is thinking about any wars.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan is a lively city. Anya had initially thought that the city that teaches breeders should be filled with killing intends. Yet, not &lt;br /&gt;
even a hint of war could be felt from this city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she was walking on the streets in disguised as a flower girl, Anya found out something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To the residents of Ansarivan,  the dragons are called ‘lovely beasts’ and not a military weapon. Ansarivan is never the so called &lt;br /&gt;
“military base for dragon training’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. In this street, not even a single soul thinks that dragons are military weapons. Ansarivan is a very friendly city.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss spoke in a nostalgic tone but it only lasted for a second.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However, Anya, there is no meaning behind the friendliness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss took a step forward and there was a coffin like box next to his feet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss silently opened the lid of the box. There is no corpse but a single sword in it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is not a normal sword. It was a broad sword with the size of a grown man.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like a typical zanbatou&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;斬馬刀a type of long sword&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; from the ancient drawings but its blade is black and its hilt was &lt;br /&gt;
decorated with beautiful jewels just like a refined masterpiece. With a closer look, they were bright dragon crystals.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss lifted the huge black sword and chanted the incantation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a little while, the clear blue sky was covered by dark clouds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 13===&lt;br /&gt;
Saute duck, Beef fillet cooked in wine, spare ribs, vegetable and mushroom soup, walnut bread…. All of the dishes were served one after another and they took away Ash’s attention.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The smell of the gravy and spices were stimulating his appetite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco reacted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once she found out about the smells of the foods, Eco had snapped out from the drunken state. Eco who cares for only crepes is after all, still a dragon. Her eyes were nailed to the meat dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry about the amount, just enjoy yourself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Rebecca could finish her sentence, she had already started stuffing herself with the duck. The skin was roasted nicely and its gravy &lt;br /&gt;
was dripping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mmm… This is the first time that I had tasted such a nice meat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes were glittering from being touched had her sight on the beef. She just simply took a piece of the beef with the fork and gave it a bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Funnn...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The beef seems to be very tasty since Eco looked as if she was in cloud nine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was also happy just by looking at her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, Silvia was working her knife and fork silently. Whenever Ash and her eyes met, she would glare at him to keep him &lt;br /&gt;
away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, Ash remembered what Rebecca had told him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;In my opinion, the princess is a perfectionist. She had always wanted to be the first. When she met a classmate who can ride any dragons, &lt;br /&gt;
she will take you as her rival.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In another words, the reason she tried to suppress the young dragon on her own is because of none other than Ash’s fault.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash made up his mind and spoke to Silvia:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Princess-sama… Is it really my fault?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know what you mean by that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her sharp glare pierced his forehead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am talking about yesterday’s incident… The way you acted yesterday isn’t really like you at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately, Silvia’s cheeks had turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Don’t be too full of yourself! Why would I even do it because of-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, a loud bang came from outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sudden thunderstruck had shocked Silvia. She was covering her ears with both her arms and was shaking tremendously. No one would ever &lt;br /&gt;
thought that she had this side to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a weird weather...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling about this and looked out from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The once clear sky was now covered by thick black clouds. The darkness outside made it hard to imagine that it was still noon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… That’s not a good sign.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was still eating suddenly stood up. Her face sank was staring intently at the sky outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ignoring Ash’s call, Eco ran out from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 14===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ashes to ashes, dust to dust. Appear! Child of magic technique. Thou shall be…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment Milgauss finished the incantation, under the sky filled with dark clouds, a change was happening on the streets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A dragon appeared in the middle of St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s… A Necromancia...!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya sub-consciously speaks of the word that should never be spoken of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Letters of blood red colour appeared on the surface of the huge sword that Milgauss was holding. They were words of an ancient language &lt;br /&gt;
that Anya could not understand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked as if blood were actually flowing out from the sword itself. The cloud had become thicker and sounds of the thunders had become &lt;br /&gt;
more and more frequent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia- A dragon that was resurrected using ashes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though she had heard about it before from Milgauss, it was still her first time seeing it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Summon the Necromancia and analyze its combat strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, determine whether it could be used in actual combat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the main purpose for the infiltration. Ansarivan is the selected location for the experiment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is like a hammer that smashes off the previous peaceful atmosphere.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This situation made Anya who just finished her investigation in the town bite her lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It made her think about her homeland that was full of blood and destruction a few years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-But…. This is war.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya reassured herself and clenched her fist while looking at Milgauss from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 15===&lt;br /&gt;
The group went chasing after Eco in the alleys had finally arrived at St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square was in a mess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The locals and the tourists were standing still like statues.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when they should be running away for their own sake, everyone just remain still and stare at the monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What is that thing!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he entered the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge beast was landing on the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that… A Dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its entire body is covered with fur and which made it looked similar to a Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, though it looked like a Maestro, its body fur was deep grey in colour and it smelled bad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Its body is rotting…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gasped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from that, its body size was surprisingly huge.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square that can hold thousands of people and right now had a quarter of it being occupied by a sole dragon. If it lifted its head up, it &lt;br /&gt;
height should be around the same height as the towers around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A roar that made people shivers was heard under the dark sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It sounds like hundreds of flutes not being blown uniformly. The sound was so terrible that it could even wake up the dead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The loud roar was followed was a strong gust that managed to topple the St Durham’s Statue in the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In a little while, the entire square was filled by a rotten smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only right now the people started running for their lives. While confronting with such a supernatural situation, the situation was no &lt;br /&gt;
longer under control. Although the Ansarivan’s security tried their best, it was obvious that they are lacking man power.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Followed by sounds of agonizing cries for help, many helpless people were continuously being pushed down. Even the customers in the &lt;br /&gt;
shops facing the Square were running out one by one.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The base for the St Durham Statue was in rubbles and the stone statue itself was lying on the ground. Eco was standing beside the statue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco was the dragon that brought all the troubles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is she even thinking!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was panicking and was trying to drag her back. However, he was blocked by the rest of the tourist who were running for their lives.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly removed her Beret and showed her horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems that she was trying to show that she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Refrain yourself, you lowly beast! Don’t you know who I am! Don’t you know that there are many excellent shops in this street?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, the entire square turned still because of her loud voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her imposing attitude touched Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it is just a little, after all, that weird thing is still a dragon and just maybe it understood Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon’s gaze slowly turned towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, they made eye contact with each other. But suddenly there were tentacles appearing from its body and was attacking Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted but the tentacles continued to wrap around Eco’s body and her four limbs and she was now hanging in mid air. Her uniform were &lt;br /&gt;
torn by the tentacles and her undergarments and skin were exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You! Knock it off!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was useless no matter how she struggled. Also, the more she struggled the tighter the grip of the tentacles became.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 184.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again the dragon roared and showed its pink mouth. A few teeth in its mouth that was arranged nicely dropped off. Only now Ash &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that even its teeth were rotting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, a light ball of purple electric appeared in its mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The purple electric light ball was then released followed by another roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Don!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A building facing the square was swallowed by the ball of light and was covered with dust.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Attacking magic…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbstrucked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a high level magic that could only be performed by Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The building that was destroyed was a four story building. The first floor was Café Essarois while it was an apartment from the second &lt;br /&gt;
floor onwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbfounded. Just how many innocent people were involved right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few moments later, the smoke cleared out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not only the building remains, but also there isn’t even a single causality.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in joy. Rebecca who was riding on Cú Chulainn in her Ark had cast the defense magic and neutralized the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Essarois is a place filled with the dreams of the girls. I as the student council of Ansarivan, I will have it protected until my death.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s declaration received cheers from the residents.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Rebecca wouldn’t let such cheers get over her head and she started reciting the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Appear! The certain hit magic spear!&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The summoned weapon appeared above Rebecca’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The magic spear turned into light particles and was shot towards the loathsome dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A new ball of light appeared in front of the dragon and it turned into seven layers of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It even knew defense magic!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!” pierced through the first layer of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then it continue was also broke apart easily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However it was obvious that it had slowed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time it broke through a layer, a large amount of magic was used up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fourth, the fifth… the sixth was penetrated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was praying while looking at Gáe Bolg’s path.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then, there was a crack in the seventh shield and it was pierced through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time when Ash was cheering, Gáe Bolg exploded at the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The flash caused their eyes to be blinded and it was followed by a loud bang.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The thick smoke had the dragon covered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was thinking that Rebecca had won.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the securities that should have led the people to safety were cheering happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then, the smoke started to clear up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The cheers were silent up by a hole in a head caused by the explosion. Even so, the dragon shouldn’t be able to live on after its brain &lt;br /&gt;
was destroyed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is that thing…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shivering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon has not yet fallen and Eco was still hanging in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next moment, the wound on the head started regenerating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as ifs the wound itself is another living being.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the wound was healed, the dragon returned to its original looks but its eyes looked even more menacing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, it swung its tail.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After seeing it using high class magic, Ash was surprised to see it change its style to physical attacks. It seems that Rebecca too, was &lt;br /&gt;
also caught off guard by it which led her to being slow in her reactions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca shouted in surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it was just a simple physical attack, the buildings behind the dragon were demolished like toy bricks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, they could only pray that the people inside the buildings could escape safely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Curses…!’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash clenched his teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could watch the dragon turn the city in ruins as a bystander.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Ash thought of a single person. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Milgauss, the masked man.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the day he met him in the forest, the still cog had been connected and started spinning. However, it was his instinct that told him &lt;br /&gt;
that. There was never a single proof.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What in the world is that dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once he heard the familiar voice, Ash was brought back to his sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, he saw that Silvia had arrived at the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Silvia saw the weird dragon, she fell on her backside and was shivering in fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately came to her side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Get a hold of yourself! Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though Ash was shouting loudly, Silvia never answered. Seeing such a supernatural sight had caused her to lose all her sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that instant, a flying dragon appeared on top of St Durham Square. It was obviously a Maestro since it had silvery white fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash! Bring the Princess as far away as you can!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a familiar voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was in charge of the accounts in the student council and also one of Ash’s few friends.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Max!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Leave this to me!... Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max wasn’t able to finish his sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon seeing that a new opponent had appeared immediately gave out a loud roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it released its ball of light with purple electric.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Arian!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Max’s command, Arianrhod immediately cast its defense magic. Though it managed to reduced the strength of the light ball, still it &lt;br /&gt;
had hit and fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Originally, a dragon shouldn’t be able to fly with such a build. It’s wings are only for decoration purposes. It was magic itself that &lt;br /&gt;
enables it to fly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he saw Arianrhod fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For it to even bring down Arianrhod with just a single hit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Arianrhod had no longer any magic to defend against the second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca who foresaw that ordered Cú Chulainn to glide down in the area in front of Max and Arianrhod. Without delaying a single moment, &lt;br /&gt;
she cast her defense magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the defending party, Rebecca had totally lost her mobility.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the worst situation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only choice left is to wait for the Holy Dragners of Lautreamont to arrive. But could the town people really hold on until then?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the entire town were already used to the peaceful life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For example, the entire strength of the security office was just hunting rifles and wooden batons. For offices where they have dragner &lt;br /&gt;
working there could only be found in the big cities.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was approaching Rebecca slowly. It probably thought of Rebecca as first to be removed as a target.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time the weird dragon took a step, the earth shook and the beautiful tiles turned into rubbles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as if it was a moving hill. Numerous tentacles had appeared right now and were gripping on Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aahhh! What the hell is this thing trying to do!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco continued to struggle. Even though she lost all her mobility, she still had decided that she is not going to ever give up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s it. I must save Eco.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After all, Eco is Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She is none other than Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is me… Am I able to do it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash questioned himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An answer flashed through his mind. It gave Ash shivers.  But still, it is a gamble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the instant, Ash remembered Eco enjoying her crepe happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on, it still hasn’t reached that stage yet… Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were still many nice things in this word that Eco knew nothing of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was not going to let her die like this before teaching her everything. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally made up his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will protect this city. Everybody. And also Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yet, there was still one more problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash needs Silvia’s cooperation to make his plan success.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama! Please get a hold of yourself!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He shouted towards Silvia who was still sitting on the ground in shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Silvia’s expression was still blank and continued to shiver. It was as if she is a totally different person from her usual &lt;br /&gt;
majestic self.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t joke with me…. What kind of a Princess are you! Where is the usual family motto! In such times shouldn’t you prove to us what &lt;br /&gt;
exactly is a royalty made of!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash lifted his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will apologize first! Sorry!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And he gave Silvia a slap on the face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sound was clear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ash?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was staring at Ash dumbstrucked. At least her thoughts were now focused. Although her red cheek was hurting, she had finally calmed&lt;br /&gt;
down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama, I had a request. Please summon Lancelot immediately and bring me with you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Bring you? Where to?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was pointing at the moving dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To be more specific, it was above the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately Silvia knew what he was thinking right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Definitely not! Are you even thinking properly!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s anger raises and stood up suddenly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Good, this is great. This is the Silvia that I knew of.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 006-007.jpg|thumb|&#039;&#039; Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted &lt;br /&gt;
to the dragon: “Your opponent is me!” &#039;&#039;]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted to the dragon:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Your opponent is me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strictly speaking, Ash didn’t even know if the dragon could even notice his voice. Basically the reason for him to shout was to keep his thoughts &lt;br /&gt;
from wavering. Still, the dragon did stop its footsteps.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It turned its head slowly and glared at both Ash and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia facial expression changed immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m alright. Princess-sama please summon Lancelot immedi…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could finish his sentence, the dragon shot a ray of light at them. It was definitely a different type of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash only understood that a strong energy shot pass the area above his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He raised his head in terror only to find out that the building behind him was crumbling. The three storey building behind him experienced &lt;br /&gt;
a direct hit from the attacking magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
How high exactly is the temperature need to melt debris of the building? Before Ash could even think about it, the building had crumbled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pile of wreckage was falling towards Ash and Silvia like a waterfall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the spur of the moment, Ash tried to protect Silvia. He could only shut his eyes and pray.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 16===&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey…! Until when are you going to stop acting in such manner?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s cold voice had given him the push to open his eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash though that he was buried under the pile of wreckage, but-.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt the wind blowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am flying…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia were in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then Ash realized that he was riding on Lancelot’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seems like Silvia had summoned Lancelot in the nick of time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The streets down below looked far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even St Durham Square looked miniature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge body that occupied a quarter of its space still exists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem is Ash was grabbing on to Silvia who was holding the reins from behind and his right hand was even grabbing on to her breast.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The soft feeling made him lost his calm. Since just now where the building started to crumble, his thought had always been blank.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t loosen your grip! You may fall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s warning made him calm down his thoughts and he started apologizing to Silvia. However, he continued grabbing on her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Obviously Ash had also shifted the position of his right hand. It was probably that he was thinking too much but somehow Silvia’s face had &lt;br /&gt;
turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, the dragon released its second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot in return roared loudly and cast its defense magic. A huge amount of pressure could be felt. Yet, Lancelot remained unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just as expected.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash praised.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This kind of level is child’s play for Lancelot. Back to the main point… Are you sure you want to do this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, please bring me to the appointed location. It must be none other than me to execute it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… Then I can only have faith in you. Lancelot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ooooon.” Under Silvia’s order, Lancelot roared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were gliding downwards towards the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The third and the fourth wave of attack were released but Lancelot avoided all of them with an amazing speed without even activating its &lt;br /&gt;
defence magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The distances between both parties were getting shorter until their entire fields of vision were covered by the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking for Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had prepared himself for the worst possible situation, where Eco was swallowed whole by the dragon. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Until now, this is the only chance where he can save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made up his mind and stood on Lancelot. To keep his balance, he held on to Silvia’s shoulder. Silvia remained silent while allowing him &lt;br /&gt;
to do so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The countdown begins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Ten, nine, eight, seven…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were getting closer to the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Three, two, one…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot flew pass the weird body in a very close distance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped towards the wall of grey furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a ‘Bump’ Ash landed safely. However, he slipped and nearly fell off but managed to cling to the furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon felt something on its head and was pissed. It shook its head vigorously. For that short moment, Ash felt like he was going to &lt;br /&gt;
fall off anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He crawled with all his might until he finally reached the space in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thought there are still many places that could be considered, it was his instinct that told Ash that this was the best place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With both of his foot on stable ground, Ash immediately stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, he thought about the feeling of his first ride on a dragon. Basically the situation was the same as yesterday where a &lt;br /&gt;
young dragon lost control. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A newborn Starda had gone rampage because its master had mistakenly fed it with Ansal Tea.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when the Grooms were in a fix trying to keep the situation under control, Ash who had just passed by, by a chance jumped onto the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He just had a hunch that he was able to do it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, he received a good amount of scolding from the school’s director even though he managed to calm the dragon down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s right, that young dragon was called- Lancelot.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That’s right. I totally forgot about it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled wryly. The Maestro that Silvia was riding on and the drunken Strada fitted perfectly in his memories.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He finally realized why Silvia was obsessed comparing herself to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash gained his confidence. Since he was able to calm Lancelot down, this weird dragon should not be a problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s begin…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Through his feet, he forced his conscious into the dragon like growing tree roots and spoke to the dragon gently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From now onwards, I am your master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon stopped its footsteps in reply to Ash’s words. Although it still continued growling, at the least it had stopped moving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s it. This is how it should be.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was smiling from the bottom of his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was thinking of giving it one more push, the dragon swung its head upwards like a trebuchet. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who was not prepared for this was thrown out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just moments before knocking into a building, Lancelot flew to his rescue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Phew… Saved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat on Lancelot and was just behind Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have never seen an idiot like you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia scolded while she was holding Lancelot’s reins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just a little more I could have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking with a serious tone. There was not even a hint of him joking. Silvia who had turned speechless looked just like a &lt;br /&gt;
graceful woman from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash said made sense. He was going to ride it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 17===&lt;br /&gt;
“Haaa… Haaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco looked pale. She was hurt by her inability to break free due to her lack of strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… For a descendant of a mighty dragon…. To lose to a low born dragon…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was provoking the dragon…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thrown out and had made a nice curve with it but was saved by Lancelot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is he trying to do?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was horrified.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash was doing was reckless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right. Ash was trying to tame this weird dragon by riding it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there is to be a single error, Ash will be squashed like a bug.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! What are you doing? Why don’t you run away!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who could endure it no longer shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! I will save you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash replied while sitting on Lancelot’s back. He seemed confident judging from his tone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That sentence had made her realized that Ash tried to save her instead of running away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was struggling to escape the tentacles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But the more she struggled, the tighter their grips became.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco, the dragon’s belly split open.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On both of the sides of the belly were aligned with row of sharp fine teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like an insect eating plat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It must have been a bad joke.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned pale.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Numerous tentacles appeared and Eco was swallowed into the mouth that looked like the gates of hell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she almost lost conscious, she could barely hear Ash’s cry&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 18===&lt;br /&gt;
“It seems that you have woken up, my sleeping beauty.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The bewitching voice had woken Eco up and she hurriedly looked around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A mysterious room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The floor was laid by square tile of black and white alternating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beside the four walls were statues that had not been completed. An incomplete human body. Incomplete beasts. Models of castle and &lt;br /&gt;
shrines. And also transports that Eco had never seen before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco who was sitting on the bed was a suspicious lady. The lady was sitting on an antique chair lazily. Her brilliant red dress looked extra conspicuous in the monochrome room.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 205.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the lady’s head were horns of an adult dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the Dragon Workshop. Also, I am called Navi.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Navi…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You just have to take me as another personality that is responsible to teach the immature you… Don’t you think that this is great?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t really understand. Also, what’s with your appearance?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting uneasy since the first time she saw Navi.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her looks, hair style and skin colour were exactly like Eco’s. The only difference is that Navi was a few years older.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hee hee. Are you worrying about my body? This design is based on a five years older version of you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wh-What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Still, this is just an assumption. You just may not grow up this well. Especially your breast.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi purposely put emphasis on the breast and deliberately shook them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad for being made fun of..&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph! It is not like bigger is better!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course, even the shape is important. But for you… Worrying about the size should be your main concern.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a detestable woman! I will squash you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Now lets us stop this useless talk as he is going to die if we let him continue what he was doing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a single wave from her right arm, a crystal ball appeared. A high concentration of lights was released by it and a projection of Ash &lt;br /&gt;
struggling with the weird looking opponent could be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He is still reckless!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking up towards the screen which was the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In a first look, this is not a bad idea. After all he was born with that gift to ride any kind of dragons. However, this opponent is too &lt;br /&gt;
much for him to handle. He had no chance of winning against that Necromancia.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Necromancia?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. It is a dragon that died once but was resurrected by human technology.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk! What should we do…? There is nothing in my ability to help him.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was saddened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, do you know why a holy dragon is called a Maestro.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was puzzled by the sudden question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before the existence of the secret agreement of Albion, the holy dragons were craft workers. This dragon workshop was built by a group of &lt;br /&gt;
great Maestros. The Ark is only one of the many things created by the Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi was trying to say.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are telling me that he is lacking an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good answer. And of course the only person who can present him with the Ark is only you as his Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… How can I…? That’s it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco remembered her conversation with Ash in St Druham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Hmm, if it is the blueprint for the Ark, I have the access to it.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-If that’s the case, can you use the blueprint… To create an Ark?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Are you crazy! That’s is nothing but an imitation.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it is an imitation, it is still an Ark. Certainly, Eco&#039;s pride does not allow her to make a copy from her ancestor, but this &lt;br /&gt;
was an emergency.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco accessed the Dragweiss immediately and focused her thoughts. Without delay, the projection on the ceiling started changing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice either.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since year 10 of A.S.B where the secret agreement of Albion was made, there were many blueprints left by the dragons. Apart from the Arks &lt;br /&gt;
that were worn by humans, there were also those that were made as a trial.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The total amount of blueprints easily exceeds a thousand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was disappointed after read the blueprints.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every single blueprint was full of details and even copying may become a difficult task.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come on! How am I to copy this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was feeling troubled, the thought of St Durham’s Statue flash pass.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She instantly summoned St Durham’s Ark’s blueprint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Time of production	Year 846 A.S.B/ Month of Libra/ 2nd day.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Name of knight		Durham Lautreamont &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Ark Weapon		Magic sword Caliber&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to the present, the design and structure five hundred years ago was simpler.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is this Ark, I should be able to do it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You’re naïve.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why? Supposing I had no experience in making an Ark, I still inherit the basic knowledge. So what are you even-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It just doesn’t work that way. An Ark is an armour that was custom made for its knight. If you just make a copy of a previous work, he &lt;br /&gt;
won’t be able to wear it. If you force it on him, it may even endanger his life.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What! Then this isn’t even an option to begin with!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hehe. When did I mention that? The Dragweiss had collected a huge amount of blueprints since the old times. It is possible to select &lt;br /&gt;
parts of the armour that fits him from this amount of blueprints.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By shaking a crystal, an infinite amount of blueprints appeared on the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Could it be that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi means.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We will select parts of the armour that fits him and reorganized them.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, can I do it? For starters, how am I going to know if the parts suit him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was worrying about the most important part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before an Ark was made, it requires that data of the person wearing it. First is the height and then follow by a mountain full of &lt;br /&gt;
information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara. If you are talking about his data, I already have it here with me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled cheekily touched Eco’s forehead with the crystal ball. In an instant, all the information in the crystal ball flowed into &lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… Is his data?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was able to construct a three dimensional structure using the huge amount of information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco blushed. Ash image in her mind was stark naked. Every single detail on his body was clearly recorded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-A perfect data…. But how did this data get into your hands?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I was expecting something similar to this to happen. Just before you were born, I sneaked into his dream. Actually I finish collecting my &lt;br /&gt;
data in just a night but since he is too cute, I had been doing that for a whole week.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How dare you toy with my pet dog!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi was laughing in front of the angry Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see that someone is jealous.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-There is no way that I-I….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so? But why are you blushing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am gonna squash you!... Erm, this is not the right time and place to argue!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit. So let’s begin.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi slowly stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know whether I am capable of doing it but… this is the only choice left!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally made up her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 19===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it had been three times, Ash never gave up. On the other hand, he was saved by Lancelot every single time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucky for him, the grey dragon had Lancelot locked on as its target. Every single attack was directed towards Lancelot which in turn, &lt;br /&gt;
reduced the amount of destruction towards the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, there is a limit to the amount of magic that Lancelot possesses. In truth, it flying speed had been greatly reduced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is at its limit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood her frustration from her words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. This time will be the final!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia signal Lancelot to change its direction and dive down towards the middle of the square. Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tell me that is not true…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was suddenly swallowed into the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in dismay.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are not able to make it in time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was eaten whole by that monster right in front of Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!... It&#039;s my fault for being weak…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t give up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia reminded Ash who felt that he was going to break apart in despair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She may still be alive! If you give up at this moment, she will definitely die for sure!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately kept his cool. Silvia was right. If not because of she was holding the reins with both hands, she is sure to give him a &lt;br /&gt;
slap on the face like what he did to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, the Seikoku on his left arm started hurting. It was the same feeling as the time where Eco was kidnapped by Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reaction from the Seikoku made him felt relief.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This proofs that his link with Eco had not yet been cut off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yeah… I mustn’t give up yet. Princess-sama! Please bring me to where the monster is!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again, Lancelot started diving downwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 20===&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me a break! Why can’t I get it right!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was shouting in desperation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The opponent that Ash was battling was a Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its element is ‘dark’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Naturally, the Ark that she is going to present to Ash should have the ‘light’ element in it. It had been a common knowledge since the &lt;br /&gt;
ancient times that light can conquer darkness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…! Just as expected, this is impossible…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sitting on her knees in disappointment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Tears were dripping from her eyes. It was the first time Eco ever cried from the feeling of regret.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Don’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Eco heard something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The owner of the sound was none other than Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it him…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco lifted her head up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was still continuing his fight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While fighting against the dragon, he was calling out to Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“I will save you! I still believe that you are still alive! That is why… That is why, you mustn&#039;t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These were not spoken by words. They were spoken through the Astral Flow that connects the dragon and its breeder. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She felt warmth from the bottom of her heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco knew from where this warmth came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Druing her time as an Orphan, Eco had always been inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She could never forget about this warmth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was going against the odds, Ash never ran away from anything.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He even dare face such a monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For how many times had he stood on the dragon’s head and for how many times had he been thrown off. Right now, his clothes were like rags &lt;br /&gt;
and there were many obvious bruises and wounds on his body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, his eyes never stop glittering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco clenched her fists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Unforgivable!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s it. Ash was fighting for her sake and her pride doesn&#039;t allow her to stay still while waiting to be saved.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… It is totally unforgivable… That is why…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her tired body was once again filled with magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her overflowing amounts of magic crystallized outside of her body and were sparkling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco never once expect herself to have such a large amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her field of vision widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could not keep herself from smiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Almete, Gorjal, Peto… Espaldar……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought the amount of blueprints in the Dragweiss is abnormally large, the Eco right now had the ability to handle all of them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Brafoneras, Faldaje… Escarcelas……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In among the parts that suits Ash, Eco selects the ones with light element and combined them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Bufetas, Hombreras, Brazales… Codales….., Antebrazos……. Manoplas……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to those who create the Ark from scraps, Eco’s actions may seem detestable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could never be able to object for shaming the tradition and placing a curse on her ancestral.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Quijotes… Guardas… Grebas…… Escarpes……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However to Eco, it would be a worst sin to just be a bystander and witness all the fun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco no longer hesitates.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With mixed emotions, she had chosen the final part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“-Espolón!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, Eco had opened the gate that leads to a brand new world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 21===&lt;br /&gt;
No matter how badly he failed, he had lost count of the number of times he returned. Right now, he was lying on Lancelot’s back in anguish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pain was so immersed that he could no longer feel his limbs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is really at its limit. This will be the last chance we have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s voice was obviously shaking. They really must succeed. The moment Lancelot used up all its magic and can no longer fly, everything &lt;br /&gt;
that was done will be in vain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan will be in ruins and Eco will definitely die.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It will be impossible to save all the refuges unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… What should I do…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was in a pinch…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“You are the one who shouldn’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s voice was heard in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco? Eco! You are still alive!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had been sometime since she was swallowed by the dragon but Ash could clearly hear her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Isn’t that obvious! No matter what I do, I can never look for a substitute for my useless pet dog, so just take this as a gift.”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Take what?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next instant, Ash was surrounded by dazzling lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His eyes’ widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An outline slowly appeared in the light and transformed into a brilliant armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Isn’t that an… Ark! It is godly…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia squeaked when she turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had a strange feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a heavy looking armour but it doesn’t feel that way.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps it was the strong amount of magic that removed the weight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though he just wore it, he could feel an overflowing amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“With this… I can never lose.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled confidently and spoke facing Eco who was inside the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you Eco! I had received your feelings!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, Eco replied with a scold.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“D-Don’t joke with me! That is just a mimic! Not an original! I have never thought of presenting you with it at all!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was certainly full of objections.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go, Princess- sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had been equipped with the Ark was full of spirits.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia didn’t waste a single moment and ordered Lancelot to dive down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it had used up most of its magic, it still answered Ash and Silvia’s call by raising its speed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking to her from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… What is it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is a good dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What does that have to do with this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why you should never again try to ride on another dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Are you an idiot! What are you saying at a time like this…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the best time to tell you this. You had Lancelot who is the best Pal. So, what is the thing that you are craving for?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I… Definitely knew that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot made a great roar in reply to Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are getting faster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge grey body was getting closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now’s the time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt that his body had blend into the wind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After drawing out a curve in the air, Ash landed on the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks to the Ark, Ash could even stand on the dragon without clinging to its fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could even feel the dragon’s body heat through the armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at this moment, Ash was one with the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be wrong. The Ark had pushed Ash’s gift to its maximum potential.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From his feet, his consciousness was growing into the dragon like roots.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If Ash was to be described as a tree, then the dragon is the earth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash could feel the dragon’s rejecting feeling in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It doesn’t matter whether you are god or even the devil himself…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was like a tower in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For what I know, every dragon will bound to be ridden by me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, there was a change in the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its folded wings were suddenly flapping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was flying towards the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 22===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Seems like we had stepped into an ambush…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss sighed when he saw the Necromancia flying away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was the person controlling the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge sword in his hands was not only the switch, it was also the controller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Milgauss was never successful in making the Necromancia fly but that boy had it proved to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, Milgauss was dead calm. It was just as expected.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was sweating when she looked at Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a cold sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy who was riding the Necromancia away from the city is THAT BOY.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had never reported to Milgauss about their meeting in the streets. She didn’t expect the boy to appear right there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Where exactly did I meet that boy before…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was trembling from that single sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, whatever.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luckily, MIlgauss never question any further.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The experiment ended with a failure, but we still obtain some useful results. That boy and also… that girl.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Girl?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was confused. Did he mean Rebecca Randall the Ark Dragner?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or is it Princess Silvia who was flying on Lancelot?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However she was wrong.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t the Necromancia capture a girl? The one with horns. She is probably the one who presented the boy with the Ark. Even though she &lt;br /&gt;
looks human… She might be descendant of a dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I never…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss had no intention of speaking anymore. He silently kept the huge sword and gazed at Anya through the mask.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will retreat for now.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya knelt down immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 23===&lt;br /&gt;
“I did it…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon spread it wings and flew up towards the sky with Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was getting higher and higher and further away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, Ansarivan town, the plains beside and Fianna Forest looked like toys.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was all according to his plan. First he had to bring this dangerous dragon away to ensure to safety of the townspeople.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could understand the dragon’s thought through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The muzzy thoughts suddenly turned clear. If felt as if the Ark had translated the dragon’s feeling into words that Ash understands.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was anger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hatred too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And also- Love.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see. You also had a master in the past.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash didn’t know where this dragon came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He only knew that this was just a normal dragon that grew up in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it told Ash its wish through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood the sad wish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Necromancia? Something that disobey the logic of this world? Do you really want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It once again assured Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It trusted as like it did to its master.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you really sure that you want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia was asking for Ash to kill it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the only way out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… what about Eco after I killed you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was worried about killing the Necromancia because Eco was still inside the Necromancia. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After knowing what Ash thinking was, the dragon reassured him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ermm… Can I really trust you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia nodded its head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It promised to protect Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Alright. Leave everything to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he had made up his mind, an image of a sword appeared in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the Ark was created hastily, Ash still had obtained the same power as an Ark Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Similar to Rebecca’s Gáe Bolg, every Ark Dragner must possess an Ark weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was glowing and an immense amount of magic flowed out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The details of the Ark Weapon were circulating inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a sword. A sword with light as its element.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Following the information, Ash chanted the spell words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Appear! The sword that was graced by the light! Please lend me all your powers that are able to repel darkness…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The area on Ash’s forehead was flooding with light.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A tremendous amount of magic was flowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A huge sword that was taller than Ash appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Aix-les-Bains!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After lifting Aix-les-Bains easily, Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuoooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was falling. Starting from the dragon’s head to its belly, the sword that wields light slashed through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon split into two.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sword transformed into silvery lights and cut through its bones and flesh.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The tough body of the dragon burst into parts like a paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The destroyed body turned into grey particles and was blown away by the winds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Eco was thrown up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was probably thrown up by the dragon before the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was diving at Eco’s direction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was also accelerating using the magic of the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was not even a hint of fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stretched out his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco stretched out hers too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both of them were close, but yet so far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pressure from the strong wind seemed to be able to cut through skin but Ash still shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made a kick in the air by releasing the magic in the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco once again stretched out her arms further after being called.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was the first time Eco call his name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fingers met.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then they felt the weight on their palms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now they were grabbing each other’s hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not wanting Eco to leave his side again, Ash made a pull.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was embracing his chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While hugging the delicate body, Ash could feel her body heat. He had decided to land on the plains below.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With the protection from the Ark, they remain unharmed even after falling from a few hundreds of meters from above.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dark cloud in Ansarivan had disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the horizon, the sun appeared once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We did it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he smiled, the Ark broke into light particles and disappeared. Similarly, Aix-les-Bains which was in his belt had also disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as Eco had said, this was just hastily made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it did actually manage to save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you, Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Its nothing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco turned to a side. She really hasn’t changed at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he started smiling, his smile turned into horror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… What’s with your fist?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her fist was bleeding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Surely it was hurt when she was caught by the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-This is nothing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash held her hand and licked her wound. It was a usual practice in Ash’s hometown when children hurt themselves.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It may be obvious to Ash but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad and started rampaging.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! It is just for disinfection, disinfection I say!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who turned embarrassed bit his neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! This is not a joke! I might even die…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was probably tired finally calmed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting uneasy but Eco was already fast asleep. He showed sign of relieved and smile bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A boy who can ride any dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Some corrections should be made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or at least until he found a way to handle Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Dark Gray Invasion ~A.S.B.1365.5~&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2|Chapter 2]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354090</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354090"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T15:54:53Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 22 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 3 - Necromancia&#039;s Attack==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
The month of Aries had ended and it was the arrival of the month of Taurus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem concerning Eco&#039;s lodging was put on hold and no decision had been made yet because of the incident where Angela had become a teacher in just a flash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In short, Eco was still sleeping on Ash&#039;s bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem they were facing was, Apollo House which was the dormitory where Ash was staying at is a male&#039;s dorm. Furthermore, Eco is an extremely beautiful girl as long as she kept her mouth shut.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ash was staying with such a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was obvious some weird rumours would emerge among the students who were living in Apollo House.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
The class room of the first year advanced course.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When school was about to dismissed, Raymond walked towards Ash&#039;s table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yo, Ash. Why don’t we go and have some fun since we are free?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, I have to go to the student council’s office.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Student council…? Why?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err, the president asked for me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had informed Ash to find a free time to visit the student council’s office about a week ago. Since Eco had gotten used to the campus &lt;br /&gt;
life, it should be about time for him to make his visit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it true? I think Rebecca Nee-san should have many questions for you. Or many she wants to blame you for something… Just by thinking…&lt;br /&gt;
Haaa… Haaa.” &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have nothing to say to you…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err… did &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; goes well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash asked while Raymond pushed his face nearer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond was looking totally serious.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Aren’t you teaching Eco on the bed?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Raymond had ended his sentence, the entire class turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was looking at Ash with suspicious eyes. Everyone in the academy knew that Ash’s pal was born as a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t say something that will make people misunderstood! Don’t you know that Eco is a dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond smile sinisterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Right, anyway I knew that you don’t even have the guts to do &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then just don’t say something that will make people misunderstood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haha… Could it be that you are the one who was being taught?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because Raymond who had hit the bull’s eye with just a guess, Ash was a little taken aback but he dare not speak back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
The student council office was located at the highest floor of the academy’s centre tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gulped when he was standing in front of the grand door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From a long time ago, Ansarivan’s student council had a huge power. They not only dealt with the academy’s council but they also have the right &lt;br /&gt;
of speech in the city council. According to some rumours, the student council president’s power is superior to the mayor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please enter.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before he even knocked, the student council president’s voice could be heard. This made Ash tremble a little.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for interrupting.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He timidly opened the door and walked into the office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was crossing her arms while standing by the window that was at the far end of the room. There wasn’t another soul in this room. When he &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that they were alone, Ash who had felt uneasy from the start was now sweating nervously.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahhh, Ash. You finally came!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca turned around and stared at Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With her marble statue like beauty together with her crimson coloured hair, it let out an amazing feeling. Even her body proportion outshone &lt;br /&gt;
other people. Her curves were perfect and not even her uniform could hide it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca Randall who had received the Ark-Dragner title was not only well known in Ansarivan. Her name was widely spread in the entire Knight &lt;br /&gt;
Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even in the well known Holy Dragners of Lautreamont had only one in a ten of their members who received the title Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from that, the requirements to obtain the title Ark-Dragner is very strict.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fuu. Don’t be shy. Just take a seat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-Yes…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat at a corner of the sofa, frightened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca sat beside Ash without even a second thought. He smelled something refreshing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was uneasy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was nervous because of their close distance where they can feel each other’s breath. Since there was also a sofa located right opposite, &lt;br /&gt;
logically speaking, Rebecca should have sat there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Rebecca showed a playful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To get to know another person better, sitting side by side is the best choice, this is common knowledge for dating.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Is it…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Young man, you must remember it. Next time, if you are on a date, remember not to sit opposite of her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, dates or whatever… It is still a far away dream.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was blushing in embarrassment while Rebecca unexpectedly was enjoying that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… In another words, no one had noticed your true value yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“True value?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If for me, I still haven’t determined how good of a man you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly stopped smiling and moved towards the main topic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In short, I am here to discuss the things regarding Eco with you… Saying that, what is she doing when you are in class? You can’t just keep &lt;br /&gt;
her in the man’s dormitory right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, Cosette is helping me with that. I don’t think that it will be a problem.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the kidnapping incident a few days ago had ended, Ash had told Cosette his trouble when they were chit chatting. Cosette immediately &lt;br /&gt;
volunteered to help take care of Eco. Since Costte also had nothing to do when Silvia was attending classes, she can accompany Eco in Ash’s &lt;br /&gt;
place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only think he worried about was whether Eco will accept Cosette. Until today, it seemed like there was no such problem. In front of &lt;br /&gt;
Cosette, Eco was always acting mature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Cosette huh? There won’t be a problem if it is her. I had met Cosette a few times before and she is not someone to be underestimated.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So Rebecca-san also thinks so?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile because he was thinking something bad about Cosette.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Umm… It is said that when the Paladin sent Princess Silvia to Ansarivan, about a hundred maids and guards were sent together.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! It must be troublesome…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Princess of course had gone against the Paladin’s will. In the end, because the Paladin insisted, she brought Cosette alone along with &lt;br /&gt;
her. Judging from that, Cosette is something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Back to the topic, you are also something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was looking at him sharply until he started to sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you talking about?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When had you started to have this close relationship with Cosette?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s beautiful face was getting closer. The refreshing smell was getting stronger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being asked something unexpected, Ash’s head started spinning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How dare you hide something from me? It isn’t good you know. By the way, you are not thinking that Rebecca Randall is someone simple &lt;br /&gt;
right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s face was getting closer and closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought there was a faint hint of a smile by her lips, her eyes were not smiling at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Alright! Please promise me that… Don’t tell anyone about this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, I guess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca nodded and moved her head backwards back to her original position.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash took a deep breath and told her everything about the incident where Eco had been kidnapped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
The seventh dragon house was specially built for Maestros. Apart from Rebecca’s Cú Chulainn, there were four more Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Take it slowly, there are many more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Lancelot was gulping down the thickly sliced meat, Silvia smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Normally, jobs like feeding, preparing the beds, balancing the nutrients, cleaning… were done by the groom of the dragon house. The breeders &lt;br /&gt;
on the other hand just need to focus their thoughts on studying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However Silvia had always taken care of Lancelot on her own.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyday, she will always visit the dragon house five times. She will feed it on her own, clean the dragon house and even give Lancelot a bath. &lt;br /&gt;
If Lancelot felt itchy, she will sure to be there to give a scratch on that spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Silvia’s care, Lancelot who was born as a Strada had grown into a beautiful Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her achievement was acknowledged and she had received the title Dragner in the young age of fourteen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The title Dragner can only be received by a breeder whose Pal is a Maestro. It had been a tradition in the Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Silvia was never satisfied with her current achievement. Her aim was to become a ‘Great Dragner’. Just the title Dragner could &lt;br /&gt;
never satisfy her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright Lancelot… Next will be an Ark-Dragner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia patted Lancelot after she spoke out her thought. Its silvery white fur was tick and felt nice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Silvia pressed her hands against her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s proof of a Breeder the Seikoku was at the middle of her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her memories when she was seven came into her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To obtain an orphan from the mother dragon, Silvia had entered Albion Forest alone. However, she injured her leg and was crying while standing. &lt;br /&gt;
She left the palace with the thought of she will definitely become a breeder but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then there was a young boy who reached out to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Like Silvia, the young guy was here on the same day for the Orphan Ceremony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-I will give you a piggyback while we look for mother dragon together.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s heart beat increased when she thought about the guy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If not for his help, Silvia would never have become a Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… I had made a promise with him. I will become a great knight. If I did anything that should not be done by an owner, I want you &lt;br /&gt;
to scold me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadly, Lancelot only had its eyes on the meat and was not bothered by Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk, what a child you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia shook her head and gave a wry smile. Although it had become a Maestro, it was still a young dragon. Compare to Cú Chulainn, its body &lt;br /&gt;
size was definitely smaller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Speaking of that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was thinking about Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only student who dared to challenge Silvia Lautreamont.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, Silvia had won the match but she didn’t have the feeling of victory. On the other hand it can be said as a losing feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had given Silvia a help on the race’s position arrangement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She clearly understood her attitude of looking down on her enemy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only that she had never thought that such a despicable method will be used. If not for Ash who made use of the chance, Silvia would not be &lt;br /&gt;
able to win.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash Blake… I have never seen such an irregular guy. He could even ride on other people’s Pal as he liked which is out of common knowledge. In the &lt;br /&gt;
end, what is the trick he was using-?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Silvia was mumbling, there was a cry of help from outside of the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon has gone mad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash had told her everything, Rebecca sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… For such a thing to happen. Angela-sensei is also a troublesome person. She is one of the best in the continent in dragon researching.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had never thought that teacher could be such a great person…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is a total dragon maniac. She had thought of becoming a Dragner since she was still a child. In the end, she was not selected in the &lt;br /&gt;
Orphan Ceremony…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will never hand an orphan to her if I am the mother dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Perhaps not being selected had left her with traumas until today. However, Angela-sensei’s skills and knowledge are the real stuff. Lets observe her for the time being.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Observe…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t hide his sad looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it is possible, he doesn’t want to have anything to do with her for a second time…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right! There is one more thing about Eco. It is about when you are in the forest and you said that you had encountered some uninvited &lt;br /&gt;
guest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash with a ‘Hah’ lifted his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Many things had happened after Eco was born and he had forgotten about it. The suspected to be Empire’s soldier was lurking around in the &lt;br /&gt;
Knight Country territory. This is not something to be overlooked.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In the end, just who are those two?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The masked man called Milgauss with an extraordinary temperament.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl who wanted to have Ash killed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… ‘Milgauss’ should be a nickname. It doesn’t look like an Empire’s surname. Perhaps he could be the Empire’s agent. If that’s the case, &lt;br /&gt;
this is not a problem that a mere student could solve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had never thought of Rebecca as a ‘mere student’, but he chose to keep this thought to himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, I will pass your message to the peace keepers’ office. However, if the masked man is from the Empire’s army, I am afraid that the &lt;br /&gt;
peace keepers will also be helpless.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she remained calm, the way she had spoken was terrifying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It should be alright, right? Ansarivan is an academy for breeders and not a military school. It shouldn’t be targeted by the Empire.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We are not the military’s backup. The paths that a Breeder can take is not only limited to joining the Knight corps or the dragon elite troops. What’s more, Lautreamont Knight Country was built with the rules that no dragons were allowed in the military. However, it is still the truth that &#039;&#039;&#039;THAT WAR&#039;&#039;&#039; had changed Lautreamont Knight Country and Ansarivan.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-That war. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the ‘Xenoglavia War’ that was triggered fifty two years before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Lautreamont Knight Country was established, it was the first time that the dragons were sent to war.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It all begins when the Zepharos Empire’s armies from the north attacked Chevron Kingdom’s territory in the south.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Empire’s armies were armed with many mechanical weapons and had a huge amount of destruction force. In just a short moment, Chevron’s &lt;br /&gt;
Royal Knights that was said to be strongest mounted troops in the whole continent was wiped out. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Chevron’s king who was worried sent a secret messenger to Lautreamont Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, the dragons who were not involved in any wars for four hundred and fifty years flew towards the battle field once again to save &lt;br /&gt;
their allies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Holy Dragners of Lautreamont led by the Paladin himself joined the battle and the Empire’s armies that had suffered great causality were &lt;br /&gt;
forced to retreat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, the Kingdom and the Empire signed a truce.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To the Empire, Ansarivan was not only a place for the military backup, but also a factory that produces mass destructions weapons. In another &lt;br /&gt;
words, it is a military base. Just by judging from this, it is highly possible that Ansarivan is their target for the preparation for the next &lt;br /&gt;
war.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that Ash had turned pale, Rebecca smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t have to be surprised, Ash. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That… It is you, Rebecca-san.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That&#039;s it. Cú Chulainn and I will protect Ansarivan at all cost. That is why I want you to join us.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, even you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca pressed forward and their shoulders were touching each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you not want to join the student council?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked by the unexpected invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible! Since all the student council members are Dragners.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So one cannot join the student council if they are not a Dragner? I don’t remember such rules. It was just by chance that it looked like that &lt;br /&gt;
in this year.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I heard from every person around you that you are called as ‘The Boy Who Can Ride Any Dragon’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that exaggeration is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You don’t have to act humble. Even I could not ride on another person’s Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before anyone noticed, they are at the distance where their nose could touch. Rebecca’s beauty was drawing closer.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 149.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly noticed that Rebecca’s palm was on his knee.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s body heat could be felt by Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s heart was at the verge of exploding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be exact, I want you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can you please think about it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, but… If I… The student council-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At this moment, as if helping Ash who was getting anxious, the bell rang. Compare to the normal bells, this bell doesn’t sound stable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from the continuous ringing of the bell, it should be the emergency bell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Level two emergency state…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had recognized the meaning of the bell in just a short time and moved towards the side of the window. Ash too was taking a peep &lt;br /&gt;
outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The ‘level two emergency state’ in Ansarivan means that a certain dragon had caused havoc and had flown out from the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The entire school ground could be seen from the student council office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, a Strada was running amok. Its body was small and it looked as if it was just born days before. It still couldn’t spread its &lt;br /&gt;
wings let alone flying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca gave a wry smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa, this happens usually during this time of year. It will end in a short while.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected of the student council president Rebecca, she was calm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few grooms had arrived at the scene and had the dragon surrounded with nets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragons are living things with high intelligence, however they are also short tempered. Especially during the times when they were young, it &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
was not unusual for them to turn mad because of some small matters. Even their owners could do nothing about it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course all the grooms working in the dragon house had undergone special training to handle such situation. Just as Rebecca had said, the &lt;br /&gt;
incident could be settled in a short moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash himself had lost interest in the incident and wanted to leave the window side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who arrived at the scene jumped on the young dragon that had gone mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She looked like she was trying to suppress the young dragon with her own power. Her actions doesn’t match her usual self for it was a &lt;br /&gt;
foolhardy decision.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from their owner who they acknowledged, the dragons will never allow anyone to ride on their back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Silvia was trying her best to just cling on the dragon’s back. She was in a fix because she could be thrown out anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s action had obviously caused trouble to the grooms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is she an idiot! What is princess-sama trying to pull…?!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is most probably because of her ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t understand what Rebecca was saying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From what I can see, Her Highness is a perfectionist. No matter what kind of losing it is, she hates it. When there is a classmate who can &lt;br /&gt;
ride any dragon exist, she was burning with the ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just because of such things…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash frowned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To Her Highness, it was never ‘Just because of such things’.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… If that’s the case, I will go and help her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There is no need for that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The voice that hurts like a whip forced Ash to stop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true that you have some unusual talent. However, are you confident enough that you will be able to suppress the young dragon and at the &lt;br /&gt;
same time prevent Her Highness from getting hurt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s sharp words had made Ash speechless. If it was to calm down the young dragon, Ash himself was more than enough.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Ash doesn’t have to confidence to guarantee to be able to save Silvia without getting her hurt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, what she we do…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I had said it just before. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Rebecca humped onto the window frame. Her red hair that looked like it was on fire was dancing with the winds. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on…! Rebecca-san? What do you think-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will end this quickly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, Rebecca disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca jumped down from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked and took a peek downwards from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Answer my summon…Cú Chulainn!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Out of a sudden, there was a twist in the space beneath Rebecca and Cú Chulainn appeared majestically.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she had landed safely on Cú Chulainn’s back, she spoke strictly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“In my name Rebecca Randall, present me the Ark you created!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn roared in respond to Rebecca’s summon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was light surrounding Rebecca’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her uniform that she had worn until just now had dissolved in the sea of lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a short time, her naked body was exposed. However, because of the excessive brightness, Ash was unable to look at her clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next time Ash opened his eyes, Rebecca’s body was already surrounded by a dazzling knight’s armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was just like a knight from the legends looked godly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is… the Ark!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had heard before about it in the rumours but today was the first time he witnessed it with his own eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was the proof of an absolute loyalty from a Maestro to its owner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment a Dragner received an Ark from his Pal, he will be known as an Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Whoosh!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn’s huge body had flew up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong wind pressure nearly had Ash who was standing by the window blown off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s scream was heard from down below. She was floating in mid air as if she was sent flying by a chariot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash leaned his body out from the window frame and shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just before Silvia lands on the ground, Cú Chulainn accelerating downwards. In Ash eyes, Cú Chulainn was like teleporting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Cú Chulainn was again flying upwards, Rebecca had caught Silvia&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash, Her Highness is in your care!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could even respond to it, Rebecca had her eyes poised at the student council’s office’s window and threw out Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the distance was not even two meters, but to throw a country’s princess, it was not at all normal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in surprise and caught Silvia. They were in the so called ‘Princess carry’ situation and he must stand firm no matter what.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Ash&#039;s arms, Silvia had lost her consciousness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even under such situation, Ash’s heart was beating rapidly. His left hand that was supporting Silvia’s lower half was touching something soft &lt;br /&gt;
and elastic. Also, the was a flower like fragrance coming from her dazzling golden hair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, he heard Rebecca’s spell coming from outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&amp;quot;Appear… The certain hit magic spear…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The was a flash in respond to Rebecca’s spell and an enormous spear had appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the Ark-Weapon that only an Ark-Dragner could use.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An Ark was not just simply an armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was stored with strong magic and it comes with a one and only Ark-Weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Gáe Bolg!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Ash’s eyes, Rebecca swung the magic spear Gáe Bolg!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong magic transformed into a ray of light and was shot down onto the ground. There was a small explosion on the ground beside the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging young dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there was a slight mistake, the young dragon will definitely die. However, it was Rebecca that we were talking about. The shock from the &lt;br /&gt;
explosion had caused the young dragon to faint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a while since Rebecca had the young dragon suppressed, Silvia woke up while lying in Ash’s arms. When she found out that she was carried by Ash-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wha…! What are you doing…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was blushing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! Don’t move around! I can’t hold on any longer!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he warned, Silvia fell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was glaring at Ash with tears in her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I warn you that you will fall! Anyway why did you do that? You would have been dead &lt;br /&gt;
if not because of Rebecca’s help!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Don’t even understand how it feels!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment she shouted, tears were dripping from her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To hide her crying looks, Silvia turned around and ran out from the student &lt;br /&gt;
council’s office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the matter, Princess-sama…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled. Next, there was a voice coming from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry. It is my duty to deal with the Princess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, Rebecca who had changed back into her uniform was sitting on the &lt;br /&gt;
window frame and was with a smile full of confidence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
The next day after the young dragon’s incident was a school holiday.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had again accompanied Eco to Ansarivan City. In truth, Ash wanted to pass &lt;br /&gt;
his time in the dorm, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The crepes are calling out to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With this reason alone, Ash went out with Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, let’s hunt down the crepe stall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After passing by the main door that separates the academy and the city, Eco &lt;br /&gt;
immediately dragged Ash with her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Does a food made by a stupid and ignorant human being taste that well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sh-Shut up! It is the humans that are stupid and ignorant! The crepes had &lt;br /&gt;
nothing to do with this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned red when she replied to Ash’s tease and she continued to march &lt;br /&gt;
on forward. Eco’s respond made Ash felt a little bad… Maybe he should reflect &lt;br /&gt;
on that a little. Ash chased after Eco’s small back and knocked into someone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash just lost his balance for just a moment but the other person had fell on the &lt;br /&gt;
ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, it was my bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately held out his hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… Me too. Because I am careless…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person answering was a girl at Ash’s age range. There was also a flower &lt;br /&gt;
basket by her feet. The combination of her black hair and her oat colour skin &lt;br /&gt;
was very striking. Her worrisome looks together with her exotic face gave a &lt;br /&gt;
special feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment she saw Ash, her face stiffen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-You…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is there anything… On my face?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl grabbed the flower basket and flee. In a short moment, she managed to &lt;br /&gt;
blend into the crowd.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All the pedestrians beside was looking at Ash with the eyes that list him &lt;br /&gt;
as a pervert.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That’s not the case! I did nothing at all!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he explained to the people around him, Ash left the place as if him was &lt;br /&gt;
running away from something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Running away after looking at a person’s face, what a rude child she is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While cursing, he arrived at the crepe stall. Although she doesn’t even had any &lt;br /&gt;
money with her, Eco was calling out to the stall keeper just like a regular customer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me one Ansal Crepe!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
Anya who was the girl who pretended to be the flower seller was breathing heavily while hiding in an alley where there is no sign of other life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Previously, the moment she saw the guys face, she thought she had seen a ghost.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Last month, the guy who should have been dead was walking on the streets leisurely. Just that had given her a great shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;He should have been dead.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He had fallen into a pit less ravine and it will be impossible for him to be unscathed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It should have been more logical if it is another guy with the same looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that’s not it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be a mistake. That face, that voice, that tone… He was the one Anya met and killed in the forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;If that’s the case, why is he alive?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to logic, the chances for him to be able to survive were zero.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it was still the truth that he was alive. She had seen it with her own eyes, it was undoubtable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was surprising for the guy not to recognize Anya. However, thinking carefully, during that time, Anya had a mask on her face and she was &lt;br /&gt;
wearing her Tantalos battle suit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, no matter how you look at it, right now, Anya was just a flower seller. It was understandable if Ash couldn’t recognize &lt;br /&gt;
her. That is her only life saver.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What should I do…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That day, when she had returned back to Milgauss from the ravine, Anya had thought that it was impossible for the guy to survive so she &lt;br /&gt;
reported with ‘He was terminated’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss only replied with a ‘Thanks for the hard work’. Apart from that, he didn’t ask the specifics. To Milgauss, that guy was not at all &lt;br /&gt;
important.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was lost. Should she change the report that she had told Milgauss?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-The guy who fell into the ravine was actually still alive.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only until today she was going to show her report to Milgauss, that’s ridicules.&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the problem was not that simple.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For some time, Anya felt that there was a thorn that was piercing her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the time when the cliff was falling, the guy had given Anya a push. Thanks to that, it was not Anya who fell down the cliff.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even at the moment he was fated to die, he had chosen to save Anya.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To Anya who had spent her life living in the mountains, she couldn’t understand any of his actions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If the guy uses her as a stepping stone and saved himself, she could at least understand that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Anya’s village, there were many people who acted that way. From another perspective, if they are not tough enough, they mustn’t think about &lt;br /&gt;
surviving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya mumbled while she was staring at the basket of flowers blankly.&lt;br /&gt;
Her mind was in a mess. If she did not meet up with the guy, she won’t have to face any trouble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, if I was born as a flower seller… Will I be happier?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya suddenly turned angry and her flower basket fell on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She won’t allow herself to think about stupid stuffs for even a single moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stomped on the flowers that had scattered on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am an idiot! I had already decided to follow Milgauss-sama! Being besides Milgauss-sama is my source of happiness!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Anya was shouting out to her own self, the bell that signified noon rang. It was about time for her to return to Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
The noon bell had rung.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash and Eco arrived at St Durham square after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco immediately took a bite of the vanilla flavoured crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because she was not allowed to buy the ansal flavoured crepe, Eco didn&#039;t seem happy after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Vanilla is also not bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes glittered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s good to hear.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thankful for the vanilla flavoured crepe from the bottom of his heart. With just a mere fifty Glorins in exchange for a smile, it was worth the price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm, a holiday like this is not bad at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While Eco ate the vanilla flavoured crepe as if she was in heaven, Ash looked around the entire square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In addition to the locals, there were many tourists. They should be tourist from Chevron Kingdom that was located adjacent to the Knight’s country. &lt;br /&gt;
Although they were the same race as the Knight Country’s citizens, they could be differentiated by their speech pattern and their clothing design.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, why are they gathering there?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco asked after she finished her crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course they are there to look at the sacred statue.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking at ‘St Durham’s statue’ from afar. It was one of the most important cultural properties in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Whose statue… Is that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The first Paladin, Durham Lautreamont. He was a historical figure dating to five hundred years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The armour on the statue… Isn’t it like an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was proud of Eco for her to be this sharp.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You knew it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. The blue print for the Ark was kept in the Dragweiss.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, using that blueprint, could you make an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco was glaring at him and Ash was shrinking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot? That will be just a mimic. The blueprint design passed down by ancestral-sama is only intended as a reference. The exact thing could never be re-created.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so… Now I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash believed everything she said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, Eco, you will create an Ark for me, no? Before that, you should first become a Maestro- Ouch!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His foot was stomped on by Eco and made him jump around in pain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash barked back however Eco’s face was unexpectedly red. She was acting shy and was avoiding Ash&#039;s sight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What happened?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Quit joking! Why would I… As the owner make an Ark for my pet dog? Isn’t that illogical!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Eco ran off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then, Ash remembered his past lessons.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;To the dragons, to present their owner with the Ark also bears the important meaning of ‘Giving their everything to their owner.’&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
No wonder Eco denied it with her face red. At the same time, Eco was a little cute at that moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, wait for me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled and chased after Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 10===&lt;br /&gt;
They had been walking until Eco stopped her steps in front of a café that was facing St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The café was called Essarois. It is famous for its herbal teas and is especially popular in among the girls. The designs of its interior are also stylish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shop is always full of couples during the weekends. For Ash who had never dated before is a must avoid spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By looking through the glass window, even at that moment, the shop was full of couples.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just in case, there is something that I would like to make sure… Are you interested in such shops?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a nice smell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sniffing around. Although she looked like a girl, she is totally like a young dragon when she was doing so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally noticed the sweet smell coming from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t this Ansal! No, definitely not!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the shop is famous for its herbal tea, of course Ansal tea would also be on the menu. Naturally, Eco who is a dragon would also react to it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh… Why bother. Don’t you know that Ansal is in the cultural of the dragons and it is the so called taste of an adult dragon.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about! You are still a young dragon! Do you even want to repeat the previous incident again!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What happened previously?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Great! So you don’t remember anything after you became drunk! I guess all the more we should just forget about this conversation! From now &lt;br /&gt;
on, you are forbid to go near any Ansal till you become an adult!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh! I won’t forgive you! I won’t allow such thing to happen!…Nnnn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly squeaked and bend her body down. She was rubbing her thighs against each other as if she was trying to endure from using the &lt;br /&gt;
toilet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Unn…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco embraced his chest. Even though he had his clothes on, he could still feel Eco’s hot breath clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, don’t tell me that… You had gotten yourself drunk just from the smell?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa… Haa… Please… My chest is tightening.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes had turned wet and her cheeks had turned red. Her entire body was heating up. Ash felt like he was hugging a massive pile of &lt;br /&gt;
flame.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What a troublesome shop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His priority is to bring Eco away from this shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If such a thing continues, Ash feared that he could not remain calm. Just in case is he was spotted in a place like this by his &lt;br /&gt;
schoolmates…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, isn’t that Ash? Doesn&#039;t he look lovey dovey!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, it happens that it was Rebecca who was talking from behind. Besides, there was also a girl who was standing behind Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shuddering. Again, he had prepared himself to face Silvia’s iron fist, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps she was still troubled by yesterday’s young dragon’s incident, she was hiding behind Rebecca and remained silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 11===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To go to a place where the Ansal is absent, Rebecca brought the gang to the Dragon Fang public restaurant in an alley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is… Dragon Fang?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was slightly disappointed because he thought that Rebecca would bring them to a classy restaurant.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragon Fang is a restaurant for the public that provides good food with low price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm. It is a good restaurant. I have no complains on its quality and quantity. Also, it is half price for the student council members.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a lively shop full of laborers with well built bodies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since there is just an empty table for four, Rebecca sat together with Silvia while facing Ash and Eco on the other side of the table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Namely, Scarlet Empress and Ice Blue Princess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The two great beauties of the academy were sitting together with Ash. If they are spotted by Raymond or the rest, it would be natural if &lt;br /&gt;
they died in a fit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned her head to a side since she don’t intend to even utter a word. She was definitely still shadowed by yesterday’s incident. &lt;br /&gt;
Even though he felt like comforting her, however he had his hands full with Eco. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fyunn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco still looked like she was not fully awakened yet. Since that’s the case, he tried feeding her a few sips of water.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Rebecca ordered a three people’s sets, she smiled wryly at Ash and Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be frank, you had never failed to impress me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, you don’t have to apologize. Rather than that, I am actually enjoying myself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Enjoy…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was distressed and heartbroken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, remember to be careful and beware of the Ansal herb. Next time, it is better for you not to get close to Essarois. Though the Ansal Tea there is of top quality, it is still too early for Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will keep that in mind.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash answered, no one spoke a word. The reason was caused by none other than Silvia. She had kept her mouth shut for whole time &lt;br /&gt;
caused the people around her to become nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That being said… It is rare to see Rebecca-san together with Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, it was me who invited her out.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the incident of the young dragon had ended yesterday, Rebecca had indicated “ I will take care of the Princess herself.” However, it &lt;br /&gt;
seems that what is happening today had nothing to do with yesterday’s promise. It is also a surprise that Silvia would accept Rebecca’s &lt;br /&gt;
invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it was an order from the student council president, Silvia is still the country’s princess. She could have rejected the offer anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca smiled cheekily and took out a piece of paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you still remember the ticket for the one day date? The attached prize for the dragon riding festival. I must fulfill my promise and &lt;br /&gt;
Silvia had her duty to perform as the winner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh… Now I remember.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now it had started to make sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had totally forgotten about it. The winner in the dragon riding festival, could have a day’s date with Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the stubborn Silvia, the words ‘Duty of the winner’ is definitely the irresistible sure kill words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Together with yesterday’s problem, the princess had her mind crowded with many problems. Though I did try my best to help her, she had &lt;br /&gt;
been this way since the start.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Rebecca was regretting this, she still managed to squeeze out a cheerful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for the wait.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the moment, the waitress had arrived with their dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 12===&lt;br /&gt;
“I am back, Milgauss-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was enjoying the full view of Ansarivan, in the clock tower. With his mantle waving in the direction of the wind, he looked like &lt;br /&gt;
a veteran solider.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was in the disguised of a flower girl while Milgauss himself was dressed up as a mercenary.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 173.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was very silent on the top floor of the clock tower of the old shrine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the noisy streets looked as if they were from another world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Gazing at Milgauss back from behind, Anya thought that he was an ‘Unpredictable man…’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shrine that was facing St Durham Square was indeed very old. Usually it was not open to visitors. In addition to problem that was cause &lt;br /&gt;
by technical errors, the renovations for this shrine could not be continued and since then, it had remained closed for ten years.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Moreover, the security was light and anyone could break into the shrine after breaking open the lock at the back door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who knew this information is none other than Milgauss. Even when it is only information that only the locals knew of, Milgauss &lt;br /&gt;
treated it as if it was obvious to anyone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had always been curious of Milgauss&#039;s origin since the beginning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was a military man in the Empire’s army, his movement had always been graceful. It even felt like he was born in a noble &lt;br /&gt;
family. Even his pronunciations are beautiful and are fluent in both the Chevron language and Empire’s language.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How are the streets?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss’s question brought Anya back to her sense. Even though he was looking at her coldly through the mask, it still made Anya nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from Milgauss and Anya, there was not a third person in the clock tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though they are still on the job, Anya was a little disappointed. She certainly could not show the girly side of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was peaceful on the streets. Nobody is thinking about any wars.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan is a lively city. Anya had initially thought that the city that teaches breeders should be filled with killing intends. Yet, not &lt;br /&gt;
even a hint of war could be felt from this city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she was walking on the streets in disguised as a flower girl, Anya found out something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To the residents of Ansarivan,  the dragons are called ‘lovely beasts’ and not a military weapon. Ansarivan is never the so called &lt;br /&gt;
“military base for dragon training’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. In this street, not even a single soul thinks that dragons are military weapons. Ansarivan is a very friendly city.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss spoke in a nostalgic tone but it only lasted for a second.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However, Anya, there is no meaning behind the friendliness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss took a step forward and there was a coffin like box next to his feet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss silently opened the lid of the box. There is no corpse but a single sword in it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is not a normal sword. It was a broad sword with the size of a grown man.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like a typical zanbatou&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;斬馬刀a type of long sword&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; from the ancient drawings but its blade is black and its hilt was &lt;br /&gt;
decorated with beautiful jewels just like a refined masterpiece. With a closer look, they were bright dragon crystals.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss lifted the huge black sword and chanted the incantation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a little while, the clear blue sky was covered by dark clouds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 13===&lt;br /&gt;
Saute duck, Beef fillet cooked in wine, spare ribs, vegetable and mushroom soup, walnut bread…. All of the dishes were served one after another and they took away Ash’s attention.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The smell of the gravy and spices were stimulating his appetite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco reacted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once she found out about the smells of the foods, Eco had snapped out from the drunken state. Eco who cares for only crepes is after all, still a dragon. Her eyes were nailed to the meat dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry about the amount, just enjoy yourself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Rebecca could finish her sentence, she had already started stuffing herself with the duck. The skin was roasted nicely and its gravy &lt;br /&gt;
was dripping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mmm… This is the first time that I had tasted such a nice meat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes were glittering from being touched had her sight on the beef. She just simply took a piece of the beef with the fork and gave it a bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Funnn...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The beef seems to be very tasty since Eco looked as if she was in cloud nine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was also happy just by looking at her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, Silvia was working her knife and fork silently. Whenever Ash and her eyes met, she would glare at him to keep him &lt;br /&gt;
away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, Ash remembered what Rebecca had told him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;In my opinion, the princess is a perfectionist. She had always wanted to be the first. When she met a classmate who can ride any dragons, &lt;br /&gt;
she will take you as her rival.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In another words, the reason she tried to suppress the young dragon on her own is because of none other than Ash’s fault.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash made up his mind and spoke to Silvia:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Princess-sama… Is it really my fault?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know what you mean by that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her sharp glare pierced his forehead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am talking about yesterday’s incident… The way you acted yesterday isn’t really like you at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately, Silvia’s cheeks had turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Don’t be too full of yourself! Why would I even do it because of-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, a loud bang came from outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sudden thunderstruck had shocked Silvia. She was covering her ears with both her arms and was shaking tremendously. No one would ever &lt;br /&gt;
thought that she had this side to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a weird weather...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling about this and looked out from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The once clear sky was now covered by thick black clouds. The darkness outside made it hard to imagine that it was still noon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… That’s not a good sign.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was still eating suddenly stood up. Her face sank was staring intently at the sky outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ignoring Ash’s call, Eco ran out from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 14===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ashes to ashes, dust to dust. Appear! Child of magic technique. Thou shall be…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment Milgauss finished the incantation, under the sky filled with dark clouds, a change was happening on the streets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A dragon appeared in the middle of St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s… A Necromancia...!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya sub-consciously speaks of the word that should never be spoken of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Letters of blood red colour appeared on the surface of the huge sword that Milgauss was holding. They were words of an ancient language &lt;br /&gt;
that Anya could not understand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked as if blood were actually flowing out from the sword itself. The cloud had become thicker and sounds of the thunders had become &lt;br /&gt;
more and more frequent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia- A dragon that was resurrected using ashes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though she had heard about it before from Milgauss, it was still her first time seeing it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Summon the Necromancia and analyze its combat strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, determine whether it could be used in actual combat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the main purpose for the infiltration. Ansarivan is the selected location for the experiment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is like a hammer that smashes off the previous peaceful atmosphere.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This situation made Anya who just finished her investigation in the town bite her lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It made her think about her homeland that was full of blood and destruction a few years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-But…. This is war.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya reassured herself and clenched her fist while looking at Milgauss from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 15===&lt;br /&gt;
The group went chasing after Eco in the alleys had finally arrived at St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square was in a mess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The locals and the tourists were standing still like statues.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when they should be running away for their own sake, everyone just remain still and stare at the monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What is that thing!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he entered the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge beast was landing on the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that… A Dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its entire body is covered with fur and which made it looked similar to a Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, though it looked like a Maestro, its body fur was deep grey in colour and it smelled bad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Its body is rotting…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gasped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from that, its body size was surprisingly huge.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square that can hold thousands of people and right now had a quarter of it being occupied by a sole dragon. If it lifted its head up, it &lt;br /&gt;
height should be around the same height as the towers around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A roar that made people shivers was heard under the dark sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It sounds like hundreds of flutes not being blown uniformly. The sound was so terrible that it could even wake up the dead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The loud roar was followed was a strong gust that managed to topple the St Durham’s Statue in the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In a little while, the entire square was filled by a rotten smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only right now the people started running for their lives. While confronting with such a supernatural situation, the situation was no &lt;br /&gt;
longer under control. Although the Ansarivan’s security tried their best, it was obvious that they are lacking man power.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Followed by sounds of agonizing cries for help, many helpless people were continuously being pushed down. Even the customers in the &lt;br /&gt;
shops facing the Square were running out one by one.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The base for the St Durham Statue was in rubbles and the stone statue itself was lying on the ground. Eco was standing beside the statue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco was the dragon that brought all the troubles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is she even thinking!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was panicking and was trying to drag her back. However, he was blocked by the rest of the tourist who were running for their lives.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly removed her Beret and showed her horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems that she was trying to show that she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Refrain yourself, you lowly beast! Don’t you know who I am! Don’t you know that there are many excellent shops in this street?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, the entire square turned still because of her loud voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her imposing attitude touched Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it is just a little, after all, that weird thing is still a dragon and just maybe it understood Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon’s gaze slowly turned towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, they made eye contact with each other. But suddenly there were tentacles appearing from its body and was attacking Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted but the tentacles continued to wrap around Eco’s body and her four limbs and she was now hanging in mid air. Her uniform were &lt;br /&gt;
torn by the tentacles and her undergarments and skin were exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You! Knock it off!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was useless no matter how she struggled. Also, the more she struggled the tighter the grip of the tentacles became.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 184.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again the dragon roared and showed its pink mouth. A few teeth in its mouth that was arranged nicely dropped off. Only now Ash &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that even its teeth were rotting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, a light ball of purple electric appeared in its mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The purple electric light ball was then released followed by another roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Don!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A building facing the square was swallowed by the ball of light and was covered with dust.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Attacking magic…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbstrucked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a high level magic that could only be performed by Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The building that was destroyed was a four story building. The first floor was Café Essarois while it was an apartment from the second &lt;br /&gt;
floor onwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbfounded. Just how many innocent people were involved right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few moments later, the smoke cleared out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not only the building remains, but also there isn’t even a single causality.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in joy. Rebecca who was riding on Cú Chulainn in her Ark had cast the defense magic and neutralized the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Essarois is a place filled with the dreams of the girls. I as the student council of Ansarivan, I will have it protected until my death.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s declaration received cheers from the residents.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Rebecca wouldn’t let such cheers get over her head and she started reciting the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Appear! The certain hit magic spear!&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The summoned weapon appeared above Rebecca’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The magic spear turned into light particles and was shot towards the loathsome dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A new ball of light appeared in front of the dragon and it turned into seven layers of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It even knew defense magic!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!” pierced through the first layer of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then it continue was also broke apart easily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However it was obvious that it had slowed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time it broke through a layer, a large amount of magic was used up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fourth, the fifth… the sixth was penetrated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was praying while looking at Gáe Bolg’s path.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then, there was a crack in the seventh shield and it was pierced through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time when Ash was cheering, Gáe Bolg exploded at the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The flash caused their eyes to be blinded and it was followed by a loud bang.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The thick smoke had the dragon covered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was thinking that Rebecca had won.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the securities that should have led the people to safety were cheering happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then, the smoke started to clear up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The cheers were silent up by a hole in a head caused by the explosion. Even so, the dragon shouldn’t be able to live on after its brain &lt;br /&gt;
was destroyed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is that thing…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shivering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon has not yet fallen and Eco was still hanging in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next moment, the wound on the head started regenerating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as ifs the wound itself is another living being.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the wound was healed, the dragon returned to its original looks but its eyes looked even more menacing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, it swung its tail.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After seeing it using high class magic, Ash was surprised to see it change its style to physical attacks. It seems that Rebecca too, was &lt;br /&gt;
also caught off guard by it which led her to being slow in her reactions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca shouted in surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it was just a simple physical attack, the buildings behind the dragon were demolished like toy bricks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, they could only pray that the people inside the buildings could escape safely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Curses…!’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash clenched his teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could watch the dragon turn the city in ruins as a bystander.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Ash thought of a single person. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Milgauss, the masked man.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the day he met him in the forest, the still cog had been connected and started spinning. However, it was his instinct that told him &lt;br /&gt;
that. There was never a single proof.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What in the world is that dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once he heard the familiar voice, Ash was brought back to his sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, he saw that Silvia had arrived at the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Silvia saw the weird dragon, she fell on her backside and was shivering in fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately came to her side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Get a hold of yourself! Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though Ash was shouting loudly, Silvia never answered. Seeing such a supernatural sight had caused her to lose all her sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that instant, a flying dragon appeared on top of St Durham Square. It was obviously a Maestro since it had silvery white fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash! Bring the Princess as far away as you can!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a familiar voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was in charge of the accounts in the student council and also one of Ash’s few friends.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Max!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Leave this to me!... Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max wasn’t able to finish his sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon seeing that a new opponent had appeared immediately gave out a loud roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it released its ball of light with purple electric.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Arian!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Max’s command, Arianrhod immediately cast its defense magic. Though it managed to reduced the strength of the light ball, still it &lt;br /&gt;
had hit and fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Originally, a dragon shouldn’t be able to fly with such a build. It’s wings are only for decoration purposes. It was magic itself that &lt;br /&gt;
enables it to fly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he saw Arianrhod fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For it to even bring down Arianrhod with just a single hit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Arianrhod had no longer any magic to defend against the second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca who foresaw that ordered Cú Chulainn to glide down in the area in front of Max and Arianrhod. Without delaying a single moment, &lt;br /&gt;
she cast her defense magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the defending party, Rebecca had totally lost her mobility.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the worst situation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only choice left is to wait for the Holy Dragners of Lautreamont to arrive. But could the town people really hold on until then?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the entire town were already used to the peaceful life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For example, the entire strength of the security office was just hunting rifles and wooden batons. For offices where they have dragner &lt;br /&gt;
working there could only be found in the big cities.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was approaching Rebecca slowly. It probably thought of Rebecca as first to be removed as a target.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time the weird dragon took a step, the earth shook and the beautiful tiles turned into rubbles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as if it was a moving hill. Numerous tentacles had appeared right now and were gripping on Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aahhh! What the hell is this thing trying to do!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco continued to struggle. Even though she lost all her mobility, she still had decided that she is not going to ever give up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s it. I must save Eco.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After all, Eco is Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She is none other than Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is me… Am I able to do it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash questioned himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An answer flashed through his mind. It gave Ash shivers.  But still, it is a gamble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the instant, Ash remembered Eco enjoying her crepe happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on, it still hasn’t reached that stage yet… Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were still many nice things in this word that Eco knew nothing of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was not going to let her die like this before teaching her everything. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally made up his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will protect this city. Everybody. And also Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yet, there was still one more problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash needs Silvia’s cooperation to make his plan success.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama! Please get a hold of yourself!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He shouted towards Silvia who was still sitting on the ground in shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Silvia’s expression was still blank and continued to shiver. It was as if she is a totally different person from her usual &lt;br /&gt;
majestic self.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t joke with me…. What kind of a Princess are you! Where is the usual family motto! In such times shouldn’t you prove to us what &lt;br /&gt;
exactly is a royalty made of!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash lifted his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will apologize first! Sorry!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And he gave Silvia a slap on the face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sound was clear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ash?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was staring at Ash dumbstrucked. At least her thoughts were now focused. Although her red cheek was hurting, she had finally calmed&lt;br /&gt;
down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama, I had a request. Please summon Lancelot immediately and bring me with you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Bring you? Where to?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was pointing at the moving dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To be more specific, it was above the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately Silvia knew what he was thinking right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Definitely not! Are you even thinking properly!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s anger raises and stood up suddenly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Good, this is great. This is the Silvia that I knew of.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 006-007.jpg|thumb|&#039;&#039; Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted &lt;br /&gt;
to the dragon: “Your opponent is me!” &#039;&#039;]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted to the dragon:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Your opponent is me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strictly speaking, Ash didn’t even know if the dragon could even notice his voice. Basically the reason for him to shout was to keep his thoughts &lt;br /&gt;
from wavering. Still, the dragon did stop its footsteps.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It turned its head slowly and glared at both Ash and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia facial expression changed immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m alright. Princess-sama please summon Lancelot immedi…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could finish his sentence, the dragon shot a ray of light at them. It was definitely a different type of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash only understood that a strong energy shot pass the area above his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He raised his head in terror only to find out that the building behind him was crumbling. The three storey building behind him experienced &lt;br /&gt;
a direct hit from the attacking magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
How high exactly is the temperature need to melt debris of the building? Before Ash could even think about it, the building had crumbled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pile of wreckage was falling towards Ash and Silvia like a waterfall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the spur of the moment, Ash tried to protect Silvia. He could only shut his eyes and pray.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 16===&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey…! Until when are you going to stop acting in such manner?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s cold voice had given him the push to open his eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash though that he was buried under the pile of wreckage, but-.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt the wind blowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am flying…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia were in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then Ash realized that he was riding on Lancelot’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seems like Silvia had summoned Lancelot in the nick of time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The streets down below looked far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even St Durham Square looked miniature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge body that occupied a quarter of its space still exists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem is Ash was grabbing on to Silvia who was holding the reins from behind and his right hand was even grabbing on to her breast.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The soft feeling made him lost his calm. Since just now where the building started to crumble, his thought had always been blank.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t loosen your grip! You may fall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s warning made him calm down his thoughts and he started apologizing to Silvia. However, he continued grabbing on her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Obviously Ash had also shifted the position of his right hand. It was probably that he was thinking too much but somehow Silvia’s face had &lt;br /&gt;
turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, the dragon released its second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot in return roared loudly and cast its defense magic. A huge amount of pressure could be felt. Yet, Lancelot remained unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just as expected.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash praised.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This kind of level is child’s play for Lancelot. Back to the main point… Are you sure you want to do this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, please bring me to the appointed location. It must be none other than me to execute it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… Then I can only have faith in you. Lancelot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ooooon.” Under Silvia’s order, Lancelot roared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were gliding downwards towards the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The third and the fourth wave of attack were released but Lancelot avoided all of them with an amazing speed without even activating its &lt;br /&gt;
defence magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The distances between both parties were getting shorter until their entire fields of vision were covered by the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking for Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had prepared himself for the worst possible situation, where Eco was swallowed whole by the dragon. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Until now, this is the only chance where he can save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made up his mind and stood on Lancelot. To keep his balance, he held on to Silvia’s shoulder. Silvia remained silent while allowing him &lt;br /&gt;
to do so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The countdown begins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Ten, nine, eight, seven…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were getting closer to the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Three, two, one…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot flew pass the weird body in a very close distance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped towards the wall of grey furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a ‘Bump’ Ash landed safely. However, he slipped and nearly fell off but managed to cling to the furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon felt something on its head and was pissed. It shook its head vigorously. For that short moment, Ash felt like he was going to &lt;br /&gt;
fall off anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He crawled with all his might until he finally reached the space in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thought there are still many places that could be considered, it was his instinct that told Ash that this was the best place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With both of his foot on stable ground, Ash immediately stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, he thought about the feeling of his first ride on a dragon. Basically the situation was the same as yesterday where a &lt;br /&gt;
young dragon lost control. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A newborn Starda had gone rampage because its master had mistakenly fed it with Ansal Tea.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when the Grooms were in a fix trying to keep the situation under control, Ash who had just passed by, by a chance jumped onto the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He just had a hunch that he was able to do it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, he received a good amount of scolding from the school’s director even though he managed to calm the dragon down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s right, that young dragon was called- Lancelot.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That’s right. I totally forgot about it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled wryly. The Maestro that Silvia was riding on and the drunken Strada fitted perfectly in his memories.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He finally realized why Silvia was obsessed comparing herself to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash gained his confidence. Since he was able to calm Lancelot down, this weird dragon should not be a problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s begin…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Through his feet, he forced his conscious into the dragon like growing tree roots and spoke to the dragon gently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From now onwards, I am your master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon stopped its footsteps in reply to Ash’s words. Although it still continued growling, at the least it had stopped moving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s it. This is how it should be.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was smiling from the bottom of his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was thinking of giving it one more push, the dragon swung its head upwards like a trebuchet. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who was not prepared for this was thrown out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just moments before knocking into a building, Lancelot flew to his rescue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Phew… Saved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat on Lancelot and was just behind Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have never seen an idiot like you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia scolded while she was holding Lancelot’s reins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just a little more I could have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking with a serious tone. There was not even a hint of him joking. Silvia who had turned speechless looked just like a &lt;br /&gt;
graceful woman from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash said made sense. He was going to ride it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 17===&lt;br /&gt;
“Haaa… Haaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco looked pale. She was hurt by her inability to break free due to her lack of strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… For a descendant of a mighty dragon…. To lose to a low born dragon…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was provoking the dragon…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thrown out and had made a nice curve with it but was saved by Lancelot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is he trying to do?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was horrified.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash was doing was reckless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right. Ash was trying to tame this weird dragon by riding it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there is to be a single error, Ash will be squashed like a bug.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! What are you doing? Why don’t you run away!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who could endure it no longer shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! I will save you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash replied while sitting on Lancelot’s back. He seemed confident judging from his tone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That sentence had made her realized that Ash tried to save her instead of running away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was struggling to escape the tentacles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But the more she struggled, the tighter their grips became.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco, the dragon’s belly split open.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On both of the sides of the belly were aligned with row of sharp fine teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like an insect eating plat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It must have been a bad joke.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned pale.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Numerous tentacles appeared and Eco was swallowed into the mouth that looked like the gates of hell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she almost lost conscious, she could barely hear Ash’s cry&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 18===&lt;br /&gt;
“It seems that you have woken up, my sleeping beauty.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The bewitching voice had woken Eco up and she hurriedly looked around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A mysterious room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The floor was laid by square tile of black and white alternating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beside the four walls were statues that had not been completed. An incomplete human body. Incomplete beasts. Models of castle and &lt;br /&gt;
shrines. And also transports that Eco had never seen before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco who was sitting on the bed was a suspicious lady. The lady was sitting on an antique chair lazily. Her brilliant red dress looked extra conspicuous in the monochrome room.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 205.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the lady’s head were horns of an adult dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the Dragon Workshop. Also, I am called Navi.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Navi…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You just have to take me as another personality that is responsible to teach the immature you… Don’t you think that this is great?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t really understand. Also, what’s with your appearance?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting uneasy since the first time she saw Navi.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her looks, hair style and skin colour were exactly like Eco’s. The only difference is that Navi was a few years older.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hee hee. Are you worrying about my body? This design is based on a five years older version of you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wh-What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Still, this is just an assumption. You just may not grow up this well. Especially your breast.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi purposely put emphasis on the breast and deliberately shook them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad for being made fun of..&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph! It is not like bigger is better!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course, even the shape is important. But for you… Worrying about the size should be your main concern.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a detestable woman! I will squash you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Now lets us stop this useless talk as he is going to die if we let him continue what he was doing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a single wave from her right arm, a crystal ball appeared. A high concentration of lights was released by it and a projection of Ash &lt;br /&gt;
struggling with the weird looking opponent could be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He is still reckless!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking up towards the screen which was the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In a first look, this is not a bad idea. After all he was born with that gift to ride any kind of dragons. However, this opponent is too &lt;br /&gt;
much for him to handle. He had no chance of winning against that Necromancia.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Necromancia?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. It is a dragon that died once but was resurrected by human technology.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk! What should we do…? There is nothing in my ability to help him.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was saddened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, do you know why a holy dragon is called a Maestro.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was puzzled by the sudden question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before the existence of the secret agreement of Albion, the holy dragons were craft workers. This dragon workshop was built by a group of &lt;br /&gt;
great Maestros. The Ark is only one of the many things created by the Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi was trying to say.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are telling me that he is lacking an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good answer. And of course the only person who can present him with the Ark is only you as his Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… How can I…? That’s it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco remembered her conversation with Ash in St Druham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Hmm, if it is the blueprint for the Ark, I have the access to it.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-If that’s the case, can you use the blueprint… To create an Ark?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Are you crazy! That’s is nothing but an imitation.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it is an imitation, it is still an Ark. Certainly, Eco&#039;s pride does not allow her to make a copy from her ancestor, but this &lt;br /&gt;
was an emergency.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco accessed the Dragweiss immediately and focused her thoughts. Without delay, the projection on the ceiling started changing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice either.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since year 10 of A.S.B where the secret agreement of Albion was made, there were many blueprints left by the dragons. Apart from the Arks &lt;br /&gt;
that were worn by humans, there were also those that were made as a trial.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The total amount of blueprints easily exceeds a thousand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was disappointed after read the blueprints.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every single blueprint was full of details and even copying may become a difficult task.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come on! How am I to copy this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was feeling troubled, the thought of St Durham’s Statue flash pass.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She instantly summoned St Durham’s Ark’s blueprint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Time of production	Year 846 A.S.B/ Month of Libra/ 2nd day.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Name of knight		Durham Lautreamont &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Ark Weapon		Magic sword Caliber&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to the present, the design and structure five hundred years ago was simpler.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is this Ark, I should be able to do it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You’re naïve.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why? Supposing I had no experience in making an Ark, I still inherit the basic knowledge. So what are you even-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It just doesn’t work that way. An Ark is an armour that was custom made for its knight. If you just make a copy of a previous work, he &lt;br /&gt;
won’t be able to wear it. If you force it on him, it may even endanger his life.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What! Then this isn’t even an option to begin with!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hehe. When did I mention that? The Dragweiss had collected a huge amount of blueprints since the old times. It is possible to select &lt;br /&gt;
parts of the armour that fits him from this amount of blueprints.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By shaking a crystal, an infinite amount of blueprints appeared on the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Could it be that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi means.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We will select parts of the armour that fits him and reorganized them.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, can I do it? For starters, how am I going to know if the parts suit him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was worrying about the most important part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before an Ark was made, it requires that data of the person wearing it. First is the height and then follow by a mountain full of &lt;br /&gt;
information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara. If you are talking about his data, I already have it here with me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled cheekily touched Eco’s forehead with the crystal ball. In an instant, all the information in the crystal ball flowed into &lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… Is his data?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was able to construct a three dimensional structure using the huge amount of information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco blushed. Ash image in her mind was stark naked. Every single detail on his body was clearly recorded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-A perfect data…. But how did this data get into your hands?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I was expecting something similar to this to happen. Just before you were born, I sneaked into his dream. Actually I finish collecting my &lt;br /&gt;
data in just a night but since he is too cute, I had been doing that for a whole week.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How dare you toy with my pet dog!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi was laughing in front of the angry Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see that someone is jealous.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-There is no way that I-I….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so? But why are you blushing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am gonna squash you!... Erm, this is not the right time and place to argue!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit. So let’s begin.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi slowly stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know whether I am capable of doing it but… this is the only choice left!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally made up her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 19===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it had been three times, Ash never gave up. On the other hand, he was saved by Lancelot every single time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucky for him, the grey dragon had Lancelot locked on as its target. Every single attack was directed towards Lancelot which in turn, &lt;br /&gt;
reduced the amount of destruction towards the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, there is a limit to the amount of magic that Lancelot possesses. In truth, it flying speed had been greatly reduced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is at its limit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood her frustration from her words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. This time will be the final!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia signal Lancelot to change its direction and dive down towards the middle of the square. Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tell me that is not true…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was suddenly swallowed into the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in dismay.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are not able to make it in time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was eaten whole by that monster right in front of Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!... It&#039;s my fault for being weak…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t give up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia reminded Ash who felt that he was going to break apart in despair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She may still be alive! If you give up at this moment, she will definitely die for sure!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately kept his cool. Silvia was right. If not because of she was holding the reins with both hands, she is sure to give him a &lt;br /&gt;
slap on the face like what he did to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, the Seikoku on his left arm started hurting. It was the same feeling as the time where Eco was kidnapped by Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reaction from the Seikoku made him felt relief.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This proofs that his link with Eco had not yet been cut off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yeah… I mustn’t give up yet. Princess-sama! Please bring me to where the monster is!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again, Lancelot started diving downwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 20===&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me a break! Why can’t I get it right!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was shouting in desperation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The opponent that Ash was battling was a Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its element is ‘dark’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Naturally, the Ark that she is going to present to Ash should have the ‘light’ element in it. It had been a common knowledge since the &lt;br /&gt;
ancient times that light can conquer darkness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…! Just as expected, this is impossible…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sitting on her knees in disappointment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Tears were dripping from her eyes. It was the first time Eco ever cried from the feeling of regret.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Don’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Eco heard something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The owner of the sound was none other than Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it him…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco lifted her head up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was still continuing his fight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While fighting against the dragon, he was calling out to Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“I will save you! I still believe that you are still alive! That is why… That is why, you mustn&#039;t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These were not spoken by words. They were spoken through the Astral Flow that connects the dragon and its breeder. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She felt warmth from the bottom of her heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco knew from where this warmth came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Druing her time as an Orphan, Eco had always been inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She could never forget about this warmth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was going against the odds, Ash never ran away from anything.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He even dare face such a monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For how many times had he stood on the dragon’s head and for how many times had he been thrown off. Right now, his clothes were like rags &lt;br /&gt;
and there were many obvious bruises and wounds on his body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, his eyes never stop glittering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco clenched her fists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Unforgivable!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s it. Ash was fighting for her sake and her pride doesn&#039;t allow her to stay still while waiting to be saved.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… It is totally unforgivable… That is why…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her tired body was once again filled with magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her overflowing amounts of magic crystallized outside of her body and were sparkling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco never once expect herself to have such a large amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her field of vision widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could not keep herself from smiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Almete, Gorjal, Peto… Espaldar……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought the amount of blueprints in the Dragweiss is abnormally large, the Eco right now had the ability to handle all of them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Brafoneras, Faldaje… Escarcelas……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In among the parts that suits Ash, Eco selects the ones with light element and combined them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Bufetas, Hombreras, Brazales… Codales….., Antebrazos……. Manoplas……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to those who create the Ark from scraps, Eco’s actions may seem detestable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could never be able to object for shaming the tradition and placing a curse on her ancestral.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Quijotes… Guardas… Grebas…… Escarpes……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However to Eco, it would be a worst sin to just be a bystander and witness all the fun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco no longer hesitates.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With mixed emotions, she had chosen the final part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“-Espolón!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, Eco had opened the gate that leads to a brand new world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 21===&lt;br /&gt;
No matter how badly he failed, he had lost count of the number of times he returned. Right now, he was lying on Lancelot’s back in anguish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pain was so immersed that he could no longer feel his limbs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is really at its limit. This will be the last chance we have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s voice was obviously shaking. They really must succeed. The moment Lancelot used up all its magic and can no longer fly, everything &lt;br /&gt;
that was done will be in vain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan will be in ruins and Eco will definitely die.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It will be impossible to save all the refuges unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… What should I do…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was in a pinch…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“You are the one who shouldn’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s voice was heard in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco? Eco! You are still alive!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had been sometime since she was swallowed by the dragon but Ash could clearly hear her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Isn’t that obvious! No matter what I do, I can never look for a substitute for my useless pet dog, so just take this as a gift.”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Take what?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next instant, Ash was surrounded by dazzling lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His eyes’ widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An outline slowly appeared in the light and transformed into a brilliant armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Isn’t that an… Ark! It is godly…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia squeaked when she turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had a strange feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a heavy looking armour but it doesn’t feel that way.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps it was the strong amount of magic that removed the weight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though he just wore it, he could feel an overflowing amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“With this… I can never lose.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled confidently and spoke facing Eco who was inside the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you Eco! I had received your feelings!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, Eco replied with a scold.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“D-Don’t joke with me! That is just a mimic! Not an original! I have never thought of presenting you with it at all!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was certainly full of objections.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go, Princess- sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had been equipped with the Ark was full of spirits.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia didn’t waste a single moment and ordered Lancelot to dive down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it had used up most of its magic, it still answered Ash and Silvia’s call by raising its speed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking to her from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… What is it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is a good dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What does that have to do with this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why you should never again try to ride on another dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Are you an idiot! What are you saying at a time like this…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the best time to tell you this. You had Lancelot who is the best Pal. So, what is the thing that you are craving for?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I… Definitely knew that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot made a great roar in reply to Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are getting faster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge grey body was getting closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now’s the time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt that his body had blend into the wind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After drawing out a curve in the air, Ash landed on the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks to the Ark, Ash could even stand on the dragon without clinging to its fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could even feel the dragon’s body heat through the armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at this moment, Ash was one with the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be wrong. The Ark had pushed Ash’s gift to its maximum potential.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From his feet, his consciousness was growing into the dragon like roots.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If Ash was to be described as a tree, then the dragon is the earth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash could feel the dragon’s rejecting feeling in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It doesn’t matter whether you are god or even the devil himself…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was like a tower in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For what I know, every dragon will bound to be ridden by me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, there was a change in the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its folded wings were suddenly flapping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was flying towards the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 22===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Seems like we had stepped into an ambush…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss sighed when he saw the Necromancia flying away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was the person controlling the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge sword in his hands was not only the switch, it was also the controller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Milgauss was never successful in making the Necromancia fly but that boy had it proved to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, Milgauss was dead calm. It was just as expected.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was sweating when she looked at Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a cold sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy who was riding the Necromancia away from the city is THAT BOY.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had never reported to Milgauss about their meeting in the streets. She didn’t expect the boy to appear right there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Where exactly did I meet that boy before…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was trembling from that single sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, whatever.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luckily, MIlgauss never question any further.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The experiment ended with a failure, but we still obtain some useful results. That boy and also… that girl.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Girl?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was confused. Did he mean Rebecca Randall the Ark Dragner?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or is it Princess Silvia who was flying on Lancelot?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However she was wrong.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t the Necromancia capture a girl? The one with horns. She is probably the one who presented the boy with the Ark. Even though she &lt;br /&gt;
looks human… She might be descendant of a dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I never…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss had no intention of speaking anymore. He silently kept the huge sword and gazed at Anya through the mask.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will retreat for now.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya knelt down immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 23===&lt;br /&gt;
“I did it…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon spread it wings and flew up towards the sky with Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was getting higher and higher and further away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, Ansarivan town, the plains beside and Fianna Forest looked like toys.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was all according to his plan. First he had to bring this dangerous dragon away to ensure to safety of the townspeople.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could understand the dragon’s thought through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The muzzy thoughts suddenly turned clear. If felt as if the Ark had translated the dragon’s feeling into words that Ash understands.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was anger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hatred too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And also- Love.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see. You also had a master in the past.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash didn’t know where this dragon came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He only knew that this was just a normal dragon that grew up in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it told Ash its wish through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood the sad wish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Necromancia? Something that disobey the logic of this world? Do you really want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It once again assured Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It trusted as like it did to its master.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you really sure that you want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia was asking for Ash to kill it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the only way out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… what about Eco after I killed you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was worried about killing the Necromancia because Eco was still inside the Necromancia. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After knowing what Ash thinking was, the dragon reassured him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ermm… Can I really trust you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia nodded its head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It promised to protect Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Alright. Leave everything to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he had made up his mind, an image of a sword appeared in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the Ark was created hastily, Ash still had obtained the same power as an Ark Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Similar to Rebecca’s Gáe Bolg, every Ark Dragner must possess an Ark weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was glowing and an immense amount of magic flowed out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The details of the Ark Weapon were circulating inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a sword. A sword with light as its element.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Following the information, Ash chanted the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Appear! The sword that was graced by the light! Please lend me all your powers that are able to repent darkness…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The area on Ash’s forehead was flooding with light.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A tremendous amount of magic was flowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A huge sword that was taller than Ash appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Aix-les-Bains!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After lifting Aix-les-Bains easily, Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuoooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was falling. Starting from the dragon’s head to its belly, the sword that wields light slashed through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon split into two.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sword transformed into silvery lights and cut through its bones and flesh.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The tough body of the dragon burst into parts like a paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The destroyed body turned into grey particles and was blown away by the winds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Eco was thrown up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was probably thrown up by the dragon before the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was diving at Eco’s direction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was also accelerating using the magic of the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was not even a hint of fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stretched out his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco stretched out hers too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both of them were close, but yet so far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pressure from the strong wind seemed to be able to cut through skin but Ash still shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made a kick in the air by releasing the magic in the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco once again stretched out her arms further after being called.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was the first time Eco call his name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fingers met.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then they felt the weight on their palms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now they were grabbing each other’s hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not wanting Eco to leave his side again, Ash made a pull.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was embracing his chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While hugging the delicate body, Ash could feel her body heat. He had decided to land on the plains below.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With the protection from the Ark, they remain unharmed even after falling from a few hundreds of meters from above.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dark cloud in Ansarivan had disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the horizon, the sun appeared once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We did it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he smiled, the Ark broke into light particles and disappeared. Similarly, Aix-les-Bains which was in his belt had also disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as Eco had said, this was just hastily made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it did actually manage to save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you, Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Its nothing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco turned to a side. She really hasn’t changed at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he started smiling, his smile turned into horror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… What’s with your fist?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her fist was bleeding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Surely it was hurt when she was caught by the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-This is nothing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash held her hand and licked her wound. It was a usual practice in Ash’s hometown when children hurt themselves.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It may be obvious to Ash but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad and started rampaging.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! It is just for disinfection, disinfection I say!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who turned embarrassed bit his neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! This is not a joke! I might even die…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was probably tired finally calmed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting uneasy but Eco was already fast asleep. He showed sign of relieved and smile bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A boy who can ride any dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Some corrections should be made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or at least until he found a way to handle Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Dark Gray Invasion ~A.S.B.1365.5~&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2|Chapter 2]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354088</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354088"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T15:51:43Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 20 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 3 - Necromancia&#039;s Attack==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
The month of Aries had ended and it was the arrival of the month of Taurus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem concerning Eco&#039;s lodging was put on hold and no decision had been made yet because of the incident where Angela had become a teacher in just a flash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In short, Eco was still sleeping on Ash&#039;s bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem they were facing was, Apollo House which was the dormitory where Ash was staying at is a male&#039;s dorm. Furthermore, Eco is an extremely beautiful girl as long as she kept her mouth shut.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ash was staying with such a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was obvious some weird rumours would emerge among the students who were living in Apollo House.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
The class room of the first year advanced course.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When school was about to dismissed, Raymond walked towards Ash&#039;s table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yo, Ash. Why don’t we go and have some fun since we are free?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, I have to go to the student council’s office.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Student council…? Why?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err, the president asked for me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had informed Ash to find a free time to visit the student council’s office about a week ago. Since Eco had gotten used to the campus &lt;br /&gt;
life, it should be about time for him to make his visit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it true? I think Rebecca Nee-san should have many questions for you. Or many she wants to blame you for something… Just by thinking…&lt;br /&gt;
Haaa… Haaa.” &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have nothing to say to you…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err… did &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; goes well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash asked while Raymond pushed his face nearer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond was looking totally serious.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Aren’t you teaching Eco on the bed?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Raymond had ended his sentence, the entire class turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was looking at Ash with suspicious eyes. Everyone in the academy knew that Ash’s pal was born as a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t say something that will make people misunderstood! Don’t you know that Eco is a dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond smile sinisterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Right, anyway I knew that you don’t even have the guts to do &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then just don’t say something that will make people misunderstood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haha… Could it be that you are the one who was being taught?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because Raymond who had hit the bull’s eye with just a guess, Ash was a little taken aback but he dare not speak back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
The student council office was located at the highest floor of the academy’s centre tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gulped when he was standing in front of the grand door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From a long time ago, Ansarivan’s student council had a huge power. They not only dealt with the academy’s council but they also have the right &lt;br /&gt;
of speech in the city council. According to some rumours, the student council president’s power is superior to the mayor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please enter.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before he even knocked, the student council president’s voice could be heard. This made Ash tremble a little.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for interrupting.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He timidly opened the door and walked into the office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was crossing her arms while standing by the window that was at the far end of the room. There wasn’t another soul in this room. When he &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that they were alone, Ash who had felt uneasy from the start was now sweating nervously.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahhh, Ash. You finally came!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca turned around and stared at Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With her marble statue like beauty together with her crimson coloured hair, it let out an amazing feeling. Even her body proportion outshone &lt;br /&gt;
other people. Her curves were perfect and not even her uniform could hide it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca Randall who had received the Ark-Dragner title was not only well known in Ansarivan. Her name was widely spread in the entire Knight &lt;br /&gt;
Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even in the well known Holy Dragners of Lautreamont had only one in a ten of their members who received the title Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from that, the requirements to obtain the title Ark-Dragner is very strict.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fuu. Don’t be shy. Just take a seat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-Yes…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat at a corner of the sofa, frightened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca sat beside Ash without even a second thought. He smelled something refreshing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was uneasy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was nervous because of their close distance where they can feel each other’s breath. Since there was also a sofa located right opposite, &lt;br /&gt;
logically speaking, Rebecca should have sat there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Rebecca showed a playful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To get to know another person better, sitting side by side is the best choice, this is common knowledge for dating.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Is it…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Young man, you must remember it. Next time, if you are on a date, remember not to sit opposite of her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, dates or whatever… It is still a far away dream.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was blushing in embarrassment while Rebecca unexpectedly was enjoying that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… In another words, no one had noticed your true value yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“True value?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If for me, I still haven’t determined how good of a man you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly stopped smiling and moved towards the main topic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In short, I am here to discuss the things regarding Eco with you… Saying that, what is she doing when you are in class? You can’t just keep &lt;br /&gt;
her in the man’s dormitory right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, Cosette is helping me with that. I don’t think that it will be a problem.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the kidnapping incident a few days ago had ended, Ash had told Cosette his trouble when they were chit chatting. Cosette immediately &lt;br /&gt;
volunteered to help take care of Eco. Since Costte also had nothing to do when Silvia was attending classes, she can accompany Eco in Ash’s &lt;br /&gt;
place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only think he worried about was whether Eco will accept Cosette. Until today, it seemed like there was no such problem. In front of &lt;br /&gt;
Cosette, Eco was always acting mature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Cosette huh? There won’t be a problem if it is her. I had met Cosette a few times before and she is not someone to be underestimated.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So Rebecca-san also thinks so?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile because he was thinking something bad about Cosette.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Umm… It is said that when the Paladin sent Princess Silvia to Ansarivan, about a hundred maids and guards were sent together.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! It must be troublesome…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Princess of course had gone against the Paladin’s will. In the end, because the Paladin insisted, she brought Cosette alone along with &lt;br /&gt;
her. Judging from that, Cosette is something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Back to the topic, you are also something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was looking at him sharply until he started to sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you talking about?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When had you started to have this close relationship with Cosette?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s beautiful face was getting closer. The refreshing smell was getting stronger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being asked something unexpected, Ash’s head started spinning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How dare you hide something from me? It isn’t good you know. By the way, you are not thinking that Rebecca Randall is someone simple &lt;br /&gt;
right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s face was getting closer and closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought there was a faint hint of a smile by her lips, her eyes were not smiling at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Alright! Please promise me that… Don’t tell anyone about this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, I guess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca nodded and moved her head backwards back to her original position.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash took a deep breath and told her everything about the incident where Eco had been kidnapped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
The seventh dragon house was specially built for Maestros. Apart from Rebecca’s Cú Chulainn, there were four more Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Take it slowly, there are many more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Lancelot was gulping down the thickly sliced meat, Silvia smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Normally, jobs like feeding, preparing the beds, balancing the nutrients, cleaning… were done by the groom of the dragon house. The breeders &lt;br /&gt;
on the other hand just need to focus their thoughts on studying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However Silvia had always taken care of Lancelot on her own.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyday, she will always visit the dragon house five times. She will feed it on her own, clean the dragon house and even give Lancelot a bath. &lt;br /&gt;
If Lancelot felt itchy, she will sure to be there to give a scratch on that spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Silvia’s care, Lancelot who was born as a Strada had grown into a beautiful Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her achievement was acknowledged and she had received the title Dragner in the young age of fourteen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The title Dragner can only be received by a breeder whose Pal is a Maestro. It had been a tradition in the Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Silvia was never satisfied with her current achievement. Her aim was to become a ‘Great Dragner’. Just the title Dragner could &lt;br /&gt;
never satisfy her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright Lancelot… Next will be an Ark-Dragner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia patted Lancelot after she spoke out her thought. Its silvery white fur was tick and felt nice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Silvia pressed her hands against her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s proof of a Breeder the Seikoku was at the middle of her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her memories when she was seven came into her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To obtain an orphan from the mother dragon, Silvia had entered Albion Forest alone. However, she injured her leg and was crying while standing. &lt;br /&gt;
She left the palace with the thought of she will definitely become a breeder but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then there was a young boy who reached out to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Like Silvia, the young guy was here on the same day for the Orphan Ceremony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-I will give you a piggyback while we look for mother dragon together.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s heart beat increased when she thought about the guy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If not for his help, Silvia would never have become a Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… I had made a promise with him. I will become a great knight. If I did anything that should not be done by an owner, I want you &lt;br /&gt;
to scold me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadly, Lancelot only had its eyes on the meat and was not bothered by Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk, what a child you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia shook her head and gave a wry smile. Although it had become a Maestro, it was still a young dragon. Compare to Cú Chulainn, its body &lt;br /&gt;
size was definitely smaller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Speaking of that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was thinking about Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only student who dared to challenge Silvia Lautreamont.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, Silvia had won the match but she didn’t have the feeling of victory. On the other hand it can be said as a losing feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had given Silvia a help on the race’s position arrangement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She clearly understood her attitude of looking down on her enemy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only that she had never thought that such a despicable method will be used. If not for Ash who made use of the chance, Silvia would not be &lt;br /&gt;
able to win.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash Blake… I have never seen such an irregular guy. He could even ride on other people’s Pal as he liked which is out of common knowledge. In the &lt;br /&gt;
end, what is the trick he was using-?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Silvia was mumbling, there was a cry of help from outside of the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon has gone mad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash had told her everything, Rebecca sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… For such a thing to happen. Angela-sensei is also a troublesome person. She is one of the best in the continent in dragon researching.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had never thought that teacher could be such a great person…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is a total dragon maniac. She had thought of becoming a Dragner since she was still a child. In the end, she was not selected in the &lt;br /&gt;
Orphan Ceremony…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will never hand an orphan to her if I am the mother dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Perhaps not being selected had left her with traumas until today. However, Angela-sensei’s skills and knowledge are the real stuff. Lets observe her for the time being.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Observe…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t hide his sad looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it is possible, he doesn’t want to have anything to do with her for a second time…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right! There is one more thing about Eco. It is about when you are in the forest and you said that you had encountered some uninvited &lt;br /&gt;
guest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash with a ‘Hah’ lifted his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Many things had happened after Eco was born and he had forgotten about it. The suspected to be Empire’s soldier was lurking around in the &lt;br /&gt;
Knight Country territory. This is not something to be overlooked.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In the end, just who are those two?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The masked man called Milgauss with an extraordinary temperament.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl who wanted to have Ash killed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… ‘Milgauss’ should be a nickname. It doesn’t look like an Empire’s surname. Perhaps he could be the Empire’s agent. If that’s the case, &lt;br /&gt;
this is not a problem that a mere student could solve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had never thought of Rebecca as a ‘mere student’, but he chose to keep this thought to himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, I will pass your message to the peace keepers’ office. However, if the masked man is from the Empire’s army, I am afraid that the &lt;br /&gt;
peace keepers will also be helpless.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she remained calm, the way she had spoken was terrifying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It should be alright, right? Ansarivan is an academy for breeders and not a military school. It shouldn’t be targeted by the Empire.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We are not the military’s backup. The paths that a Breeder can take is not only limited to joining the Knight corps or the dragon elite troops. What’s more, Lautreamont Knight Country was built with the rules that no dragons were allowed in the military. However, it is still the truth that &#039;&#039;&#039;THAT WAR&#039;&#039;&#039; had changed Lautreamont Knight Country and Ansarivan.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-That war. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the ‘Xenoglavia War’ that was triggered fifty two years before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Lautreamont Knight Country was established, it was the first time that the dragons were sent to war.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It all begins when the Zepharos Empire’s armies from the north attacked Chevron Kingdom’s territory in the south.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Empire’s armies were armed with many mechanical weapons and had a huge amount of destruction force. In just a short moment, Chevron’s &lt;br /&gt;
Royal Knights that was said to be strongest mounted troops in the whole continent was wiped out. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Chevron’s king who was worried sent a secret messenger to Lautreamont Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, the dragons who were not involved in any wars for four hundred and fifty years flew towards the battle field once again to save &lt;br /&gt;
their allies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Holy Dragners of Lautreamont led by the Paladin himself joined the battle and the Empire’s armies that had suffered great causality were &lt;br /&gt;
forced to retreat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, the Kingdom and the Empire signed a truce.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To the Empire, Ansarivan was not only a place for the military backup, but also a factory that produces mass destructions weapons. In another &lt;br /&gt;
words, it is a military base. Just by judging from this, it is highly possible that Ansarivan is their target for the preparation for the next &lt;br /&gt;
war.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that Ash had turned pale, Rebecca smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t have to be surprised, Ash. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That… It is you, Rebecca-san.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That&#039;s it. Cú Chulainn and I will protect Ansarivan at all cost. That is why I want you to join us.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, even you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca pressed forward and their shoulders were touching each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you not want to join the student council?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked by the unexpected invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible! Since all the student council members are Dragners.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So one cannot join the student council if they are not a Dragner? I don’t remember such rules. It was just by chance that it looked like that &lt;br /&gt;
in this year.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I heard from every person around you that you are called as ‘The Boy Who Can Ride Any Dragon’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that exaggeration is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You don’t have to act humble. Even I could not ride on another person’s Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before anyone noticed, they are at the distance where their nose could touch. Rebecca’s beauty was drawing closer.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 149.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly noticed that Rebecca’s palm was on his knee.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s body heat could be felt by Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s heart was at the verge of exploding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be exact, I want you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can you please think about it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, but… If I… The student council-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At this moment, as if helping Ash who was getting anxious, the bell rang. Compare to the normal bells, this bell doesn’t sound stable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from the continuous ringing of the bell, it should be the emergency bell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Level two emergency state…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had recognized the meaning of the bell in just a short time and moved towards the side of the window. Ash too was taking a peep &lt;br /&gt;
outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The ‘level two emergency state’ in Ansarivan means that a certain dragon had caused havoc and had flown out from the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The entire school ground could be seen from the student council office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, a Strada was running amok. Its body was small and it looked as if it was just born days before. It still couldn’t spread its &lt;br /&gt;
wings let alone flying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca gave a wry smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa, this happens usually during this time of year. It will end in a short while.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected of the student council president Rebecca, she was calm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few grooms had arrived at the scene and had the dragon surrounded with nets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragons are living things with high intelligence, however they are also short tempered. Especially during the times when they were young, it &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
was not unusual for them to turn mad because of some small matters. Even their owners could do nothing about it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course all the grooms working in the dragon house had undergone special training to handle such situation. Just as Rebecca had said, the &lt;br /&gt;
incident could be settled in a short moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash himself had lost interest in the incident and wanted to leave the window side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who arrived at the scene jumped on the young dragon that had gone mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She looked like she was trying to suppress the young dragon with her own power. Her actions doesn’t match her usual self for it was a &lt;br /&gt;
foolhardy decision.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from their owner who they acknowledged, the dragons will never allow anyone to ride on their back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Silvia was trying her best to just cling on the dragon’s back. She was in a fix because she could be thrown out anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s action had obviously caused trouble to the grooms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is she an idiot! What is princess-sama trying to pull…?!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is most probably because of her ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t understand what Rebecca was saying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From what I can see, Her Highness is a perfectionist. No matter what kind of losing it is, she hates it. When there is a classmate who can &lt;br /&gt;
ride any dragon exist, she was burning with the ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just because of such things…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash frowned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To Her Highness, it was never ‘Just because of such things’.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… If that’s the case, I will go and help her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There is no need for that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The voice that hurts like a whip forced Ash to stop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true that you have some unusual talent. However, are you confident enough that you will be able to suppress the young dragon and at the &lt;br /&gt;
same time prevent Her Highness from getting hurt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s sharp words had made Ash speechless. If it was to calm down the young dragon, Ash himself was more than enough.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Ash doesn’t have to confidence to guarantee to be able to save Silvia without getting her hurt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, what she we do…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I had said it just before. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Rebecca humped onto the window frame. Her red hair that looked like it was on fire was dancing with the winds. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on…! Rebecca-san? What do you think-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will end this quickly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, Rebecca disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca jumped down from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked and took a peek downwards from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Answer my summon…Cú Chulainn!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Out of a sudden, there was a twist in the space beneath Rebecca and Cú Chulainn appeared majestically.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she had landed safely on Cú Chulainn’s back, she spoke strictly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“In my name Rebecca Randall, present me the Ark you created!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn roared in respond to Rebecca’s summon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was light surrounding Rebecca’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her uniform that she had worn until just now had dissolved in the sea of lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a short time, her naked body was exposed. However, because of the excessive brightness, Ash was unable to look at her clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next time Ash opened his eyes, Rebecca’s body was already surrounded by a dazzling knight’s armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was just like a knight from the legends looked godly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is… the Ark!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had heard before about it in the rumours but today was the first time he witnessed it with his own eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was the proof of an absolute loyalty from a Maestro to its owner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment a Dragner received an Ark from his Pal, he will be known as an Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Whoosh!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn’s huge body had flew up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong wind pressure nearly had Ash who was standing by the window blown off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s scream was heard from down below. She was floating in mid air as if she was sent flying by a chariot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash leaned his body out from the window frame and shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just before Silvia lands on the ground, Cú Chulainn accelerating downwards. In Ash eyes, Cú Chulainn was like teleporting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Cú Chulainn was again flying upwards, Rebecca had caught Silvia&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash, Her Highness is in your care!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could even respond to it, Rebecca had her eyes poised at the student council’s office’s window and threw out Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the distance was not even two meters, but to throw a country’s princess, it was not at all normal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in surprise and caught Silvia. They were in the so called ‘Princess carry’ situation and he must stand firm no matter what.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Ash&#039;s arms, Silvia had lost her consciousness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even under such situation, Ash’s heart was beating rapidly. His left hand that was supporting Silvia’s lower half was touching something soft &lt;br /&gt;
and elastic. Also, the was a flower like fragrance coming from her dazzling golden hair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, he heard Rebecca’s spell coming from outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&amp;quot;Appear… The certain hit magic spear…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The was a flash in respond to Rebecca’s spell and an enormous spear had appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the Ark-Weapon that only an Ark-Dragner could use.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An Ark was not just simply an armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was stored with strong magic and it comes with a one and only Ark-Weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Gáe Bolg!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Ash’s eyes, Rebecca swung the magic spear Gáe Bolg!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong magic transformed into a ray of light and was shot down onto the ground. There was a small explosion on the ground beside the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging young dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there was a slight mistake, the young dragon will definitely die. However, it was Rebecca that we were talking about. The shock from the &lt;br /&gt;
explosion had caused the young dragon to faint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a while since Rebecca had the young dragon suppressed, Silvia woke up while lying in Ash’s arms. When she found out that she was carried by Ash-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wha…! What are you doing…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was blushing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! Don’t move around! I can’t hold on any longer!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he warned, Silvia fell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was glaring at Ash with tears in her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I warn you that you will fall! Anyway why did you do that? You would have been dead &lt;br /&gt;
if not because of Rebecca’s help!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Don’t even understand how it feels!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment she shouted, tears were dripping from her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To hide her crying looks, Silvia turned around and ran out from the student &lt;br /&gt;
council’s office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the matter, Princess-sama…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled. Next, there was a voice coming from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry. It is my duty to deal with the Princess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, Rebecca who had changed back into her uniform was sitting on the &lt;br /&gt;
window frame and was with a smile full of confidence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
The next day after the young dragon’s incident was a school holiday.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had again accompanied Eco to Ansarivan City. In truth, Ash wanted to pass &lt;br /&gt;
his time in the dorm, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The crepes are calling out to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With this reason alone, Ash went out with Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, let’s hunt down the crepe stall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After passing by the main door that separates the academy and the city, Eco &lt;br /&gt;
immediately dragged Ash with her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Does a food made by a stupid and ignorant human being taste that well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sh-Shut up! It is the humans that are stupid and ignorant! The crepes had &lt;br /&gt;
nothing to do with this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned red when she replied to Ash’s tease and she continued to march &lt;br /&gt;
on forward. Eco’s respond made Ash felt a little bad… Maybe he should reflect &lt;br /&gt;
on that a little. Ash chased after Eco’s small back and knocked into someone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash just lost his balance for just a moment but the other person had fell on the &lt;br /&gt;
ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, it was my bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately held out his hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… Me too. Because I am careless…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person answering was a girl at Ash’s age range. There was also a flower &lt;br /&gt;
basket by her feet. The combination of her black hair and her oat colour skin &lt;br /&gt;
was very striking. Her worrisome looks together with her exotic face gave a &lt;br /&gt;
special feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment she saw Ash, her face stiffen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-You…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is there anything… On my face?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl grabbed the flower basket and flee. In a short moment, she managed to &lt;br /&gt;
blend into the crowd.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All the pedestrians beside was looking at Ash with the eyes that list him &lt;br /&gt;
as a pervert.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That’s not the case! I did nothing at all!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he explained to the people around him, Ash left the place as if him was &lt;br /&gt;
running away from something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Running away after looking at a person’s face, what a rude child she is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While cursing, he arrived at the crepe stall. Although she doesn’t even had any &lt;br /&gt;
money with her, Eco was calling out to the stall keeper just like a regular customer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me one Ansal Crepe!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
Anya who was the girl who pretended to be the flower seller was breathing heavily while hiding in an alley where there is no sign of other life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Previously, the moment she saw the guys face, she thought she had seen a ghost.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Last month, the guy who should have been dead was walking on the streets leisurely. Just that had given her a great shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;He should have been dead.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He had fallen into a pit less ravine and it will be impossible for him to be unscathed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It should have been more logical if it is another guy with the same looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that’s not it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be a mistake. That face, that voice, that tone… He was the one Anya met and killed in the forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;If that’s the case, why is he alive?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to logic, the chances for him to be able to survive were zero.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it was still the truth that he was alive. She had seen it with her own eyes, it was undoubtable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was surprising for the guy not to recognize Anya. However, thinking carefully, during that time, Anya had a mask on her face and she was &lt;br /&gt;
wearing her Tantalos battle suit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, no matter how you look at it, right now, Anya was just a flower seller. It was understandable if Ash couldn’t recognize &lt;br /&gt;
her. That is her only life saver.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What should I do…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That day, when she had returned back to Milgauss from the ravine, Anya had thought that it was impossible for the guy to survive so she &lt;br /&gt;
reported with ‘He was terminated’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss only replied with a ‘Thanks for the hard work’. Apart from that, he didn’t ask the specifics. To Milgauss, that guy was not at all &lt;br /&gt;
important.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was lost. Should she change the report that she had told Milgauss?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-The guy who fell into the ravine was actually still alive.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only until today she was going to show her report to Milgauss, that’s ridicules.&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the problem was not that simple.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For some time, Anya felt that there was a thorn that was piercing her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the time when the cliff was falling, the guy had given Anya a push. Thanks to that, it was not Anya who fell down the cliff.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even at the moment he was fated to die, he had chosen to save Anya.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To Anya who had spent her life living in the mountains, she couldn’t understand any of his actions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If the guy uses her as a stepping stone and saved himself, she could at least understand that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Anya’s village, there were many people who acted that way. From another perspective, if they are not tough enough, they mustn’t think about &lt;br /&gt;
surviving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya mumbled while she was staring at the basket of flowers blankly.&lt;br /&gt;
Her mind was in a mess. If she did not meet up with the guy, she won’t have to face any trouble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, if I was born as a flower seller… Will I be happier?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya suddenly turned angry and her flower basket fell on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She won’t allow herself to think about stupid stuffs for even a single moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stomped on the flowers that had scattered on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am an idiot! I had already decided to follow Milgauss-sama! Being besides Milgauss-sama is my source of happiness!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Anya was shouting out to her own self, the bell that signified noon rang. It was about time for her to return to Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
The noon bell had rung.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash and Eco arrived at St Durham square after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco immediately took a bite of the vanilla flavoured crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because she was not allowed to buy the ansal flavoured crepe, Eco didn&#039;t seem happy after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Vanilla is also not bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes glittered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s good to hear.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thankful for the vanilla flavoured crepe from the bottom of his heart. With just a mere fifty Glorins in exchange for a smile, it was worth the price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm, a holiday like this is not bad at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While Eco ate the vanilla flavoured crepe as if she was in heaven, Ash looked around the entire square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In addition to the locals, there were many tourists. They should be tourist from Chevron Kingdom that was located adjacent to the Knight’s country. &lt;br /&gt;
Although they were the same race as the Knight Country’s citizens, they could be differentiated by their speech pattern and their clothing design.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, why are they gathering there?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco asked after she finished her crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course they are there to look at the sacred statue.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking at ‘St Durham’s statue’ from afar. It was one of the most important cultural properties in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Whose statue… Is that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The first Paladin, Durham Lautreamont. He was a historical figure dating to five hundred years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The armour on the statue… Isn’t it like an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was proud of Eco for her to be this sharp.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You knew it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. The blue print for the Ark was kept in the Dragweiss.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, using that blueprint, could you make an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco was glaring at him and Ash was shrinking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot? That will be just a mimic. The blueprint design passed down by ancestral-sama is only intended as a reference. The exact thing could never be re-created.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so… Now I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash believed everything she said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, Eco, you will create an Ark for me, no? Before that, you should first become a Maestro- Ouch!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His foot was stomped on by Eco and made him jump around in pain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash barked back however Eco’s face was unexpectedly red. She was acting shy and was avoiding Ash&#039;s sight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What happened?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Quit joking! Why would I… As the owner make an Ark for my pet dog? Isn’t that illogical!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Eco ran off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then, Ash remembered his past lessons.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;To the dragons, to present their owner with the Ark also bears the important meaning of ‘Giving their everything to their owner.’&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
No wonder Eco denied it with her face red. At the same time, Eco was a little cute at that moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, wait for me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled and chased after Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 10===&lt;br /&gt;
They had been walking until Eco stopped her steps in front of a café that was facing St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The café was called Essarois. It is famous for its herbal teas and is especially popular in among the girls. The designs of its interior are also stylish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shop is always full of couples during the weekends. For Ash who had never dated before is a must avoid spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By looking through the glass window, even at that moment, the shop was full of couples.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just in case, there is something that I would like to make sure… Are you interested in such shops?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a nice smell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sniffing around. Although she looked like a girl, she is totally like a young dragon when she was doing so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally noticed the sweet smell coming from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t this Ansal! No, definitely not!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the shop is famous for its herbal tea, of course Ansal tea would also be on the menu. Naturally, Eco who is a dragon would also react to it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh… Why bother. Don’t you know that Ansal is in the cultural of the dragons and it is the so called taste of an adult dragon.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about! You are still a young dragon! Do you even want to repeat the previous incident again!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What happened previously?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Great! So you don’t remember anything after you became drunk! I guess all the more we should just forget about this conversation! From now &lt;br /&gt;
on, you are forbid to go near any Ansal till you become an adult!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh! I won’t forgive you! I won’t allow such thing to happen!…Nnnn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly squeaked and bend her body down. She was rubbing her thighs against each other as if she was trying to endure from using the &lt;br /&gt;
toilet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Unn…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco embraced his chest. Even though he had his clothes on, he could still feel Eco’s hot breath clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, don’t tell me that… You had gotten yourself drunk just from the smell?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa… Haa… Please… My chest is tightening.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes had turned wet and her cheeks had turned red. Her entire body was heating up. Ash felt like he was hugging a massive pile of &lt;br /&gt;
flame.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What a troublesome shop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His priority is to bring Eco away from this shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If such a thing continues, Ash feared that he could not remain calm. Just in case is he was spotted in a place like this by his &lt;br /&gt;
schoolmates…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, isn’t that Ash? Doesn&#039;t he look lovey dovey!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, it happens that it was Rebecca who was talking from behind. Besides, there was also a girl who was standing behind Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shuddering. Again, he had prepared himself to face Silvia’s iron fist, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps she was still troubled by yesterday’s young dragon’s incident, she was hiding behind Rebecca and remained silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 11===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To go to a place where the Ansal is absent, Rebecca brought the gang to the Dragon Fang public restaurant in an alley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is… Dragon Fang?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was slightly disappointed because he thought that Rebecca would bring them to a classy restaurant.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragon Fang is a restaurant for the public that provides good food with low price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm. It is a good restaurant. I have no complains on its quality and quantity. Also, it is half price for the student council members.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a lively shop full of laborers with well built bodies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since there is just an empty table for four, Rebecca sat together with Silvia while facing Ash and Eco on the other side of the table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Namely, Scarlet Empress and Ice Blue Princess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The two great beauties of the academy were sitting together with Ash. If they are spotted by Raymond or the rest, it would be natural if &lt;br /&gt;
they died in a fit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned her head to a side since she don’t intend to even utter a word. She was definitely still shadowed by yesterday’s incident. &lt;br /&gt;
Even though he felt like comforting her, however he had his hands full with Eco. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fyunn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco still looked like she was not fully awakened yet. Since that’s the case, he tried feeding her a few sips of water.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Rebecca ordered a three people’s sets, she smiled wryly at Ash and Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be frank, you had never failed to impress me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, you don’t have to apologize. Rather than that, I am actually enjoying myself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Enjoy…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was distressed and heartbroken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, remember to be careful and beware of the Ansal herb. Next time, it is better for you not to get close to Essarois. Though the Ansal Tea there is of top quality, it is still too early for Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will keep that in mind.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash answered, no one spoke a word. The reason was caused by none other than Silvia. She had kept her mouth shut for whole time &lt;br /&gt;
caused the people around her to become nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That being said… It is rare to see Rebecca-san together with Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, it was me who invited her out.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the incident of the young dragon had ended yesterday, Rebecca had indicated “ I will take care of the Princess herself.” However, it &lt;br /&gt;
seems that what is happening today had nothing to do with yesterday’s promise. It is also a surprise that Silvia would accept Rebecca’s &lt;br /&gt;
invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it was an order from the student council president, Silvia is still the country’s princess. She could have rejected the offer anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca smiled cheekily and took out a piece of paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you still remember the ticket for the one day date? The attached prize for the dragon riding festival. I must fulfill my promise and &lt;br /&gt;
Silvia had her duty to perform as the winner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh… Now I remember.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now it had started to make sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had totally forgotten about it. The winner in the dragon riding festival, could have a day’s date with Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the stubborn Silvia, the words ‘Duty of the winner’ is definitely the irresistible sure kill words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Together with yesterday’s problem, the princess had her mind crowded with many problems. Though I did try my best to help her, she had &lt;br /&gt;
been this way since the start.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Rebecca was regretting this, she still managed to squeeze out a cheerful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for the wait.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the moment, the waitress had arrived with their dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 12===&lt;br /&gt;
“I am back, Milgauss-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was enjoying the full view of Ansarivan, in the clock tower. With his mantle waving in the direction of the wind, he looked like &lt;br /&gt;
a veteran solider.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was in the disguised of a flower girl while Milgauss himself was dressed up as a mercenary.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 173.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was very silent on the top floor of the clock tower of the old shrine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the noisy streets looked as if they were from another world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Gazing at Milgauss back from behind, Anya thought that he was an ‘Unpredictable man…’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shrine that was facing St Durham Square was indeed very old. Usually it was not open to visitors. In addition to problem that was cause &lt;br /&gt;
by technical errors, the renovations for this shrine could not be continued and since then, it had remained closed for ten years.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Moreover, the security was light and anyone could break into the shrine after breaking open the lock at the back door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who knew this information is none other than Milgauss. Even when it is only information that only the locals knew of, Milgauss &lt;br /&gt;
treated it as if it was obvious to anyone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had always been curious of Milgauss&#039;s origin since the beginning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was a military man in the Empire’s army, his movement had always been graceful. It even felt like he was born in a noble &lt;br /&gt;
family. Even his pronunciations are beautiful and are fluent in both the Chevron language and Empire’s language.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How are the streets?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss’s question brought Anya back to her sense. Even though he was looking at her coldly through the mask, it still made Anya nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from Milgauss and Anya, there was not a third person in the clock tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though they are still on the job, Anya was a little disappointed. She certainly could not show the girly side of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was peaceful on the streets. Nobody is thinking about any wars.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan is a lively city. Anya had initially thought that the city that teaches breeders should be filled with killing intends. Yet, not &lt;br /&gt;
even a hint of war could be felt from this city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she was walking on the streets in disguised as a flower girl, Anya found out something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To the residents of Ansarivan,  the dragons are called ‘lovely beasts’ and not a military weapon. Ansarivan is never the so called &lt;br /&gt;
“military base for dragon training’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. In this street, not even a single soul thinks that dragons are military weapons. Ansarivan is a very friendly city.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss spoke in a nostalgic tone but it only lasted for a second.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However, Anya, there is no meaning behind the friendliness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss took a step forward and there was a coffin like box next to his feet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss silently opened the lid of the box. There is no corpse but a single sword in it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is not a normal sword. It was a broad sword with the size of a grown man.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like a typical zanbatou&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;斬馬刀a type of long sword&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; from the ancient drawings but its blade is black and its hilt was &lt;br /&gt;
decorated with beautiful jewels just like a refined masterpiece. With a closer look, they were bright dragon crystals.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss lifted the huge black sword and chanted the incantation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a little while, the clear blue sky was covered by dark clouds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 13===&lt;br /&gt;
Saute duck, Beef fillet cooked in wine, spare ribs, vegetable and mushroom soup, walnut bread…. All of the dishes were served one after another and they took away Ash’s attention.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The smell of the gravy and spices were stimulating his appetite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco reacted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once she found out about the smells of the foods, Eco had snapped out from the drunken state. Eco who cares for only crepes is after all, still a dragon. Her eyes were nailed to the meat dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry about the amount, just enjoy yourself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Rebecca could finish her sentence, she had already started stuffing herself with the duck. The skin was roasted nicely and its gravy &lt;br /&gt;
was dripping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mmm… This is the first time that I had tasted such a nice meat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes were glittering from being touched had her sight on the beef. She just simply took a piece of the beef with the fork and gave it a bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Funnn...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The beef seems to be very tasty since Eco looked as if she was in cloud nine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was also happy just by looking at her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, Silvia was working her knife and fork silently. Whenever Ash and her eyes met, she would glare at him to keep him &lt;br /&gt;
away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, Ash remembered what Rebecca had told him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;In my opinion, the princess is a perfectionist. She had always wanted to be the first. When she met a classmate who can ride any dragons, &lt;br /&gt;
she will take you as her rival.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In another words, the reason she tried to suppress the young dragon on her own is because of none other than Ash’s fault.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash made up his mind and spoke to Silvia:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Princess-sama… Is it really my fault?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know what you mean by that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her sharp glare pierced his forehead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am talking about yesterday’s incident… The way you acted yesterday isn’t really like you at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately, Silvia’s cheeks had turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Don’t be too full of yourself! Why would I even do it because of-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, a loud bang came from outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sudden thunderstruck had shocked Silvia. She was covering her ears with both her arms and was shaking tremendously. No one would ever &lt;br /&gt;
thought that she had this side to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a weird weather...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling about this and looked out from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The once clear sky was now covered by thick black clouds. The darkness outside made it hard to imagine that it was still noon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… That’s not a good sign.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was still eating suddenly stood up. Her face sank was staring intently at the sky outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ignoring Ash’s call, Eco ran out from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 14===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ashes to ashes, dust to dust. Appear! Child of magic technique. Thou shall be…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment Milgauss finished the incantation, under the sky filled with dark clouds, a change was happening on the streets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A dragon appeared in the middle of St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s… A Necromancia...!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya sub-consciously speaks of the word that should never be spoken of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Letters of blood red colour appeared on the surface of the huge sword that Milgauss was holding. They were words of an ancient language &lt;br /&gt;
that Anya could not understand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked as if blood were actually flowing out from the sword itself. The cloud had become thicker and sounds of the thunders had become &lt;br /&gt;
more and more frequent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia- A dragon that was resurrected using ashes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though she had heard about it before from Milgauss, it was still her first time seeing it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Summon the Necromancia and analyze its combat strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, determine whether it could be used in actual combat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the main purpose for the infiltration. Ansarivan is the selected location for the experiment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is like a hammer that smashes off the previous peaceful atmosphere.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This situation made Anya who just finished her investigation in the town bite her lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It made her think about her homeland that was full of blood and destruction a few years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-But…. This is war.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya reassured herself and clenched her fist while looking at Milgauss from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 15===&lt;br /&gt;
The group went chasing after Eco in the alleys had finally arrived at St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square was in a mess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The locals and the tourists were standing still like statues.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when they should be running away for their own sake, everyone just remain still and stare at the monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What is that thing!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he entered the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge beast was landing on the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that… A Dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its entire body is covered with fur and which made it looked similar to a Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, though it looked like a Maestro, its body fur was deep grey in colour and it smelled bad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Its body is rotting…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gasped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from that, its body size was surprisingly huge.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square that can hold thousands of people and right now had a quarter of it being occupied by a sole dragon. If it lifted its head up, it &lt;br /&gt;
height should be around the same height as the towers around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A roar that made people shivers was heard under the dark sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It sounds like hundreds of flutes not being blown uniformly. The sound was so terrible that it could even wake up the dead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The loud roar was followed was a strong gust that managed to topple the St Durham’s Statue in the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In a little while, the entire square was filled by a rotten smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only right now the people started running for their lives. While confronting with such a supernatural situation, the situation was no &lt;br /&gt;
longer under control. Although the Ansarivan’s security tried their best, it was obvious that they are lacking man power.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Followed by sounds of agonizing cries for help, many helpless people were continuously being pushed down. Even the customers in the &lt;br /&gt;
shops facing the Square were running out one by one.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The base for the St Durham Statue was in rubbles and the stone statue itself was lying on the ground. Eco was standing beside the statue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco was the dragon that brought all the troubles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is she even thinking!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was panicking and was trying to drag her back. However, he was blocked by the rest of the tourist who were running for their lives.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly removed her Beret and showed her horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems that she was trying to show that she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Refrain yourself, you lowly beast! Don’t you know who I am! Don’t you know that there are many excellent shops in this street?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, the entire square turned still because of her loud voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her imposing attitude touched Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it is just a little, after all, that weird thing is still a dragon and just maybe it understood Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon’s gaze slowly turned towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, they made eye contact with each other. But suddenly there were tentacles appearing from its body and was attacking Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted but the tentacles continued to wrap around Eco’s body and her four limbs and she was now hanging in mid air. Her uniform were &lt;br /&gt;
torn by the tentacles and her undergarments and skin were exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You! Knock it off!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was useless no matter how she struggled. Also, the more she struggled the tighter the grip of the tentacles became.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 184.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again the dragon roared and showed its pink mouth. A few teeth in its mouth that was arranged nicely dropped off. Only now Ash &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that even its teeth were rotting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, a light ball of purple electric appeared in its mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The purple electric light ball was then released followed by another roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Don!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A building facing the square was swallowed by the ball of light and was covered with dust.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Attacking magic…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbstrucked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a high level magic that could only be performed by Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The building that was destroyed was a four story building. The first floor was Café Essarois while it was an apartment from the second &lt;br /&gt;
floor onwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbfounded. Just how many innocent people were involved right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few moments later, the smoke cleared out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not only the building remains, but also there isn’t even a single causality.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in joy. Rebecca who was riding on Cú Chulainn in her Ark had cast the defense magic and neutralized the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Essarois is a place filled with the dreams of the girls. I as the student council of Ansarivan, I will have it protected until my death.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s declaration received cheers from the residents.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Rebecca wouldn’t let such cheers get over her head and she started reciting the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Appear! The certain hit magic spear!&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The summoned weapon appeared above Rebecca’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The magic spear turned into light particles and was shot towards the loathsome dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A new ball of light appeared in front of the dragon and it turned into seven layers of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It even knew defense magic!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!” pierced through the first layer of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then it continue was also broke apart easily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However it was obvious that it had slowed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time it broke through a layer, a large amount of magic was used up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fourth, the fifth… the sixth was penetrated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was praying while looking at Gáe Bolg’s path.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then, there was a crack in the seventh shield and it was pierced through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time when Ash was cheering, Gáe Bolg exploded at the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The flash caused their eyes to be blinded and it was followed by a loud bang.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The thick smoke had the dragon covered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was thinking that Rebecca had won.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the securities that should have led the people to safety were cheering happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then, the smoke started to clear up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The cheers were silent up by a hole in a head caused by the explosion. Even so, the dragon shouldn’t be able to live on after its brain &lt;br /&gt;
was destroyed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is that thing…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shivering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon has not yet fallen and Eco was still hanging in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next moment, the wound on the head started regenerating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as ifs the wound itself is another living being.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the wound was healed, the dragon returned to its original looks but its eyes looked even more menacing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, it swung its tail.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After seeing it using high class magic, Ash was surprised to see it change its style to physical attacks. It seems that Rebecca too, was &lt;br /&gt;
also caught off guard by it which led her to being slow in her reactions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca shouted in surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it was just a simple physical attack, the buildings behind the dragon were demolished like toy bricks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, they could only pray that the people inside the buildings could escape safely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Curses…!’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash clenched his teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could watch the dragon turn the city in ruins as a bystander.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Ash thought of a single person. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Milgauss, the masked man.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the day he met him in the forest, the still cog had been connected and started spinning. However, it was his instinct that told him &lt;br /&gt;
that. There was never a single proof.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What in the world is that dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once he heard the familiar voice, Ash was brought back to his sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, he saw that Silvia had arrived at the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Silvia saw the weird dragon, she fell on her backside and was shivering in fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately came to her side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Get a hold of yourself! Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though Ash was shouting loudly, Silvia never answered. Seeing such a supernatural sight had caused her to lose all her sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that instant, a flying dragon appeared on top of St Durham Square. It was obviously a Maestro since it had silvery white fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash! Bring the Princess as far away as you can!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a familiar voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was in charge of the accounts in the student council and also one of Ash’s few friends.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Max!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Leave this to me!... Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max wasn’t able to finish his sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon seeing that a new opponent had appeared immediately gave out a loud roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it released its ball of light with purple electric.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Arian!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Max’s command, Arianrhod immediately cast its defense magic. Though it managed to reduced the strength of the light ball, still it &lt;br /&gt;
had hit and fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Originally, a dragon shouldn’t be able to fly with such a build. It’s wings are only for decoration purposes. It was magic itself that &lt;br /&gt;
enables it to fly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he saw Arianrhod fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For it to even bring down Arianrhod with just a single hit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Arianrhod had no longer any magic to defend against the second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca who foresaw that ordered Cú Chulainn to glide down in the area in front of Max and Arianrhod. Without delaying a single moment, &lt;br /&gt;
she cast her defense magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the defending party, Rebecca had totally lost her mobility.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the worst situation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only choice left is to wait for the Holy Dragners of Lautreamont to arrive. But could the town people really hold on until then?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the entire town were already used to the peaceful life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For example, the entire strength of the security office was just hunting rifles and wooden batons. For offices where they have dragner &lt;br /&gt;
working there could only be found in the big cities.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was approaching Rebecca slowly. It probably thought of Rebecca as first to be removed as a target.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time the weird dragon took a step, the earth shook and the beautiful tiles turned into rubbles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as if it was a moving hill. Numerous tentacles had appeared right now and were gripping on Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aahhh! What the hell is this thing trying to do!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco continued to struggle. Even though she lost all her mobility, she still had decided that she is not going to ever give up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s it. I must save Eco.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After all, Eco is Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She is none other than Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is me… Am I able to do it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash questioned himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An answer flashed through his mind. It gave Ash shivers.  But still, it is a gamble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the instant, Ash remembered Eco enjoying her crepe happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on, it still hasn’t reached that stage yet… Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were still many nice things in this word that Eco knew nothing of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was not going to let her die like this before teaching her everything. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally made up his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will protect this city. Everybody. And also Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yet, there was still one more problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash needs Silvia’s cooperation to make his plan success.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama! Please get a hold of yourself!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He shouted towards Silvia who was still sitting on the ground in shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Silvia’s expression was still blank and continued to shiver. It was as if she is a totally different person from her usual &lt;br /&gt;
majestic self.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t joke with me…. What kind of a Princess are you! Where is the usual family motto! In such times shouldn’t you prove to us what &lt;br /&gt;
exactly is a royalty made of!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash lifted his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will apologize first! Sorry!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And he gave Silvia a slap on the face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sound was clear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ash?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was staring at Ash dumbstrucked. At least her thoughts were now focused. Although her red cheek was hurting, she had finally calmed&lt;br /&gt;
down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama, I had a request. Please summon Lancelot immediately and bring me with you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Bring you? Where to?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was pointing at the moving dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To be more specific, it was above the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately Silvia knew what he was thinking right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Definitely not! Are you even thinking properly!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s anger raises and stood up suddenly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Good, this is great. This is the Silvia that I knew of.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 006-007.jpg|thumb|&#039;&#039; Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted &lt;br /&gt;
to the dragon: “Your opponent is me!” &#039;&#039;]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted to the dragon:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Your opponent is me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strictly speaking, Ash didn’t even know if the dragon could even notice his voice. Basically the reason for him to shout was to keep his thoughts &lt;br /&gt;
from wavering. Still, the dragon did stop its footsteps.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It turned its head slowly and glared at both Ash and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia facial expression changed immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m alright. Princess-sama please summon Lancelot immedi…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could finish his sentence, the dragon shot a ray of light at them. It was definitely a different type of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash only understood that a strong energy shot pass the area above his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He raised his head in terror only to find out that the building behind him was crumbling. The three storey building behind him experienced &lt;br /&gt;
a direct hit from the attacking magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
How high exactly is the temperature need to melt debris of the building? Before Ash could even think about it, the building had crumbled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pile of wreckage was falling towards Ash and Silvia like a waterfall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the spur of the moment, Ash tried to protect Silvia. He could only shut his eyes and pray.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 16===&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey…! Until when are you going to stop acting in such manner?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s cold voice had given him the push to open his eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash though that he was buried under the pile of wreckage, but-.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt the wind blowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am flying…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia were in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then Ash realized that he was riding on Lancelot’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seems like Silvia had summoned Lancelot in the nick of time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The streets down below looked far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even St Durham Square looked miniature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge body that occupied a quarter of its space still exists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem is Ash was grabbing on to Silvia who was holding the reins from behind and his right hand was even grabbing on to her breast.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The soft feeling made him lost his calm. Since just now where the building started to crumble, his thought had always been blank.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t loosen your grip! You may fall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s warning made him calm down his thoughts and he started apologizing to Silvia. However, he continued grabbing on her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Obviously Ash had also shifted the position of his right hand. It was probably that he was thinking too much but somehow Silvia’s face had &lt;br /&gt;
turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, the dragon released its second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot in return roared loudly and cast its defense magic. A huge amount of pressure could be felt. Yet, Lancelot remained unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just as expected.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash praised.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This kind of level is child’s play for Lancelot. Back to the main point… Are you sure you want to do this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, please bring me to the appointed location. It must be none other than me to execute it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… Then I can only have faith in you. Lancelot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ooooon.” Under Silvia’s order, Lancelot roared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were gliding downwards towards the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The third and the fourth wave of attack were released but Lancelot avoided all of them with an amazing speed without even activating its &lt;br /&gt;
defence magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The distances between both parties were getting shorter until their entire fields of vision were covered by the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking for Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had prepared himself for the worst possible situation, where Eco was swallowed whole by the dragon. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Until now, this is the only chance where he can save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made up his mind and stood on Lancelot. To keep his balance, he held on to Silvia’s shoulder. Silvia remained silent while allowing him &lt;br /&gt;
to do so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The countdown begins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Ten, nine, eight, seven…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were getting closer to the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Three, two, one…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot flew pass the weird body in a very close distance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped towards the wall of grey furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a ‘Bump’ Ash landed safely. However, he slipped and nearly fell off but managed to cling to the furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon felt something on its head and was pissed. It shook its head vigorously. For that short moment, Ash felt like he was going to &lt;br /&gt;
fall off anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He crawled with all his might until he finally reached the space in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thought there are still many places that could be considered, it was his instinct that told Ash that this was the best place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With both of his foot on stable ground, Ash immediately stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, he thought about the feeling of his first ride on a dragon. Basically the situation was the same as yesterday where a &lt;br /&gt;
young dragon lost control. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A newborn Starda had gone rampage because its master had mistakenly fed it with Ansal Tea.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when the Grooms were in a fix trying to keep the situation under control, Ash who had just passed by, by a chance jumped onto the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He just had a hunch that he was able to do it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, he received a good amount of scolding from the school’s director even though he managed to calm the dragon down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s right, that young dragon was called- Lancelot.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That’s right. I totally forgot about it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled wryly. The Maestro that Silvia was riding on and the drunken Strada fitted perfectly in his memories.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He finally realized why Silvia was obsessed comparing herself to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash gained his confidence. Since he was able to calm Lancelot down, this weird dragon should not be a problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s begin…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Through his feet, he forced his conscious into the dragon like growing tree roots and spoke to the dragon gently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From now onwards, I am your master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon stopped its footsteps in reply to Ash’s words. Although it still continued growling, at the least it had stopped moving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s it. This is how it should be.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was smiling from the bottom of his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was thinking of giving it one more push, the dragon swung its head upwards like a trebuchet. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who was not prepared for this was thrown out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just moments before knocking into a building, Lancelot flew to his rescue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Phew… Saved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat on Lancelot and was just behind Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have never seen an idiot like you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia scolded while she was holding Lancelot’s reins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just a little more I could have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking with a serious tone. There was not even a hint of him joking. Silvia who had turned speechless looked just like a &lt;br /&gt;
graceful woman from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash said made sense. He was going to ride it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 17===&lt;br /&gt;
“Haaa… Haaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco looked pale. She was hurt by her inability to break free due to her lack of strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… For a descendant of a mighty dragon…. To lose to a low born dragon…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was provoking the dragon…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thrown out and had made a nice curve with it but was saved by Lancelot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is he trying to do?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was horrified.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash was doing was reckless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right. Ash was trying to tame this weird dragon by riding it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there is to be a single error, Ash will be squashed like a bug.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! What are you doing? Why don’t you run away!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who could endure it no longer shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! I will save you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash replied while sitting on Lancelot’s back. He seemed confident judging from his tone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That sentence had made her realized that Ash tried to save her instead of running away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was struggling to escape the tentacles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But the more she struggled, the tighter their grips became.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco, the dragon’s belly split open.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On both of the sides of the belly were aligned with row of sharp fine teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like an insect eating plat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It must have been a bad joke.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned pale.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Numerous tentacles appeared and Eco was swallowed into the mouth that looked like the gates of hell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she almost lost conscious, she could barely hear Ash’s cry&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 18===&lt;br /&gt;
“It seems that you have woken up, my sleeping beauty.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The bewitching voice had woken Eco up and she hurriedly looked around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A mysterious room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The floor was laid by square tile of black and white alternating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beside the four walls were statues that had not been completed. An incomplete human body. Incomplete beasts. Models of castle and &lt;br /&gt;
shrines. And also transports that Eco had never seen before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco who was sitting on the bed was a suspicious lady. The lady was sitting on an antique chair lazily. Her brilliant red dress looked extra conspicuous in the monochrome room.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 205.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the lady’s head were horns of an adult dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the Dragon Workshop. Also, I am called Navi.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Navi…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You just have to take me as another personality that is responsible to teach the immature you… Don’t you think that this is great?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t really understand. Also, what’s with your appearance?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting uneasy since the first time she saw Navi.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her looks, hair style and skin colour were exactly like Eco’s. The only difference is that Navi was a few years older.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hee hee. Are you worrying about my body? This design is based on a five years older version of you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wh-What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Still, this is just an assumption. You just may not grow up this well. Especially your breast.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi purposely put emphasis on the breast and deliberately shook them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad for being made fun of..&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph! It is not like bigger is better!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course, even the shape is important. But for you… Worrying about the size should be your main concern.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a detestable woman! I will squash you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Now lets us stop this useless talk as he is going to die if we let him continue what he was doing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a single wave from her right arm, a crystal ball appeared. A high concentration of lights was released by it and a projection of Ash &lt;br /&gt;
struggling with the weird looking opponent could be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He is still reckless!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking up towards the screen which was the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In a first look, this is not a bad idea. After all he was born with that gift to ride any kind of dragons. However, this opponent is too &lt;br /&gt;
much for him to handle. He had no chance of winning against that Necromancia.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Necromancia?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. It is a dragon that died once but was resurrected by human technology.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk! What should we do…? There is nothing in my ability to help him.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was saddened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, do you know why a holy dragon is called a Maestro.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was puzzled by the sudden question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before the existence of the secret agreement of Albion, the holy dragons were craft workers. This dragon workshop was built by a group of &lt;br /&gt;
great Maestros. The Ark is only one of the many things created by the Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi was trying to say.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are telling me that he is lacking an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good answer. And of course the only person who can present him with the Ark is only you as his Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… How can I…? That’s it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco remembered her conversation with Ash in St Druham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Hmm, if it is the blueprint for the Ark, I have the access to it.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-If that’s the case, can you use the blueprint… To create an Ark?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Are you crazy! That’s is nothing but an imitation.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it is an imitation, it is still an Ark. Certainly, Eco&#039;s pride does not allow her to make a copy from her ancestor, but this &lt;br /&gt;
was an emergency.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco accessed the Dragweiss immediately and focused her thoughts. Without delay, the projection on the ceiling started changing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice either.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since year 10 of A.S.B where the secret agreement of Albion was made, there were many blueprints left by the dragons. Apart from the Arks &lt;br /&gt;
that were worn by humans, there were also those that were made as a trial.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The total amount of blueprints easily exceeds a thousand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was disappointed after read the blueprints.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every single blueprint was full of details and even copying may become a difficult task.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come on! How am I to copy this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was feeling troubled, the thought of St Durham’s Statue flash pass.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She instantly summoned St Durham’s Ark’s blueprint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Time of production	Year 846 A.S.B/ Month of Libra/ 2nd day.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Name of knight		Durham Lautreamont &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Ark Weapon		Magic sword Caliber&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to the present, the design and structure five hundred years ago was simpler.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is this Ark, I should be able to do it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You’re naïve.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why? Supposing I had no experience in making an Ark, I still inherit the basic knowledge. So what are you even-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It just doesn’t work that way. An Ark is an armour that was custom made for its knight. If you just make a copy of a previous work, he &lt;br /&gt;
won’t be able to wear it. If you force it on him, it may even endanger his life.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What! Then this isn’t even an option to begin with!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hehe. When did I mention that? The Dragweiss had collected a huge amount of blueprints since the old times. It is possible to select &lt;br /&gt;
parts of the armour that fits him from this amount of blueprints.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By shaking a crystal, an infinite amount of blueprints appeared on the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Could it be that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi means.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We will select parts of the armour that fits him and reorganized them.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, can I do it? For starters, how am I going to know if the parts suit him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was worrying about the most important part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before an Ark was made, it requires that data of the person wearing it. First is the height and then follow by a mountain full of &lt;br /&gt;
information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara. If you are talking about his data, I already have it here with me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled cheekily touched Eco’s forehead with the crystal ball. In an instant, all the information in the crystal ball flowed into &lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… Is his data?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was able to construct a three dimensional structure using the huge amount of information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco blushed. Ash image in her mind was stark naked. Every single detail on his body was clearly recorded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-A perfect data…. But how did this data get into your hands?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I was expecting something similar to this to happen. Just before you were born, I sneaked into his dream. Actually I finish collecting my &lt;br /&gt;
data in just a night but since he is too cute, I had been doing that for a whole week.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How dare you toy with my pet dog!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi was laughing in front of the angry Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see that someone is jealous.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-There is no way that I-I….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so? But why are you blushing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am gonna squash you!... Erm, this is not the right time and place to argue!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit. So let’s begin.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi slowly stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know whether I am capable of doing it but… this is the only choice left!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally made up her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 19===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it had been three times, Ash never gave up. On the other hand, he was saved by Lancelot every single time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucky for him, the grey dragon had Lancelot locked on as its target. Every single attack was directed towards Lancelot which in turn, &lt;br /&gt;
reduced the amount of destruction towards the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, there is a limit to the amount of magic that Lancelot possesses. In truth, it flying speed had been greatly reduced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is at its limit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood her frustration from her words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. This time will be the final!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia signal Lancelot to change its direction and dive down towards the middle of the square. Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tell me that is not true…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was suddenly swallowed into the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in dismay.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are not able to make it in time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was eaten whole by that monster right in front of Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!... It&#039;s my fault for being weak…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t give up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia reminded Ash who felt that he was going to break apart in despair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She may still be alive! If you give up at this moment, she will definitely die for sure!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately kept his cool. Silvia was right. If not because of she was holding the reins with both hands, she is sure to give him a &lt;br /&gt;
slap on the face like what he did to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, the Seikoku on his left arm started hurting. It was the same feeling as the time where Eco was kidnapped by Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reaction from the Seikoku made him felt relief.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This proofs that his link with Eco had not yet been cut off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yeah… I mustn’t give up yet. Princess-sama! Please bring me to where the monster is!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again, Lancelot started diving downwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 20===&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me a break! Why can’t I get it right!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was shouting in desperation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The opponent that Ash was battling was a Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its element is ‘dark’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Naturally, the Ark that she is going to present to Ash should have the ‘light’ element in it. It had been a common knowledge since the &lt;br /&gt;
ancient times that light can conquer darkness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…! Just as expected, this is impossible…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sitting on her knees in disappointment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Tears were dripping from her eyes. It was the first time Eco ever cried from the feeling of regret.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Don’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Eco heard something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The owner of the sound was none other than Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it him…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco lifted her head up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was still continuing his fight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While fighting against the dragon, he was calling out to Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“I will save you! I still believe that you are still alive! That is why… That is why, you mustn&#039;t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These were not spoken by words. They were spoken through the Astral Flow that connects the dragon and its breeder. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She felt warmth from the bottom of her heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco knew from where this warmth came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Druing her time as an Orphan, Eco had always been inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She could never forget about this warmth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was going against the odds, Ash never ran away from anything.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He even dare face such a monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For how many times had he stood on the dragon’s head and for how many times had he been thrown off. Right now, his clothes were like rags &lt;br /&gt;
and there were many obvious bruises and wounds on his body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, his eyes never stop glittering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco clenched her fists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Unforgivable!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s it. Ash was fighting for her sake and her pride doesn&#039;t allow her to stay still while waiting to be saved.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… It is totally unforgivable… That is why…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her tired body was once again filled with magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her overflowing amounts of magic crystallized outside of her body and were sparkling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco never once expect herself to have such a large amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her field of vision widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could not keep herself from smiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Almete, Gorjal, Peto… Espaldar……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought the amount of blueprints in the Dragweiss is abnormally large, the Eco right now had the ability to handle all of them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Brafoneras, Faldaje… Escarcelas……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In among the parts that suits Ash, Eco selects the ones with light element and combined them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Bufetas, Hombreras, Brazales… Codales….., Antebrazos……. Manoplas……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to those who create the Ark from scraps, Eco’s actions may seem detestable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could never be able to object for shaming the tradition and placing a curse on her ancestral.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Quijotes… Guardas… Grebas…… Escarpes……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However to Eco, it would be a worst sin to just be a bystander and witness all the fun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco no longer hesitates.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With mixed emotions, she had chosen the final part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“-Espolón!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, Eco had opened the gate that leads to a brand new world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 21===&lt;br /&gt;
No matter how badly he failed, he had lost count of the number of times he returned. Right now, he was lying on Lancelot’s back in anguish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pain was so immersed that he could no longer feel his limbs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is really at its limit. This will be the last chance we have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s voice was obviously shaking. They really must succeed. The moment Lancelot used up all its magic and can no longer fly, everything &lt;br /&gt;
that was done will be in vain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan will be in ruins and Eco will definitely die.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It will be impossible to save all the refuges unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… What should I do…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was in a pinch…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“You are the one who shouldn’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s voice was heard in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco? Eco! You are still alive!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had been sometime since she was swallowed by the dragon but Ash could clearly hear her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Isn’t that obvious! No matter what I do, I can never look for a substitute for my useless pet dog, so just take this as a gift.”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Take what?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next instant, Ash was surrounded by dazzling lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His eyes’ widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An outline slowly appeared in the light and transformed into a brilliant armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Isn’t that an… Ark! It is godly…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia squeaked when she turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had a strange feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a heavy looking armour but it doesn’t feel that way.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps it was the strong amount of magic that removed the weight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though he just wore it, he could feel an overflowing amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“With this… I can never lose.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled confidently and spoke facing Eco who was inside the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you Eco! I had received your feelings!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, Eco replied with a scold.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“D-Don’t joke with me! That is just a mimic! Not an original! I have never thought of presenting you with it at all!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was certainly full of objections.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go, Princess- sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had been equipped with the Ark was full of spirits.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia didn’t waste a single moment and ordered Lancelot to dive down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it had used up most of its magic, it still answered Ash and Silvia’s call by raising its speed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking to her from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… What is it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is a good dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What does that have to do with this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why you should never again try to ride on another dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Are you an idiot! What are you saying at a time like this…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the best time to tell you this. You had Lancelot who is the best Pal. So, what is the thing that you are craving for?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I… Definitely knew that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot made a great roar in reply to Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are getting faster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge grey body was getting closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now’s the time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt that his body had blend into the wind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After drawing out a curve in the air, Ash landed on the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks to the Ark, Ash could even stand on the dragon without clinging to its fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could even feel the dragon’s body heat through the armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at this moment, Ash was one with the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be wrong. The Ark had pushed Ash’s gift to its maximum potential.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From his feet, his consciousness was growing into the dragon like roots.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If Ash was to be described as a tree, then the dragon is the earth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash could feel the dragon’s rejecting feeling in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It doesn’t matter whether you are god or even the devil himself…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was like a tower in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For what I know, every dragon will bound to be ridden by me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, there was a change in the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its folded wings were suddenly flapping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was flying towards the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 22===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Seems like we had stepped into an ambush…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss sighed when he saw the Necromancia flying away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was the person controlling the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge sword in his hands was not only the switch, it was also the controller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Milgauss was never successful in making the Necromancia fly but that boy had it proved to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, Milgauss was dead calm. It was just as expected.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was sweating when she looked at Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were cold sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy who was riding the Necromancia away from the city is THAT BOY.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had never reported to Milgauss about their meeting in the streets. She didn’t expect the boy to appear right there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Where exactly did I meet that boy before…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was trembling from that single sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, whatever.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luckily, MIlgauss never question any further.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The experiment ended with a failure, but we still obtain some useful results. That boy and also… that girl.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Girl?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was confused. Did he mean Rebecca Randall the Ark Dragner?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or is it Princess Silvia who was flying on Lancelot?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However she was wrong.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t the Necromancia capture a girl? The one with horns. She is probably the one who presented the boy with the Ark. Even though she &lt;br /&gt;
looks human… She might be descendant of a dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I never…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss had no intention of speaking anymore. He silently kept the huge sword and gazed at Anya through the mask.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will retreat for now.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya knelt down immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 23===&lt;br /&gt;
“I did it…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon spread it wings and flew up towards the sky with Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was getting higher and higher and further away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, Ansarivan town, the plains beside and Fianna Forest looked like toys.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was all according to his plan. First he had to bring this dangerous dragon away to ensure to safety of the townspeople.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could understand the dragon’s thought through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The muzzy thoughts suddenly turned clear. If felt as if the Ark had translated the dragon’s feeling into words that Ash understands.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was anger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hatred too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And also- Love.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see. You also had a master in the past.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash didn’t know where this dragon came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He only knew that this was just a normal dragon that grew up in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it told Ash its wish through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood the sad wish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Necromancia? Something that disobey the logic of this world? Do you really want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It once again assured Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It trusted as like it did to its master.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you really sure that you want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia was asking for Ash to kill it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the only way out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… what about Eco after I killed you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was worried about killing the Necromancia because Eco was still inside the Necromancia. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After knowing what Ash thinking was, the dragon reassured him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ermm… Can I really trust you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia nodded its head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It promised to protect Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Alright. Leave everything to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he had made up his mind, an image of a sword appeared in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the Ark was created hastily, Ash still had obtained the same power as an Ark Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Similar to Rebecca’s Gáe Bolg, every Ark Dragner must possess an Ark weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was glowing and an immense amount of magic flowed out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The details of the Ark Weapon were circulating inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a sword. A sword with light as its element.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Following the information, Ash chanted the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Appear! The sword that was graced by the light! Please lend me all your powers that are able to repent darkness…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The area on Ash’s forehead was flooding with light.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A tremendous amount of magic was flowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A huge sword that was taller than Ash appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Aix-les-Bains!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After lifting Aix-les-Bains easily, Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuoooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was falling. Starting from the dragon’s head to its belly, the sword that wields light slashed through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon split into two.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sword transformed into silvery lights and cut through its bones and flesh.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The tough body of the dragon burst into parts like a paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The destroyed body turned into grey particles and was blown away by the winds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Eco was thrown up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was probably thrown up by the dragon before the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was diving at Eco’s direction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was also accelerating using the magic of the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was not even a hint of fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stretched out his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco stretched out hers too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both of them were close, but yet so far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pressure from the strong wind seemed to be able to cut through skin but Ash still shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made a kick in the air by releasing the magic in the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco once again stretched out her arms further after being called.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was the first time Eco call his name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fingers met.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then they felt the weight on their palms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now they were grabbing each other’s hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not wanting Eco to leave his side again, Ash made a pull.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was embracing his chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While hugging the delicate body, Ash could feel her body heat. He had decided to land on the plains below.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With the protection from the Ark, they remain unharmed even after falling from a few hundreds of meters from above.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dark cloud in Ansarivan had disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the horizon, the sun appeared once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We did it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he smiled, the Ark broke into light particles and disappeared. Similarly, Aix-les-Bains which was in his belt had also disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as Eco had said, this was just hastily made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it did actually manage to save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you, Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Its nothing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco turned to a side. She really hasn’t changed at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he started smiling, his smile turned into horror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… What’s with your fist?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her fist was bleeding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Surely it was hurt when she was caught by the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-This is nothing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash held her hand and licked her wound. It was a usual practice in Ash’s hometown when children hurt themselves.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It may be obvious to Ash but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad and started rampaging.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! It is just for disinfection, disinfection I say!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who turned embarrassed bit his neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! This is not a joke! I might even die…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was probably tired finally calmed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting uneasy but Eco was already fast asleep. He showed sign of relieved and smile bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A boy who can ride any dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Some corrections should be made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or at least until he found a way to handle Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Dark Gray Invasion ~A.S.B.1365.5~&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2|Chapter 2]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354084</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354084"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T15:47:34Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 20 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 3 - Necromancia&#039;s Attack==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
The month of Aries had ended and it was the arrival of the month of Taurus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem concerning Eco&#039;s lodging was put on hold and no decision had been made yet because of the incident where Angela had become a teacher in just a flash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In short, Eco was still sleeping on Ash&#039;s bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem they were facing was, Apollo House which was the dormitory where Ash was staying at is a male&#039;s dorm. Furthermore, Eco is an extremely beautiful girl as long as she kept her mouth shut.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ash was staying with such a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was obvious some weird rumours would emerge among the students who were living in Apollo House.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
The class room of the first year advanced course.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When school was about to dismissed, Raymond walked towards Ash&#039;s table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yo, Ash. Why don’t we go and have some fun since we are free?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, I have to go to the student council’s office.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Student council…? Why?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err, the president asked for me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had informed Ash to find a free time to visit the student council’s office about a week ago. Since Eco had gotten used to the campus &lt;br /&gt;
life, it should be about time for him to make his visit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it true? I think Rebecca Nee-san should have many questions for you. Or many she wants to blame you for something… Just by thinking…&lt;br /&gt;
Haaa… Haaa.” &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have nothing to say to you…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err… did &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; goes well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash asked while Raymond pushed his face nearer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond was looking totally serious.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Aren’t you teaching Eco on the bed?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Raymond had ended his sentence, the entire class turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was looking at Ash with suspicious eyes. Everyone in the academy knew that Ash’s pal was born as a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t say something that will make people misunderstood! Don’t you know that Eco is a dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond smile sinisterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Right, anyway I knew that you don’t even have the guts to do &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then just don’t say something that will make people misunderstood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haha… Could it be that you are the one who was being taught?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because Raymond who had hit the bull’s eye with just a guess, Ash was a little taken aback but he dare not speak back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
The student council office was located at the highest floor of the academy’s centre tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gulped when he was standing in front of the grand door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From a long time ago, Ansarivan’s student council had a huge power. They not only dealt with the academy’s council but they also have the right &lt;br /&gt;
of speech in the city council. According to some rumours, the student council president’s power is superior to the mayor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please enter.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before he even knocked, the student council president’s voice could be heard. This made Ash tremble a little.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for interrupting.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He timidly opened the door and walked into the office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was crossing her arms while standing by the window that was at the far end of the room. There wasn’t another soul in this room. When he &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that they were alone, Ash who had felt uneasy from the start was now sweating nervously.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahhh, Ash. You finally came!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca turned around and stared at Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With her marble statue like beauty together with her crimson coloured hair, it let out an amazing feeling. Even her body proportion outshone &lt;br /&gt;
other people. Her curves were perfect and not even her uniform could hide it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca Randall who had received the Ark-Dragner title was not only well known in Ansarivan. Her name was widely spread in the entire Knight &lt;br /&gt;
Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even in the well known Holy Dragners of Lautreamont had only one in a ten of their members who received the title Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from that, the requirements to obtain the title Ark-Dragner is very strict.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fuu. Don’t be shy. Just take a seat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-Yes…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat at a corner of the sofa, frightened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca sat beside Ash without even a second thought. He smelled something refreshing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was uneasy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was nervous because of their close distance where they can feel each other’s breath. Since there was also a sofa located right opposite, &lt;br /&gt;
logically speaking, Rebecca should have sat there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Rebecca showed a playful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To get to know another person better, sitting side by side is the best choice, this is common knowledge for dating.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Is it…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Young man, you must remember it. Next time, if you are on a date, remember not to sit opposite of her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, dates or whatever… It is still a far away dream.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was blushing in embarrassment while Rebecca unexpectedly was enjoying that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… In another words, no one had noticed your true value yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“True value?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If for me, I still haven’t determined how good of a man you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly stopped smiling and moved towards the main topic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In short, I am here to discuss the things regarding Eco with you… Saying that, what is she doing when you are in class? You can’t just keep &lt;br /&gt;
her in the man’s dormitory right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, Cosette is helping me with that. I don’t think that it will be a problem.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the kidnapping incident a few days ago had ended, Ash had told Cosette his trouble when they were chit chatting. Cosette immediately &lt;br /&gt;
volunteered to help take care of Eco. Since Costte also had nothing to do when Silvia was attending classes, she can accompany Eco in Ash’s &lt;br /&gt;
place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only think he worried about was whether Eco will accept Cosette. Until today, it seemed like there was no such problem. In front of &lt;br /&gt;
Cosette, Eco was always acting mature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Cosette huh? There won’t be a problem if it is her. I had met Cosette a few times before and she is not someone to be underestimated.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So Rebecca-san also thinks so?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile because he was thinking something bad about Cosette.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Umm… It is said that when the Paladin sent Princess Silvia to Ansarivan, about a hundred maids and guards were sent together.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! It must be troublesome…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Princess of course had gone against the Paladin’s will. In the end, because the Paladin insisted, she brought Cosette alone along with &lt;br /&gt;
her. Judging from that, Cosette is something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Back to the topic, you are also something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was looking at him sharply until he started to sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you talking about?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When had you started to have this close relationship with Cosette?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s beautiful face was getting closer. The refreshing smell was getting stronger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being asked something unexpected, Ash’s head started spinning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How dare you hide something from me? It isn’t good you know. By the way, you are not thinking that Rebecca Randall is someone simple &lt;br /&gt;
right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s face was getting closer and closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought there was a faint hint of a smile by her lips, her eyes were not smiling at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Alright! Please promise me that… Don’t tell anyone about this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, I guess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca nodded and moved her head backwards back to her original position.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash took a deep breath and told her everything about the incident where Eco had been kidnapped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
The seventh dragon house was specially built for Maestros. Apart from Rebecca’s Cú Chulainn, there were four more Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Take it slowly, there are many more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Lancelot was gulping down the thickly sliced meat, Silvia smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Normally, jobs like feeding, preparing the beds, balancing the nutrients, cleaning… were done by the groom of the dragon house. The breeders &lt;br /&gt;
on the other hand just need to focus their thoughts on studying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However Silvia had always taken care of Lancelot on her own.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyday, she will always visit the dragon house five times. She will feed it on her own, clean the dragon house and even give Lancelot a bath. &lt;br /&gt;
If Lancelot felt itchy, she will sure to be there to give a scratch on that spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Silvia’s care, Lancelot who was born as a Strada had grown into a beautiful Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her achievement was acknowledged and she had received the title Dragner in the young age of fourteen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The title Dragner can only be received by a breeder whose Pal is a Maestro. It had been a tradition in the Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Silvia was never satisfied with her current achievement. Her aim was to become a ‘Great Dragner’. Just the title Dragner could &lt;br /&gt;
never satisfy her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright Lancelot… Next will be an Ark-Dragner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia patted Lancelot after she spoke out her thought. Its silvery white fur was tick and felt nice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Silvia pressed her hands against her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s proof of a Breeder the Seikoku was at the middle of her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her memories when she was seven came into her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To obtain an orphan from the mother dragon, Silvia had entered Albion Forest alone. However, she injured her leg and was crying while standing. &lt;br /&gt;
She left the palace with the thought of she will definitely become a breeder but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then there was a young boy who reached out to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Like Silvia, the young guy was here on the same day for the Orphan Ceremony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-I will give you a piggyback while we look for mother dragon together.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s heart beat increased when she thought about the guy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If not for his help, Silvia would never have become a Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… I had made a promise with him. I will become a great knight. If I did anything that should not be done by an owner, I want you &lt;br /&gt;
to scold me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadly, Lancelot only had its eyes on the meat and was not bothered by Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk, what a child you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia shook her head and gave a wry smile. Although it had become a Maestro, it was still a young dragon. Compare to Cú Chulainn, its body &lt;br /&gt;
size was definitely smaller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Speaking of that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was thinking about Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only student who dared to challenge Silvia Lautreamont.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, Silvia had won the match but she didn’t have the feeling of victory. On the other hand it can be said as a losing feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had given Silvia a help on the race’s position arrangement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She clearly understood her attitude of looking down on her enemy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only that she had never thought that such a despicable method will be used. If not for Ash who made use of the chance, Silvia would not be &lt;br /&gt;
able to win.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash Blake… I have never seen such an irregular guy. He could even ride on other people’s Pal as he liked which is out of common knowledge. In the &lt;br /&gt;
end, what is the trick he was using-?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Silvia was mumbling, there was a cry of help from outside of the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon has gone mad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash had told her everything, Rebecca sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… For such a thing to happen. Angela-sensei is also a troublesome person. She is one of the best in the continent in dragon researching.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had never thought that teacher could be such a great person…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is a total dragon maniac. She had thought of becoming a Dragner since she was still a child. In the end, she was not selected in the &lt;br /&gt;
Orphan Ceremony…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will never hand an orphan to her if I am the mother dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Perhaps not being selected had left her with traumas until today. However, Angela-sensei’s skills and knowledge are the real stuff. Lets observe her for the time being.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Observe…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t hide his sad looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it is possible, he doesn’t want to have anything to do with her for a second time…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right! There is one more thing about Eco. It is about when you are in the forest and you said that you had encountered some uninvited &lt;br /&gt;
guest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash with a ‘Hah’ lifted his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Many things had happened after Eco was born and he had forgotten about it. The suspected to be Empire’s soldier was lurking around in the &lt;br /&gt;
Knight Country territory. This is not something to be overlooked.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In the end, just who are those two?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The masked man called Milgauss with an extraordinary temperament.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl who wanted to have Ash killed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… ‘Milgauss’ should be a nickname. It doesn’t look like an Empire’s surname. Perhaps he could be the Empire’s agent. If that’s the case, &lt;br /&gt;
this is not a problem that a mere student could solve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had never thought of Rebecca as a ‘mere student’, but he chose to keep this thought to himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, I will pass your message to the peace keepers’ office. However, if the masked man is from the Empire’s army, I am afraid that the &lt;br /&gt;
peace keepers will also be helpless.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she remained calm, the way she had spoken was terrifying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It should be alright, right? Ansarivan is an academy for breeders and not a military school. It shouldn’t be targeted by the Empire.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We are not the military’s backup. The paths that a Breeder can take is not only limited to joining the Knight corps or the dragon elite troops. What’s more, Lautreamont Knight Country was built with the rules that no dragons were allowed in the military. However, it is still the truth that &#039;&#039;&#039;THAT WAR&#039;&#039;&#039; had changed Lautreamont Knight Country and Ansarivan.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-That war. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the ‘Xenoglavia War’ that was triggered fifty two years before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Lautreamont Knight Country was established, it was the first time that the dragons were sent to war.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It all begins when the Zepharos Empire’s armies from the north attacked Chevron Kingdom’s territory in the south.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Empire’s armies were armed with many mechanical weapons and had a huge amount of destruction force. In just a short moment, Chevron’s &lt;br /&gt;
Royal Knights that was said to be strongest mounted troops in the whole continent was wiped out. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Chevron’s king who was worried sent a secret messenger to Lautreamont Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, the dragons who were not involved in any wars for four hundred and fifty years flew towards the battle field once again to save &lt;br /&gt;
their allies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Holy Dragners of Lautreamont led by the Paladin himself joined the battle and the Empire’s armies that had suffered great causality were &lt;br /&gt;
forced to retreat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, the Kingdom and the Empire signed a truce.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To the Empire, Ansarivan was not only a place for the military backup, but also a factory that produces mass destructions weapons. In another &lt;br /&gt;
words, it is a military base. Just by judging from this, it is highly possible that Ansarivan is their target for the preparation for the next &lt;br /&gt;
war.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that Ash had turned pale, Rebecca smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t have to be surprised, Ash. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That… It is you, Rebecca-san.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That&#039;s it. Cú Chulainn and I will protect Ansarivan at all cost. That is why I want you to join us.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, even you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca pressed forward and their shoulders were touching each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you not want to join the student council?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked by the unexpected invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible! Since all the student council members are Dragners.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So one cannot join the student council if they are not a Dragner? I don’t remember such rules. It was just by chance that it looked like that &lt;br /&gt;
in this year.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I heard from every person around you that you are called as ‘The Boy Who Can Ride Any Dragon’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that exaggeration is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You don’t have to act humble. Even I could not ride on another person’s Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before anyone noticed, they are at the distance where their nose could touch. Rebecca’s beauty was drawing closer.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 149.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly noticed that Rebecca’s palm was on his knee.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s body heat could be felt by Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s heart was at the verge of exploding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be exact, I want you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can you please think about it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, but… If I… The student council-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At this moment, as if helping Ash who was getting anxious, the bell rang. Compare to the normal bells, this bell doesn’t sound stable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from the continuous ringing of the bell, it should be the emergency bell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Level two emergency state…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had recognized the meaning of the bell in just a short time and moved towards the side of the window. Ash too was taking a peep &lt;br /&gt;
outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The ‘level two emergency state’ in Ansarivan means that a certain dragon had caused havoc and had flown out from the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The entire school ground could be seen from the student council office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, a Strada was running amok. Its body was small and it looked as if it was just born days before. It still couldn’t spread its &lt;br /&gt;
wings let alone flying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca gave a wry smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa, this happens usually during this time of year. It will end in a short while.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected of the student council president Rebecca, she was calm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few grooms had arrived at the scene and had the dragon surrounded with nets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragons are living things with high intelligence, however they are also short tempered. Especially during the times when they were young, it &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
was not unusual for them to turn mad because of some small matters. Even their owners could do nothing about it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course all the grooms working in the dragon house had undergone special training to handle such situation. Just as Rebecca had said, the &lt;br /&gt;
incident could be settled in a short moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash himself had lost interest in the incident and wanted to leave the window side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who arrived at the scene jumped on the young dragon that had gone mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She looked like she was trying to suppress the young dragon with her own power. Her actions doesn’t match her usual self for it was a &lt;br /&gt;
foolhardy decision.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from their owner who they acknowledged, the dragons will never allow anyone to ride on their back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Silvia was trying her best to just cling on the dragon’s back. She was in a fix because she could be thrown out anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s action had obviously caused trouble to the grooms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is she an idiot! What is princess-sama trying to pull…?!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is most probably because of her ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t understand what Rebecca was saying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From what I can see, Her Highness is a perfectionist. No matter what kind of losing it is, she hates it. When there is a classmate who can &lt;br /&gt;
ride any dragon exist, she was burning with the ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just because of such things…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash frowned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To Her Highness, it was never ‘Just because of such things’.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… If that’s the case, I will go and help her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There is no need for that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The voice that hurts like a whip forced Ash to stop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true that you have some unusual talent. However, are you confident enough that you will be able to suppress the young dragon and at the &lt;br /&gt;
same time prevent Her Highness from getting hurt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s sharp words had made Ash speechless. If it was to calm down the young dragon, Ash himself was more than enough.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Ash doesn’t have to confidence to guarantee to be able to save Silvia without getting her hurt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, what she we do…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I had said it just before. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Rebecca humped onto the window frame. Her red hair that looked like it was on fire was dancing with the winds. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on…! Rebecca-san? What do you think-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will end this quickly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, Rebecca disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca jumped down from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked and took a peek downwards from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Answer my summon…Cú Chulainn!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Out of a sudden, there was a twist in the space beneath Rebecca and Cú Chulainn appeared majestically.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she had landed safely on Cú Chulainn’s back, she spoke strictly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“In my name Rebecca Randall, present me the Ark you created!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn roared in respond to Rebecca’s summon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was light surrounding Rebecca’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her uniform that she had worn until just now had dissolved in the sea of lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a short time, her naked body was exposed. However, because of the excessive brightness, Ash was unable to look at her clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next time Ash opened his eyes, Rebecca’s body was already surrounded by a dazzling knight’s armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was just like a knight from the legends looked godly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is… the Ark!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had heard before about it in the rumours but today was the first time he witnessed it with his own eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was the proof of an absolute loyalty from a Maestro to its owner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment a Dragner received an Ark from his Pal, he will be known as an Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Whoosh!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn’s huge body had flew up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong wind pressure nearly had Ash who was standing by the window blown off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s scream was heard from down below. She was floating in mid air as if she was sent flying by a chariot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash leaned his body out from the window frame and shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just before Silvia lands on the ground, Cú Chulainn accelerating downwards. In Ash eyes, Cú Chulainn was like teleporting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Cú Chulainn was again flying upwards, Rebecca had caught Silvia&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash, Her Highness is in your care!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could even respond to it, Rebecca had her eyes poised at the student council’s office’s window and threw out Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the distance was not even two meters, but to throw a country’s princess, it was not at all normal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in surprise and caught Silvia. They were in the so called ‘Princess carry’ situation and he must stand firm no matter what.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Ash&#039;s arms, Silvia had lost her consciousness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even under such situation, Ash’s heart was beating rapidly. His left hand that was supporting Silvia’s lower half was touching something soft &lt;br /&gt;
and elastic. Also, the was a flower like fragrance coming from her dazzling golden hair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, he heard Rebecca’s spell coming from outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&amp;quot;Appear… The certain hit magic spear…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The was a flash in respond to Rebecca’s spell and an enormous spear had appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the Ark-Weapon that only an Ark-Dragner could use.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An Ark was not just simply an armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was stored with strong magic and it comes with a one and only Ark-Weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Gáe Bolg!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Ash’s eyes, Rebecca swung the magic spear Gáe Bolg!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong magic transformed into a ray of light and was shot down onto the ground. There was a small explosion on the ground beside the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging young dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there was a slight mistake, the young dragon will definitely die. However, it was Rebecca that we were talking about. The shock from the &lt;br /&gt;
explosion had caused the young dragon to faint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a while since Rebecca had the young dragon suppressed, Silvia woke up while lying in Ash’s arms. When she found out that she was carried by Ash-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wha…! What are you doing…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was blushing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! Don’t move around! I can’t hold on any longer!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he warned, Silvia fell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was glaring at Ash with tears in her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I warn you that you will fall! Anyway why did you do that? You would have been dead &lt;br /&gt;
if not because of Rebecca’s help!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Don’t even understand how it feels!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment she shouted, tears were dripping from her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To hide her crying looks, Silvia turned around and ran out from the student &lt;br /&gt;
council’s office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the matter, Princess-sama…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled. Next, there was a voice coming from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry. It is my duty to deal with the Princess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, Rebecca who had changed back into her uniform was sitting on the &lt;br /&gt;
window frame and was with a smile full of confidence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
The next day after the young dragon’s incident was a school holiday.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had again accompanied Eco to Ansarivan City. In truth, Ash wanted to pass &lt;br /&gt;
his time in the dorm, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The crepes are calling out to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With this reason alone, Ash went out with Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, let’s hunt down the crepe stall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After passing by the main door that separates the academy and the city, Eco &lt;br /&gt;
immediately dragged Ash with her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Does a food made by a stupid and ignorant human being taste that well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sh-Shut up! It is the humans that are stupid and ignorant! The crepes had &lt;br /&gt;
nothing to do with this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned red when she replied to Ash’s tease and she continued to march &lt;br /&gt;
on forward. Eco’s respond made Ash felt a little bad… Maybe he should reflect &lt;br /&gt;
on that a little. Ash chased after Eco’s small back and knocked into someone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash just lost his balance for just a moment but the other person had fell on the &lt;br /&gt;
ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, it was my bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately held out his hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… Me too. Because I am careless…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person answering was a girl at Ash’s age range. There was also a flower &lt;br /&gt;
basket by her feet. The combination of her black hair and her oat colour skin &lt;br /&gt;
was very striking. Her worrisome looks together with her exotic face gave a &lt;br /&gt;
special feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment she saw Ash, her face stiffen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-You…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is there anything… On my face?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl grabbed the flower basket and flee. In a short moment, she managed to &lt;br /&gt;
blend into the crowd.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All the pedestrians beside was looking at Ash with the eyes that list him &lt;br /&gt;
as a pervert.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That’s not the case! I did nothing at all!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he explained to the people around him, Ash left the place as if him was &lt;br /&gt;
running away from something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Running away after looking at a person’s face, what a rude child she is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While cursing, he arrived at the crepe stall. Although she doesn’t even had any &lt;br /&gt;
money with her, Eco was calling out to the stall keeper just like a regular customer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me one Ansal Crepe!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
Anya who was the girl who pretended to be the flower seller was breathing heavily while hiding in an alley where there is no sign of other life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Previously, the moment she saw the guys face, she thought she had seen a ghost.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Last month, the guy who should have been dead was walking on the streets leisurely. Just that had given her a great shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;He should have been dead.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He had fallen into a pit less ravine and it will be impossible for him to be unscathed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It should have been more logical if it is another guy with the same looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that’s not it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be a mistake. That face, that voice, that tone… He was the one Anya met and killed in the forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;If that’s the case, why is he alive?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to logic, the chances for him to be able to survive were zero.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it was still the truth that he was alive. She had seen it with her own eyes, it was undoubtable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was surprising for the guy not to recognize Anya. However, thinking carefully, during that time, Anya had a mask on her face and she was &lt;br /&gt;
wearing her Tantalos battle suit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, no matter how you look at it, right now, Anya was just a flower seller. It was understandable if Ash couldn’t recognize &lt;br /&gt;
her. That is her only life saver.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What should I do…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That day, when she had returned back to Milgauss from the ravine, Anya had thought that it was impossible for the guy to survive so she &lt;br /&gt;
reported with ‘He was terminated’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss only replied with a ‘Thanks for the hard work’. Apart from that, he didn’t ask the specifics. To Milgauss, that guy was not at all &lt;br /&gt;
important.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was lost. Should she change the report that she had told Milgauss?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-The guy who fell into the ravine was actually still alive.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only until today she was going to show her report to Milgauss, that’s ridicules.&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the problem was not that simple.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For some time, Anya felt that there was a thorn that was piercing her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the time when the cliff was falling, the guy had given Anya a push. Thanks to that, it was not Anya who fell down the cliff.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even at the moment he was fated to die, he had chosen to save Anya.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To Anya who had spent her life living in the mountains, she couldn’t understand any of his actions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If the guy uses her as a stepping stone and saved himself, she could at least understand that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Anya’s village, there were many people who acted that way. From another perspective, if they are not tough enough, they mustn’t think about &lt;br /&gt;
surviving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya mumbled while she was staring at the basket of flowers blankly.&lt;br /&gt;
Her mind was in a mess. If she did not meet up with the guy, she won’t have to face any trouble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, if I was born as a flower seller… Will I be happier?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya suddenly turned angry and her flower basket fell on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She won’t allow herself to think about stupid stuffs for even a single moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stomped on the flowers that had scattered on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am an idiot! I had already decided to follow Milgauss-sama! Being besides Milgauss-sama is my source of happiness!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Anya was shouting out to her own self, the bell that signified noon rang. It was about time for her to return to Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
The noon bell had rung.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash and Eco arrived at St Durham square after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco immediately took a bite of the vanilla flavoured crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because she was not allowed to buy the ansal flavoured crepe, Eco didn&#039;t seem happy after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Vanilla is also not bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes glittered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s good to hear.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thankful for the vanilla flavoured crepe from the bottom of his heart. With just a mere fifty Glorins in exchange for a smile, it was worth the price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm, a holiday like this is not bad at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While Eco ate the vanilla flavoured crepe as if she was in heaven, Ash looked around the entire square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In addition to the locals, there were many tourists. They should be tourist from Chevron Kingdom that was located adjacent to the Knight’s country. &lt;br /&gt;
Although they were the same race as the Knight Country’s citizens, they could be differentiated by their speech pattern and their clothing design.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, why are they gathering there?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco asked after she finished her crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course they are there to look at the sacred statue.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking at ‘St Durham’s statue’ from afar. It was one of the most important cultural properties in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Whose statue… Is that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The first Paladin, Durham Lautreamont. He was a historical figure dating to five hundred years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The armour on the statue… Isn’t it like an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was proud of Eco for her to be this sharp.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You knew it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. The blue print for the Ark was kept in the Dragweiss.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, using that blueprint, could you make an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco was glaring at him and Ash was shrinking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot? That will be just a mimic. The blueprint design passed down by ancestral-sama is only intended as a reference. The exact thing could never be re-created.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so… Now I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash believed everything she said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, Eco, you will create an Ark for me, no? Before that, you should first become a Maestro- Ouch!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His foot was stomped on by Eco and made him jump around in pain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash barked back however Eco’s face was unexpectedly red. She was acting shy and was avoiding Ash&#039;s sight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What happened?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Quit joking! Why would I… As the owner make an Ark for my pet dog? Isn’t that illogical!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Eco ran off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then, Ash remembered his past lessons.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;To the dragons, to present their owner with the Ark also bears the important meaning of ‘Giving their everything to their owner.’&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
No wonder Eco denied it with her face red. At the same time, Eco was a little cute at that moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, wait for me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled and chased after Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 10===&lt;br /&gt;
They had been walking until Eco stopped her steps in front of a café that was facing St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The café was called Essarois. It is famous for its herbal teas and is especially popular in among the girls. The designs of its interior are also stylish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shop is always full of couples during the weekends. For Ash who had never dated before is a must avoid spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By looking through the glass window, even at that moment, the shop was full of couples.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just in case, there is something that I would like to make sure… Are you interested in such shops?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a nice smell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sniffing around. Although she looked like a girl, she is totally like a young dragon when she was doing so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally noticed the sweet smell coming from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t this Ansal! No, definitely not!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the shop is famous for its herbal tea, of course Ansal tea would also be on the menu. Naturally, Eco who is a dragon would also react to it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh… Why bother. Don’t you know that Ansal is in the cultural of the dragons and it is the so called taste of an adult dragon.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about! You are still a young dragon! Do you even want to repeat the previous incident again!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What happened previously?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Great! So you don’t remember anything after you became drunk! I guess all the more we should just forget about this conversation! From now &lt;br /&gt;
on, you are forbid to go near any Ansal till you become an adult!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh! I won’t forgive you! I won’t allow such thing to happen!…Nnnn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly squeaked and bend her body down. She was rubbing her thighs against each other as if she was trying to endure from using the &lt;br /&gt;
toilet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Unn…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco embraced his chest. Even though he had his clothes on, he could still feel Eco’s hot breath clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, don’t tell me that… You had gotten yourself drunk just from the smell?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa… Haa… Please… My chest is tightening.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes had turned wet and her cheeks had turned red. Her entire body was heating up. Ash felt like he was hugging a massive pile of &lt;br /&gt;
flame.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What a troublesome shop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His priority is to bring Eco away from this shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If such a thing continues, Ash feared that he could not remain calm. Just in case is he was spotted in a place like this by his &lt;br /&gt;
schoolmates…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, isn’t that Ash? Doesn&#039;t he look lovey dovey!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, it happens that it was Rebecca who was talking from behind. Besides, there was also a girl who was standing behind Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shuddering. Again, he had prepared himself to face Silvia’s iron fist, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps she was still troubled by yesterday’s young dragon’s incident, she was hiding behind Rebecca and remained silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 11===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To go to a place where the Ansal is absent, Rebecca brought the gang to the Dragon Fang public restaurant in an alley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is… Dragon Fang?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was slightly disappointed because he thought that Rebecca would bring them to a classy restaurant.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragon Fang is a restaurant for the public that provides good food with low price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm. It is a good restaurant. I have no complains on its quality and quantity. Also, it is half price for the student council members.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a lively shop full of laborers with well built bodies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since there is just an empty table for four, Rebecca sat together with Silvia while facing Ash and Eco on the other side of the table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Namely, Scarlet Empress and Ice Blue Princess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The two great beauties of the academy were sitting together with Ash. If they are spotted by Raymond or the rest, it would be natural if &lt;br /&gt;
they died in a fit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned her head to a side since she don’t intend to even utter a word. She was definitely still shadowed by yesterday’s incident. &lt;br /&gt;
Even though he felt like comforting her, however he had his hands full with Eco. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fyunn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco still looked like she was not fully awakened yet. Since that’s the case, he tried feeding her a few sips of water.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Rebecca ordered a three people’s sets, she smiled wryly at Ash and Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be frank, you had never failed to impress me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, you don’t have to apologize. Rather than that, I am actually enjoying myself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Enjoy…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was distressed and heartbroken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, remember to be careful and beware of the Ansal herb. Next time, it is better for you not to get close to Essarois. Though the Ansal Tea there is of top quality, it is still too early for Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will keep that in mind.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash answered, no one spoke a word. The reason was caused by none other than Silvia. She had kept her mouth shut for whole time &lt;br /&gt;
caused the people around her to become nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That being said… It is rare to see Rebecca-san together with Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, it was me who invited her out.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the incident of the young dragon had ended yesterday, Rebecca had indicated “ I will take care of the Princess herself.” However, it &lt;br /&gt;
seems that what is happening today had nothing to do with yesterday’s promise. It is also a surprise that Silvia would accept Rebecca’s &lt;br /&gt;
invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it was an order from the student council president, Silvia is still the country’s princess. She could have rejected the offer anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca smiled cheekily and took out a piece of paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you still remember the ticket for the one day date? The attached prize for the dragon riding festival. I must fulfill my promise and &lt;br /&gt;
Silvia had her duty to perform as the winner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh… Now I remember.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now it had started to make sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had totally forgotten about it. The winner in the dragon riding festival, could have a day’s date with Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the stubborn Silvia, the words ‘Duty of the winner’ is definitely the irresistible sure kill words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Together with yesterday’s problem, the princess had her mind crowded with many problems. Though I did try my best to help her, she had &lt;br /&gt;
been this way since the start.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Rebecca was regretting this, she still managed to squeeze out a cheerful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for the wait.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the moment, the waitress had arrived with their dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 12===&lt;br /&gt;
“I am back, Milgauss-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was enjoying the full view of Ansarivan, in the clock tower. With his mantle waving in the direction of the wind, he looked like &lt;br /&gt;
a veteran solider.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was in the disguised of a flower girl while Milgauss himself was dressed up as a mercenary.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 173.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was very silent on the top floor of the clock tower of the old shrine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the noisy streets looked as if they were from another world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Gazing at Milgauss back from behind, Anya thought that he was an ‘Unpredictable man…’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shrine that was facing St Durham Square was indeed very old. Usually it was not open to visitors. In addition to problem that was cause &lt;br /&gt;
by technical errors, the renovations for this shrine could not be continued and since then, it had remained closed for ten years.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Moreover, the security was light and anyone could break into the shrine after breaking open the lock at the back door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who knew this information is none other than Milgauss. Even when it is only information that only the locals knew of, Milgauss &lt;br /&gt;
treated it as if it was obvious to anyone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had always been curious of Milgauss&#039;s origin since the beginning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was a military man in the Empire’s army, his movement had always been graceful. It even felt like he was born in a noble &lt;br /&gt;
family. Even his pronunciations are beautiful and are fluent in both the Chevron language and Empire’s language.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How are the streets?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss’s question brought Anya back to her sense. Even though he was looking at her coldly through the mask, it still made Anya nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from Milgauss and Anya, there was not a third person in the clock tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though they are still on the job, Anya was a little disappointed. She certainly could not show the girly side of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was peaceful on the streets. Nobody is thinking about any wars.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan is a lively city. Anya had initially thought that the city that teaches breeders should be filled with killing intends. Yet, not &lt;br /&gt;
even a hint of war could be felt from this city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she was walking on the streets in disguised as a flower girl, Anya found out something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To the residents of Ansarivan,  the dragons are called ‘lovely beasts’ and not a military weapon. Ansarivan is never the so called &lt;br /&gt;
“military base for dragon training’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. In this street, not even a single soul thinks that dragons are military weapons. Ansarivan is a very friendly city.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss spoke in a nostalgic tone but it only lasted for a second.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However, Anya, there is no meaning behind the friendliness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss took a step forward and there was a coffin like box next to his feet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss silently opened the lid of the box. There is no corpse but a single sword in it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is not a normal sword. It was a broad sword with the size of a grown man.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like a typical zanbatou&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;斬馬刀a type of long sword&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; from the ancient drawings but its blade is black and its hilt was &lt;br /&gt;
decorated with beautiful jewels just like a refined masterpiece. With a closer look, they were bright dragon crystals.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss lifted the huge black sword and chanted the incantation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a little while, the clear blue sky was covered by dark clouds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 13===&lt;br /&gt;
Saute duck, Beef fillet cooked in wine, spare ribs, vegetable and mushroom soup, walnut bread…. All of the dishes were served one after another and they took away Ash’s attention.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The smell of the gravy and spices were stimulating his appetite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco reacted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once she found out about the smells of the foods, Eco had snapped out from the drunken state. Eco who cares for only crepes is after all, still a dragon. Her eyes were nailed to the meat dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry about the amount, just enjoy yourself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Rebecca could finish her sentence, she had already started stuffing herself with the duck. The skin was roasted nicely and its gravy &lt;br /&gt;
was dripping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mmm… This is the first time that I had tasted such a nice meat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes were glittering from being touched had her sight on the beef. She just simply took a piece of the beef with the fork and gave it a bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Funnn...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The beef seems to be very tasty since Eco looked as if she was in cloud nine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was also happy just by looking at her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, Silvia was working her knife and fork silently. Whenever Ash and her eyes met, she would glare at him to keep him &lt;br /&gt;
away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, Ash remembered what Rebecca had told him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;In my opinion, the princess is a perfectionist. She had always wanted to be the first. When she met a classmate who can ride any dragons, &lt;br /&gt;
she will take you as her rival.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In another words, the reason she tried to suppress the young dragon on her own is because of none other than Ash’s fault.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash made up his mind and spoke to Silvia:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Princess-sama… Is it really my fault?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know what you mean by that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her sharp glare pierced his forehead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am talking about yesterday’s incident… The way you acted yesterday isn’t really like you at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately, Silvia’s cheeks had turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Don’t be too full of yourself! Why would I even do it because of-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, a loud bang came from outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sudden thunderstruck had shocked Silvia. She was covering her ears with both her arms and was shaking tremendously. No one would ever &lt;br /&gt;
thought that she had this side to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a weird weather...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling about this and looked out from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The once clear sky was now covered by thick black clouds. The darkness outside made it hard to imagine that it was still noon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… That’s not a good sign.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was still eating suddenly stood up. Her face sank was staring intently at the sky outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ignoring Ash’s call, Eco ran out from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 14===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ashes to ashes, dust to dust. Appear! Child of magic technique. Thou shall be…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment Milgauss finished the incantation, under the sky filled with dark clouds, a change was happening on the streets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A dragon appeared in the middle of St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s… A Necromancia...!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya sub-consciously speaks of the word that should never be spoken of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Letters of blood red colour appeared on the surface of the huge sword that Milgauss was holding. They were words of an ancient language &lt;br /&gt;
that Anya could not understand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked as if blood were actually flowing out from the sword itself. The cloud had become thicker and sounds of the thunders had become &lt;br /&gt;
more and more frequent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia- A dragon that was resurrected using ashes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though she had heard about it before from Milgauss, it was still her first time seeing it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Summon the Necromancia and analyze its combat strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, determine whether it could be used in actual combat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the main purpose for the infiltration. Ansarivan is the selected location for the experiment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is like a hammer that smashes off the previous peaceful atmosphere.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This situation made Anya who just finished her investigation in the town bite her lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It made her think about her homeland that was full of blood and destruction a few years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-But…. This is war.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya reassured herself and clenched her fist while looking at Milgauss from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 15===&lt;br /&gt;
The group went chasing after Eco in the alleys had finally arrived at St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square was in a mess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The locals and the tourists were standing still like statues.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when they should be running away for their own sake, everyone just remain still and stare at the monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What is that thing!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he entered the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge beast was landing on the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that… A Dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its entire body is covered with fur and which made it looked similar to a Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, though it looked like a Maestro, its body fur was deep grey in colour and it smelled bad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Its body is rotting…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gasped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from that, its body size was surprisingly huge.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square that can hold thousands of people and right now had a quarter of it being occupied by a sole dragon. If it lifted its head up, it &lt;br /&gt;
height should be around the same height as the towers around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A roar that made people shivers was heard under the dark sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It sounds like hundreds of flutes not being blown uniformly. The sound was so terrible that it could even wake up the dead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The loud roar was followed was a strong gust that managed to topple the St Durham’s Statue in the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In a little while, the entire square was filled by a rotten smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only right now the people started running for their lives. While confronting with such a supernatural situation, the situation was no &lt;br /&gt;
longer under control. Although the Ansarivan’s security tried their best, it was obvious that they are lacking man power.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Followed by sounds of agonizing cries for help, many helpless people were continuously being pushed down. Even the customers in the &lt;br /&gt;
shops facing the Square were running out one by one.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The base for the St Durham Statue was in rubbles and the stone statue itself was lying on the ground. Eco was standing beside the statue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco was the dragon that brought all the troubles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is she even thinking!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was panicking and was trying to drag her back. However, he was blocked by the rest of the tourist who were running for their lives.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly removed her Beret and showed her horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems that she was trying to show that she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Refrain yourself, you lowly beast! Don’t you know who I am! Don’t you know that there are many excellent shops in this street?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, the entire square turned still because of her loud voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her imposing attitude touched Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it is just a little, after all, that weird thing is still a dragon and just maybe it understood Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon’s gaze slowly turned towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, they made eye contact with each other. But suddenly there were tentacles appearing from its body and was attacking Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted but the tentacles continued to wrap around Eco’s body and her four limbs and she was now hanging in mid air. Her uniform were &lt;br /&gt;
torn by the tentacles and her undergarments and skin were exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You! Knock it off!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was useless no matter how she struggled. Also, the more she struggled the tighter the grip of the tentacles became.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 184.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again the dragon roared and showed its pink mouth. A few teeth in its mouth that was arranged nicely dropped off. Only now Ash &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that even its teeth were rotting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, a light ball of purple electric appeared in its mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The purple electric light ball was then released followed by another roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Don!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A building facing the square was swallowed by the ball of light and was covered with dust.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Attacking magic…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbstrucked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a high level magic that could only be performed by Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The building that was destroyed was a four story building. The first floor was Café Essarois while it was an apartment from the second &lt;br /&gt;
floor onwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbfounded. Just how many innocent people were involved right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few moments later, the smoke cleared out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not only the building remains, but also there isn’t even a single causality.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in joy. Rebecca who was riding on Cú Chulainn in her Ark had cast the defense magic and neutralized the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Essarois is a place filled with the dreams of the girls. I as the student council of Ansarivan, I will have it protected until my death.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s declaration received cheers from the residents.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Rebecca wouldn’t let such cheers get over her head and she started reciting the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Appear! The certain hit magic spear!&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The summoned weapon appeared above Rebecca’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The magic spear turned into light particles and was shot towards the loathsome dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A new ball of light appeared in front of the dragon and it turned into seven layers of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It even knew defense magic!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!” pierced through the first layer of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then it continue was also broke apart easily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However it was obvious that it had slowed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time it broke through a layer, a large amount of magic was used up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fourth, the fifth… the sixth was penetrated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was praying while looking at Gáe Bolg’s path.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then, there was a crack in the seventh shield and it was pierced through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time when Ash was cheering, Gáe Bolg exploded at the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The flash caused their eyes to be blinded and it was followed by a loud bang.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The thick smoke had the dragon covered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was thinking that Rebecca had won.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the securities that should have led the people to safety were cheering happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then, the smoke started to clear up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The cheers were silent up by a hole in a head caused by the explosion. Even so, the dragon shouldn’t be able to live on after its brain &lt;br /&gt;
was destroyed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is that thing…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shivering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon has not yet fallen and Eco was still hanging in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next moment, the wound on the head started regenerating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as ifs the wound itself is another living being.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the wound was healed, the dragon returned to its original looks but its eyes looked even more menacing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, it swung its tail.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After seeing it using high class magic, Ash was surprised to see it change its style to physical attacks. It seems that Rebecca too, was &lt;br /&gt;
also caught off guard by it which led her to being slow in her reactions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca shouted in surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it was just a simple physical attack, the buildings behind the dragon were demolished like toy bricks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, they could only pray that the people inside the buildings could escape safely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Curses…!’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash clenched his teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could watch the dragon turn the city in ruins as a bystander.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Ash thought of a single person. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Milgauss, the masked man.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the day he met him in the forest, the still cog had been connected and started spinning. However, it was his instinct that told him &lt;br /&gt;
that. There was never a single proof.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What in the world is that dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once he heard the familiar voice, Ash was brought back to his sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, he saw that Silvia had arrived at the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Silvia saw the weird dragon, she fell on her backside and was shivering in fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately came to her side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Get a hold of yourself! Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though Ash was shouting loudly, Silvia never answered. Seeing such a supernatural sight had caused her to lose all her sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that instant, a flying dragon appeared on top of St Durham Square. It was obviously a Maestro since it had silvery white fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash! Bring the Princess as far away as you can!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a familiar voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was in charge of the accounts in the student council and also one of Ash’s few friends.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Max!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Leave this to me!... Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max wasn’t able to finish his sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon seeing that a new opponent had appeared immediately gave out a loud roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it released its ball of light with purple electric.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Arian!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Max’s command, Arianrhod immediately cast its defense magic. Though it managed to reduced the strength of the light ball, still it &lt;br /&gt;
had hit and fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Originally, a dragon shouldn’t be able to fly with such a build. It’s wings are only for decoration purposes. It was magic itself that &lt;br /&gt;
enables it to fly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he saw Arianrhod fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For it to even bring down Arianrhod with just a single hit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Arianrhod had no longer any magic to defend against the second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca who foresaw that ordered Cú Chulainn to glide down in the area in front of Max and Arianrhod. Without delaying a single moment, &lt;br /&gt;
she cast her defense magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the defending party, Rebecca had totally lost her mobility.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the worst situation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only choice left is to wait for the Holy Dragners of Lautreamont to arrive. But could the town people really hold on until then?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the entire town were already used to the peaceful life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For example, the entire strength of the security office was just hunting rifles and wooden batons. For offices where they have dragner &lt;br /&gt;
working there could only be found in the big cities.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was approaching Rebecca slowly. It probably thought of Rebecca as first to be removed as a target.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time the weird dragon took a step, the earth shook and the beautiful tiles turned into rubbles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as if it was a moving hill. Numerous tentacles had appeared right now and were gripping on Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aahhh! What the hell is this thing trying to do!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco continued to struggle. Even though she lost all her mobility, she still had decided that she is not going to ever give up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s it. I must save Eco.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After all, Eco is Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She is none other than Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is me… Am I able to do it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash questioned himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An answer flashed through his mind. It gave Ash shivers.  But still, it is a gamble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the instant, Ash remembered Eco enjoying her crepe happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on, it still hasn’t reached that stage yet… Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were still many nice things in this word that Eco knew nothing of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was not going to let her die like this before teaching her everything. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally made up his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will protect this city. Everybody. And also Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yet, there was still one more problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash needs Silvia’s cooperation to make his plan success.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama! Please get a hold of yourself!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He shouted towards Silvia who was still sitting on the ground in shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Silvia’s expression was still blank and continued to shiver. It was as if she is a totally different person from her usual &lt;br /&gt;
majestic self.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t joke with me…. What kind of a Princess are you! Where is the usual family motto! In such times shouldn’t you prove to us what &lt;br /&gt;
exactly is a royalty made of!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash lifted his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will apologize first! Sorry!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And he gave Silvia a slap on the face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sound was clear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ash?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was staring at Ash dumbstrucked. At least her thoughts were now focused. Although her red cheek was hurting, she had finally calmed&lt;br /&gt;
down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama, I had a request. Please summon Lancelot immediately and bring me with you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Bring you? Where to?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was pointing at the moving dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To be more specific, it was above the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately Silvia knew what he was thinking right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Definitely not! Are you even thinking properly!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s anger raises and stood up suddenly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Good, this is great. This is the Silvia that I knew of.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 006-007.jpg|thumb|&#039;&#039; Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted &lt;br /&gt;
to the dragon: “Your opponent is me!” &#039;&#039;]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted to the dragon:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Your opponent is me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strictly speaking, Ash didn’t even know if the dragon could even notice his voice. Basically the reason for him to shout was to keep his thoughts &lt;br /&gt;
from wavering. Still, the dragon did stop its footsteps.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It turned its head slowly and glared at both Ash and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia facial expression changed immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m alright. Princess-sama please summon Lancelot immedi…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could finish his sentence, the dragon shot a ray of light at them. It was definitely a different type of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash only understood that a strong energy shot pass the area above his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He raised his head in terror only to find out that the building behind him was crumbling. The three storey building behind him experienced &lt;br /&gt;
a direct hit from the attacking magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
How high exactly is the temperature need to melt debris of the building? Before Ash could even think about it, the building had crumbled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pile of wreckage was falling towards Ash and Silvia like a waterfall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the spur of the moment, Ash tried to protect Silvia. He could only shut his eyes and pray.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 16===&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey…! Until when are you going to stop acting in such manner?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s cold voice had given him the push to open his eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash though that he was buried under the pile of wreckage, but-.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt the wind blowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am flying…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia were in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then Ash realized that he was riding on Lancelot’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seems like Silvia had summoned Lancelot in the nick of time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The streets down below looked far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even St Durham Square looked miniature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge body that occupied a quarter of its space still exists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem is Ash was grabbing on to Silvia who was holding the reins from behind and his right hand was even grabbing on to her breast.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The soft feeling made him lost his calm. Since just now where the building started to crumble, his thought had always been blank.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t loosen your grip! You may fall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s warning made him calm down his thoughts and he started apologizing to Silvia. However, he continued grabbing on her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Obviously Ash had also shifted the position of his right hand. It was probably that he was thinking too much but somehow Silvia’s face had &lt;br /&gt;
turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, the dragon released its second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot in return roared loudly and cast its defense magic. A huge amount of pressure could be felt. Yet, Lancelot remained unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just as expected.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash praised.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This kind of level is child’s play for Lancelot. Back to the main point… Are you sure you want to do this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, please bring me to the appointed location. It must be none other than me to execute it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… Then I can only have faith in you. Lancelot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ooooon.” Under Silvia’s order, Lancelot roared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were gliding downwards towards the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The third and the fourth wave of attack were released but Lancelot avoided all of them with an amazing speed without even activating its &lt;br /&gt;
defence magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The distances between both parties were getting shorter until their entire fields of vision were covered by the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking for Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had prepared himself for the worst possible situation, where Eco was swallowed whole by the dragon. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Until now, this is the only chance where he can save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made up his mind and stood on Lancelot. To keep his balance, he held on to Silvia’s shoulder. Silvia remained silent while allowing him &lt;br /&gt;
to do so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The countdown begins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Ten, nine, eight, seven…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were getting closer to the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Three, two, one…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot flew pass the weird body in a very close distance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped towards the wall of grey furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a ‘Bump’ Ash landed safely. However, he slipped and nearly fell off but managed to cling to the furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon felt something on its head and was pissed. It shook its head vigorously. For that short moment, Ash felt like he was going to &lt;br /&gt;
fall off anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He crawled with all his might until he finally reached the space in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thought there are still many places that could be considered, it was his instinct that told Ash that this was the best place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With both of his foot on stable ground, Ash immediately stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, he thought about the feeling of his first ride on a dragon. Basically the situation was the same as yesterday where a &lt;br /&gt;
young dragon lost control. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A newborn Starda had gone rampage because its master had mistakenly fed it with Ansal Tea.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when the Grooms were in a fix trying to keep the situation under control, Ash who had just passed by, by a chance jumped onto the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He just had a hunch that he was able to do it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, he received a good amount of scolding from the school’s director even though he managed to calm the dragon down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s right, that young dragon was called- Lancelot.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That’s right. I totally forgot about it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled wryly. The Maestro that Silvia was riding on and the drunken Strada fitted perfectly in his memories.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He finally realized why Silvia was obsessed comparing herself to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash gained his confidence. Since he was able to calm Lancelot down, this weird dragon should not be a problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s begin…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Through his feet, he forced his conscious into the dragon like growing tree roots and spoke to the dragon gently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From now onwards, I am your master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon stopped its footsteps in reply to Ash’s words. Although it still continued growling, at the least it had stopped moving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s it. This is how it should be.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was smiling from the bottom of his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was thinking of giving it one more push, the dragon swung its head upwards like a trebuchet. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who was not prepared for this was thrown out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just moments before knocking into a building, Lancelot flew to his rescue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Phew… Saved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat on Lancelot and was just behind Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have never seen an idiot like you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia scolded while she was holding Lancelot’s reins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just a little more I could have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking with a serious tone. There was not even a hint of him joking. Silvia who had turned speechless looked just like a &lt;br /&gt;
graceful woman from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash said made sense. He was going to ride it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 17===&lt;br /&gt;
“Haaa… Haaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco looked pale. She was hurt by her inability to break free due to her lack of strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… For a descendant of a mighty dragon…. To lose to a low born dragon…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was provoking the dragon…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thrown out and had made a nice curve with it but was saved by Lancelot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is he trying to do?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was horrified.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash was doing was reckless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right. Ash was trying to tame this weird dragon by riding it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there is to be a single error, Ash will be squashed like a bug.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! What are you doing? Why don’t you run away!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who could endure it no longer shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! I will save you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash replied while sitting on Lancelot’s back. He seemed confident judging from his tone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That sentence had made her realized that Ash tried to save her instead of running away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was struggling to escape the tentacles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But the more she struggled, the tighter their grips became.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco, the dragon’s belly split open.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On both of the sides of the belly were aligned with row of sharp fine teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like an insect eating plat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It must have been a bad joke.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned pale.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Numerous tentacles appeared and Eco was swallowed into the mouth that looked like the gates of hell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she almost lost conscious, she could barely hear Ash’s cry&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 18===&lt;br /&gt;
“It seems that you have woken up, my sleeping beauty.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The bewitching voice had woken Eco up and she hurriedly looked around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A mysterious room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The floor was laid by square tile of black and white alternating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beside the four walls were statues that had not been completed. An incomplete human body. Incomplete beasts. Models of castle and &lt;br /&gt;
shrines. And also transports that Eco had never seen before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco who was sitting on the bed was a suspicious lady. The lady was sitting on an antique chair lazily. Her brilliant red dress looked extra conspicuous in the monochrome room.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 205.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the lady’s head were horns of an adult dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the Dragon Workshop. Also, I am called Navi.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Navi…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You just have to take me as another personality that is responsible to teach the immature you… Don’t you think that this is great?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t really understand. Also, what’s with your appearance?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting uneasy since the first time she saw Navi.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her looks, hair style and skin colour were exactly like Eco’s. The only difference is that Navi was a few years older.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hee hee. Are you worrying about my body? This design is based on a five years older version of you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wh-What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Still, this is just an assumption. You just may not grow up this well. Especially your breast.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi purposely put emphasis on the breast and deliberately shook them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad for being made fun of..&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph! It is not like bigger is better!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course, even the shape is important. But for you… Worrying about the size should be your main concern.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a detestable woman! I will squash you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Now lets us stop this useless talk as he is going to die if we let him continue what he was doing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a single wave from her right arm, a crystal ball appeared. A high concentration of lights was released by it and a projection of Ash &lt;br /&gt;
struggling with the weird looking opponent could be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He is still reckless!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking up towards the screen which was the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In a first look, this is not a bad idea. After all he was born with that gift to ride any kind of dragons. However, this opponent is too &lt;br /&gt;
much for him to handle. He had no chance of winning against that Necromancia.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Necromancia?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. It is a dragon that died once but was resurrected by human technology.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk! What should we do…? There is nothing in my ability to help him.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was saddened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, do you know why a holy dragon is called a Maestro.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was puzzled by the sudden question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before the existence of the secret agreement of Albion, the holy dragons were craft workers. This dragon workshop was built by a group of &lt;br /&gt;
great Maestros. The Ark is only one of the many things created by the Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi was trying to say.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are telling me that he is lacking an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good answer. And of course the only person who can present him with the Ark is only you as his Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… How can I…? That’s it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco remembered her conversation with Ash in St Druham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Hmm, if it is the blueprint for the Ark, I have the access to it.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-If that’s the case, can you use the blueprint… To create an Ark?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Are you crazy! That’s is nothing but an imitation.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it is an imitation, it is still an Ark. Certainly, Eco&#039;s pride does not allow her to make a copy from her ancestor, but this &lt;br /&gt;
was an emergency.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco accessed the Dragweiss immediately and focused her thoughts. Without delay, the projection on the ceiling started changing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice either.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since year 10 of A.S.B where the secret agreement of Albion was made, there were many blueprints left by the dragons. Apart from the Arks &lt;br /&gt;
that were worn by humans, there were also those that were made as a trial.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The total amount of blueprints easily exceeds a thousand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was disappointed after read the blueprints.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every single blueprint was full of details and even copying may become a difficult task.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come on! How am I to copy this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was feeling troubled, the thought of St Durham’s Statue flash pass.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She instantly summoned St Durham’s Ark’s blueprint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Time of production	Year 846 A.S.B/ Month of Libra/ 2nd day.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Name of knight		Durham Lautreamont &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Ark Weapon		Magic sword Caliber&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to the present, the design and structure five hundred years ago was simpler.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is this Ark, I should be able to do it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You’re naïve.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why? Supposing I had no experience in making an Ark, I still inherit the basic knowledge. So what are you even-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It just doesn’t work that way. An Ark is an armour that was custom made for its knight. If you just make a copy of a previous work, he &lt;br /&gt;
won’t be able to wear it. If you force it on him, it may even endanger his life.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What! Then this isn’t even an option to begin with!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hehe. When did I mention that? The Dragweiss had collected a huge amount of blueprints since the old times. It is possible to select &lt;br /&gt;
parts of the armour that fits him from this amount of blueprints.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By shaking a crystal, an infinite amount of blueprints appeared on the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Could it be that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi means.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We will select parts of the armour that fits him and reorganized them.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, can I do it? For starters, how am I going to know if the parts suit him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was worrying about the most important part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before an Ark was made, it requires that data of the person wearing it. First is the height and then follow by a mountain full of &lt;br /&gt;
information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara. If you are talking about his data, I already have it here with me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled cheekily touched Eco’s forehead with the crystal ball. In an instant, all the information in the crystal ball flowed into &lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… Is his data?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was able to construct a three dimensional structure using the huge amount of information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco blushed. Ash image in her mind was stark naked. Every single detail on his body was clearly recorded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-A perfect data…. But how did this data get into your hands?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I was expecting something similar to this to happen. Just before you were born, I sneaked into his dream. Actually I finish collecting my &lt;br /&gt;
data in just a night but since he is too cute, I had been doing that for a whole week.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How dare you toy with my pet dog!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi was laughing in front of the angry Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see that someone is jealous.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-There is no way that I-I….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so? But why are you blushing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am gonna squash you!... Erm, this is not the right time and place to argue!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit. So let’s begin.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi slowly stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know whether I am capable of doing it but… this is the only choice left!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally made up her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 19===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it had been three times, Ash never gave up. On the other hand, he was saved by Lancelot every single time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucky for him, the grey dragon had Lancelot locked on as its target. Every single attack was directed towards Lancelot which in turn, &lt;br /&gt;
reduced the amount of destruction towards the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, there is a limit to the amount of magic that Lancelot possesses. In truth, it flying speed had been greatly reduced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is at its limit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood her frustration from her words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. This time will be the final!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia signal Lancelot to change its direction and dive down towards the middle of the square. Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tell me that is not true…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was suddenly swallowed into the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in dismay.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are not able to make it in time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was eaten whole by that monster right in front of Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!... It&#039;s my fault for being weak…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t give up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia reminded Ash who felt that he was going to break apart in despair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She may still be alive! If you give up at this moment, she will definitely die for sure!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately kept his cool. Silvia was right. If not because of she was holding the reins with both hands, she is sure to give him a &lt;br /&gt;
slap on the face like what he did to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, the Seikoku on his left arm started hurting. It was the same feeling as the time where Eco was kidnapped by Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reaction from the Seikoku made him felt relief.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This proofs that his link with Eco had not yet been cut off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yeah… I mustn’t give up yet. Princess-sama! Please bring me to where the monster is!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again, Lancelot started diving downwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 20===&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me a break! Why can’t I get it right!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was shouting in desperation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The opponent that Ash was battling was a Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its element is ‘dark’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Naturally, the Ark that she is going to present to Ash should have the ‘light’ element in it. It had been a common knowledge since the &lt;br /&gt;
ancient times that light can conquer darkness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…! Just as expected, this is impossible…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sitting on her knees in disappointment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Tears were dripping from her eyes. It was the first time Eco ever cried from the feeling of regret.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Don’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Eco heard something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The owner of the sound was none other than Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it him…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco lifted her head up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was still continuing his fight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While fighting against the dragon, he was calling out to Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“I will save you! I still believe that you are still alive! That is why… That is why, you mustn&#039;t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These were not spoken by words. They were spoken through the Astral Flow that connects the dragon and its breeder. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She felt warmth from the bottom of her heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco knew from where this warmth came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Druing her time as an Orphan, Eco had always been inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She could never forget about this warmth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was going against the odds, Ash never ran away from anything.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He even dare face such a monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For how many times had he stood on the dragon’s head and for how many times had he been thrown out. Right now, his clothes were like rags &lt;br /&gt;
and there were many obvious bruise and wounds on his body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, his eyes never stop glittering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco clenched her fists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Unforgivable!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s it. Ash was fighting for her sake and her pride doesn&#039;t allow her to stay still while waiting to be saved.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… It is totally unforgivable… That is why…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her tired body was once again filled with magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her overflowing amounts of magic crystallized outside of her body and were sparkling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco never once expect herself to have such a large amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her field of vision widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could not keep herself from smiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Almete, Gorjal, Peto… Espaldar……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought the amount of blueprints in the Dragweiss is abnormally large, the Eco right now had the ability to handle all of them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Brafoneras, Faldaje… Escarcelas……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In among the parts that suits Ash, Eco selects the ones with light element and combined them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Bufetas, Hombreras, Brazales… Codales….., Antebrazos……. Manoplas……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to those who create the Ark from scraps, Eco’s actions may seem detestable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could never be able to object for shaming the tradition and placing a curse on her ancestral.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Quijotes… Guardas… Grebas…… Escarpes……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However to Eco, it did be a worst sin to just be a bystander and witness all the fun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco no longer hesitates.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With mixed emotions, she had chosen the final part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“-Espolón!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, Eco had opened the gate that leads to a brand new world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 21===&lt;br /&gt;
No matter how badly he failed, he had lost count of the number of times he returned. Right now, he was lying on Lancelot’s back in anguish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pain was so immersed that he could no longer feel his limbs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is really at its limit. This will be the last chance we have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s voice was obviously shaking. They really must succeed. The moment Lancelot used up all its magic and can no longer fly, everything &lt;br /&gt;
that was done will be in vain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan will be in ruins and Eco will definitely die.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It will be impossible to save all the refuges unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… What should I do…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was in a pinch…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“You are the one who shouldn’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s voice was heard in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco? Eco! You are still alive!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had been sometime since she was swallowed by the dragon but Ash could clearly hear her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Isn’t that obvious! No matter what I do, I can never look for a substitute for my useless pet dog, so just take this as a gift.”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Take what?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next instant, Ash was surrounded by dazzling lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His eyes’ widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An outline slowly appeared in the light and transformed into a brilliant armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Isn’t that an… Ark! It is godly…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia squeaked when she turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had a strange feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a heavy looking armour but it doesn’t feel that way.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps it was the strong amount of magic that removed the weight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though he just wore it, he could feel an overflowing amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“With this… I can never lose.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled confidently and spoke facing Eco who was inside the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you Eco! I had received your feelings!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, Eco replied with a scold.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“D-Don’t joke with me! That is just a mimic! Not an original! I have never thought of presenting you with it at all!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was certainly full of objections.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go, Princess- sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had been equipped with the Ark was full of spirits.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia didn’t waste a single moment and ordered Lancelot to dive down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it had used up most of its magic, it still answered Ash and Silvia’s call by raising its speed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking to her from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… What is it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is a good dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What does that have to do with this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why you should never again try to ride on another dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Are you an idiot! What are you saying at a time like this…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the best time to tell you this. You had Lancelot who is the best Pal. So, what is the thing that you are craving for?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I… Definitely knew that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot made a great roar in reply to Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are getting faster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge grey body was getting closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now’s the time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt that his body had blend into the wind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After drawing out a curve in the air, Ash landed on the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks to the Ark, Ash could even stand on the dragon without clinging to its fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could even feel the dragon’s body heat through the armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at this moment, Ash was one with the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be wrong. The Ark had pushed Ash’s gift to its maximum potential.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From his feet, his consciousness was growing into the dragon like roots.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If Ash was to be described as a tree, then the dragon is the earth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash could feel the dragon’s rejecting feeling in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It doesn’t matter whether you are god or even the devil himself…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was like a tower in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For what I know, every dragon will bound to be ridden by me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, there was a change in the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its folded wings were suddenly flapping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was flying towards the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 22===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Seems like we had stepped into an ambush…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss sighed when he saw the Necromancia flying away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was the person controlling the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge sword in his hands was not only the switch, it was also the controller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Milgauss was never successful in making the Necromancia fly but that boy had it proved to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, Milgauss was dead calm. It was just as expected.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was sweating when she looked at Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were cold sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy who was riding the Necromancia away from the city is THAT BOY.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had never reported to Milgauss about their meeting in the streets. She didn’t expect the boy to appear right there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Where exactly did I meet that boy before…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was trembling from that single sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, whatever.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luckily, MIlgauss never question any further.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The experiment ended with a failure, but we still obtain some useful results. That boy and also… that girl.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Girl?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was confused. Did he mean Rebecca Randall the Ark Dragner?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or is it Princess Silvia who was flying on Lancelot?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However she was wrong.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t the Necromancia capture a girl? The one with horns. She is probably the one who presented the boy with the Ark. Even though she &lt;br /&gt;
looks human… She might be descendant of a dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I never…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss had no intention of speaking anymore. He silently kept the huge sword and gazed at Anya through the mask.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will retreat for now.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya knelt down immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 23===&lt;br /&gt;
“I did it…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon spread it wings and flew up towards the sky with Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was getting higher and higher and further away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, Ansarivan town, the plains beside and Fianna Forest looked like toys.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was all according to his plan. First he had to bring this dangerous dragon away to ensure to safety of the townspeople.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could understand the dragon’s thought through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The muzzy thoughts suddenly turned clear. If felt as if the Ark had translated the dragon’s feeling into words that Ash understands.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was anger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hatred too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And also- Love.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see. You also had a master in the past.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash didn’t know where this dragon came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He only knew that this was just a normal dragon that grew up in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it told Ash its wish through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood the sad wish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Necromancia? Something that disobey the logic of this world? Do you really want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It once again assured Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It trusted as like it did to its master.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you really sure that you want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia was asking for Ash to kill it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the only way out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… what about Eco after I killed you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was worried about killing the Necromancia because Eco was still inside the Necromancia. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After knowing what Ash thinking was, the dragon reassured him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ermm… Can I really trust you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia nodded its head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It promised to protect Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Alright. Leave everything to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he had made up his mind, an image of a sword appeared in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the Ark was created hastily, Ash still had obtained the same power as an Ark Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Similar to Rebecca’s Gáe Bolg, every Ark Dragner must possess an Ark weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was glowing and an immense amount of magic flowed out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The details of the Ark Weapon were circulating inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a sword. A sword with light as its element.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Following the information, Ash chanted the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Appear! The sword that was graced by the light! Please lend me all your powers that are able to repent darkness…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The area on Ash’s forehead was flooding with light.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A tremendous amount of magic was flowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A huge sword that was taller than Ash appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Aix-les-Bains!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After lifting Aix-les-Bains easily, Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuoooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was falling. Starting from the dragon’s head to its belly, the sword that wields light slashed through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon split into two.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sword transformed into silvery lights and cut through its bones and flesh.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The tough body of the dragon burst into parts like a paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The destroyed body turned into grey particles and was blown away by the winds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Eco was thrown up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was probably thrown up by the dragon before the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was diving at Eco’s direction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was also accelerating using the magic of the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was not even a hint of fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stretched out his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco stretched out hers too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both of them were close, but yet so far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pressure from the strong wind seemed to be able to cut through skin but Ash still shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made a kick in the air by releasing the magic in the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco once again stretched out her arms further after being called.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was the first time Eco call his name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fingers met.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then they felt the weight on their palms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now they were grabbing each other’s hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not wanting Eco to leave his side again, Ash made a pull.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was embracing his chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While hugging the delicate body, Ash could feel her body heat. He had decided to land on the plains below.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With the protection from the Ark, they remain unharmed even after falling from a few hundreds of meters from above.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dark cloud in Ansarivan had disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the horizon, the sun appeared once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We did it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he smiled, the Ark broke into light particles and disappeared. Similarly, Aix-les-Bains which was in his belt had also disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as Eco had said, this was just hastily made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it did actually manage to save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you, Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Its nothing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco turned to a side. She really hasn’t changed at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he started smiling, his smile turned into horror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… What’s with your fist?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her fist was bleeding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Surely it was hurt when she was caught by the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-This is nothing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash held her hand and licked her wound. It was a usual practice in Ash’s hometown when children hurt themselves.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It may be obvious to Ash but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad and started rampaging.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! It is just for disinfection, disinfection I say!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who turned embarrassed bit his neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! This is not a joke! I might even die…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was probably tired finally calmed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting uneasy but Eco was already fast asleep. He showed sign of relieved and smile bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A boy who can ride any dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Some corrections should be made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or at least until he found a way to handle Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Dark Gray Invasion ~A.S.B.1365.5~&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2|Chapter 2]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354083</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354083"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T15:47:03Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 20 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 3 - Necromancia&#039;s Attack==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
The month of Aries had ended and it was the arrival of the month of Taurus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem concerning Eco&#039;s lodging was put on hold and no decision had been made yet because of the incident where Angela had become a teacher in just a flash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In short, Eco was still sleeping on Ash&#039;s bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem they were facing was, Apollo House which was the dormitory where Ash was staying at is a male&#039;s dorm. Furthermore, Eco is an extremely beautiful girl as long as she kept her mouth shut.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ash was staying with such a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was obvious some weird rumours would emerge among the students who were living in Apollo House.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
The class room of the first year advanced course.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When school was about to dismissed, Raymond walked towards Ash&#039;s table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yo, Ash. Why don’t we go and have some fun since we are free?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, I have to go to the student council’s office.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Student council…? Why?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err, the president asked for me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had informed Ash to find a free time to visit the student council’s office about a week ago. Since Eco had gotten used to the campus &lt;br /&gt;
life, it should be about time for him to make his visit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it true? I think Rebecca Nee-san should have many questions for you. Or many she wants to blame you for something… Just by thinking…&lt;br /&gt;
Haaa… Haaa.” &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have nothing to say to you…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err… did &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; goes well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash asked while Raymond pushed his face nearer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond was looking totally serious.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Aren’t you teaching Eco on the bed?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Raymond had ended his sentence, the entire class turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was looking at Ash with suspicious eyes. Everyone in the academy knew that Ash’s pal was born as a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t say something that will make people misunderstood! Don’t you know that Eco is a dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond smile sinisterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Right, anyway I knew that you don’t even have the guts to do &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then just don’t say something that will make people misunderstood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haha… Could it be that you are the one who was being taught?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because Raymond who had hit the bull’s eye with just a guess, Ash was a little taken aback but he dare not speak back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
The student council office was located at the highest floor of the academy’s centre tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gulped when he was standing in front of the grand door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From a long time ago, Ansarivan’s student council had a huge power. They not only dealt with the academy’s council but they also have the right &lt;br /&gt;
of speech in the city council. According to some rumours, the student council president’s power is superior to the mayor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please enter.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before he even knocked, the student council president’s voice could be heard. This made Ash tremble a little.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for interrupting.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He timidly opened the door and walked into the office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was crossing her arms while standing by the window that was at the far end of the room. There wasn’t another soul in this room. When he &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that they were alone, Ash who had felt uneasy from the start was now sweating nervously.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahhh, Ash. You finally came!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca turned around and stared at Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With her marble statue like beauty together with her crimson coloured hair, it let out an amazing feeling. Even her body proportion outshone &lt;br /&gt;
other people. Her curves were perfect and not even her uniform could hide it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca Randall who had received the Ark-Dragner title was not only well known in Ansarivan. Her name was widely spread in the entire Knight &lt;br /&gt;
Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even in the well known Holy Dragners of Lautreamont had only one in a ten of their members who received the title Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from that, the requirements to obtain the title Ark-Dragner is very strict.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fuu. Don’t be shy. Just take a seat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-Yes…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat at a corner of the sofa, frightened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca sat beside Ash without even a second thought. He smelled something refreshing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was uneasy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was nervous because of their close distance where they can feel each other’s breath. Since there was also a sofa located right opposite, &lt;br /&gt;
logically speaking, Rebecca should have sat there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Rebecca showed a playful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To get to know another person better, sitting side by side is the best choice, this is common knowledge for dating.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Is it…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Young man, you must remember it. Next time, if you are on a date, remember not to sit opposite of her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, dates or whatever… It is still a far away dream.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was blushing in embarrassment while Rebecca unexpectedly was enjoying that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… In another words, no one had noticed your true value yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“True value?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If for me, I still haven’t determined how good of a man you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly stopped smiling and moved towards the main topic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In short, I am here to discuss the things regarding Eco with you… Saying that, what is she doing when you are in class? You can’t just keep &lt;br /&gt;
her in the man’s dormitory right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, Cosette is helping me with that. I don’t think that it will be a problem.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the kidnapping incident a few days ago had ended, Ash had told Cosette his trouble when they were chit chatting. Cosette immediately &lt;br /&gt;
volunteered to help take care of Eco. Since Costte also had nothing to do when Silvia was attending classes, she can accompany Eco in Ash’s &lt;br /&gt;
place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only think he worried about was whether Eco will accept Cosette. Until today, it seemed like there was no such problem. In front of &lt;br /&gt;
Cosette, Eco was always acting mature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Cosette huh? There won’t be a problem if it is her. I had met Cosette a few times before and she is not someone to be underestimated.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So Rebecca-san also thinks so?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile because he was thinking something bad about Cosette.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Umm… It is said that when the Paladin sent Princess Silvia to Ansarivan, about a hundred maids and guards were sent together.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! It must be troublesome…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Princess of course had gone against the Paladin’s will. In the end, because the Paladin insisted, she brought Cosette alone along with &lt;br /&gt;
her. Judging from that, Cosette is something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Back to the topic, you are also something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was looking at him sharply until he started to sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you talking about?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When had you started to have this close relationship with Cosette?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s beautiful face was getting closer. The refreshing smell was getting stronger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being asked something unexpected, Ash’s head started spinning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How dare you hide something from me? It isn’t good you know. By the way, you are not thinking that Rebecca Randall is someone simple &lt;br /&gt;
right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s face was getting closer and closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought there was a faint hint of a smile by her lips, her eyes were not smiling at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Alright! Please promise me that… Don’t tell anyone about this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, I guess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca nodded and moved her head backwards back to her original position.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash took a deep breath and told her everything about the incident where Eco had been kidnapped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
The seventh dragon house was specially built for Maestros. Apart from Rebecca’s Cú Chulainn, there were four more Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Take it slowly, there are many more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Lancelot was gulping down the thickly sliced meat, Silvia smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Normally, jobs like feeding, preparing the beds, balancing the nutrients, cleaning… were done by the groom of the dragon house. The breeders &lt;br /&gt;
on the other hand just need to focus their thoughts on studying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However Silvia had always taken care of Lancelot on her own.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyday, she will always visit the dragon house five times. She will feed it on her own, clean the dragon house and even give Lancelot a bath. &lt;br /&gt;
If Lancelot felt itchy, she will sure to be there to give a scratch on that spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Silvia’s care, Lancelot who was born as a Strada had grown into a beautiful Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her achievement was acknowledged and she had received the title Dragner in the young age of fourteen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The title Dragner can only be received by a breeder whose Pal is a Maestro. It had been a tradition in the Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Silvia was never satisfied with her current achievement. Her aim was to become a ‘Great Dragner’. Just the title Dragner could &lt;br /&gt;
never satisfy her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright Lancelot… Next will be an Ark-Dragner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia patted Lancelot after she spoke out her thought. Its silvery white fur was tick and felt nice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Silvia pressed her hands against her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s proof of a Breeder the Seikoku was at the middle of her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her memories when she was seven came into her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To obtain an orphan from the mother dragon, Silvia had entered Albion Forest alone. However, she injured her leg and was crying while standing. &lt;br /&gt;
She left the palace with the thought of she will definitely become a breeder but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then there was a young boy who reached out to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Like Silvia, the young guy was here on the same day for the Orphan Ceremony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-I will give you a piggyback while we look for mother dragon together.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s heart beat increased when she thought about the guy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If not for his help, Silvia would never have become a Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… I had made a promise with him. I will become a great knight. If I did anything that should not be done by an owner, I want you &lt;br /&gt;
to scold me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadly, Lancelot only had its eyes on the meat and was not bothered by Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk, what a child you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia shook her head and gave a wry smile. Although it had become a Maestro, it was still a young dragon. Compare to Cú Chulainn, its body &lt;br /&gt;
size was definitely smaller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Speaking of that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was thinking about Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only student who dared to challenge Silvia Lautreamont.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, Silvia had won the match but she didn’t have the feeling of victory. On the other hand it can be said as a losing feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had given Silvia a help on the race’s position arrangement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She clearly understood her attitude of looking down on her enemy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only that she had never thought that such a despicable method will be used. If not for Ash who made use of the chance, Silvia would not be &lt;br /&gt;
able to win.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash Blake… I have never seen such an irregular guy. He could even ride on other people’s Pal as he liked which is out of common knowledge. In the &lt;br /&gt;
end, what is the trick he was using-?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Silvia was mumbling, there was a cry of help from outside of the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon has gone mad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash had told her everything, Rebecca sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… For such a thing to happen. Angela-sensei is also a troublesome person. She is one of the best in the continent in dragon researching.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had never thought that teacher could be such a great person…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is a total dragon maniac. She had thought of becoming a Dragner since she was still a child. In the end, she was not selected in the &lt;br /&gt;
Orphan Ceremony…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will never hand an orphan to her if I am the mother dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Perhaps not being selected had left her with traumas until today. However, Angela-sensei’s skills and knowledge are the real stuff. Lets observe her for the time being.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Observe…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t hide his sad looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it is possible, he doesn’t want to have anything to do with her for a second time…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right! There is one more thing about Eco. It is about when you are in the forest and you said that you had encountered some uninvited &lt;br /&gt;
guest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash with a ‘Hah’ lifted his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Many things had happened after Eco was born and he had forgotten about it. The suspected to be Empire’s soldier was lurking around in the &lt;br /&gt;
Knight Country territory. This is not something to be overlooked.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In the end, just who are those two?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The masked man called Milgauss with an extraordinary temperament.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl who wanted to have Ash killed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… ‘Milgauss’ should be a nickname. It doesn’t look like an Empire’s surname. Perhaps he could be the Empire’s agent. If that’s the case, &lt;br /&gt;
this is not a problem that a mere student could solve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had never thought of Rebecca as a ‘mere student’, but he chose to keep this thought to himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, I will pass your message to the peace keepers’ office. However, if the masked man is from the Empire’s army, I am afraid that the &lt;br /&gt;
peace keepers will also be helpless.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she remained calm, the way she had spoken was terrifying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It should be alright, right? Ansarivan is an academy for breeders and not a military school. It shouldn’t be targeted by the Empire.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We are not the military’s backup. The paths that a Breeder can take is not only limited to joining the Knight corps or the dragon elite troops. What’s more, Lautreamont Knight Country was built with the rules that no dragons were allowed in the military. However, it is still the truth that &#039;&#039;&#039;THAT WAR&#039;&#039;&#039; had changed Lautreamont Knight Country and Ansarivan.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-That war. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the ‘Xenoglavia War’ that was triggered fifty two years before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Lautreamont Knight Country was established, it was the first time that the dragons were sent to war.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It all begins when the Zepharos Empire’s armies from the north attacked Chevron Kingdom’s territory in the south.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Empire’s armies were armed with many mechanical weapons and had a huge amount of destruction force. In just a short moment, Chevron’s &lt;br /&gt;
Royal Knights that was said to be strongest mounted troops in the whole continent was wiped out. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Chevron’s king who was worried sent a secret messenger to Lautreamont Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, the dragons who were not involved in any wars for four hundred and fifty years flew towards the battle field once again to save &lt;br /&gt;
their allies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Holy Dragners of Lautreamont led by the Paladin himself joined the battle and the Empire’s armies that had suffered great causality were &lt;br /&gt;
forced to retreat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, the Kingdom and the Empire signed a truce.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To the Empire, Ansarivan was not only a place for the military backup, but also a factory that produces mass destructions weapons. In another &lt;br /&gt;
words, it is a military base. Just by judging from this, it is highly possible that Ansarivan is their target for the preparation for the next &lt;br /&gt;
war.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that Ash had turned pale, Rebecca smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t have to be surprised, Ash. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That… It is you, Rebecca-san.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That&#039;s it. Cú Chulainn and I will protect Ansarivan at all cost. That is why I want you to join us.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, even you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca pressed forward and their shoulders were touching each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you not want to join the student council?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked by the unexpected invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible! Since all the student council members are Dragners.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So one cannot join the student council if they are not a Dragner? I don’t remember such rules. It was just by chance that it looked like that &lt;br /&gt;
in this year.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I heard from every person around you that you are called as ‘The Boy Who Can Ride Any Dragon’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that exaggeration is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You don’t have to act humble. Even I could not ride on another person’s Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before anyone noticed, they are at the distance where their nose could touch. Rebecca’s beauty was drawing closer.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 149.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly noticed that Rebecca’s palm was on his knee.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s body heat could be felt by Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s heart was at the verge of exploding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be exact, I want you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can you please think about it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, but… If I… The student council-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At this moment, as if helping Ash who was getting anxious, the bell rang. Compare to the normal bells, this bell doesn’t sound stable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from the continuous ringing of the bell, it should be the emergency bell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Level two emergency state…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had recognized the meaning of the bell in just a short time and moved towards the side of the window. Ash too was taking a peep &lt;br /&gt;
outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The ‘level two emergency state’ in Ansarivan means that a certain dragon had caused havoc and had flown out from the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The entire school ground could be seen from the student council office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, a Strada was running amok. Its body was small and it looked as if it was just born days before. It still couldn’t spread its &lt;br /&gt;
wings let alone flying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca gave a wry smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa, this happens usually during this time of year. It will end in a short while.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected of the student council president Rebecca, she was calm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few grooms had arrived at the scene and had the dragon surrounded with nets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragons are living things with high intelligence, however they are also short tempered. Especially during the times when they were young, it &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
was not unusual for them to turn mad because of some small matters. Even their owners could do nothing about it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course all the grooms working in the dragon house had undergone special training to handle such situation. Just as Rebecca had said, the &lt;br /&gt;
incident could be settled in a short moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash himself had lost interest in the incident and wanted to leave the window side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who arrived at the scene jumped on the young dragon that had gone mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She looked like she was trying to suppress the young dragon with her own power. Her actions doesn’t match her usual self for it was a &lt;br /&gt;
foolhardy decision.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from their owner who they acknowledged, the dragons will never allow anyone to ride on their back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Silvia was trying her best to just cling on the dragon’s back. She was in a fix because she could be thrown out anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s action had obviously caused trouble to the grooms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is she an idiot! What is princess-sama trying to pull…?!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is most probably because of her ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t understand what Rebecca was saying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From what I can see, Her Highness is a perfectionist. No matter what kind of losing it is, she hates it. When there is a classmate who can &lt;br /&gt;
ride any dragon exist, she was burning with the ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just because of such things…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash frowned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To Her Highness, it was never ‘Just because of such things’.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… If that’s the case, I will go and help her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There is no need for that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The voice that hurts like a whip forced Ash to stop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true that you have some unusual talent. However, are you confident enough that you will be able to suppress the young dragon and at the &lt;br /&gt;
same time prevent Her Highness from getting hurt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s sharp words had made Ash speechless. If it was to calm down the young dragon, Ash himself was more than enough.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Ash doesn’t have to confidence to guarantee to be able to save Silvia without getting her hurt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, what she we do…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I had said it just before. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Rebecca humped onto the window frame. Her red hair that looked like it was on fire was dancing with the winds. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on…! Rebecca-san? What do you think-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will end this quickly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, Rebecca disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca jumped down from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked and took a peek downwards from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Answer my summon…Cú Chulainn!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Out of a sudden, there was a twist in the space beneath Rebecca and Cú Chulainn appeared majestically.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she had landed safely on Cú Chulainn’s back, she spoke strictly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“In my name Rebecca Randall, present me the Ark you created!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn roared in respond to Rebecca’s summon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was light surrounding Rebecca’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her uniform that she had worn until just now had dissolved in the sea of lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a short time, her naked body was exposed. However, because of the excessive brightness, Ash was unable to look at her clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next time Ash opened his eyes, Rebecca’s body was already surrounded by a dazzling knight’s armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was just like a knight from the legends looked godly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is… the Ark!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had heard before about it in the rumours but today was the first time he witnessed it with his own eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was the proof of an absolute loyalty from a Maestro to its owner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment a Dragner received an Ark from his Pal, he will be known as an Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Whoosh!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn’s huge body had flew up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong wind pressure nearly had Ash who was standing by the window blown off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s scream was heard from down below. She was floating in mid air as if she was sent flying by a chariot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash leaned his body out from the window frame and shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just before Silvia lands on the ground, Cú Chulainn accelerating downwards. In Ash eyes, Cú Chulainn was like teleporting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Cú Chulainn was again flying upwards, Rebecca had caught Silvia&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash, Her Highness is in your care!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could even respond to it, Rebecca had her eyes poised at the student council’s office’s window and threw out Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the distance was not even two meters, but to throw a country’s princess, it was not at all normal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in surprise and caught Silvia. They were in the so called ‘Princess carry’ situation and he must stand firm no matter what.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Ash&#039;s arms, Silvia had lost her consciousness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even under such situation, Ash’s heart was beating rapidly. His left hand that was supporting Silvia’s lower half was touching something soft &lt;br /&gt;
and elastic. Also, the was a flower like fragrance coming from her dazzling golden hair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, he heard Rebecca’s spell coming from outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&amp;quot;Appear… The certain hit magic spear…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The was a flash in respond to Rebecca’s spell and an enormous spear had appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the Ark-Weapon that only an Ark-Dragner could use.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An Ark was not just simply an armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was stored with strong magic and it comes with a one and only Ark-Weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Gáe Bolg!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Ash’s eyes, Rebecca swung the magic spear Gáe Bolg!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong magic transformed into a ray of light and was shot down onto the ground. There was a small explosion on the ground beside the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging young dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there was a slight mistake, the young dragon will definitely die. However, it was Rebecca that we were talking about. The shock from the &lt;br /&gt;
explosion had caused the young dragon to faint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a while since Rebecca had the young dragon suppressed, Silvia woke up while lying in Ash’s arms. When she found out that she was carried by Ash-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wha…! What are you doing…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was blushing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! Don’t move around! I can’t hold on any longer!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he warned, Silvia fell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was glaring at Ash with tears in her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I warn you that you will fall! Anyway why did you do that? You would have been dead &lt;br /&gt;
if not because of Rebecca’s help!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Don’t even understand how it feels!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment she shouted, tears were dripping from her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To hide her crying looks, Silvia turned around and ran out from the student &lt;br /&gt;
council’s office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the matter, Princess-sama…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled. Next, there was a voice coming from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry. It is my duty to deal with the Princess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, Rebecca who had changed back into her uniform was sitting on the &lt;br /&gt;
window frame and was with a smile full of confidence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
The next day after the young dragon’s incident was a school holiday.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had again accompanied Eco to Ansarivan City. In truth, Ash wanted to pass &lt;br /&gt;
his time in the dorm, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The crepes are calling out to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With this reason alone, Ash went out with Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, let’s hunt down the crepe stall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After passing by the main door that separates the academy and the city, Eco &lt;br /&gt;
immediately dragged Ash with her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Does a food made by a stupid and ignorant human being taste that well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sh-Shut up! It is the humans that are stupid and ignorant! The crepes had &lt;br /&gt;
nothing to do with this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned red when she replied to Ash’s tease and she continued to march &lt;br /&gt;
on forward. Eco’s respond made Ash felt a little bad… Maybe he should reflect &lt;br /&gt;
on that a little. Ash chased after Eco’s small back and knocked into someone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash just lost his balance for just a moment but the other person had fell on the &lt;br /&gt;
ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, it was my bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately held out his hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… Me too. Because I am careless…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person answering was a girl at Ash’s age range. There was also a flower &lt;br /&gt;
basket by her feet. The combination of her black hair and her oat colour skin &lt;br /&gt;
was very striking. Her worrisome looks together with her exotic face gave a &lt;br /&gt;
special feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment she saw Ash, her face stiffen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-You…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is there anything… On my face?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl grabbed the flower basket and flee. In a short moment, she managed to &lt;br /&gt;
blend into the crowd.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All the pedestrians beside was looking at Ash with the eyes that list him &lt;br /&gt;
as a pervert.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That’s not the case! I did nothing at all!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he explained to the people around him, Ash left the place as if him was &lt;br /&gt;
running away from something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Running away after looking at a person’s face, what a rude child she is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While cursing, he arrived at the crepe stall. Although she doesn’t even had any &lt;br /&gt;
money with her, Eco was calling out to the stall keeper just like a regular customer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me one Ansal Crepe!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
Anya who was the girl who pretended to be the flower seller was breathing heavily while hiding in an alley where there is no sign of other life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Previously, the moment she saw the guys face, she thought she had seen a ghost.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Last month, the guy who should have been dead was walking on the streets leisurely. Just that had given her a great shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;He should have been dead.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He had fallen into a pit less ravine and it will be impossible for him to be unscathed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It should have been more logical if it is another guy with the same looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that’s not it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be a mistake. That face, that voice, that tone… He was the one Anya met and killed in the forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;If that’s the case, why is he alive?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to logic, the chances for him to be able to survive were zero.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it was still the truth that he was alive. She had seen it with her own eyes, it was undoubtable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was surprising for the guy not to recognize Anya. However, thinking carefully, during that time, Anya had a mask on her face and she was &lt;br /&gt;
wearing her Tantalos battle suit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, no matter how you look at it, right now, Anya was just a flower seller. It was understandable if Ash couldn’t recognize &lt;br /&gt;
her. That is her only life saver.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What should I do…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That day, when she had returned back to Milgauss from the ravine, Anya had thought that it was impossible for the guy to survive so she &lt;br /&gt;
reported with ‘He was terminated’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss only replied with a ‘Thanks for the hard work’. Apart from that, he didn’t ask the specifics. To Milgauss, that guy was not at all &lt;br /&gt;
important.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was lost. Should she change the report that she had told Milgauss?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-The guy who fell into the ravine was actually still alive.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only until today she was going to show her report to Milgauss, that’s ridicules.&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the problem was not that simple.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For some time, Anya felt that there was a thorn that was piercing her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the time when the cliff was falling, the guy had given Anya a push. Thanks to that, it was not Anya who fell down the cliff.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even at the moment he was fated to die, he had chosen to save Anya.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To Anya who had spent her life living in the mountains, she couldn’t understand any of his actions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If the guy uses her as a stepping stone and saved himself, she could at least understand that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Anya’s village, there were many people who acted that way. From another perspective, if they are not tough enough, they mustn’t think about &lt;br /&gt;
surviving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya mumbled while she was staring at the basket of flowers blankly.&lt;br /&gt;
Her mind was in a mess. If she did not meet up with the guy, she won’t have to face any trouble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, if I was born as a flower seller… Will I be happier?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya suddenly turned angry and her flower basket fell on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She won’t allow herself to think about stupid stuffs for even a single moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stomped on the flowers that had scattered on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am an idiot! I had already decided to follow Milgauss-sama! Being besides Milgauss-sama is my source of happiness!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Anya was shouting out to her own self, the bell that signified noon rang. It was about time for her to return to Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
The noon bell had rung.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash and Eco arrived at St Durham square after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco immediately took a bite of the vanilla flavoured crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because she was not allowed to buy the ansal flavoured crepe, Eco didn&#039;t seem happy after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Vanilla is also not bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes glittered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s good to hear.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thankful for the vanilla flavoured crepe from the bottom of his heart. With just a mere fifty Glorins in exchange for a smile, it was worth the price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm, a holiday like this is not bad at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While Eco ate the vanilla flavoured crepe as if she was in heaven, Ash looked around the entire square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In addition to the locals, there were many tourists. They should be tourist from Chevron Kingdom that was located adjacent to the Knight’s country. &lt;br /&gt;
Although they were the same race as the Knight Country’s citizens, they could be differentiated by their speech pattern and their clothing design.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, why are they gathering there?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco asked after she finished her crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course they are there to look at the sacred statue.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking at ‘St Durham’s statue’ from afar. It was one of the most important cultural properties in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Whose statue… Is that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The first Paladin, Durham Lautreamont. He was a historical figure dating to five hundred years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The armour on the statue… Isn’t it like an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was proud of Eco for her to be this sharp.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You knew it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. The blue print for the Ark was kept in the Dragweiss.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, using that blueprint, could you make an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco was glaring at him and Ash was shrinking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot? That will be just a mimic. The blueprint design passed down by ancestral-sama is only intended as a reference. The exact thing could never be re-created.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so… Now I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash believed everything she said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, Eco, you will create an Ark for me, no? Before that, you should first become a Maestro- Ouch!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His foot was stomped on by Eco and made him jump around in pain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash barked back however Eco’s face was unexpectedly red. She was acting shy and was avoiding Ash&#039;s sight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What happened?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Quit joking! Why would I… As the owner make an Ark for my pet dog? Isn’t that illogical!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Eco ran off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then, Ash remembered his past lessons.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;To the dragons, to present their owner with the Ark also bears the important meaning of ‘Giving their everything to their owner.’&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
No wonder Eco denied it with her face red. At the same time, Eco was a little cute at that moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, wait for me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled and chased after Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 10===&lt;br /&gt;
They had been walking until Eco stopped her steps in front of a café that was facing St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The café was called Essarois. It is famous for its herbal teas and is especially popular in among the girls. The designs of its interior are also stylish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shop is always full of couples during the weekends. For Ash who had never dated before is a must avoid spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By looking through the glass window, even at that moment, the shop was full of couples.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just in case, there is something that I would like to make sure… Are you interested in such shops?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a nice smell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sniffing around. Although she looked like a girl, she is totally like a young dragon when she was doing so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally noticed the sweet smell coming from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t this Ansal! No, definitely not!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the shop is famous for its herbal tea, of course Ansal tea would also be on the menu. Naturally, Eco who is a dragon would also react to it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh… Why bother. Don’t you know that Ansal is in the cultural of the dragons and it is the so called taste of an adult dragon.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about! You are still a young dragon! Do you even want to repeat the previous incident again!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What happened previously?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Great! So you don’t remember anything after you became drunk! I guess all the more we should just forget about this conversation! From now &lt;br /&gt;
on, you are forbid to go near any Ansal till you become an adult!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh! I won’t forgive you! I won’t allow such thing to happen!…Nnnn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly squeaked and bend her body down. She was rubbing her thighs against each other as if she was trying to endure from using the &lt;br /&gt;
toilet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Unn…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco embraced his chest. Even though he had his clothes on, he could still feel Eco’s hot breath clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, don’t tell me that… You had gotten yourself drunk just from the smell?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa… Haa… Please… My chest is tightening.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes had turned wet and her cheeks had turned red. Her entire body was heating up. Ash felt like he was hugging a massive pile of &lt;br /&gt;
flame.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What a troublesome shop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His priority is to bring Eco away from this shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If such a thing continues, Ash feared that he could not remain calm. Just in case is he was spotted in a place like this by his &lt;br /&gt;
schoolmates…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, isn’t that Ash? Doesn&#039;t he look lovey dovey!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, it happens that it was Rebecca who was talking from behind. Besides, there was also a girl who was standing behind Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shuddering. Again, he had prepared himself to face Silvia’s iron fist, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps she was still troubled by yesterday’s young dragon’s incident, she was hiding behind Rebecca and remained silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 11===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To go to a place where the Ansal is absent, Rebecca brought the gang to the Dragon Fang public restaurant in an alley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is… Dragon Fang?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was slightly disappointed because he thought that Rebecca would bring them to a classy restaurant.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragon Fang is a restaurant for the public that provides good food with low price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm. It is a good restaurant. I have no complains on its quality and quantity. Also, it is half price for the student council members.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a lively shop full of laborers with well built bodies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since there is just an empty table for four, Rebecca sat together with Silvia while facing Ash and Eco on the other side of the table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Namely, Scarlet Empress and Ice Blue Princess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The two great beauties of the academy were sitting together with Ash. If they are spotted by Raymond or the rest, it would be natural if &lt;br /&gt;
they died in a fit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned her head to a side since she don’t intend to even utter a word. She was definitely still shadowed by yesterday’s incident. &lt;br /&gt;
Even though he felt like comforting her, however he had his hands full with Eco. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fyunn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco still looked like she was not fully awakened yet. Since that’s the case, he tried feeding her a few sips of water.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Rebecca ordered a three people’s sets, she smiled wryly at Ash and Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be frank, you had never failed to impress me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, you don’t have to apologize. Rather than that, I am actually enjoying myself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Enjoy…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was distressed and heartbroken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, remember to be careful and beware of the Ansal herb. Next time, it is better for you not to get close to Essarois. Though the Ansal Tea there is of top quality, it is still too early for Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will keep that in mind.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash answered, no one spoke a word. The reason was caused by none other than Silvia. She had kept her mouth shut for whole time &lt;br /&gt;
caused the people around her to become nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That being said… It is rare to see Rebecca-san together with Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, it was me who invited her out.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the incident of the young dragon had ended yesterday, Rebecca had indicated “ I will take care of the Princess herself.” However, it &lt;br /&gt;
seems that what is happening today had nothing to do with yesterday’s promise. It is also a surprise that Silvia would accept Rebecca’s &lt;br /&gt;
invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it was an order from the student council president, Silvia is still the country’s princess. She could have rejected the offer anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca smiled cheekily and took out a piece of paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you still remember the ticket for the one day date? The attached prize for the dragon riding festival. I must fulfill my promise and &lt;br /&gt;
Silvia had her duty to perform as the winner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh… Now I remember.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now it had started to make sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had totally forgotten about it. The winner in the dragon riding festival, could have a day’s date with Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the stubborn Silvia, the words ‘Duty of the winner’ is definitely the irresistible sure kill words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Together with yesterday’s problem, the princess had her mind crowded with many problems. Though I did try my best to help her, she had &lt;br /&gt;
been this way since the start.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Rebecca was regretting this, she still managed to squeeze out a cheerful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for the wait.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the moment, the waitress had arrived with their dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 12===&lt;br /&gt;
“I am back, Milgauss-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was enjoying the full view of Ansarivan, in the clock tower. With his mantle waving in the direction of the wind, he looked like &lt;br /&gt;
a veteran solider.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was in the disguised of a flower girl while Milgauss himself was dressed up as a mercenary.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 173.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was very silent on the top floor of the clock tower of the old shrine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the noisy streets looked as if they were from another world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Gazing at Milgauss back from behind, Anya thought that he was an ‘Unpredictable man…’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shrine that was facing St Durham Square was indeed very old. Usually it was not open to visitors. In addition to problem that was cause &lt;br /&gt;
by technical errors, the renovations for this shrine could not be continued and since then, it had remained closed for ten years.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Moreover, the security was light and anyone could break into the shrine after breaking open the lock at the back door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who knew this information is none other than Milgauss. Even when it is only information that only the locals knew of, Milgauss &lt;br /&gt;
treated it as if it was obvious to anyone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had always been curious of Milgauss&#039;s origin since the beginning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was a military man in the Empire’s army, his movement had always been graceful. It even felt like he was born in a noble &lt;br /&gt;
family. Even his pronunciations are beautiful and are fluent in both the Chevron language and Empire’s language.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How are the streets?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss’s question brought Anya back to her sense. Even though he was looking at her coldly through the mask, it still made Anya nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from Milgauss and Anya, there was not a third person in the clock tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though they are still on the job, Anya was a little disappointed. She certainly could not show the girly side of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was peaceful on the streets. Nobody is thinking about any wars.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan is a lively city. Anya had initially thought that the city that teaches breeders should be filled with killing intends. Yet, not &lt;br /&gt;
even a hint of war could be felt from this city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she was walking on the streets in disguised as a flower girl, Anya found out something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To the residents of Ansarivan,  the dragons are called ‘lovely beasts’ and not a military weapon. Ansarivan is never the so called &lt;br /&gt;
“military base for dragon training’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. In this street, not even a single soul thinks that dragons are military weapons. Ansarivan is a very friendly city.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss spoke in a nostalgic tone but it only lasted for a second.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However, Anya, there is no meaning behind the friendliness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss took a step forward and there was a coffin like box next to his feet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss silently opened the lid of the box. There is no corpse but a single sword in it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is not a normal sword. It was a broad sword with the size of a grown man.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like a typical zanbatou&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;斬馬刀a type of long sword&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; from the ancient drawings but its blade is black and its hilt was &lt;br /&gt;
decorated with beautiful jewels just like a refined masterpiece. With a closer look, they were bright dragon crystals.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss lifted the huge black sword and chanted the incantation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a little while, the clear blue sky was covered by dark clouds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 13===&lt;br /&gt;
Saute duck, Beef fillet cooked in wine, spare ribs, vegetable and mushroom soup, walnut bread…. All of the dishes were served one after another and they took away Ash’s attention.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The smell of the gravy and spices were stimulating his appetite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco reacted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once she found out about the smells of the foods, Eco had snapped out from the drunken state. Eco who cares for only crepes is after all, still a dragon. Her eyes were nailed to the meat dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry about the amount, just enjoy yourself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Rebecca could finish her sentence, she had already started stuffing herself with the duck. The skin was roasted nicely and its gravy &lt;br /&gt;
was dripping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mmm… This is the first time that I had tasted such a nice meat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes were glittering from being touched had her sight on the beef. She just simply took a piece of the beef with the fork and gave it a bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Funnn...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The beef seems to be very tasty since Eco looked as if she was in cloud nine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was also happy just by looking at her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, Silvia was working her knife and fork silently. Whenever Ash and her eyes met, she would glare at him to keep him &lt;br /&gt;
away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, Ash remembered what Rebecca had told him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;In my opinion, the princess is a perfectionist. She had always wanted to be the first. When she met a classmate who can ride any dragons, &lt;br /&gt;
she will take you as her rival.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In another words, the reason she tried to suppress the young dragon on her own is because of none other than Ash’s fault.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash made up his mind and spoke to Silvia:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Princess-sama… Is it really my fault?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know what you mean by that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her sharp glare pierced his forehead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am talking about yesterday’s incident… The way you acted yesterday isn’t really like you at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately, Silvia’s cheeks had turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Don’t be too full of yourself! Why would I even do it because of-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, a loud bang came from outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sudden thunderstruck had shocked Silvia. She was covering her ears with both her arms and was shaking tremendously. No one would ever &lt;br /&gt;
thought that she had this side to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a weird weather...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling about this and looked out from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The once clear sky was now covered by thick black clouds. The darkness outside made it hard to imagine that it was still noon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… That’s not a good sign.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was still eating suddenly stood up. Her face sank was staring intently at the sky outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ignoring Ash’s call, Eco ran out from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 14===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ashes to ashes, dust to dust. Appear! Child of magic technique. Thou shall be…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment Milgauss finished the incantation, under the sky filled with dark clouds, a change was happening on the streets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A dragon appeared in the middle of St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s… A Necromancia...!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya sub-consciously speaks of the word that should never be spoken of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Letters of blood red colour appeared on the surface of the huge sword that Milgauss was holding. They were words of an ancient language &lt;br /&gt;
that Anya could not understand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked as if blood were actually flowing out from the sword itself. The cloud had become thicker and sounds of the thunders had become &lt;br /&gt;
more and more frequent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia- A dragon that was resurrected using ashes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though she had heard about it before from Milgauss, it was still her first time seeing it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Summon the Necromancia and analyze its combat strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, determine whether it could be used in actual combat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the main purpose for the infiltration. Ansarivan is the selected location for the experiment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is like a hammer that smashes off the previous peaceful atmosphere.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This situation made Anya who just finished her investigation in the town bite her lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It made her think about her homeland that was full of blood and destruction a few years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-But…. This is war.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya reassured herself and clenched her fist while looking at Milgauss from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 15===&lt;br /&gt;
The group went chasing after Eco in the alleys had finally arrived at St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square was in a mess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The locals and the tourists were standing still like statues.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when they should be running away for their own sake, everyone just remain still and stare at the monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What is that thing!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he entered the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge beast was landing on the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that… A Dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its entire body is covered with fur and which made it looked similar to a Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, though it looked like a Maestro, its body fur was deep grey in colour and it smelled bad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Its body is rotting…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gasped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from that, its body size was surprisingly huge.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square that can hold thousands of people and right now had a quarter of it being occupied by a sole dragon. If it lifted its head up, it &lt;br /&gt;
height should be around the same height as the towers around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A roar that made people shivers was heard under the dark sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It sounds like hundreds of flutes not being blown uniformly. The sound was so terrible that it could even wake up the dead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The loud roar was followed was a strong gust that managed to topple the St Durham’s Statue in the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In a little while, the entire square was filled by a rotten smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only right now the people started running for their lives. While confronting with such a supernatural situation, the situation was no &lt;br /&gt;
longer under control. Although the Ansarivan’s security tried their best, it was obvious that they are lacking man power.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Followed by sounds of agonizing cries for help, many helpless people were continuously being pushed down. Even the customers in the &lt;br /&gt;
shops facing the Square were running out one by one.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The base for the St Durham Statue was in rubbles and the stone statue itself was lying on the ground. Eco was standing beside the statue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco was the dragon that brought all the troubles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is she even thinking!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was panicking and was trying to drag her back. However, he was blocked by the rest of the tourist who were running for their lives.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly removed her Beret and showed her horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems that she was trying to show that she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Refrain yourself, you lowly beast! Don’t you know who I am! Don’t you know that there are many excellent shops in this street?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, the entire square turned still because of her loud voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her imposing attitude touched Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it is just a little, after all, that weird thing is still a dragon and just maybe it understood Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon’s gaze slowly turned towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, they made eye contact with each other. But suddenly there were tentacles appearing from its body and was attacking Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted but the tentacles continued to wrap around Eco’s body and her four limbs and she was now hanging in mid air. Her uniform were &lt;br /&gt;
torn by the tentacles and her undergarments and skin were exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You! Knock it off!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was useless no matter how she struggled. Also, the more she struggled the tighter the grip of the tentacles became.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 184.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again the dragon roared and showed its pink mouth. A few teeth in its mouth that was arranged nicely dropped off. Only now Ash &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that even its teeth were rotting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, a light ball of purple electric appeared in its mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The purple electric light ball was then released followed by another roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Don!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A building facing the square was swallowed by the ball of light and was covered with dust.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Attacking magic…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbstrucked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a high level magic that could only be performed by Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The building that was destroyed was a four story building. The first floor was Café Essarois while it was an apartment from the second &lt;br /&gt;
floor onwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbfounded. Just how many innocent people were involved right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few moments later, the smoke cleared out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not only the building remains, but also there isn’t even a single causality.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in joy. Rebecca who was riding on Cú Chulainn in her Ark had cast the defense magic and neutralized the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Essarois is a place filled with the dreams of the girls. I as the student council of Ansarivan, I will have it protected until my death.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s declaration received cheers from the residents.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Rebecca wouldn’t let such cheers get over her head and she started reciting the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Appear! The certain hit magic spear!&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The summoned weapon appeared above Rebecca’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The magic spear turned into light particles and was shot towards the loathsome dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A new ball of light appeared in front of the dragon and it turned into seven layers of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It even knew defense magic!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!” pierced through the first layer of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then it continue was also broke apart easily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However it was obvious that it had slowed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time it broke through a layer, a large amount of magic was used up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fourth, the fifth… the sixth was penetrated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was praying while looking at Gáe Bolg’s path.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then, there was a crack in the seventh shield and it was pierced through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time when Ash was cheering, Gáe Bolg exploded at the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The flash caused their eyes to be blinded and it was followed by a loud bang.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The thick smoke had the dragon covered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was thinking that Rebecca had won.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the securities that should have led the people to safety were cheering happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then, the smoke started to clear up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The cheers were silent up by a hole in a head caused by the explosion. Even so, the dragon shouldn’t be able to live on after its brain &lt;br /&gt;
was destroyed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is that thing…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shivering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon has not yet fallen and Eco was still hanging in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next moment, the wound on the head started regenerating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as ifs the wound itself is another living being.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the wound was healed, the dragon returned to its original looks but its eyes looked even more menacing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, it swung its tail.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After seeing it using high class magic, Ash was surprised to see it change its style to physical attacks. It seems that Rebecca too, was &lt;br /&gt;
also caught off guard by it which led her to being slow in her reactions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca shouted in surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it was just a simple physical attack, the buildings behind the dragon were demolished like toy bricks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, they could only pray that the people inside the buildings could escape safely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Curses…!’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash clenched his teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could watch the dragon turn the city in ruins as a bystander.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Ash thought of a single person. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Milgauss, the masked man.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the day he met him in the forest, the still cog had been connected and started spinning. However, it was his instinct that told him &lt;br /&gt;
that. There was never a single proof.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What in the world is that dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once he heard the familiar voice, Ash was brought back to his sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, he saw that Silvia had arrived at the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Silvia saw the weird dragon, she fell on her backside and was shivering in fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately came to her side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Get a hold of yourself! Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though Ash was shouting loudly, Silvia never answered. Seeing such a supernatural sight had caused her to lose all her sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that instant, a flying dragon appeared on top of St Durham Square. It was obviously a Maestro since it had silvery white fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash! Bring the Princess as far away as you can!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a familiar voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was in charge of the accounts in the student council and also one of Ash’s few friends.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Max!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Leave this to me!... Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max wasn’t able to finish his sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon seeing that a new opponent had appeared immediately gave out a loud roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it released its ball of light with purple electric.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Arian!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Max’s command, Arianrhod immediately cast its defense magic. Though it managed to reduced the strength of the light ball, still it &lt;br /&gt;
had hit and fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Originally, a dragon shouldn’t be able to fly with such a build. It’s wings are only for decoration purposes. It was magic itself that &lt;br /&gt;
enables it to fly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he saw Arianrhod fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For it to even bring down Arianrhod with just a single hit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Arianrhod had no longer any magic to defend against the second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca who foresaw that ordered Cú Chulainn to glide down in the area in front of Max and Arianrhod. Without delaying a single moment, &lt;br /&gt;
she cast her defense magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the defending party, Rebecca had totally lost her mobility.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the worst situation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only choice left is to wait for the Holy Dragners of Lautreamont to arrive. But could the town people really hold on until then?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the entire town were already used to the peaceful life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For example, the entire strength of the security office was just hunting rifles and wooden batons. For offices where they have dragner &lt;br /&gt;
working there could only be found in the big cities.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was approaching Rebecca slowly. It probably thought of Rebecca as first to be removed as a target.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time the weird dragon took a step, the earth shook and the beautiful tiles turned into rubbles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as if it was a moving hill. Numerous tentacles had appeared right now and were gripping on Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aahhh! What the hell is this thing trying to do!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco continued to struggle. Even though she lost all her mobility, she still had decided that she is not going to ever give up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s it. I must save Eco.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After all, Eco is Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She is none other than Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is me… Am I able to do it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash questioned himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An answer flashed through his mind. It gave Ash shivers.  But still, it is a gamble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the instant, Ash remembered Eco enjoying her crepe happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on, it still hasn’t reached that stage yet… Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were still many nice things in this word that Eco knew nothing of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was not going to let her die like this before teaching her everything. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally made up his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will protect this city. Everybody. And also Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yet, there was still one more problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash needs Silvia’s cooperation to make his plan success.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama! Please get a hold of yourself!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He shouted towards Silvia who was still sitting on the ground in shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Silvia’s expression was still blank and continued to shiver. It was as if she is a totally different person from her usual &lt;br /&gt;
majestic self.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t joke with me…. What kind of a Princess are you! Where is the usual family motto! In such times shouldn’t you prove to us what &lt;br /&gt;
exactly is a royalty made of!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash lifted his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will apologize first! Sorry!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And he gave Silvia a slap on the face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sound was clear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ash?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was staring at Ash dumbstrucked. At least her thoughts were now focused. Although her red cheek was hurting, she had finally calmed&lt;br /&gt;
down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama, I had a request. Please summon Lancelot immediately and bring me with you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Bring you? Where to?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was pointing at the moving dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To be more specific, it was above the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately Silvia knew what he was thinking right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Definitely not! Are you even thinking properly!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s anger raises and stood up suddenly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Good, this is great. This is the Silvia that I knew of.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 006-007.jpg|thumb|&#039;&#039; Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted &lt;br /&gt;
to the dragon: “Your opponent is me!” &#039;&#039;]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted to the dragon:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Your opponent is me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strictly speaking, Ash didn’t even know if the dragon could even notice his voice. Basically the reason for him to shout was to keep his thoughts &lt;br /&gt;
from wavering. Still, the dragon did stop its footsteps.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It turned its head slowly and glared at both Ash and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia facial expression changed immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m alright. Princess-sama please summon Lancelot immedi…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could finish his sentence, the dragon shot a ray of light at them. It was definitely a different type of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash only understood that a strong energy shot pass the area above his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He raised his head in terror only to find out that the building behind him was crumbling. The three storey building behind him experienced &lt;br /&gt;
a direct hit from the attacking magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
How high exactly is the temperature need to melt debris of the building? Before Ash could even think about it, the building had crumbled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pile of wreckage was falling towards Ash and Silvia like a waterfall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the spur of the moment, Ash tried to protect Silvia. He could only shut his eyes and pray.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 16===&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey…! Until when are you going to stop acting in such manner?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s cold voice had given him the push to open his eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash though that he was buried under the pile of wreckage, but-.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt the wind blowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am flying…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia were in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then Ash realized that he was riding on Lancelot’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seems like Silvia had summoned Lancelot in the nick of time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The streets down below looked far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even St Durham Square looked miniature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge body that occupied a quarter of its space still exists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem is Ash was grabbing on to Silvia who was holding the reins from behind and his right hand was even grabbing on to her breast.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The soft feeling made him lost his calm. Since just now where the building started to crumble, his thought had always been blank.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t loosen your grip! You may fall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s warning made him calm down his thoughts and he started apologizing to Silvia. However, he continued grabbing on her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Obviously Ash had also shifted the position of his right hand. It was probably that he was thinking too much but somehow Silvia’s face had &lt;br /&gt;
turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, the dragon released its second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot in return roared loudly and cast its defense magic. A huge amount of pressure could be felt. Yet, Lancelot remained unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just as expected.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash praised.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This kind of level is child’s play for Lancelot. Back to the main point… Are you sure you want to do this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, please bring me to the appointed location. It must be none other than me to execute it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… Then I can only have faith in you. Lancelot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ooooon.” Under Silvia’s order, Lancelot roared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were gliding downwards towards the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The third and the fourth wave of attack were released but Lancelot avoided all of them with an amazing speed without even activating its &lt;br /&gt;
defence magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The distances between both parties were getting shorter until their entire fields of vision were covered by the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking for Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had prepared himself for the worst possible situation, where Eco was swallowed whole by the dragon. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Until now, this is the only chance where he can save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made up his mind and stood on Lancelot. To keep his balance, he held on to Silvia’s shoulder. Silvia remained silent while allowing him &lt;br /&gt;
to do so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The countdown begins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Ten, nine, eight, seven…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were getting closer to the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Three, two, one…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot flew pass the weird body in a very close distance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped towards the wall of grey furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a ‘Bump’ Ash landed safely. However, he slipped and nearly fell off but managed to cling to the furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon felt something on its head and was pissed. It shook its head vigorously. For that short moment, Ash felt like he was going to &lt;br /&gt;
fall off anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He crawled with all his might until he finally reached the space in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thought there are still many places that could be considered, it was his instinct that told Ash that this was the best place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With both of his foot on stable ground, Ash immediately stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, he thought about the feeling of his first ride on a dragon. Basically the situation was the same as yesterday where a &lt;br /&gt;
young dragon lost control. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A newborn Starda had gone rampage because its master had mistakenly fed it with Ansal Tea.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when the Grooms were in a fix trying to keep the situation under control, Ash who had just passed by, by a chance jumped onto the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He just had a hunch that he was able to do it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, he received a good amount of scolding from the school’s director even though he managed to calm the dragon down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s right, that young dragon was called- Lancelot.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That’s right. I totally forgot about it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled wryly. The Maestro that Silvia was riding on and the drunken Strada fitted perfectly in his memories.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He finally realized why Silvia was obsessed comparing herself to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash gained his confidence. Since he was able to calm Lancelot down, this weird dragon should not be a problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s begin…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Through his feet, he forced his conscious into the dragon like growing tree roots and spoke to the dragon gently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From now onwards, I am your master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon stopped its footsteps in reply to Ash’s words. Although it still continued growling, at the least it had stopped moving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s it. This is how it should be.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was smiling from the bottom of his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was thinking of giving it one more push, the dragon swung its head upwards like a trebuchet. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who was not prepared for this was thrown out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just moments before knocking into a building, Lancelot flew to his rescue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Phew… Saved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat on Lancelot and was just behind Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have never seen an idiot like you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia scolded while she was holding Lancelot’s reins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just a little more I could have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking with a serious tone. There was not even a hint of him joking. Silvia who had turned speechless looked just like a &lt;br /&gt;
graceful woman from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash said made sense. He was going to ride it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 17===&lt;br /&gt;
“Haaa… Haaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco looked pale. She was hurt by her inability to break free due to her lack of strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… For a descendant of a mighty dragon…. To lose to a low born dragon…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was provoking the dragon…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thrown out and had made a nice curve with it but was saved by Lancelot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is he trying to do?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was horrified.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash was doing was reckless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right. Ash was trying to tame this weird dragon by riding it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there is to be a single error, Ash will be squashed like a bug.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! What are you doing? Why don’t you run away!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who could endure it no longer shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! I will save you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash replied while sitting on Lancelot’s back. He seemed confident judging from his tone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That sentence had made her realized that Ash tried to save her instead of running away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was struggling to escape the tentacles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But the more she struggled, the tighter their grips became.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco, the dragon’s belly split open.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On both of the sides of the belly were aligned with row of sharp fine teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like an insect eating plat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It must have been a bad joke.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned pale.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Numerous tentacles appeared and Eco was swallowed into the mouth that looked like the gates of hell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she almost lost conscious, she could barely hear Ash’s cry&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 18===&lt;br /&gt;
“It seems that you have woken up, my sleeping beauty.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The bewitching voice had woken Eco up and she hurriedly looked around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A mysterious room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The floor was laid by square tile of black and white alternating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beside the four walls were statues that had not been completed. An incomplete human body. Incomplete beasts. Models of castle and &lt;br /&gt;
shrines. And also transports that Eco had never seen before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco who was sitting on the bed was a suspicious lady. The lady was sitting on an antique chair lazily. Her brilliant red dress looked extra conspicuous in the monochrome room.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 205.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the lady’s head were horns of an adult dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the Dragon Workshop. Also, I am called Navi.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Navi…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You just have to take me as another personality that is responsible to teach the immature you… Don’t you think that this is great?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t really understand. Also, what’s with your appearance?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting uneasy since the first time she saw Navi.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her looks, hair style and skin colour were exactly like Eco’s. The only difference is that Navi was a few years older.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hee hee. Are you worrying about my body? This design is based on a five years older version of you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wh-What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Still, this is just an assumption. You just may not grow up this well. Especially your breast.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi purposely put emphasis on the breast and deliberately shook them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad for being made fun of..&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph! It is not like bigger is better!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course, even the shape is important. But for you… Worrying about the size should be your main concern.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a detestable woman! I will squash you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Now lets us stop this useless talk as he is going to die if we let him continue what he was doing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a single wave from her right arm, a crystal ball appeared. A high concentration of lights was released by it and a projection of Ash &lt;br /&gt;
struggling with the weird looking opponent could be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He is still reckless!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking up towards the screen which was the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In a first look, this is not a bad idea. After all he was born with that gift to ride any kind of dragons. However, this opponent is too &lt;br /&gt;
much for him to handle. He had no chance of winning against that Necromancia.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Necromancia?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. It is a dragon that died once but was resurrected by human technology.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk! What should we do…? There is nothing in my ability to help him.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was saddened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, do you know why a holy dragon is called a Maestro.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was puzzled by the sudden question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before the existence of the secret agreement of Albion, the holy dragons were craft workers. This dragon workshop was built by a group of &lt;br /&gt;
great Maestros. The Ark is only one of the many things created by the Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi was trying to say.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are telling me that he is lacking an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good answer. And of course the only person who can present him with the Ark is only you as his Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… How can I…? That’s it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco remembered her conversation with Ash in St Druham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Hmm, if it is the blueprint for the Ark, I have the access to it.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-If that’s the case, can you use the blueprint… To create an Ark?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Are you crazy! That’s is nothing but an imitation.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it is an imitation, it is still an Ark. Certainly, Eco&#039;s pride does not allow her to make a copy from her ancestor, but this &lt;br /&gt;
was an emergency.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco accessed the Dragweiss immediately and focused her thoughts. Without delay, the projection on the ceiling started changing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice either.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since year 10 of A.S.B where the secret agreement of Albion was made, there were many blueprints left by the dragons. Apart from the Arks &lt;br /&gt;
that were worn by humans, there were also those that were made as a trial.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The total amount of blueprints easily exceeds a thousand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was disappointed after read the blueprints.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every single blueprint was full of details and even copying may become a difficult task.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come on! How am I to copy this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was feeling troubled, the thought of St Durham’s Statue flash pass.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She instantly summoned St Durham’s Ark’s blueprint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Time of production	Year 846 A.S.B/ Month of Libra/ 2nd day.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Name of knight		Durham Lautreamont &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Ark Weapon		Magic sword Caliber&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to the present, the design and structure five hundred years ago was simpler.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is this Ark, I should be able to do it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You’re naïve.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why? Supposing I had no experience in making an Ark, I still inherit the basic knowledge. So what are you even-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It just doesn’t work that way. An Ark is an armour that was custom made for its knight. If you just make a copy of a previous work, he &lt;br /&gt;
won’t be able to wear it. If you force it on him, it may even endanger his life.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What! Then this isn’t even an option to begin with!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hehe. When did I mention that? The Dragweiss had collected a huge amount of blueprints since the old times. It is possible to select &lt;br /&gt;
parts of the armour that fits him from this amount of blueprints.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By shaking a crystal, an infinite amount of blueprints appeared on the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Could it be that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi means.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We will select parts of the armour that fits him and reorganized them.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, can I do it? For starters, how am I going to know if the parts suit him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was worrying about the most important part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before an Ark was made, it requires that data of the person wearing it. First is the height and then follow by a mountain full of &lt;br /&gt;
information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara. If you are talking about his data, I already have it here with me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled cheekily touched Eco’s forehead with the crystal ball. In an instant, all the information in the crystal ball flowed into &lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… Is his data?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was able to construct a three dimensional structure using the huge amount of information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco blushed. Ash image in her mind was stark naked. Every single detail on his body was clearly recorded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-A perfect data…. But how did this data get into your hands?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I was expecting something similar to this to happen. Just before you were born, I sneaked into his dream. Actually I finish collecting my &lt;br /&gt;
data in just a night but since he is too cute, I had been doing that for a whole week.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How dare you toy with my pet dog!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi was laughing in front of the angry Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see that someone is jealous.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-There is no way that I-I….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so? But why are you blushing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am gonna squash you!... Erm, this is not the right time and place to argue!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit. So let’s begin.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi slowly stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know whether I am capable of doing it but… this is the only choice left!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally made up her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 19===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it had been three times, Ash never gave up. On the other hand, he was saved by Lancelot every single time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucky for him, the grey dragon had Lancelot locked on as its target. Every single attack was directed towards Lancelot which in turn, &lt;br /&gt;
reduced the amount of destruction towards the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, there is a limit to the amount of magic that Lancelot possesses. In truth, it flying speed had been greatly reduced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is at its limit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood her frustration from her words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. This time will be the final!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia signal Lancelot to change its direction and dive down towards the middle of the square. Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tell me that is not true…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was suddenly swallowed into the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in dismay.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are not able to make it in time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was eaten whole by that monster right in front of Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!... It&#039;s my fault for being weak…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t give up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia reminded Ash who felt that he was going to break apart in despair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She may still be alive! If you give up at this moment, she will definitely die for sure!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately kept his cool. Silvia was right. If not because of she was holding the reins with both hands, she is sure to give him a &lt;br /&gt;
slap on the face like what he did to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, the Seikoku on his left arm started hurting. It was the same feeling as the time where Eco was kidnapped by Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reaction from the Seikoku made him felt relief.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This proofs that his link with Eco had not yet been cut off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yeah… I mustn’t give up yet. Princess-sama! Please bring me to where the monster is!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again, Lancelot started diving downwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 20===&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me a break! Why can’t I get it right!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was shouting in desperation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The opponent that Ash was battling was a Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its element is ‘dark’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Naturally, the Ark that she is going to present to Ash should have the ‘light’ element in it. It had been a common knowledge since the &lt;br /&gt;
ancient times that light can conquer darkness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…! Just as expected, this is impossible…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sitting on her knees in disappointment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Tears were dripping from her eyes. It was the first time Eco ever cried from the feeling of regret.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Don’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Eco heard something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The owner of the sound was none other than Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it him…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco lifted her head up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was still continuing his fight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While fighting against the dragon, he was calling out to Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“I will save you! I still believe that you are still alive! That is why… That is why, you mustn&#039;t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These were not spoken by words. They were spoken through the Astral Flow that connects the dragon and its breeder. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She felt warmth from the bottom of her heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco knew from where this warmth came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Druing her time as an Orphan, Eco had always been inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She could never forget about this warm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was going against the odds, Ash never ran away from anything.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He even dare face such a monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For how many times had he stood on the dragon’s head and for how many times had he been thrown out. Right now, his clothes were like rags &lt;br /&gt;
and there were many obvious bruise and wounds on his body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, his eyes never stop glittering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco clenched her fists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Unforgivable!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s it. Ash was fighting for her sake and her pride doesn&#039;t allow her to stay still while waiting to be saved.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… It is totally unforgivable… That is why…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her tired body was once again filled with magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her overflowing amounts of magic crystallized outside of her body and were sparkling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco never once expect herself to have such a large amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her field of vision widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could not keep herself from smiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Almete, Gorjal, Peto… Espaldar……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought the amount of blueprints in the Dragweiss is abnormally large, the Eco right now had the ability to handle all of them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Brafoneras, Faldaje… Escarcelas……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In among the parts that suits Ash, Eco selects the ones with light element and combined them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Bufetas, Hombreras, Brazales… Codales….., Antebrazos……. Manoplas……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to those who create the Ark from scraps, Eco’s actions may seem detestable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could never be able to object for shaming the tradition and placing a curse on her ancestral.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Quijotes… Guardas… Grebas…… Escarpes……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However to Eco, it did be a worst sin to just be a bystander and witness all the fun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco no longer hesitates.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With mixed emotions, she had chosen the final part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“-Espolón!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, Eco had opened the gate that leads to a brand new world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 21===&lt;br /&gt;
No matter how badly he failed, he had lost count of the number of times he returned. Right now, he was lying on Lancelot’s back in anguish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pain was so immersed that he could no longer feel his limbs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is really at its limit. This will be the last chance we have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s voice was obviously shaking. They really must succeed. The moment Lancelot used up all its magic and can no longer fly, everything &lt;br /&gt;
that was done will be in vain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan will be in ruins and Eco will definitely die.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It will be impossible to save all the refuges unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… What should I do…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was in a pinch…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“You are the one who shouldn’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s voice was heard in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco? Eco! You are still alive!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had been sometime since she was swallowed by the dragon but Ash could clearly hear her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Isn’t that obvious! No matter what I do, I can never look for a substitute for my useless pet dog, so just take this as a gift.”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Take what?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next instant, Ash was surrounded by dazzling lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His eyes’ widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An outline slowly appeared in the light and transformed into a brilliant armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Isn’t that an… Ark! It is godly…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia squeaked when she turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had a strange feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a heavy looking armour but it doesn’t feel that way.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps it was the strong amount of magic that removed the weight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though he just wore it, he could feel an overflowing amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“With this… I can never lose.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled confidently and spoke facing Eco who was inside the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you Eco! I had received your feelings!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, Eco replied with a scold.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“D-Don’t joke with me! That is just a mimic! Not an original! I have never thought of presenting you with it at all!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was certainly full of objections.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go, Princess- sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had been equipped with the Ark was full of spirits.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia didn’t waste a single moment and ordered Lancelot to dive down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it had used up most of its magic, it still answered Ash and Silvia’s call by raising its speed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking to her from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… What is it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is a good dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What does that have to do with this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why you should never again try to ride on another dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Are you an idiot! What are you saying at a time like this…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the best time to tell you this. You had Lancelot who is the best Pal. So, what is the thing that you are craving for?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I… Definitely knew that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot made a great roar in reply to Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are getting faster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge grey body was getting closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now’s the time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt that his body had blend into the wind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After drawing out a curve in the air, Ash landed on the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks to the Ark, Ash could even stand on the dragon without clinging to its fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could even feel the dragon’s body heat through the armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at this moment, Ash was one with the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be wrong. The Ark had pushed Ash’s gift to its maximum potential.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From his feet, his consciousness was growing into the dragon like roots.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If Ash was to be described as a tree, then the dragon is the earth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash could feel the dragon’s rejecting feeling in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It doesn’t matter whether you are god or even the devil himself…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was like a tower in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For what I know, every dragon will bound to be ridden by me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, there was a change in the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its folded wings were suddenly flapping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was flying towards the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 22===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Seems like we had stepped into an ambush…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss sighed when he saw the Necromancia flying away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was the person controlling the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge sword in his hands was not only the switch, it was also the controller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Milgauss was never successful in making the Necromancia fly but that boy had it proved to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, Milgauss was dead calm. It was just as expected.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was sweating when she looked at Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were cold sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy who was riding the Necromancia away from the city is THAT BOY.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had never reported to Milgauss about their meeting in the streets. She didn’t expect the boy to appear right there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Where exactly did I meet that boy before…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was trembling from that single sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, whatever.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luckily, MIlgauss never question any further.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The experiment ended with a failure, but we still obtain some useful results. That boy and also… that girl.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Girl?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was confused. Did he mean Rebecca Randall the Ark Dragner?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or is it Princess Silvia who was flying on Lancelot?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However she was wrong.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t the Necromancia capture a girl? The one with horns. She is probably the one who presented the boy with the Ark. Even though she &lt;br /&gt;
looks human… She might be descendant of a dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I never…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss had no intention of speaking anymore. He silently kept the huge sword and gazed at Anya through the mask.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will retreat for now.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya knelt down immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 23===&lt;br /&gt;
“I did it…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon spread it wings and flew up towards the sky with Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was getting higher and higher and further away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, Ansarivan town, the plains beside and Fianna Forest looked like toys.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was all according to his plan. First he had to bring this dangerous dragon away to ensure to safety of the townspeople.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could understand the dragon’s thought through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The muzzy thoughts suddenly turned clear. If felt as if the Ark had translated the dragon’s feeling into words that Ash understands.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was anger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hatred too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And also- Love.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see. You also had a master in the past.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash didn’t know where this dragon came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He only knew that this was just a normal dragon that grew up in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it told Ash its wish through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood the sad wish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Necromancia? Something that disobey the logic of this world? Do you really want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It once again assured Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It trusted as like it did to its master.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you really sure that you want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia was asking for Ash to kill it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the only way out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… what about Eco after I killed you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was worried about killing the Necromancia because Eco was still inside the Necromancia. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After knowing what Ash thinking was, the dragon reassured him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ermm… Can I really trust you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia nodded its head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It promised to protect Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Alright. Leave everything to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he had made up his mind, an image of a sword appeared in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the Ark was created hastily, Ash still had obtained the same power as an Ark Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Similar to Rebecca’s Gáe Bolg, every Ark Dragner must possess an Ark weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was glowing and an immense amount of magic flowed out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The details of the Ark Weapon were circulating inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a sword. A sword with light as its element.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Following the information, Ash chanted the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Appear! The sword that was graced by the light! Please lend me all your powers that are able to repent darkness…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The area on Ash’s forehead was flooding with light.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A tremendous amount of magic was flowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A huge sword that was taller than Ash appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Aix-les-Bains!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After lifting Aix-les-Bains easily, Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuoooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was falling. Starting from the dragon’s head to its belly, the sword that wields light slashed through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon split into two.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sword transformed into silvery lights and cut through its bones and flesh.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The tough body of the dragon burst into parts like a paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The destroyed body turned into grey particles and was blown away by the winds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Eco was thrown up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was probably thrown up by the dragon before the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was diving at Eco’s direction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was also accelerating using the magic of the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was not even a hint of fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stretched out his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco stretched out hers too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both of them were close, but yet so far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pressure from the strong wind seemed to be able to cut through skin but Ash still shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made a kick in the air by releasing the magic in the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco once again stretched out her arms further after being called.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was the first time Eco call his name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fingers met.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then they felt the weight on their palms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now they were grabbing each other’s hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not wanting Eco to leave his side again, Ash made a pull.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was embracing his chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While hugging the delicate body, Ash could feel her body heat. He had decided to land on the plains below.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With the protection from the Ark, they remain unharmed even after falling from a few hundreds of meters from above.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dark cloud in Ansarivan had disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the horizon, the sun appeared once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We did it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he smiled, the Ark broke into light particles and disappeared. Similarly, Aix-les-Bains which was in his belt had also disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as Eco had said, this was just hastily made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it did actually manage to save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you, Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Its nothing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco turned to a side. She really hasn’t changed at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he started smiling, his smile turned into horror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… What’s with your fist?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her fist was bleeding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Surely it was hurt when she was caught by the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-This is nothing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash held her hand and licked her wound. It was a usual practice in Ash’s hometown when children hurt themselves.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It may be obvious to Ash but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad and started rampaging.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! It is just for disinfection, disinfection I say!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who turned embarrassed bit his neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! This is not a joke! I might even die…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was probably tired finally calmed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting uneasy but Eco was already fast asleep. He showed sign of relieved and smile bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A boy who can ride any dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Some corrections should be made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or at least until he found a way to handle Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Dark Gray Invasion ~A.S.B.1365.5~&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2|Chapter 2]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354079</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354079"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T15:40:06Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 18 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 3 - Necromancia&#039;s Attack==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
The month of Aries had ended and it was the arrival of the month of Taurus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem concerning Eco&#039;s lodging was put on hold and no decision had been made yet because of the incident where Angela had become a teacher in just a flash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In short, Eco was still sleeping on Ash&#039;s bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem they were facing was, Apollo House which was the dormitory where Ash was staying at is a male&#039;s dorm. Furthermore, Eco is an extremely beautiful girl as long as she kept her mouth shut.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ash was staying with such a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was obvious some weird rumours would emerge among the students who were living in Apollo House.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
The class room of the first year advanced course.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When school was about to dismissed, Raymond walked towards Ash&#039;s table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yo, Ash. Why don’t we go and have some fun since we are free?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, I have to go to the student council’s office.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Student council…? Why?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err, the president asked for me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had informed Ash to find a free time to visit the student council’s office about a week ago. Since Eco had gotten used to the campus &lt;br /&gt;
life, it should be about time for him to make his visit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it true? I think Rebecca Nee-san should have many questions for you. Or many she wants to blame you for something… Just by thinking…&lt;br /&gt;
Haaa… Haaa.” &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have nothing to say to you…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err… did &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; goes well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash asked while Raymond pushed his face nearer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond was looking totally serious.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Aren’t you teaching Eco on the bed?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Raymond had ended his sentence, the entire class turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was looking at Ash with suspicious eyes. Everyone in the academy knew that Ash’s pal was born as a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t say something that will make people misunderstood! Don’t you know that Eco is a dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond smile sinisterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Right, anyway I knew that you don’t even have the guts to do &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then just don’t say something that will make people misunderstood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haha… Could it be that you are the one who was being taught?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because Raymond who had hit the bull’s eye with just a guess, Ash was a little taken aback but he dare not speak back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
The student council office was located at the highest floor of the academy’s centre tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gulped when he was standing in front of the grand door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From a long time ago, Ansarivan’s student council had a huge power. They not only dealt with the academy’s council but they also have the right &lt;br /&gt;
of speech in the city council. According to some rumours, the student council president’s power is superior to the mayor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please enter.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before he even knocked, the student council president’s voice could be heard. This made Ash tremble a little.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for interrupting.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He timidly opened the door and walked into the office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was crossing her arms while standing by the window that was at the far end of the room. There wasn’t another soul in this room. When he &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that they were alone, Ash who had felt uneasy from the start was now sweating nervously.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahhh, Ash. You finally came!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca turned around and stared at Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With her marble statue like beauty together with her crimson coloured hair, it let out an amazing feeling. Even her body proportion outshone &lt;br /&gt;
other people. Her curves were perfect and not even her uniform could hide it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca Randall who had received the Ark-Dragner title was not only well known in Ansarivan. Her name was widely spread in the entire Knight &lt;br /&gt;
Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even in the well known Holy Dragners of Lautreamont had only one in a ten of their members who received the title Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from that, the requirements to obtain the title Ark-Dragner is very strict.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fuu. Don’t be shy. Just take a seat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-Yes…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat at a corner of the sofa, frightened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca sat beside Ash without even a second thought. He smelled something refreshing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was uneasy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was nervous because of their close distance where they can feel each other’s breath. Since there was also a sofa located right opposite, &lt;br /&gt;
logically speaking, Rebecca should have sat there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Rebecca showed a playful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To get to know another person better, sitting side by side is the best choice, this is common knowledge for dating.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Is it…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Young man, you must remember it. Next time, if you are on a date, remember not to sit opposite of her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, dates or whatever… It is still a far away dream.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was blushing in embarrassment while Rebecca unexpectedly was enjoying that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… In another words, no one had noticed your true value yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“True value?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If for me, I still haven’t determined how good of a man you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly stopped smiling and moved towards the main topic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In short, I am here to discuss the things regarding Eco with you… Saying that, what is she doing when you are in class? You can’t just keep &lt;br /&gt;
her in the man’s dormitory right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, Cosette is helping me with that. I don’t think that it will be a problem.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the kidnapping incident a few days ago had ended, Ash had told Cosette his trouble when they were chit chatting. Cosette immediately &lt;br /&gt;
volunteered to help take care of Eco. Since Costte also had nothing to do when Silvia was attending classes, she can accompany Eco in Ash’s &lt;br /&gt;
place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only think he worried about was whether Eco will accept Cosette. Until today, it seemed like there was no such problem. In front of &lt;br /&gt;
Cosette, Eco was always acting mature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Cosette huh? There won’t be a problem if it is her. I had met Cosette a few times before and she is not someone to be underestimated.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So Rebecca-san also thinks so?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile because he was thinking something bad about Cosette.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Umm… It is said that when the Paladin sent Princess Silvia to Ansarivan, about a hundred maids and guards were sent together.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! It must be troublesome…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Princess of course had gone against the Paladin’s will. In the end, because the Paladin insisted, she brought Cosette alone along with &lt;br /&gt;
her. Judging from that, Cosette is something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Back to the topic, you are also something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was looking at him sharply until he started to sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you talking about?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When had you started to have this close relationship with Cosette?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s beautiful face was getting closer. The refreshing smell was getting stronger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being asked something unexpected, Ash’s head started spinning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How dare you hide something from me? It isn’t good you know. By the way, you are not thinking that Rebecca Randall is someone simple &lt;br /&gt;
right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s face was getting closer and closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought there was a faint hint of a smile by her lips, her eyes were not smiling at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Alright! Please promise me that… Don’t tell anyone about this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, I guess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca nodded and moved her head backwards back to her original position.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash took a deep breath and told her everything about the incident where Eco had been kidnapped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
The seventh dragon house was specially built for Maestros. Apart from Rebecca’s Cú Chulainn, there were four more Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Take it slowly, there are many more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Lancelot was gulping down the thickly sliced meat, Silvia smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Normally, jobs like feeding, preparing the beds, balancing the nutrients, cleaning… were done by the groom of the dragon house. The breeders &lt;br /&gt;
on the other hand just need to focus their thoughts on studying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However Silvia had always taken care of Lancelot on her own.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyday, she will always visit the dragon house five times. She will feed it on her own, clean the dragon house and even give Lancelot a bath. &lt;br /&gt;
If Lancelot felt itchy, she will sure to be there to give a scratch on that spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Silvia’s care, Lancelot who was born as a Strada had grown into a beautiful Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her achievement was acknowledged and she had received the title Dragner in the young age of fourteen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The title Dragner can only be received by a breeder whose Pal is a Maestro. It had been a tradition in the Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Silvia was never satisfied with her current achievement. Her aim was to become a ‘Great Dragner’. Just the title Dragner could &lt;br /&gt;
never satisfy her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright Lancelot… Next will be an Ark-Dragner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia patted Lancelot after she spoke out her thought. Its silvery white fur was tick and felt nice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Silvia pressed her hands against her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s proof of a Breeder the Seikoku was at the middle of her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her memories when she was seven came into her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To obtain an orphan from the mother dragon, Silvia had entered Albion Forest alone. However, she injured her leg and was crying while standing. &lt;br /&gt;
She left the palace with the thought of she will definitely become a breeder but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then there was a young boy who reached out to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Like Silvia, the young guy was here on the same day for the Orphan Ceremony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-I will give you a piggyback while we look for mother dragon together.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s heart beat increased when she thought about the guy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If not for his help, Silvia would never have become a Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… I had made a promise with him. I will become a great knight. If I did anything that should not be done by an owner, I want you &lt;br /&gt;
to scold me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadly, Lancelot only had its eyes on the meat and was not bothered by Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk, what a child you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia shook her head and gave a wry smile. Although it had become a Maestro, it was still a young dragon. Compare to Cú Chulainn, its body &lt;br /&gt;
size was definitely smaller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Speaking of that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was thinking about Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only student who dared to challenge Silvia Lautreamont.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, Silvia had won the match but she didn’t have the feeling of victory. On the other hand it can be said as a losing feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had given Silvia a help on the race’s position arrangement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She clearly understood her attitude of looking down on her enemy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only that she had never thought that such a despicable method will be used. If not for Ash who made use of the chance, Silvia would not be &lt;br /&gt;
able to win.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash Blake… I have never seen such an irregular guy. He could even ride on other people’s Pal as he liked which is out of common knowledge. In the &lt;br /&gt;
end, what is the trick he was using-?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Silvia was mumbling, there was a cry of help from outside of the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon has gone mad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash had told her everything, Rebecca sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… For such a thing to happen. Angela-sensei is also a troublesome person. She is one of the best in the continent in dragon researching.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had never thought that teacher could be such a great person…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is a total dragon maniac. She had thought of becoming a Dragner since she was still a child. In the end, she was not selected in the &lt;br /&gt;
Orphan Ceremony…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will never hand an orphan to her if I am the mother dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Perhaps not being selected had left her with traumas until today. However, Angela-sensei’s skills and knowledge are the real stuff. Lets observe her for the time being.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Observe…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t hide his sad looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it is possible, he doesn’t want to have anything to do with her for a second time…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right! There is one more thing about Eco. It is about when you are in the forest and you said that you had encountered some uninvited &lt;br /&gt;
guest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash with a ‘Hah’ lifted his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Many things had happened after Eco was born and he had forgotten about it. The suspected to be Empire’s soldier was lurking around in the &lt;br /&gt;
Knight Country territory. This is not something to be overlooked.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In the end, just who are those two?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The masked man called Milgauss with an extraordinary temperament.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl who wanted to have Ash killed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… ‘Milgauss’ should be a nickname. It doesn’t look like an Empire’s surname. Perhaps he could be the Empire’s agent. If that’s the case, &lt;br /&gt;
this is not a problem that a mere student could solve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had never thought of Rebecca as a ‘mere student’, but he chose to keep this thought to himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, I will pass your message to the peace keepers’ office. However, if the masked man is from the Empire’s army, I am afraid that the &lt;br /&gt;
peace keepers will also be helpless.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she remained calm, the way she had spoken was terrifying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It should be alright, right? Ansarivan is an academy for breeders and not a military school. It shouldn’t be targeted by the Empire.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We are not the military’s backup. The paths that a Breeder can take is not only limited to joining the Knight corps or the dragon elite troops. What’s more, Lautreamont Knight Country was built with the rules that no dragons were allowed in the military. However, it is still the truth that &#039;&#039;&#039;THAT WAR&#039;&#039;&#039; had changed Lautreamont Knight Country and Ansarivan.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-That war. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the ‘Xenoglavia War’ that was triggered fifty two years before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Lautreamont Knight Country was established, it was the first time that the dragons were sent to war.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It all begins when the Zepharos Empire’s armies from the north attacked Chevron Kingdom’s territory in the south.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Empire’s armies were armed with many mechanical weapons and had a huge amount of destruction force. In just a short moment, Chevron’s &lt;br /&gt;
Royal Knights that was said to be strongest mounted troops in the whole continent was wiped out. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Chevron’s king who was worried sent a secret messenger to Lautreamont Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, the dragons who were not involved in any wars for four hundred and fifty years flew towards the battle field once again to save &lt;br /&gt;
their allies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Holy Dragners of Lautreamont led by the Paladin himself joined the battle and the Empire’s armies that had suffered great causality were &lt;br /&gt;
forced to retreat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, the Kingdom and the Empire signed a truce.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To the Empire, Ansarivan was not only a place for the military backup, but also a factory that produces mass destructions weapons. In another &lt;br /&gt;
words, it is a military base. Just by judging from this, it is highly possible that Ansarivan is their target for the preparation for the next &lt;br /&gt;
war.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that Ash had turned pale, Rebecca smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t have to be surprised, Ash. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That… It is you, Rebecca-san.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That&#039;s it. Cú Chulainn and I will protect Ansarivan at all cost. That is why I want you to join us.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, even you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca pressed forward and their shoulders were touching each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you not want to join the student council?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked by the unexpected invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible! Since all the student council members are Dragners.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So one cannot join the student council if they are not a Dragner? I don’t remember such rules. It was just by chance that it looked like that &lt;br /&gt;
in this year.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I heard from every person around you that you are called as ‘The Boy Who Can Ride Any Dragon’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that exaggeration is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You don’t have to act humble. Even I could not ride on another person’s Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before anyone noticed, they are at the distance where their nose could touch. Rebecca’s beauty was drawing closer.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 149.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly noticed that Rebecca’s palm was on his knee.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s body heat could be felt by Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s heart was at the verge of exploding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be exact, I want you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can you please think about it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, but… If I… The student council-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At this moment, as if helping Ash who was getting anxious, the bell rang. Compare to the normal bells, this bell doesn’t sound stable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from the continuous ringing of the bell, it should be the emergency bell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Level two emergency state…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had recognized the meaning of the bell in just a short time and moved towards the side of the window. Ash too was taking a peep &lt;br /&gt;
outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The ‘level two emergency state’ in Ansarivan means that a certain dragon had caused havoc and had flown out from the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The entire school ground could be seen from the student council office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, a Strada was running amok. Its body was small and it looked as if it was just born days before. It still couldn’t spread its &lt;br /&gt;
wings let alone flying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca gave a wry smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa, this happens usually during this time of year. It will end in a short while.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected of the student council president Rebecca, she was calm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few grooms had arrived at the scene and had the dragon surrounded with nets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragons are living things with high intelligence, however they are also short tempered. Especially during the times when they were young, it &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
was not unusual for them to turn mad because of some small matters. Even their owners could do nothing about it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course all the grooms working in the dragon house had undergone special training to handle such situation. Just as Rebecca had said, the &lt;br /&gt;
incident could be settled in a short moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash himself had lost interest in the incident and wanted to leave the window side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who arrived at the scene jumped on the young dragon that had gone mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She looked like she was trying to suppress the young dragon with her own power. Her actions doesn’t match her usual self for it was a &lt;br /&gt;
foolhardy decision.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from their owner who they acknowledged, the dragons will never allow anyone to ride on their back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Silvia was trying her best to just cling on the dragon’s back. She was in a fix because she could be thrown out anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s action had obviously caused trouble to the grooms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is she an idiot! What is princess-sama trying to pull…?!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is most probably because of her ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t understand what Rebecca was saying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From what I can see, Her Highness is a perfectionist. No matter what kind of losing it is, she hates it. When there is a classmate who can &lt;br /&gt;
ride any dragon exist, she was burning with the ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just because of such things…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash frowned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To Her Highness, it was never ‘Just because of such things’.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… If that’s the case, I will go and help her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There is no need for that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The voice that hurts like a whip forced Ash to stop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true that you have some unusual talent. However, are you confident enough that you will be able to suppress the young dragon and at the &lt;br /&gt;
same time prevent Her Highness from getting hurt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s sharp words had made Ash speechless. If it was to calm down the young dragon, Ash himself was more than enough.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Ash doesn’t have to confidence to guarantee to be able to save Silvia without getting her hurt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, what she we do…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I had said it just before. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Rebecca humped onto the window frame. Her red hair that looked like it was on fire was dancing with the winds. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on…! Rebecca-san? What do you think-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will end this quickly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, Rebecca disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca jumped down from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked and took a peek downwards from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Answer my summon…Cú Chulainn!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Out of a sudden, there was a twist in the space beneath Rebecca and Cú Chulainn appeared majestically.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she had landed safely on Cú Chulainn’s back, she spoke strictly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“In my name Rebecca Randall, present me the Ark you created!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn roared in respond to Rebecca’s summon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was light surrounding Rebecca’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her uniform that she had worn until just now had dissolved in the sea of lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a short time, her naked body was exposed. However, because of the excessive brightness, Ash was unable to look at her clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next time Ash opened his eyes, Rebecca’s body was already surrounded by a dazzling knight’s armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was just like a knight from the legends looked godly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is… the Ark!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had heard before about it in the rumours but today was the first time he witnessed it with his own eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was the proof of an absolute loyalty from a Maestro to its owner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment a Dragner received an Ark from his Pal, he will be known as an Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Whoosh!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn’s huge body had flew up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong wind pressure nearly had Ash who was standing by the window blown off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s scream was heard from down below. She was floating in mid air as if she was sent flying by a chariot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash leaned his body out from the window frame and shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just before Silvia lands on the ground, Cú Chulainn accelerating downwards. In Ash eyes, Cú Chulainn was like teleporting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Cú Chulainn was again flying upwards, Rebecca had caught Silvia&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash, Her Highness is in your care!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could even respond to it, Rebecca had her eyes poised at the student council’s office’s window and threw out Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the distance was not even two meters, but to throw a country’s princess, it was not at all normal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in surprise and caught Silvia. They were in the so called ‘Princess carry’ situation and he must stand firm no matter what.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Ash&#039;s arms, Silvia had lost her consciousness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even under such situation, Ash’s heart was beating rapidly. His left hand that was supporting Silvia’s lower half was touching something soft &lt;br /&gt;
and elastic. Also, the was a flower like fragrance coming from her dazzling golden hair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, he heard Rebecca’s spell coming from outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&amp;quot;Appear… The certain hit magic spear…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The was a flash in respond to Rebecca’s spell and an enormous spear had appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the Ark-Weapon that only an Ark-Dragner could use.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An Ark was not just simply an armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was stored with strong magic and it comes with a one and only Ark-Weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Gáe Bolg!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Ash’s eyes, Rebecca swung the magic spear Gáe Bolg!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong magic transformed into a ray of light and was shot down onto the ground. There was a small explosion on the ground beside the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging young dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there was a slight mistake, the young dragon will definitely die. However, it was Rebecca that we were talking about. The shock from the &lt;br /&gt;
explosion had caused the young dragon to faint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a while since Rebecca had the young dragon suppressed, Silvia woke up while lying in Ash’s arms. When she found out that she was carried by Ash-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wha…! What are you doing…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was blushing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! Don’t move around! I can’t hold on any longer!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he warned, Silvia fell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was glaring at Ash with tears in her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I warn you that you will fall! Anyway why did you do that? You would have been dead &lt;br /&gt;
if not because of Rebecca’s help!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Don’t even understand how it feels!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment she shouted, tears were dripping from her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To hide her crying looks, Silvia turned around and ran out from the student &lt;br /&gt;
council’s office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the matter, Princess-sama…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled. Next, there was a voice coming from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry. It is my duty to deal with the Princess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, Rebecca who had changed back into her uniform was sitting on the &lt;br /&gt;
window frame and was with a smile full of confidence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
The next day after the young dragon’s incident was a school holiday.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had again accompanied Eco to Ansarivan City. In truth, Ash wanted to pass &lt;br /&gt;
his time in the dorm, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The crepes are calling out to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With this reason alone, Ash went out with Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, let’s hunt down the crepe stall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After passing by the main door that separates the academy and the city, Eco &lt;br /&gt;
immediately dragged Ash with her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Does a food made by a stupid and ignorant human being taste that well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sh-Shut up! It is the humans that are stupid and ignorant! The crepes had &lt;br /&gt;
nothing to do with this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned red when she replied to Ash’s tease and she continued to march &lt;br /&gt;
on forward. Eco’s respond made Ash felt a little bad… Maybe he should reflect &lt;br /&gt;
on that a little. Ash chased after Eco’s small back and knocked into someone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash just lost his balance for just a moment but the other person had fell on the &lt;br /&gt;
ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, it was my bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately held out his hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… Me too. Because I am careless…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person answering was a girl at Ash’s age range. There was also a flower &lt;br /&gt;
basket by her feet. The combination of her black hair and her oat colour skin &lt;br /&gt;
was very striking. Her worrisome looks together with her exotic face gave a &lt;br /&gt;
special feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment she saw Ash, her face stiffen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-You…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is there anything… On my face?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl grabbed the flower basket and flee. In a short moment, she managed to &lt;br /&gt;
blend into the crowd.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All the pedestrians beside was looking at Ash with the eyes that list him &lt;br /&gt;
as a pervert.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That’s not the case! I did nothing at all!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he explained to the people around him, Ash left the place as if him was &lt;br /&gt;
running away from something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Running away after looking at a person’s face, what a rude child she is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While cursing, he arrived at the crepe stall. Although she doesn’t even had any &lt;br /&gt;
money with her, Eco was calling out to the stall keeper just like a regular customer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me one Ansal Crepe!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
Anya who was the girl who pretended to be the flower seller was breathing heavily while hiding in an alley where there is no sign of other life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Previously, the moment she saw the guys face, she thought she had seen a ghost.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Last month, the guy who should have been dead was walking on the streets leisurely. Just that had given her a great shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;He should have been dead.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He had fallen into a pit less ravine and it will be impossible for him to be unscathed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It should have been more logical if it is another guy with the same looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that’s not it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be a mistake. That face, that voice, that tone… He was the one Anya met and killed in the forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;If that’s the case, why is he alive?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to logic, the chances for him to be able to survive were zero.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it was still the truth that he was alive. She had seen it with her own eyes, it was undoubtable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was surprising for the guy not to recognize Anya. However, thinking carefully, during that time, Anya had a mask on her face and she was &lt;br /&gt;
wearing her Tantalos battle suit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, no matter how you look at it, right now, Anya was just a flower seller. It was understandable if Ash couldn’t recognize &lt;br /&gt;
her. That is her only life saver.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What should I do…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That day, when she had returned back to Milgauss from the ravine, Anya had thought that it was impossible for the guy to survive so she &lt;br /&gt;
reported with ‘He was terminated’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss only replied with a ‘Thanks for the hard work’. Apart from that, he didn’t ask the specifics. To Milgauss, that guy was not at all &lt;br /&gt;
important.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was lost. Should she change the report that she had told Milgauss?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-The guy who fell into the ravine was actually still alive.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only until today she was going to show her report to Milgauss, that’s ridicules.&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the problem was not that simple.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For some time, Anya felt that there was a thorn that was piercing her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the time when the cliff was falling, the guy had given Anya a push. Thanks to that, it was not Anya who fell down the cliff.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even at the moment he was fated to die, he had chosen to save Anya.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To Anya who had spent her life living in the mountains, she couldn’t understand any of his actions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If the guy uses her as a stepping stone and saved himself, she could at least understand that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Anya’s village, there were many people who acted that way. From another perspective, if they are not tough enough, they mustn’t think about &lt;br /&gt;
surviving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya mumbled while she was staring at the basket of flowers blankly.&lt;br /&gt;
Her mind was in a mess. If she did not meet up with the guy, she won’t have to face any trouble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, if I was born as a flower seller… Will I be happier?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya suddenly turned angry and her flower basket fell on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She won’t allow herself to think about stupid stuffs for even a single moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stomped on the flowers that had scattered on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am an idiot! I had already decided to follow Milgauss-sama! Being besides Milgauss-sama is my source of happiness!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Anya was shouting out to her own self, the bell that signified noon rang. It was about time for her to return to Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
The noon bell had rung.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash and Eco arrived at St Durham square after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco immediately took a bite of the vanilla flavoured crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because she was not allowed to buy the ansal flavoured crepe, Eco didn&#039;t seem happy after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Vanilla is also not bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes glittered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s good to hear.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thankful for the vanilla flavoured crepe from the bottom of his heart. With just a mere fifty Glorins in exchange for a smile, it was worth the price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm, a holiday like this is not bad at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While Eco ate the vanilla flavoured crepe as if she was in heaven, Ash looked around the entire square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In addition to the locals, there were many tourists. They should be tourist from Chevron Kingdom that was located adjacent to the Knight’s country. &lt;br /&gt;
Although they were the same race as the Knight Country’s citizens, they could be differentiated by their speech pattern and their clothing design.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, why are they gathering there?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco asked after she finished her crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course they are there to look at the sacred statue.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking at ‘St Durham’s statue’ from afar. It was one of the most important cultural properties in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Whose statue… Is that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The first Paladin, Durham Lautreamont. He was a historical figure dating to five hundred years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The armour on the statue… Isn’t it like an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was proud of Eco for her to be this sharp.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You knew it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. The blue print for the Ark was kept in the Dragweiss.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, using that blueprint, could you make an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco was glaring at him and Ash was shrinking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot? That will be just a mimic. The blueprint design passed down by ancestral-sama is only intended as a reference. The exact thing could never be re-created.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so… Now I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash believed everything she said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, Eco, you will create an Ark for me, no? Before that, you should first become a Maestro- Ouch!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His foot was stomped on by Eco and made him jump around in pain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash barked back however Eco’s face was unexpectedly red. She was acting shy and was avoiding Ash&#039;s sight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What happened?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Quit joking! Why would I… As the owner make an Ark for my pet dog? Isn’t that illogical!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Eco ran off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then, Ash remembered his past lessons.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;To the dragons, to present their owner with the Ark also bears the important meaning of ‘Giving their everything to their owner.’&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
No wonder Eco denied it with her face red. At the same time, Eco was a little cute at that moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, wait for me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled and chased after Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 10===&lt;br /&gt;
They had been walking until Eco stopped her steps in front of a café that was facing St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The café was called Essarois. It is famous for its herbal teas and is especially popular in among the girls. The designs of its interior are also stylish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shop is always full of couples during the weekends. For Ash who had never dated before is a must avoid spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By looking through the glass window, even at that moment, the shop was full of couples.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just in case, there is something that I would like to make sure… Are you interested in such shops?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a nice smell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sniffing around. Although she looked like a girl, she is totally like a young dragon when she was doing so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally noticed the sweet smell coming from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t this Ansal! No, definitely not!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the shop is famous for its herbal tea, of course Ansal tea would also be on the menu. Naturally, Eco who is a dragon would also react to it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh… Why bother. Don’t you know that Ansal is in the cultural of the dragons and it is the so called taste of an adult dragon.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about! You are still a young dragon! Do you even want to repeat the previous incident again!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What happened previously?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Great! So you don’t remember anything after you became drunk! I guess all the more we should just forget about this conversation! From now &lt;br /&gt;
on, you are forbid to go near any Ansal till you become an adult!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh! I won’t forgive you! I won’t allow such thing to happen!…Nnnn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly squeaked and bend her body down. She was rubbing her thighs against each other as if she was trying to endure from using the &lt;br /&gt;
toilet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Unn…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco embraced his chest. Even though he had his clothes on, he could still feel Eco’s hot breath clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, don’t tell me that… You had gotten yourself drunk just from the smell?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa… Haa… Please… My chest is tightening.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes had turned wet and her cheeks had turned red. Her entire body was heating up. Ash felt like he was hugging a massive pile of &lt;br /&gt;
flame.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What a troublesome shop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His priority is to bring Eco away from this shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If such a thing continues, Ash feared that he could not remain calm. Just in case is he was spotted in a place like this by his &lt;br /&gt;
schoolmates…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, isn’t that Ash? Doesn&#039;t he look lovey dovey!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, it happens that it was Rebecca who was talking from behind. Besides, there was also a girl who was standing behind Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shuddering. Again, he had prepared himself to face Silvia’s iron fist, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps she was still troubled by yesterday’s young dragon’s incident, she was hiding behind Rebecca and remained silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 11===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To go to a place where the Ansal is absent, Rebecca brought the gang to the Dragon Fang public restaurant in an alley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is… Dragon Fang?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was slightly disappointed because he thought that Rebecca would bring them to a classy restaurant.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragon Fang is a restaurant for the public that provides good food with low price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm. It is a good restaurant. I have no complains on its quality and quantity. Also, it is half price for the student council members.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a lively shop full of laborers with well built bodies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since there is just an empty table for four, Rebecca sat together with Silvia while facing Ash and Eco on the other side of the table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Namely, Scarlet Empress and Ice Blue Princess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The two great beauties of the academy were sitting together with Ash. If they are spotted by Raymond or the rest, it would be natural if &lt;br /&gt;
they died in a fit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned her head to a side since she don’t intend to even utter a word. She was definitely still shadowed by yesterday’s incident. &lt;br /&gt;
Even though he felt like comforting her, however he had his hands full with Eco. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fyunn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco still looked like she was not fully awakened yet. Since that’s the case, he tried feeding her a few sips of water.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Rebecca ordered a three people’s sets, she smiled wryly at Ash and Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be frank, you had never failed to impress me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, you don’t have to apologize. Rather than that, I am actually enjoying myself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Enjoy…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was distressed and heartbroken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, remember to be careful and beware of the Ansal herb. Next time, it is better for you not to get close to Essarois. Though the Ansal Tea there is of top quality, it is still too early for Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will keep that in mind.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash answered, no one spoke a word. The reason was caused by none other than Silvia. She had kept her mouth shut for whole time &lt;br /&gt;
caused the people around her to become nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That being said… It is rare to see Rebecca-san together with Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, it was me who invited her out.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the incident of the young dragon had ended yesterday, Rebecca had indicated “ I will take care of the Princess herself.” However, it &lt;br /&gt;
seems that what is happening today had nothing to do with yesterday’s promise. It is also a surprise that Silvia would accept Rebecca’s &lt;br /&gt;
invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it was an order from the student council president, Silvia is still the country’s princess. She could have rejected the offer anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca smiled cheekily and took out a piece of paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you still remember the ticket for the one day date? The attached prize for the dragon riding festival. I must fulfill my promise and &lt;br /&gt;
Silvia had her duty to perform as the winner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh… Now I remember.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now it had started to make sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had totally forgotten about it. The winner in the dragon riding festival, could have a day’s date with Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the stubborn Silvia, the words ‘Duty of the winner’ is definitely the irresistible sure kill words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Together with yesterday’s problem, the princess had her mind crowded with many problems. Though I did try my best to help her, she had &lt;br /&gt;
been this way since the start.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Rebecca was regretting this, she still managed to squeeze out a cheerful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for the wait.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the moment, the waitress had arrived with their dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 12===&lt;br /&gt;
“I am back, Milgauss-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was enjoying the full view of Ansarivan, in the clock tower. With his mantle waving in the direction of the wind, he looked like &lt;br /&gt;
a veteran solider.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was in the disguised of a flower girl while Milgauss himself was dressed up as a mercenary.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 173.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was very silent on the top floor of the clock tower of the old shrine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the noisy streets looked as if they were from another world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Gazing at Milgauss back from behind, Anya thought that he was an ‘Unpredictable man…’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shrine that was facing St Durham Square was indeed very old. Usually it was not open to visitors. In addition to problem that was cause &lt;br /&gt;
by technical errors, the renovations for this shrine could not be continued and since then, it had remained closed for ten years.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Moreover, the security was light and anyone could break into the shrine after breaking open the lock at the back door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who knew this information is none other than Milgauss. Even when it is only information that only the locals knew of, Milgauss &lt;br /&gt;
treated it as if it was obvious to anyone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had always been curious of Milgauss&#039;s origin since the beginning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was a military man in the Empire’s army, his movement had always been graceful. It even felt like he was born in a noble &lt;br /&gt;
family. Even his pronunciations are beautiful and are fluent in both the Chevron language and Empire’s language.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How are the streets?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss’s question brought Anya back to her sense. Even though he was looking at her coldly through the mask, it still made Anya nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from Milgauss and Anya, there was not a third person in the clock tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though they are still on the job, Anya was a little disappointed. She certainly could not show the girly side of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was peaceful on the streets. Nobody is thinking about any wars.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan is a lively city. Anya had initially thought that the city that teaches breeders should be filled with killing intends. Yet, not &lt;br /&gt;
even a hint of war could be felt from this city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she was walking on the streets in disguised as a flower girl, Anya found out something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To the residents of Ansarivan,  the dragons are called ‘lovely beasts’ and not a military weapon. Ansarivan is never the so called &lt;br /&gt;
“military base for dragon training’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. In this street, not even a single soul thinks that dragons are military weapons. Ansarivan is a very friendly city.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss spoke in a nostalgic tone but it only lasted for a second.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However, Anya, there is no meaning behind the friendliness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss took a step forward and there was a coffin like box next to his feet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss silently opened the lid of the box. There is no corpse but a single sword in it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is not a normal sword. It was a broad sword with the size of a grown man.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like a typical zanbatou&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;斬馬刀a type of long sword&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; from the ancient drawings but its blade is black and its hilt was &lt;br /&gt;
decorated with beautiful jewels just like a refined masterpiece. With a closer look, they were bright dragon crystals.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss lifted the huge black sword and chanted the incantation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a little while, the clear blue sky was covered by dark clouds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 13===&lt;br /&gt;
Saute duck, Beef fillet cooked in wine, spare ribs, vegetable and mushroom soup, walnut bread…. All of the dishes were served one after another and they took away Ash’s attention.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The smell of the gravy and spices were stimulating his appetite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco reacted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once she found out about the smells of the foods, Eco had snapped out from the drunken state. Eco who cares for only crepes is after all, still a dragon. Her eyes were nailed to the meat dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry about the amount, just enjoy yourself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Rebecca could finish her sentence, she had already started stuffing herself with the duck. The skin was roasted nicely and its gravy &lt;br /&gt;
was dripping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mmm… This is the first time that I had tasted such a nice meat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes were glittering from being touched had her sight on the beef. She just simply took a piece of the beef with the fork and gave it a bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Funnn...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The beef seems to be very tasty since Eco looked as if she was in cloud nine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was also happy just by looking at her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, Silvia was working her knife and fork silently. Whenever Ash and her eyes met, she would glare at him to keep him &lt;br /&gt;
away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, Ash remembered what Rebecca had told him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;In my opinion, the princess is a perfectionist. She had always wanted to be the first. When she met a classmate who can ride any dragons, &lt;br /&gt;
she will take you as her rival.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In another words, the reason she tried to suppress the young dragon on her own is because of none other than Ash’s fault.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash made up his mind and spoke to Silvia:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Princess-sama… Is it really my fault?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know what you mean by that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her sharp glare pierced his forehead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am talking about yesterday’s incident… The way you acted yesterday isn’t really like you at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately, Silvia’s cheeks had turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Don’t be too full of yourself! Why would I even do it because of-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, a loud bang came from outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sudden thunderstruck had shocked Silvia. She was covering her ears with both her arms and was shaking tremendously. No one would ever &lt;br /&gt;
thought that she had this side to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a weird weather...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling about this and looked out from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The once clear sky was now covered by thick black clouds. The darkness outside made it hard to imagine that it was still noon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… That’s not a good sign.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was still eating suddenly stood up. Her face sank was staring intently at the sky outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ignoring Ash’s call, Eco ran out from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 14===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ashes to ashes, dust to dust. Appear! Child of magic technique. Thou shall be…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment Milgauss finished the incantation, under the sky filled with dark clouds, a change was happening on the streets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A dragon appeared in the middle of St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s… A Necromancia...!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya sub-consciously speaks of the word that should never be spoken of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Letters of blood red colour appeared on the surface of the huge sword that Milgauss was holding. They were words of an ancient language &lt;br /&gt;
that Anya could not understand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked as if blood were actually flowing out from the sword itself. The cloud had become thicker and sounds of the thunders had become &lt;br /&gt;
more and more frequent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia- A dragon that was resurrected using ashes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though she had heard about it before from Milgauss, it was still her first time seeing it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Summon the Necromancia and analyze its combat strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, determine whether it could be used in actual combat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the main purpose for the infiltration. Ansarivan is the selected location for the experiment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is like a hammer that smashes off the previous peaceful atmosphere.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This situation made Anya who just finished her investigation in the town bite her lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It made her think about her homeland that was full of blood and destruction a few years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-But…. This is war.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya reassured herself and clenched her fist while looking at Milgauss from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 15===&lt;br /&gt;
The group went chasing after Eco in the alleys had finally arrived at St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square was in a mess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The locals and the tourists were standing still like statues.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when they should be running away for their own sake, everyone just remain still and stare at the monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What is that thing!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he entered the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge beast was landing on the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that… A Dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its entire body is covered with fur and which made it looked similar to a Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, though it looked like a Maestro, its body fur was deep grey in colour and it smelled bad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Its body is rotting…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gasped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from that, its body size was surprisingly huge.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square that can hold thousands of people and right now had a quarter of it being occupied by a sole dragon. If it lifted its head up, it &lt;br /&gt;
height should be around the same height as the towers around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A roar that made people shivers was heard under the dark sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It sounds like hundreds of flutes not being blown uniformly. The sound was so terrible that it could even wake up the dead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The loud roar was followed was a strong gust that managed to topple the St Durham’s Statue in the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In a little while, the entire square was filled by a rotten smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only right now the people started running for their lives. While confronting with such a supernatural situation, the situation was no &lt;br /&gt;
longer under control. Although the Ansarivan’s security tried their best, it was obvious that they are lacking man power.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Followed by sounds of agonizing cries for help, many helpless people were continuously being pushed down. Even the customers in the &lt;br /&gt;
shops facing the Square were running out one by one.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The base for the St Durham Statue was in rubbles and the stone statue itself was lying on the ground. Eco was standing beside the statue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco was the dragon that brought all the troubles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is she even thinking!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was panicking and was trying to drag her back. However, he was blocked by the rest of the tourist who were running for their lives.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly removed her Beret and showed her horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems that she was trying to show that she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Refrain yourself, you lowly beast! Don’t you know who I am! Don’t you know that there are many excellent shops in this street?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, the entire square turned still because of her loud voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her imposing attitude touched Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it is just a little, after all, that weird thing is still a dragon and just maybe it understood Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon’s gaze slowly turned towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, they made eye contact with each other. But suddenly there were tentacles appearing from its body and was attacking Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted but the tentacles continued to wrap around Eco’s body and her four limbs and she was now hanging in mid air. Her uniform were &lt;br /&gt;
torn by the tentacles and her undergarments and skin were exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You! Knock it off!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was useless no matter how she struggled. Also, the more she struggled the tighter the grip of the tentacles became.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 184.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again the dragon roared and showed its pink mouth. A few teeth in its mouth that was arranged nicely dropped off. Only now Ash &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that even its teeth were rotting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, a light ball of purple electric appeared in its mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The purple electric light ball was then released followed by another roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Don!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A building facing the square was swallowed by the ball of light and was covered with dust.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Attacking magic…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbstrucked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a high level magic that could only be performed by Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The building that was destroyed was a four story building. The first floor was Café Essarois while it was an apartment from the second &lt;br /&gt;
floor onwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbfounded. Just how many innocent people were involved right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few moments later, the smoke cleared out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not only the building remains, but also there isn’t even a single causality.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in joy. Rebecca who was riding on Cú Chulainn in her Ark had cast the defense magic and neutralized the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Essarois is a place filled with the dreams of the girls. I as the student council of Ansarivan, I will have it protected until my death.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s declaration received cheers from the residents.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Rebecca wouldn’t let such cheers get over her head and she started reciting the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Appear! The certain hit magic spear!&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The summoned weapon appeared above Rebecca’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The magic spear turned into light particles and was shot towards the loathsome dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A new ball of light appeared in front of the dragon and it turned into seven layers of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It even knew defense magic!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!” pierced through the first layer of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then it continue was also broke apart easily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However it was obvious that it had slowed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time it broke through a layer, a large amount of magic was used up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fourth, the fifth… the sixth was penetrated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was praying while looking at Gáe Bolg’s path.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then, there was a crack in the seventh shield and it was pierced through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time when Ash was cheering, Gáe Bolg exploded at the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The flash caused their eyes to be blinded and it was followed by a loud bang.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The thick smoke had the dragon covered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was thinking that Rebecca had won.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the securities that should have led the people to safety were cheering happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then, the smoke started to clear up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The cheers were silent up by a hole in a head caused by the explosion. Even so, the dragon shouldn’t be able to live on after its brain &lt;br /&gt;
was destroyed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is that thing…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shivering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon has not yet fallen and Eco was still hanging in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next moment, the wound on the head started regenerating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as ifs the wound itself is another living being.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the wound was healed, the dragon returned to its original looks but its eyes looked even more menacing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, it swung its tail.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After seeing it using high class magic, Ash was surprised to see it change its style to physical attacks. It seems that Rebecca too, was &lt;br /&gt;
also caught off guard by it which led her to being slow in her reactions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca shouted in surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it was just a simple physical attack, the buildings behind the dragon were demolished like toy bricks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, they could only pray that the people inside the buildings could escape safely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Curses…!’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash clenched his teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could watch the dragon turn the city in ruins as a bystander.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Ash thought of a single person. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Milgauss, the masked man.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the day he met him in the forest, the still cog had been connected and started spinning. However, it was his instinct that told him &lt;br /&gt;
that. There was never a single proof.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What in the world is that dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once he heard the familiar voice, Ash was brought back to his sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, he saw that Silvia had arrived at the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Silvia saw the weird dragon, she fell on her backside and was shivering in fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately came to her side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Get a hold of yourself! Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though Ash was shouting loudly, Silvia never answered. Seeing such a supernatural sight had caused her to lose all her sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that instant, a flying dragon appeared on top of St Durham Square. It was obviously a Maestro since it had silvery white fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash! Bring the Princess as far away as you can!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a familiar voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was in charge of the accounts in the student council and also one of Ash’s few friends.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Max!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Leave this to me!... Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max wasn’t able to finish his sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon seeing that a new opponent had appeared immediately gave out a loud roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it released its ball of light with purple electric.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Arian!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Max’s command, Arianrhod immediately cast its defense magic. Though it managed to reduced the strength of the light ball, still it &lt;br /&gt;
had hit and fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Originally, a dragon shouldn’t be able to fly with such a build. It’s wings are only for decoration purposes. It was magic itself that &lt;br /&gt;
enables it to fly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he saw Arianrhod fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For it to even bring down Arianrhod with just a single hit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Arianrhod had no longer any magic to defend against the second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca who foresaw that ordered Cú Chulainn to glide down in the area in front of Max and Arianrhod. Without delaying a single moment, &lt;br /&gt;
she cast her defense magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the defending party, Rebecca had totally lost her mobility.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the worst situation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only choice left is to wait for the Holy Dragners of Lautreamont to arrive. But could the town people really hold on until then?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the entire town were already used to the peaceful life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For example, the entire strength of the security office was just hunting rifles and wooden batons. For offices where they have dragner &lt;br /&gt;
working there could only be found in the big cities.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was approaching Rebecca slowly. It probably thought of Rebecca as first to be removed as a target.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time the weird dragon took a step, the earth shook and the beautiful tiles turned into rubbles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as if it was a moving hill. Numerous tentacles had appeared right now and were gripping on Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aahhh! What the hell is this thing trying to do!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco continued to struggle. Even though she lost all her mobility, she still had decided that she is not going to ever give up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s it. I must save Eco.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After all, Eco is Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She is none other than Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is me… Am I able to do it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash questioned himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An answer flashed through his mind. It gave Ash shivers.  But still, it is a gamble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the instant, Ash remembered Eco enjoying her crepe happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on, it still hasn’t reached that stage yet… Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were still many nice things in this word that Eco knew nothing of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was not going to let her die like this before teaching her everything. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally made up his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will protect this city. Everybody. And also Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yet, there was still one more problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash needs Silvia’s cooperation to make his plan success.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama! Please get a hold of yourself!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He shouted towards Silvia who was still sitting on the ground in shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Silvia’s expression was still blank and continued to shiver. It was as if she is a totally different person from her usual &lt;br /&gt;
majestic self.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t joke with me…. What kind of a Princess are you! Where is the usual family motto! In such times shouldn’t you prove to us what &lt;br /&gt;
exactly is a royalty made of!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash lifted his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will apologize first! Sorry!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And he gave Silvia a slap on the face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sound was clear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ash?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was staring at Ash dumbstrucked. At least her thoughts were now focused. Although her red cheek was hurting, she had finally calmed&lt;br /&gt;
down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama, I had a request. Please summon Lancelot immediately and bring me with you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Bring you? Where to?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was pointing at the moving dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To be more specific, it was above the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately Silvia knew what he was thinking right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Definitely not! Are you even thinking properly!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s anger raises and stood up suddenly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Good, this is great. This is the Silvia that I knew of.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 006-007.jpg|thumb|&#039;&#039; Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted &lt;br /&gt;
to the dragon: “Your opponent is me!” &#039;&#039;]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted to the dragon:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Your opponent is me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strictly speaking, Ash didn’t even know if the dragon could even notice his voice. Basically the reason for him to shout was to keep his thoughts &lt;br /&gt;
from wavering. Still, the dragon did stop its footsteps.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It turned its head slowly and glared at both Ash and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia facial expression changed immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m alright. Princess-sama please summon Lancelot immedi…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could finish his sentence, the dragon shot a ray of light at them. It was definitely a different type of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash only understood that a strong energy shot pass the area above his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He raised his head in terror only to find out that the building behind him was crumbling. The three storey building behind him experienced &lt;br /&gt;
a direct hit from the attacking magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
How high exactly is the temperature need to melt debris of the building? Before Ash could even think about it, the building had crumbled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pile of wreckage was falling towards Ash and Silvia like a waterfall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the spur of the moment, Ash tried to protect Silvia. He could only shut his eyes and pray.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 16===&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey…! Until when are you going to stop acting in such manner?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s cold voice had given him the push to open his eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash though that he was buried under the pile of wreckage, but-.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt the wind blowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am flying…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia were in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then Ash realized that he was riding on Lancelot’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seems like Silvia had summoned Lancelot in the nick of time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The streets down below looked far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even St Durham Square looked miniature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge body that occupied a quarter of its space still exists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem is Ash was grabbing on to Silvia who was holding the reins from behind and his right hand was even grabbing on to her breast.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The soft feeling made him lost his calm. Since just now where the building started to crumble, his thought had always been blank.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t loosen your grip! You may fall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s warning made him calm down his thoughts and he started apologizing to Silvia. However, he continued grabbing on her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Obviously Ash had also shifted the position of his right hand. It was probably that he was thinking too much but somehow Silvia’s face had &lt;br /&gt;
turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, the dragon released its second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot in return roared loudly and cast its defense magic. A huge amount of pressure could be felt. Yet, Lancelot remained unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just as expected.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash praised.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This kind of level is child’s play for Lancelot. Back to the main point… Are you sure you want to do this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, please bring me to the appointed location. It must be none other than me to execute it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… Then I can only have faith in you. Lancelot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ooooon.” Under Silvia’s order, Lancelot roared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were gliding downwards towards the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The third and the fourth wave of attack were released but Lancelot avoided all of them with an amazing speed without even activating its &lt;br /&gt;
defence magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The distances between both parties were getting shorter until their entire fields of vision were covered by the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking for Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had prepared himself for the worst possible situation, where Eco was swallowed whole by the dragon. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Until now, this is the only chance where he can save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made up his mind and stood on Lancelot. To keep his balance, he held on to Silvia’s shoulder. Silvia remained silent while allowing him &lt;br /&gt;
to do so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The countdown begins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Ten, nine, eight, seven…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were getting closer to the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Three, two, one…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot flew pass the weird body in a very close distance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped towards the wall of grey furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a ‘Bump’ Ash landed safely. However, he slipped and nearly fell off but managed to cling to the furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon felt something on its head and was pissed. It shook its head vigorously. For that short moment, Ash felt like he was going to &lt;br /&gt;
fall off anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He crawled with all his might until he finally reached the space in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thought there are still many places that could be considered, it was his instinct that told Ash that this was the best place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With both of his foot on stable ground, Ash immediately stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, he thought about the feeling of his first ride on a dragon. Basically the situation was the same as yesterday where a &lt;br /&gt;
young dragon lost control. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A newborn Starda had gone rampage because its master had mistakenly fed it with Ansal Tea.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when the Grooms were in a fix trying to keep the situation under control, Ash who had just passed by, by a chance jumped onto the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He just had a hunch that he was able to do it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, he received a good amount of scolding from the school’s director even though he managed to calm the dragon down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s right, that young dragon was called- Lancelot.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That’s right. I totally forgot about it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled wryly. The Maestro that Silvia was riding on and the drunken Strada fitted perfectly in his memories.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He finally realized why Silvia was obsessed comparing herself to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash gained his confidence. Since he was able to calm Lancelot down, this weird dragon should not be a problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s begin…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Through his feet, he forced his conscious into the dragon like growing tree roots and spoke to the dragon gently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From now onwards, I am your master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon stopped its footsteps in reply to Ash’s words. Although it still continued growling, at the least it had stopped moving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s it. This is how it should be.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was smiling from the bottom of his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was thinking of giving it one more push, the dragon swung its head upwards like a trebuchet. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who was not prepared for this was thrown out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just moments before knocking into a building, Lancelot flew to his rescue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Phew… Saved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat on Lancelot and was just behind Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have never seen an idiot like you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia scolded while she was holding Lancelot’s reins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just a little more I could have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking with a serious tone. There was not even a hint of him joking. Silvia who had turned speechless looked just like a &lt;br /&gt;
graceful woman from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash said made sense. He was going to ride it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 17===&lt;br /&gt;
“Haaa… Haaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco looked pale. She was hurt by her inability to break free due to her lack of strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… For a descendant of a mighty dragon…. To lose to a low born dragon…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was provoking the dragon…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thrown out and had made a nice curve with it but was saved by Lancelot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is he trying to do?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was horrified.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash was doing was reckless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right. Ash was trying to tame this weird dragon by riding it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there is to be a single error, Ash will be squashed like a bug.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! What are you doing? Why don’t you run away!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who could endure it no longer shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! I will save you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash replied while sitting on Lancelot’s back. He seemed confident judging from his tone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That sentence had made her realized that Ash tried to save her instead of running away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was struggling to escape the tentacles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But the more she struggled, the tighter their grips became.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco, the dragon’s belly split open.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On both of the sides of the belly were aligned with row of sharp fine teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like an insect eating plat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It must have been a bad joke.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned pale.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Numerous tentacles appeared and Eco was swallowed into the mouth that looked like the gates of hell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she almost lost conscious, she could barely hear Ash’s cry&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 18===&lt;br /&gt;
“It seems that you have woken up, my sleeping beauty.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The bewitching voice had woken Eco up and she hurriedly looked around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A mysterious room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The floor was laid by square tile of black and white alternating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beside the four walls were statues that had not been completed. An incomplete human body. Incomplete beasts. Models of castle and &lt;br /&gt;
shrines. And also transports that Eco had never seen before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco who was sitting on the bed was a suspicious lady. The lady was sitting on an antique chair lazily. Her brilliant red dress looked extra conspicuous in the monochrome room.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 205.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the lady’s head were horns of an adult dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the Dragon Workshop. Also, I am called Navi.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Navi…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You just have to take me as another personality that is responsible to teach the immature you… Don’t you think that this is great?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t really understand. Also, what’s with your appearance?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting uneasy since the first time she saw Navi.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her looks, hair style and skin colour were exactly like Eco’s. The only difference is that Navi was a few years older.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hee hee. Are you worrying about my body? This design is based on a five years older version of you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wh-What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Still, this is just an assumption. You just may not grow up this well. Especially your breast.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi purposely put emphasis on the breast and deliberately shook them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad for being made fun of..&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph! It is not like bigger is better!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course, even the shape is important. But for you… Worrying about the size should be your main concern.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a detestable woman! I will squash you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Now lets us stop this useless talk as he is going to die if we let him continue what he was doing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a single wave from her right arm, a crystal ball appeared. A high concentration of lights was released by it and a projection of Ash &lt;br /&gt;
struggling with the weird looking opponent could be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He is still reckless!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking up towards the screen which was the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In a first look, this is not a bad idea. After all he was born with that gift to ride any kind of dragons. However, this opponent is too &lt;br /&gt;
much for him to handle. He had no chance of winning against that Necromancia.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Necromancia?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. It is a dragon that died once but was resurrected by human technology.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk! What should we do…? There is nothing in my ability to help him.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was saddened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, do you know why a holy dragon is called a Maestro.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was puzzled by the sudden question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before the existence of the secret agreement of Albion, the holy dragons were craft workers. This dragon workshop was built by a group of &lt;br /&gt;
great Maestros. The Ark is only one of the many things created by the Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi was trying to say.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are telling me that he is lacking an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good answer. And of course the only person who can present him with the Ark is only you as his Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… How can I…? That’s it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco remembered her conversation with Ash in St Druham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Hmm, if it is the blueprint for the Ark, I have the access to it.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-If that’s the case, can you use the blueprint… To create an Ark?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Are you crazy! That’s is nothing but an imitation.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it is an imitation, it is still an Ark. Certainly, Eco&#039;s pride does not allow her to make a copy from her ancestor, but this &lt;br /&gt;
was an emergency.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco accessed the Dragweiss immediately and focused her thoughts. Without delay, the projection on the ceiling started changing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice either.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since year 10 of A.S.B where the secret agreement of Albion was made, there were many blueprints left by the dragons. Apart from the Arks &lt;br /&gt;
that were worn by humans, there were also those that were made as a trial.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The total amount of blueprints easily exceeds a thousand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was disappointed after read the blueprints.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every single blueprint was full of details and even copying may become a difficult task.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come on! How am I to copy this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was feeling troubled, the thought of St Durham’s Statue flash pass.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She instantly summoned St Durham’s Ark’s blueprint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Time of production	Year 846 A.S.B/ Month of Libra/ 2nd day.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Name of knight		Durham Lautreamont &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Ark Weapon		Magic sword Caliber&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to the present, the design and structure five hundred years ago was simpler.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is this Ark, I should be able to do it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You’re naïve.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why? Supposing I had no experience in making an Ark, I still inherit the basic knowledge. So what are you even-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It just doesn’t work that way. An Ark is an armour that was custom made for its knight. If you just make a copy of a previous work, he &lt;br /&gt;
won’t be able to wear it. If you force it on him, it may even endanger his life.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What! Then this isn’t even an option to begin with!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hehe. When did I mention that? The Dragweiss had collected a huge amount of blueprints since the old times. It is possible to select &lt;br /&gt;
parts of the armour that fits him from this amount of blueprints.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By shaking a crystal, an infinite amount of blueprints appeared on the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Could it be that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi means.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We will select parts of the armour that fits him and reorganized them.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, can I do it? For starters, how am I going to know if the parts suit him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was worrying about the most important part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before an Ark was made, it requires that data of the person wearing it. First is the height and then follow by a mountain full of &lt;br /&gt;
information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara. If you are talking about his data, I already have it here with me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled cheekily touched Eco’s forehead with the crystal ball. In an instant, all the information in the crystal ball flowed into &lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… Is his data?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was able to construct a three dimensional structure using the huge amount of information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco blushed. Ash image in her mind was stark naked. Every single detail on his body was clearly recorded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-A perfect data…. But how did this data get into your hands?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I was expecting something similar to this to happen. Just before you were born, I sneaked into his dream. Actually I finish collecting my &lt;br /&gt;
data in just a night but since he is too cute, I had been doing that for a whole week.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How dare you toy with my pet dog!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi was laughing in front of the angry Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see that someone is jealous.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-There is no way that I-I….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so? But why are you blushing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am gonna squash you!... Erm, this is not the right time and place to argue!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit. So let’s begin.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi slowly stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know whether I am capable of doing it but… this is the only choice left!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally made up her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 19===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it had been three times, Ash never gave up. On the other hand, he was saved by Lancelot every single time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucky for him, the grey dragon had Lancelot locked on as its target. Every single attack was directed towards Lancelot which in turn, &lt;br /&gt;
reduced the amount of destruction towards the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, there is a limit to the amount of magic that Lancelot possesses. In truth, it flying speed had been greatly reduced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is at its limit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood her frustration from her words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. This time will be the final!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia signal Lancelot to change its direction and dive down towards the middle of the square. Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tell me that is not true…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was suddenly swallowed into the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in dismay.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are not able to make it in time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was eaten whole by that monster right in front of Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!... It&#039;s my fault for being weak…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t give up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia reminded Ash who felt that he was going to break apart in despair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She may still be alive! If you give up at this moment, she will definitely die for sure!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately kept his cool. Silvia was right. If not because of she was holding the reins with both hands, she is sure to give him a &lt;br /&gt;
slap on the face like what he did to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, the Seikoku on his left arm started hurting. It was the same feeling as the time where Eco was kidnapped by Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reaction from the Seikoku made him felt relief.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This proofs that his link with Eco had not yet been cut off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yeah… I mustn’t give up yet. Princess-sama! Please bring me to where the monster is!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again, Lancelot started diving downwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 20===&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me a break! Why can’t I get it right!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was shouting in desperation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The opponent that Ash was battling was a Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its element is ‘dark’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Naturally, the Ark that she is going to present to Ash should have the ‘light’ element in it. It had been a common knowledge since the &lt;br /&gt;
ancient times that light can conquer darkness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…! Just as expected, this is impossible…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sitting on her knees in disappointment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Tears were dripping from her eyes. It was the first time Eco ever cried from the feeling of regret.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Don’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Eco heard something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The owner of the sound was none other than Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it him…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco lifted her head up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was still continuing his fight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While fighting against the dragon, he was calling out to Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“I will save you! I still believe that you are still alive! That is why… That is why, you mustn&#039;t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These were not spoken by words. They were spoken through the Astral Flow that connects the dragon and its breeder. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She felt warm from the bottom of her heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco knew from where this warm came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Druing her time as an Orphan, Eco had always been inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She could never forget about this warm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was going against the odds, Ash never ran away from anything.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He even dare face such a monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For how many times had he stood on the dragon’s head and for how many times had he been thrown out. Right now, his clothes were like rags &lt;br /&gt;
and there were many obvious bruise and wounds on his body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, his eyes never stop glittering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco clenched her fists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Unforgivable!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s it. Ash was fighting for her sake and her pride doesn&#039;t allow her to stay still while waiting to be saved.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… It is totally unforgivable… That is why…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her tired body was once again filled with magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her overflowing amounts of magic crystallized outside of her body and were sparkling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco never once expect herself to have such a large amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her field of vision widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could not keep herself from smiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Almete, Gorjal, Peto… Espaldar……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought the amount of blueprints in the Dragweiss is abnormally large, the Eco right now had the ability to handle all of them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Brafoneras, Faldaje… Escarcelas……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In among the parts that suits Ash, Eco selects the ones with light element and combined them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Bufetas, Hombreras, Brazales… Codales….., Antebrazos……. Manoplas……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to those who create the Ark from scraps, Eco’s actions may seem detestable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could never be able to object for shaming the tradition and placing a curse on her ancestral.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Quijotes… Guardas… Grebas…… Escarpes……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However to Eco, it did be a worst sin to just be a bystander and witness all the fun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco no longer hesitates.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With mixed emotions, she had chosen the final part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“-Espolón!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, Eco had opened the gate that leads to a brand new world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 21===&lt;br /&gt;
No matter how badly he failed, he had lost count of the number of times he returned. Right now, he was lying on Lancelot’s back in anguish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pain was so immersed that he could no longer feel his limbs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is really at its limit. This will be the last chance we have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s voice was obviously shaking. They really must succeed. The moment Lancelot used up all its magic and can no longer fly, everything &lt;br /&gt;
that was done will be in vain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan will be in ruins and Eco will definitely die.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It will be impossible to save all the refuges unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… What should I do…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was in a pinch…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“You are the one who shouldn’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s voice was heard in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco? Eco! You are still alive!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had been sometime since she was swallowed by the dragon but Ash could clearly hear her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Isn’t that obvious! No matter what I do, I can never look for a substitute for my useless pet dog, so just take this as a gift.”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Take what?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next instant, Ash was surrounded by dazzling lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His eyes’ widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An outline slowly appeared in the light and transformed into a brilliant armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Isn’t that an… Ark! It is godly…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia squeaked when she turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had a strange feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a heavy looking armour but it doesn’t feel that way.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps it was the strong amount of magic that removed the weight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though he just wore it, he could feel an overflowing amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“With this… I can never lose.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled confidently and spoke facing Eco who was inside the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you Eco! I had received your feelings!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, Eco replied with a scold.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“D-Don’t joke with me! That is just a mimic! Not an original! I have never thought of presenting you with it at all!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was certainly full of objections.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go, Princess- sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had been equipped with the Ark was full of spirits.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia didn’t waste a single moment and ordered Lancelot to dive down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it had used up most of its magic, it still answered Ash and Silvia’s call by raising its speed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking to her from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… What is it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is a good dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What does that have to do with this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why you should never again try to ride on another dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Are you an idiot! What are you saying at a time like this…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the best time to tell you this. You had Lancelot who is the best Pal. So, what is the thing that you are craving for?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I… Definitely knew that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot made a great roar in reply to Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are getting faster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge grey body was getting closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now’s the time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt that his body had blend into the wind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After drawing out a curve in the air, Ash landed on the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks to the Ark, Ash could even stand on the dragon without clinging to its fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could even feel the dragon’s body heat through the armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at this moment, Ash was one with the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be wrong. The Ark had pushed Ash’s gift to its maximum potential.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From his feet, his consciousness was growing into the dragon like roots.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If Ash was to be described as a tree, then the dragon is the earth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash could feel the dragon’s rejecting feeling in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It doesn’t matter whether you are god or even the devil himself…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was like a tower in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For what I know, every dragon will bound to be ridden by me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, there was a change in the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its folded wings were suddenly flapping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was flying towards the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 22===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Seems like we had stepped into an ambush…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss sighed when he saw the Necromancia flying away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was the person controlling the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge sword in his hands was not only the switch, it was also the controller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Milgauss was never successful in making the Necromancia fly but that boy had it proved to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, Milgauss was dead calm. It was just as expected.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was sweating when she looked at Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were cold sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy who was riding the Necromancia away from the city is THAT BOY.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had never reported to Milgauss about their meeting in the streets. She didn’t expect the boy to appear right there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Where exactly did I meet that boy before…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was trembling from that single sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, whatever.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luckily, MIlgauss never question any further.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The experiment ended with a failure, but we still obtain some useful results. That boy and also… that girl.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Girl?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was confused. Did he mean Rebecca Randall the Ark Dragner?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or is it Princess Silvia who was flying on Lancelot?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However she was wrong.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t the Necromancia capture a girl? The one with horns. She is probably the one who presented the boy with the Ark. Even though she &lt;br /&gt;
looks human… She might be descendant of a dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I never…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss had no intention of speaking anymore. He silently kept the huge sword and gazed at Anya through the mask.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will retreat for now.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya knelt down immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 23===&lt;br /&gt;
“I did it…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon spread it wings and flew up towards the sky with Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was getting higher and higher and further away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, Ansarivan town, the plains beside and Fianna Forest looked like toys.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was all according to his plan. First he had to bring this dangerous dragon away to ensure to safety of the townspeople.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could understand the dragon’s thought through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The muzzy thoughts suddenly turned clear. If felt as if the Ark had translated the dragon’s feeling into words that Ash understands.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was anger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hatred too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And also- Love.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see. You also had a master in the past.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash didn’t know where this dragon came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He only knew that this was just a normal dragon that grew up in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it told Ash its wish through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood the sad wish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Necromancia? Something that disobey the logic of this world? Do you really want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It once again assured Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It trusted as like it did to its master.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you really sure that you want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia was asking for Ash to kill it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the only way out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… what about Eco after I killed you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was worried about killing the Necromancia because Eco was still inside the Necromancia. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After knowing what Ash thinking was, the dragon reassured him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ermm… Can I really trust you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia nodded its head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It promised to protect Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Alright. Leave everything to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he had made up his mind, an image of a sword appeared in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the Ark was created hastily, Ash still had obtained the same power as an Ark Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Similar to Rebecca’s Gáe Bolg, every Ark Dragner must possess an Ark weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was glowing and an immense amount of magic flowed out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The details of the Ark Weapon were circulating inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a sword. A sword with light as its element.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Following the information, Ash chanted the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Appear! The sword that was graced by the light! Please lend me all your powers that are able to repent darkness…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The area on Ash’s forehead was flooding with light.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A tremendous amount of magic was flowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A huge sword that was taller than Ash appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Aix-les-Bains!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After lifting Aix-les-Bains easily, Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuoooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was falling. Starting from the dragon’s head to its belly, the sword that wields light slashed through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon split into two.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sword transformed into silvery lights and cut through its bones and flesh.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The tough body of the dragon burst into parts like a paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The destroyed body turned into grey particles and was blown away by the winds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Eco was thrown up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was probably thrown up by the dragon before the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was diving at Eco’s direction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was also accelerating using the magic of the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was not even a hint of fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stretched out his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco stretched out hers too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both of them were close, but yet so far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pressure from the strong wind seemed to be able to cut through skin but Ash still shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made a kick in the air by releasing the magic in the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco once again stretched out her arms further after being called.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was the first time Eco call his name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fingers met.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then they felt the weight on their palms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now they were grabbing each other’s hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not wanting Eco to leave his side again, Ash made a pull.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was embracing his chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While hugging the delicate body, Ash could feel her body heat. He had decided to land on the plains below.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With the protection from the Ark, they remain unharmed even after falling from a few hundreds of meters from above.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dark cloud in Ansarivan had disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the horizon, the sun appeared once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We did it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he smiled, the Ark broke into light particles and disappeared. Similarly, Aix-les-Bains which was in his belt had also disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as Eco had said, this was just hastily made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it did actually manage to save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you, Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Its nothing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco turned to a side. She really hasn’t changed at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he started smiling, his smile turned into horror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… What’s with your fist?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her fist was bleeding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Surely it was hurt when she was caught by the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-This is nothing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash held her hand and licked her wound. It was a usual practice in Ash’s hometown when children hurt themselves.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It may be obvious to Ash but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad and started rampaging.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! It is just for disinfection, disinfection I say!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who turned embarrassed bit his neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! This is not a joke! I might even die…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was probably tired finally calmed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting uneasy but Eco was already fast asleep. He showed sign of relieved and smile bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A boy who can ride any dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Some corrections should be made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or at least until he found a way to handle Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Dark Gray Invasion ~A.S.B.1365.5~&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2|Chapter 2]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354067</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354067"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T15:19:36Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 12 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 3 - Necromancia&#039;s Attack==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
The month of Aries had ended and it was the arrival of the month of Taurus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem concerning Eco&#039;s lodging was put on hold and no decision had been made yet because of the incident where Angela had become a teacher in just a flash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In short, Eco was still sleeping on Ash&#039;s bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem they were facing was, Apollo House which was the dormitory where Ash was staying at is a male&#039;s dorm. Furthermore, Eco is an extremely beautiful girl as long as she kept her mouth shut.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ash was staying with such a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was obvious some weird rumours would emerge among the students who were living in Apollo House.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
The class room of the first year advanced course.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When school was about to dismissed, Raymond walked towards Ash&#039;s table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yo, Ash. Why don’t we go and have some fun since we are free?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, I have to go to the student council’s office.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Student council…? Why?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err, the president asked for me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had informed Ash to find a free time to visit the student council’s office about a week ago. Since Eco had gotten used to the campus &lt;br /&gt;
life, it should be about time for him to make his visit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it true? I think Rebecca Nee-san should have many questions for you. Or many she wants to blame you for something… Just by thinking…&lt;br /&gt;
Haaa… Haaa.” &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have nothing to say to you…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err… did &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; goes well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash asked while Raymond pushed his face nearer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond was looking totally serious.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Aren’t you teaching Eco on the bed?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Raymond had ended his sentence, the entire class turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was looking at Ash with suspicious eyes. Everyone in the academy knew that Ash’s pal was born as a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t say something that will make people misunderstood! Don’t you know that Eco is a dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond smile sinisterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Right, anyway I knew that you don’t even have the guts to do &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then just don’t say something that will make people misunderstood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haha… Could it be that you are the one who was being taught?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because Raymond who had hit the bull’s eye with just a guess, Ash was a little taken aback but he dare not speak back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
The student council office was located at the highest floor of the academy’s centre tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gulped when he was standing in front of the grand door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From a long time ago, Ansarivan’s student council had a huge power. They not only dealt with the academy’s council but they also have the right &lt;br /&gt;
of speech in the city council. According to some rumours, the student council president’s power is superior to the mayor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please enter.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before he even knocked, the student council president’s voice could be heard. This made Ash tremble a little.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for interrupting.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He timidly opened the door and walked into the office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was crossing her arms while standing by the window that was at the far end of the room. There wasn’t another soul in this room. When he &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that they were alone, Ash who had felt uneasy from the start was now sweating nervously.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahhh, Ash. You finally came!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca turned around and stared at Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With her marble statue like beauty together with her crimson coloured hair, it let out an amazing feeling. Even her body proportion outshone &lt;br /&gt;
other people. Her curves were perfect and not even her uniform could hide it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca Randall who had received the Ark-Dragner title was not only well known in Ansarivan. Her name was widely spread in the entire Knight &lt;br /&gt;
Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even in the well known Holy Dragners of Lautreamont had only one in a ten of their members who received the title Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from that, the requirements to obtain the title Ark-Dragner is very strict.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fuu. Don’t be shy. Just take a seat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-Yes…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat at a corner of the sofa, frightened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca sat beside Ash without even a second thought. He smelled something refreshing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was uneasy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was nervous because of their close distance where they can feel each other’s breath. Since there was also a sofa located right opposite, &lt;br /&gt;
logically speaking, Rebecca should have sat there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Rebecca showed a playful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To get to know another person better, sitting side by side is the best choice, this is common knowledge for dating.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Is it…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Young man, you must remember it. Next time, if you are on a date, remember not to sit opposite of her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, dates or whatever… It is still a far away dream.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was blushing in embarrassment while Rebecca unexpectedly was enjoying that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… In another words, no one had noticed your true value yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“True value?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If for me, I still haven’t determined how good of a man you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly stopped smiling and moved towards the main topic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In short, I am here to discuss the things regarding Eco with you… Saying that, what is she doing when you are in class? You can’t just keep &lt;br /&gt;
her in the man’s dormitory right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, Cosette is helping me with that. I don’t think that it will be a problem.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the kidnapping incident a few days ago had ended, Ash had told Cosette his trouble when they were chit chatting. Cosette immediately &lt;br /&gt;
volunteered to help take care of Eco. Since Costte also had nothing to do when Silvia was attending classes, she can accompany Eco in Ash’s &lt;br /&gt;
place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only think he worried about was whether Eco will accept Cosette. Until today, it seemed like there was no such problem. In front of &lt;br /&gt;
Cosette, Eco was always acting mature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Cosette huh? There won’t be a problem if it is her. I had met Cosette a few times before and she is not someone to be underestimated.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So Rebecca-san also thinks so?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile because he was thinking something bad about Cosette.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Umm… It is said that when the Paladin sent Princess Silvia to Ansarivan, about a hundred maids and guards were sent together.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! It must be troublesome…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Princess of course had gone against the Paladin’s will. In the end, because the Paladin insisted, she brought Cosette alone along with &lt;br /&gt;
her. Judging from that, Cosette is something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Back to the topic, you are also something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was looking at him sharply until he started to sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you talking about?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When had you started to have this close relationship with Cosette?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s beautiful face was getting closer. The refreshing smell was getting stronger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being asked something unexpected, Ash’s head started spinning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How dare you hide something from me? It isn’t good you know. By the way, you are not thinking that Rebecca Randall is someone simple &lt;br /&gt;
right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s face was getting closer and closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought there was a faint hint of a smile by her lips, her eyes were not smiling at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Alright! Please promise me that… Don’t tell anyone about this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, I guess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca nodded and moved her head backwards back to her original position.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash took a deep breath and told her everything about the incident where Eco had been kidnapped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
The seventh dragon house was specially built for Maestros. Apart from Rebecca’s Cú Chulainn, there were four more Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Take it slowly, there are many more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Lancelot was gulping down the thickly sliced meat, Silvia smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Normally, jobs like feeding, preparing the beds, balancing the nutrients, cleaning… were done by the groom of the dragon house. The breeders &lt;br /&gt;
on the other hand just need to focus their thoughts on studying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However Silvia had always taken care of Lancelot on her own.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyday, she will always visit the dragon house five times. She will feed it on her own, clean the dragon house and even give Lancelot a bath. &lt;br /&gt;
If Lancelot felt itchy, she will sure to be there to give a scratch on that spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Silvia’s care, Lancelot who was born as a Strada had grown into a beautiful Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her achievement was acknowledged and she had received the title Dragner in the young age of fourteen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The title Dragner can only be received by a breeder whose Pal is a Maestro. It had been a tradition in the Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Silvia was never satisfied with her current achievement. Her aim was to become a ‘Great Dragner’. Just the title Dragner could &lt;br /&gt;
never satisfy her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright Lancelot… Next will be an Ark-Dragner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia patted Lancelot after she spoke out her thought. Its silvery white fur was tick and felt nice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Silvia pressed her hands against her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s proof of a Breeder the Seikoku was at the middle of her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her memories when she was seven came into her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To obtain an orphan from the mother dragon, Silvia had entered Albion Forest alone. However, she injured her leg and was crying while standing. &lt;br /&gt;
She left the palace with the thought of she will definitely become a breeder but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then there was a young boy who reached out to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Like Silvia, the young guy was here on the same day for the Orphan Ceremony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-I will give you a piggyback while we look for mother dragon together.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s heart beat increased when she thought about the guy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If not for his help, Silvia would never have become a Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… I had made a promise with him. I will become a great knight. If I did anything that should not be done by an owner, I want you &lt;br /&gt;
to scold me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadly, Lancelot only had its eyes on the meat and was not bothered by Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk, what a child you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia shook her head and gave a wry smile. Although it had become a Maestro, it was still a young dragon. Compare to Cú Chulainn, its body &lt;br /&gt;
size was definitely smaller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Speaking of that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was thinking about Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only student who dared to challenge Silvia Lautreamont.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, Silvia had won the match but she didn’t have the feeling of victory. On the other hand it can be said as a losing feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had given Silvia a help on the race’s position arrangement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She clearly understood her attitude of looking down on her enemy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only that she had never thought that such a despicable method will be used. If not for Ash who made use of the chance, Silvia would not be &lt;br /&gt;
able to win.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash Blake… I have never seen such an irregular guy. He could even ride on other people’s Pal as he liked which is out of common knowledge. In the &lt;br /&gt;
end, what is the trick he was using-?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Silvia was mumbling, there was a cry of help from outside of the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon has gone mad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash had told her everything, Rebecca sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… For such a thing to happen. Angela-sensei is also a troublesome person. She is one of the best in the continent in dragon researching.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had never thought that teacher could be such a great person…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is a total dragon maniac. She had thought of becoming a Dragner since she was still a child. In the end, she was not selected in the &lt;br /&gt;
Orphan Ceremony…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will never hand an orphan to her if I am the mother dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Perhaps not being selected had left her with traumas until today. However, Angela-sensei’s skills and knowledge are the real stuff. Lets observe her for the time being.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Observe…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t hide his sad looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it is possible, he doesn’t want to have anything to do with her for a second time…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right! There is one more thing about Eco. It is about when you are in the forest and you said that you had encountered some uninvited &lt;br /&gt;
guest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash with a ‘Hah’ lifted his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Many things had happened after Eco was born and he had forgotten about it. The suspected to be Empire’s soldier was lurking around in the &lt;br /&gt;
Knight Country territory. This is not something to be overlooked.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In the end, just who are those two?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The masked man called Milgauss with an extraordinary temperament.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl who wanted to have Ash killed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… ‘Milgauss’ should be a nickname. It doesn’t look like an Empire’s surname. Perhaps he could be the Empire’s agent. If that’s the case, &lt;br /&gt;
this is not a problem that a mere student could solve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had never thought of Rebecca as a ‘mere student’, but he chose to keep this thought to himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, I will pass your message to the peace keepers’ office. However, if the masked man is from the Empire’s army, I am afraid that the &lt;br /&gt;
peace keepers will also be helpless.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she remained calm, the way she had spoken was terrifying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It should be alright, right? Ansarivan is an academy for breeders and not a military school. It shouldn’t be targeted by the Empire.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We are not the military’s backup. The paths that a Breeder can take is not only limited to joining the Knight corps or the dragon elite troops. What’s more, Lautreamont Knight Country was built with the rules that no dragons were allowed in the military. However, it is still the truth that &#039;&#039;&#039;THAT WAR&#039;&#039;&#039; had changed Lautreamont Knight Country and Ansarivan.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-That war. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the ‘Xenoglavia War’ that was triggered fifty two years before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Lautreamont Knight Country was established, it was the first time that the dragons were sent to war.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It all begins when the Zepharos Empire’s armies from the north attacked Chevron Kingdom’s territory in the south.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Empire’s armies were armed with many mechanical weapons and had a huge amount of destruction force. In just a short moment, Chevron’s &lt;br /&gt;
Royal Knights that was said to be strongest mounted troops in the whole continent was wiped out. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Chevron’s king who was worried sent a secret messenger to Lautreamont Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, the dragons who were not involved in any wars for four hundred and fifty years flew towards the battle field once again to save &lt;br /&gt;
their allies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Holy Dragners of Lautreamont led by the Paladin himself joined the battle and the Empire’s armies that had suffered great causality were &lt;br /&gt;
forced to retreat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, the Kingdom and the Empire signed a truce.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To the Empire, Ansarivan was not only a place for the military backup, but also a factory that produces mass destructions weapons. In another &lt;br /&gt;
words, it is a military base. Just by judging from this, it is highly possible that Ansarivan is their target for the preparation for the next &lt;br /&gt;
war.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that Ash had turned pale, Rebecca smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t have to be surprised, Ash. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That… It is you, Rebecca-san.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That&#039;s it. Cú Chulainn and I will protect Ansarivan at all cost. That is why I want you to join us.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, even you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca pressed forward and their shoulders were touching each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you not want to join the student council?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked by the unexpected invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible! Since all the student council members are Dragners.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So one cannot join the student council if they are not a Dragner? I don’t remember such rules. It was just by chance that it looked like that &lt;br /&gt;
in this year.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I heard from every person around you that you are called as ‘The Boy Who Can Ride Any Dragon’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that exaggeration is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You don’t have to act humble. Even I could not ride on another person’s Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before anyone noticed, they are at the distance where their nose could touch. Rebecca’s beauty was drawing closer.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 149.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly noticed that Rebecca’s palm was on his knee.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s body heat could be felt by Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s heart was at the verge of exploding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be exact, I want you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can you please think about it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, but… If I… The student council-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At this moment, as if helping Ash who was getting anxious, the bell rang. Compare to the normal bells, this bell doesn’t sound stable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from the continuous ringing of the bell, it should be the emergency bell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Level two emergency state…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had recognized the meaning of the bell in just a short time and moved towards the side of the window. Ash too was taking a peep &lt;br /&gt;
outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The ‘level two emergency state’ in Ansarivan means that a certain dragon had caused havoc and had flown out from the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The entire school ground could be seen from the student council office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, a Strada was running amok. Its body was small and it looked as if it was just born days before. It still couldn’t spread its &lt;br /&gt;
wings let alone flying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca gave a wry smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa, this happens usually during this time of year. It will end in a short while.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected of the student council president Rebecca, she was calm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few grooms had arrived at the scene and had the dragon surrounded with nets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragons are living things with high intelligence, however they are also short tempered. Especially during the times when they were young, it &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
was not unusual for them to turn mad because of some small matters. Even their owners could do nothing about it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course all the grooms working in the dragon house had undergone special training to handle such situation. Just as Rebecca had said, the &lt;br /&gt;
incident could be settled in a short moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash himself had lost interest in the incident and wanted to leave the window side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who arrived at the scene jumped on the young dragon that had gone mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She looked like she was trying to suppress the young dragon with her own power. Her actions doesn’t match her usual self for it was a &lt;br /&gt;
foolhardy decision.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from their owner who they acknowledged, the dragons will never allow anyone to ride on their back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Silvia was trying her best to just cling on the dragon’s back. She was in a fix because she could be thrown out anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s action had obviously caused trouble to the grooms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is she an idiot! What is princess-sama trying to pull…?!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is most probably because of her ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t understand what Rebecca was saying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From what I can see, Her Highness is a perfectionist. No matter what kind of losing it is, she hates it. When there is a classmate who can &lt;br /&gt;
ride any dragon exist, she was burning with the ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just because of such things…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash frowned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To Her Highness, it was never ‘Just because of such things’.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… If that’s the case, I will go and help her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There is no need for that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The voice that hurts like a whip forced Ash to stop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true that you have some unusual talent. However, are you confident enough that you will be able to suppress the young dragon and at the &lt;br /&gt;
same time prevent Her Highness from getting hurt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s sharp words had made Ash speechless. If it was to calm down the young dragon, Ash himself was more than enough.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Ash doesn’t have to confidence to guarantee to be able to save Silvia without getting her hurt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, what she we do…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I had said it just before. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Rebecca humped onto the window frame. Her red hair that looked like it was on fire was dancing with the winds. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on…! Rebecca-san? What do you think-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will end this quickly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, Rebecca disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca jumped down from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked and took a peek downwards from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Answer my summon…Cú Chulainn!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Out of a sudden, there was a twist in the space beneath Rebecca and Cú Chulainn appeared majestically.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she had landed safely on Cú Chulainn’s back, she spoke strictly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“In my name Rebecca Randall, present me the Ark you created!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn roared in respond to Rebecca’s summon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was light surrounding Rebecca’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her uniform that she had worn until just now had dissolved in the sea of lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a short time, her naked body was exposed. However, because of the excessive brightness, Ash was unable to look at her clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next time Ash opened his eyes, Rebecca’s body was already surrounded by a dazzling knight’s armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was just like a knight from the legends looked godly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is… the Ark!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had heard before about it in the rumours but today was the first time he witnessed it with his own eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was the proof of an absolute loyalty from a Maestro to its owner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment a Dragner received an Ark from his Pal, he will be known as an Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Whoosh!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn’s huge body had flew up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong wind pressure nearly had Ash who was standing by the window blown off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s scream was heard from down below. She was floating in mid air as if she was sent flying by a chariot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash leaned his body out from the window frame and shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just before Silvia lands on the ground, Cú Chulainn accelerating downwards. In Ash eyes, Cú Chulainn was like teleporting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Cú Chulainn was again flying upwards, Rebecca had caught Silvia&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash, Her Highness is in your care!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could even respond to it, Rebecca had her eyes poised at the student council’s office’s window and threw out Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the distance was not even two meters, but to throw a country’s princess, it was not at all normal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in surprise and caught Silvia. They were in the so called ‘Princess carry’ situation and he must stand firm no matter what.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Ash&#039;s arms, Silvia had lost her consciousness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even under such situation, Ash’s heart was beating rapidly. His left hand that was supporting Silvia’s lower half was touching something soft &lt;br /&gt;
and elastic. Also, the was a flower like fragrance coming from her dazzling golden hair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, he heard Rebecca’s spell coming from outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&amp;quot;Appear… The certain hit magic spear…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The was a flash in respond to Rebecca’s spell and an enormous spear had appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the Ark-Weapon that only an Ark-Dragner could use.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An Ark was not just simply an armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was stored with strong magic and it comes with a one and only Ark-Weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Gáe Bolg!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Ash’s eyes, Rebecca swung the magic spear Gáe Bolg!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong magic transformed into a ray of light and was shot down onto the ground. There was a small explosion on the ground beside the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging young dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there was a slight mistake, the young dragon will definitely die. However, it was Rebecca that we were talking about. The shock from the &lt;br /&gt;
explosion had caused the young dragon to faint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a while since Rebecca had the young dragon suppressed, Silvia woke up while lying in Ash’s arms. When she found out that she was carried by Ash-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wha…! What are you doing…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was blushing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! Don’t move around! I can’t hold on any longer!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he warned, Silvia fell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was glaring at Ash with tears in her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I warn you that you will fall! Anyway why did you do that? You would have been dead &lt;br /&gt;
if not because of Rebecca’s help!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Don’t even understand how it feels!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment she shouted, tears were dripping from her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To hide her crying looks, Silvia turned around and ran out from the student &lt;br /&gt;
council’s office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the matter, Princess-sama…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled. Next, there was a voice coming from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry. It is my duty to deal with the Princess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, Rebecca who had changed back into her uniform was sitting on the &lt;br /&gt;
window frame and was with a smile full of confidence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
The next day after the young dragon’s incident was a school holiday.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had again accompanied Eco to Ansarivan City. In truth, Ash wanted to pass &lt;br /&gt;
his time in the dorm, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The crepes are calling out to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With this reason alone, Ash went out with Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, let’s hunt down the crepe stall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After passing by the main door that separates the academy and the city, Eco &lt;br /&gt;
immediately dragged Ash with her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Does a food made by a stupid and ignorant human being taste that well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sh-Shut up! It is the humans that are stupid and ignorant! The crepes had &lt;br /&gt;
nothing to do with this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned red when she replied to Ash’s tease and she continued to march &lt;br /&gt;
on forward. Eco’s respond made Ash felt a little bad… Maybe he should reflect &lt;br /&gt;
on that a little. Ash chased after Eco’s small back and knocked into someone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash just lost his balance for just a moment but the other person had fell on the &lt;br /&gt;
ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, it was my bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately held out his hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… Me too. Because I am careless…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person answering was a girl at Ash’s age range. There was also a flower &lt;br /&gt;
basket by her feet. The combination of her black hair and her oat colour skin &lt;br /&gt;
was very striking. Her worrisome looks together with her exotic face gave a &lt;br /&gt;
special feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment she saw Ash, her face stiffen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-You…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is there anything… On my face?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl grabbed the flower basket and flee. In a short moment, she managed to &lt;br /&gt;
blend into the crowd.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All the pedestrians beside was looking at Ash with the eyes that list him &lt;br /&gt;
as a pervert.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That’s not the case! I did nothing at all!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he explained to the people around him, Ash left the place as if him was &lt;br /&gt;
running away from something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Running away after looking at a person’s face, what a rude child she is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While cursing, he arrived at the crepe stall. Although she doesn’t even had any &lt;br /&gt;
money with her, Eco was calling out to the stall keeper just like a regular customer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me one Ansal Crepe!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
Anya who was the girl who pretended to be the flower seller was breathing heavily while hiding in an alley where there is no sign of other life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Previously, the moment she saw the guys face, she thought she had seen a ghost.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Last month, the guy who should have been dead was walking on the streets leisurely. Just that had given her a great shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;He should have been dead.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He had fallen into a pit less ravine and it will be impossible for him to be unscathed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It should have been more logical if it is another guy with the same looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that’s not it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be a mistake. That face, that voice, that tone… He was the one Anya met and killed in the forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;If that’s the case, why is he alive?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to logic, the chances for him to be able to survive were zero.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it was still the truth that he was alive. She had seen it with her own eyes, it was undoubtable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was surprising for the guy not to recognize Anya. However, thinking carefully, during that time, Anya had a mask on her face and she was &lt;br /&gt;
wearing her Tantalos battle suit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, no matter how you look at it, right now, Anya was just a flower seller. It was understandable if Ash couldn’t recognize &lt;br /&gt;
her. That is her only life saver.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What should I do…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That day, when she had returned back to Milgauss from the ravine, Anya had thought that it was impossible for the guy to survive so she &lt;br /&gt;
reported with ‘He was terminated’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss only replied with a ‘Thanks for the hard work’. Apart from that, he didn’t ask the specifics. To Milgauss, that guy was not at all &lt;br /&gt;
important.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was lost. Should she change the report that she had told Milgauss?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-The guy who fell into the ravine was actually still alive.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only until today she was going to show her report to Milgauss, that’s ridicules.&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the problem was not that simple.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For some time, Anya felt that there was a thorn that was piercing her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the time when the cliff was falling, the guy had given Anya a push. Thanks to that, it was not Anya who fell down the cliff.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even at the moment he was fated to die, he had chosen to save Anya.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To Anya who had spent her life living in the mountains, she couldn’t understand any of his actions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If the guy uses her as a stepping stone and saved himself, she could at least understand that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Anya’s village, there were many people who acted that way. From another perspective, if they are not tough enough, they mustn’t think about &lt;br /&gt;
surviving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya mumbled while she was staring at the basket of flowers blankly.&lt;br /&gt;
Her mind was in a mess. If she did not meet up with the guy, she won’t have to face any trouble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, if I was born as a flower seller… Will I be happier?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya suddenly turned angry and her flower basket fell on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She won’t allow herself to think about stupid stuffs for even a single moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stomped on the flowers that had scattered on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am an idiot! I had already decided to follow Milgauss-sama! Being besides Milgauss-sama is my source of happiness!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Anya was shouting out to her own self, the bell that signified noon rang. It was about time for her to return to Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
The noon bell had rung.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash and Eco arrived at St Durham square after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco immediately took a bite of the vanilla flavoured crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because she was not allowed to buy the ansal flavoured crepe, Eco didn&#039;t seem happy after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Vanilla is also not bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes glittered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s good to hear.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thankful for the vanilla flavoured crepe from the bottom of his heart. With just a mere fifty Glorins in exchange for a smile, it was worth the price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm, a holiday like this is not bad at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While Eco ate the vanilla flavoured crepe as if she was in heaven, Ash looked around the entire square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In addition to the locals, there were many tourists. They should be tourist from Chevron Kingdom that was located adjacent to the Knight’s country. &lt;br /&gt;
Although they were the same race as the Knight Country’s citizens, they could be differentiated by their speech pattern and their clothing design.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, why are they gathering there?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco asked after she finished her crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course they are there to look at the sacred statue.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking at ‘St Durham’s statue’ from afar. It was one of the most important cultural properties in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Whose statue… Is that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The first Paladin, Durham Lautreamont. He was a historical figure dating to five hundred years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The armour on the statue… Isn’t it like an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was proud of Eco for her to be this sharp.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You knew it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. The blue print for the Ark was kept in the Dragweiss.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, using that blueprint, could you make an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco was glaring at him and Ash was shrinking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot? That will be just a mimic. The blueprint design passed down by ancestral-sama is only intended as a reference. The exact thing could never be re-created.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so… Now I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash believed everything she said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, Eco, you will create an Ark for me, no? Before that, you should first become a Maestro- Ouch!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His foot was stomped on by Eco and made him jump around in pain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash barked back however Eco’s face was unexpectedly red. She was acting shy and was avoiding Ash&#039;s sight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What happened?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Quit joking! Why would I… As the owner make an Ark for my pet dog? Isn’t that illogical!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Eco ran off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then, Ash remembered his past lessons.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;To the dragons, to present their owner with the Ark also bears the important meaning of ‘Giving their everything to their owner.’&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
No wonder Eco denied it with her face red. At the same time, Eco was a little cute at that moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, wait for me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled and chased after Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 10===&lt;br /&gt;
They had been walking until Eco stopped her steps in front of a café that was facing St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The café was called Essarois. It is famous for its herbal teas and is especially popular in among the girls. The designs of its interior are also stylish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shop is always full of couples during the weekends. For Ash who had never dated before is a must avoid spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By looking through the glass window, even at that moment, the shop was full of couples.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just in case, there is something that I would like to make sure… Are you interested in such shops?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a nice smell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sniffing around. Although she looked like a girl, she is totally like a young dragon when she was doing so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally noticed the sweet smell coming from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t this Ansal! No, definitely not!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the shop is famous for its herbal tea, of course Ansal tea would also be on the menu. Naturally, Eco who is a dragon would also react to it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh… Why bother. Don’t you know that Ansal is in the cultural of the dragons and it is the so called taste of an adult dragon.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about! You are still a young dragon! Do you even want to repeat the previous incident again!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What happened previously?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Great! So you don’t remember anything after you became drunk! I guess all the more we should just forget about this conversation! From now &lt;br /&gt;
on, you are forbid to go near any Ansal till you become an adult!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh! I won’t forgive you! I won’t allow such thing to happen!…Nnnn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly squeaked and bend her body down. She was rubbing her thighs against each other as if she was trying to endure from using the &lt;br /&gt;
toilet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Unn…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco embraced his chest. Even though he had his clothes on, he could still feel Eco’s hot breath clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, don’t tell me that… You had gotten yourself drunk just from the smell?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa… Haa… Please… My chest is tightening.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes had turned wet and her cheeks had turned red. Her entire body was heating up. Ash felt like he was hugging a massive pile of &lt;br /&gt;
flame.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What a troublesome shop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His priority is to bring Eco away from this shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If such a thing continues, Ash feared that he could not remain calm. Just in case is he was spotted in a place like this by his &lt;br /&gt;
schoolmates…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, isn’t that Ash? Doesn&#039;t he look lovey dovey!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, it happens that it was Rebecca who was talking from behind. Besides, there was also a girl who was standing behind Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shuddering. Again, he had prepared himself to face Silvia’s iron fist, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps she was still troubled by yesterday’s young dragon’s incident, she was hiding behind Rebecca and remained silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 11===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To go to a place where the Ansal is absent, Rebecca brought the gang to the Dragon Fang public restaurant in an alley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is… Dragon Fang?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was slightly disappointed because he thought that Rebecca would bring them to a classy restaurant.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragon Fang is a restaurant for the public that provides good food with low price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm. It is a good restaurant. I have no complains on its quality and quantity. Also, it is half price for the student council members.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a lively shop full of laborers with well built bodies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since there is just an empty table for four, Rebecca sat together with Silvia while facing Ash and Eco on the other side of the table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Namely, Scarlet Empress and Ice Blue Princess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The two great beauties of the academy were sitting together with Ash. If they are spotted by Raymond or the rest, it would be natural if &lt;br /&gt;
they died in a fit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned her head to a side since she don’t intend to even utter a word. She was definitely still shadowed by yesterday’s incident. &lt;br /&gt;
Even though he felt like comforting her, however he had his hands full with Eco. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fyunn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco still looked like she was not fully awakened yet. Since that’s the case, he tried feeding her a few sips of water.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Rebecca ordered a three people’s sets, she smiled wryly at Ash and Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be frank, you had never failed to impress me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, you don’t have to apologize. Rather than that, I am actually enjoying myself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Enjoy…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was distressed and heartbroken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, remember to be careful and beware of the Ansal herb. Next time, it is better for you not to get close to Essarois. Though the Ansal Tea there is of top quality, it is still too early for Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will keep that in mind.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash answered, no one spoke a word. The reason was caused by none other than Silvia. She had kept her mouth shut for whole time &lt;br /&gt;
caused the people around her to become nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That being said… It is rare to see Rebecca-san together with Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, it was me who invited her out.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the incident of the young dragon had ended yesterday, Rebecca had indicated “ I will take care of the Princess herself.” However, it &lt;br /&gt;
seems that what is happening today had nothing to do with yesterday’s promise. It is also a surprise that Silvia would accept Rebecca’s &lt;br /&gt;
invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it was an order from the student council president, Silvia is still the country’s princess. She could have rejected the offer anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca smiled cheekily and took out a piece of paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you still remember the ticket for the one day date? The attached prize for the dragon riding festival. I must fulfill my promise and &lt;br /&gt;
Silvia had her duty to perform as the winner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh… Now I remember.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now it had started to make sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had totally forgotten about it. The winner in the dragon riding festival, could have a day’s date with Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the stubborn Silvia, the words ‘Duty of the winner’ is definitely the irresistible sure kill words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Together with yesterday’s problem, the princess had her mind crowded with many problems. Though I did try my best to help her, she had &lt;br /&gt;
been this way since the start.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Rebecca was regretting this, she still managed to squeeze out a cheerful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for the wait.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the moment, the waitress had arrived with their dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 12===&lt;br /&gt;
“I am back, Milgauss-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was enjoying the full view of Ansarivan, in the clock tower. With his mantle waving in the direction of the wind, he looked like &lt;br /&gt;
a veteran solider.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was in the disguised of a flower girl while Milgauss himself was dressed up as a mercenary.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 173.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was very silent on the top floor of the clock tower of the old shrine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the noisy streets looked as if they were from another world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Gazing at Milgauss back from behind, Anya thought that he was an ‘Unpredictable man…’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shrine that was facing St Durham Square was indeed very old. Usually it was not open to visitors. In addition to problem that was cause &lt;br /&gt;
by technical errors, the renovations for this shrine could not be continued and since then, it had remained closed for ten years.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Moreover, the security was light and anyone could break into the shrine after breaking open the lock at the back door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who knew this information is none other than Milgauss. Even when it is only information that only the locals knew of, Milgauss &lt;br /&gt;
treated it as if it was obvious to anyone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had always been curious of Milgauss&#039;s origin since the beginning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was a military man in the Empire’s army, his movement had always been graceful. It even felt like he was born in a noble &lt;br /&gt;
family. Even his pronunciations are beautiful and are fluent in both the Chevron language and Empire’s language.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How are the streets?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss’s question brought Anya back to her sense. Even though he was looking at her coldly through the mask, it still made Anya nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from Milgauss and Anya, there was not a third person in the clock tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though they are still on the job, Anya was a little disappointed. She certainly could not show the girly side of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was peaceful on the streets. Nobody is thinking about any wars.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan is a lively city. Anya had initially thought that the city that teaches breeders should be filled with killing intends. Yet, not &lt;br /&gt;
even a hint of war could be felt from this city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she was walking on the streets in disguised as a flower girl, Anya found out something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To the residents of Ansarivan,  the dragons are called ‘lovely beasts’ and not a military weapon. Ansarivan is never the so called &lt;br /&gt;
“military base for dragon training’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. In this street, not even a single soul thinks that dragons are military weapons. Ansarivan is a very friendly city.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss spoke in a nostalgic tone but it only lasted for a second.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However, Anya, there is no meaning behind the friendliness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss took a step forward and there was a coffin like box next to his feet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss silently opened the lid of the box. There is no corpse but a single sword in it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is not a normal sword. It was a broad sword with the size of a grown man.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like a typical zanbatou&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;斬馬刀a type of long sword&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; from the ancient drawings but its blade is black and its hilt was &lt;br /&gt;
decorated with beautiful jewels just like a refined masterpiece. With a closer look, they were bright dragon crystals.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss lifted the huge black sword and chanted the incantation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a little while, the clear blue sky was covered by dark clouds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 13===&lt;br /&gt;
Saute duck, Beef fillet cooked in wine, spare ribs, vegetable and mushroom soup, walnut bread…. All of the dishes were served one after another and they took away Ash’s attention.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The smell of the gravy and spices were stimulating his appetite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco reacted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once she found out about the smells of the foods, Eco had snapped out from the drunken state. Eco who cares for only crepes is after all, still a dragon. Her eyes were nailed to the meat dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry about the amount, just enjoy yourself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Rebecca could finish her sentence, she had already started stuffing herself with the duck. The skin was roasted nicely and its gravy &lt;br /&gt;
was dripping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mmm… This is the first time that I had tasted such a nice meat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes were glittering from being touched had her sight on the beef. She just simply took a piece of the beef with the fork and gave it a bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Funnn...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The beef seems to be very tasty since Eco looked as if she was in cloud nine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was also happy just by looking at her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, Silvia was working her knife and fork silently. Whenever Ash and her eyes met, she would glare at him to keep him &lt;br /&gt;
away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, Ash remembered what Rebecca had told him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;In my opinion, the princess is a perfectionist. She had always wanted to be the first. When she met a classmate who can ride any dragons, &lt;br /&gt;
she will take you as her rival.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In another words, the reason she tried to suppress the young dragon on her own is because of none other than Ash’s fault.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash made up his mind and spoke to Silvia:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Princess-sama… Is it really my fault?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know what you mean by that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her sharp glare pierced his forehead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am talking about yesterday’s incident… The way you acted yesterday isn’t really like you at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately, Silvia’s cheeks had turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Don’t be too full of yourself! Why would I even do it because of-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, a loud bang came from outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sudden thunderstruck had shocked Silvia. She was covering her ears with both her arms and was shaking tremendously. No one would ever &lt;br /&gt;
thought that she had this side to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a weird weather...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling about this and looked out from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The once clear sky was now covered by thick black clouds. The darkness outside made it hard to imagine that it was still noon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… That’s not a good sign.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was still eating suddenly stood up. Her face sank was staring intently at the sky outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ignoring Ash’s call, Eco ran out from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 14===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ashes to ashes, dust to dust. Appear! Child of magic technique. Thou shall be…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment Milgauss finished the incantation, under the sky filled with dark clouds, a change was happening on the streets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A dragon appeared in the middle of St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s… A Necromancia...!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya sub-consciously speaks of the word that should never be spoken of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Letters of blood red colour appeared on the surface of the huge sword that Milgauss was holding. They were words of an ancient language &lt;br /&gt;
that Anya could not understand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked as if blood were actually flowing out from the sword itself. The cloud had become thicker and sounds of the thunders had become &lt;br /&gt;
more and more frequent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia- A dragon that was resurrected using ashes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though she had heard about it before from Milgauss, it was still her first time seeing it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Summon the Necromancia and analyze its combat strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, determine whether it could be used in actual combat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the main purpose for the infiltration. Ansarivan is the selected location for the experiment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is like a hammer that smashes off the previous peaceful atmosphere.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This situation made Anya who just finished her investigation in the town bite her lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It made her think about her homeland that was full of blood and destruction a few years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-But…. This is war.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya reassured herself and clenched her fist while looking at Milgauss from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 15===&lt;br /&gt;
The group went chasing after Eco in the alleys had finally arrived at St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square was in a mess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The locals and the tourists were standing still like statues.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when they should be running away for their own sake, everyone just remain still and stare at the monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What is that thing!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he entered the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge beast was landing on the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that… A Dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its entire body is covered with fur and which made it looked similar to a Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, though it looked like a Maestro, its body fur was deep grey in colour and it smelled bad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Its body is rotting…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gasped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from that, its body size was surprisingly huge.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square that can hold thousands of people and right now had a quarter of it being occupied by a sole dragon. If it lifted its head up, it &lt;br /&gt;
height should be around the same height as the towers around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A roar that made people shivers was heard under the dark sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It sounds like hundreds of flutes not being blown uniformly. The sound was so terrible that it could even wake up the dead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The loud roar was followed was a strong gust that managed to topple the St Durham’s Statue in the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In a little while, the entire square was filled by a rotten smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only right now the people started running for their lives. While confronting with such a supernatural situation, the situation was no &lt;br /&gt;
longer under control. Although the Ansarivan’s security tried their best, it was obvious that they are lacking man power.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Followed by sounds of agonizing cries for help, many helpless people were continuously being pushed down. Even the customers in the &lt;br /&gt;
shops facing the Square were running out one by one.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The base for the St Durham Statue was in rubbles and the stone statue itself was lying on the ground. Eco was standing beside the statue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco was the dragon that brought all the troubles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is she even thinking!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was panicking and was trying to drag her back. However, he was blocked by the rest of the tourist who were running for their lives.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly removed her Beret and showed her horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems that she was trying to show that she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Refrain yourself, you lowly beast! Don’t you know who I am! Don’t you know that there are many excellent shops in this street?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, the entire square turned still because of her loud voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her imposing attitude touched Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it is just a little, after all, that weird thing is still a dragon and just maybe it understood Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon’s gaze slowly turned towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, they made eye contact with each other. But suddenly there were tentacles appearing from its body and was attacking Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted but the tentacles continued to wrap around Eco’s body and her four limbs and she was now hanging in mid air. Her uniform were &lt;br /&gt;
torn by the tentacles and her undergarments and skin were exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You! Knock it off!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was useless no matter how she struggled. Also, the more she struggled the tighter the grip of the tentacles became.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 184.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again the dragon roared and showed its pink mouth. A few teeth in its mouth that was arranged nicely dropped off. Only now Ash &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that even its teeth were rotting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, a light ball of purple electric appeared in its mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The purple electric light ball was then released followed by another roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Don!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A building facing the square was swallowed by the ball of light and was covered with dust.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Attacking magic…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbstrucked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a high level magic that could only be performed by Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The building that was destroyed was a four story building. The first floor was Café Essarois while it was an apartment from the second &lt;br /&gt;
floor onwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbfounded. Just how many innocent people were involved right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few moments later, the smoke cleared out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not only the building remains, but also there isn’t even a single causality.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in joy. Rebecca who was riding on Cú Chulainn in her Ark had cast the defense magic and neutralized the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Essarois is a place filled with the dreams of the girls. I as the student council of Ansarivan, I will have it protected until my death.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s declaration received cheers from the residents.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Rebecca wouldn’t let such cheers get over her head and she started reciting the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Appear! The certain hit magic spear!&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The summoned weapon appeared above Rebecca’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The magic spear turned into light particles and was shot towards the loathsome dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A new ball of light appeared in front of the dragon and it turned into seven layers of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It even knew defense magic!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!” pierced through the first layer of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then it continue was also broke apart easily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However it was obvious that it had slowed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time it broke through a layer, a large amount of magic was used up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fourth, the fifth… the sixth was penetrated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was praying while looking at Gáe Bolg’s path.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then, there was a crack in the seventh shield and it was pierced through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time when Ash was cheering, Gáe Bolg exploded at the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The flash caused their eyes to be blinded and it was followed by a loud bang.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The thick smoke had the dragon covered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was thinking that Rebecca had won.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the securities that should have led the people to safety were cheering happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then, the smoke started to clear up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The cheers were silent up by a hole in a head caused by the explosion. Even so, the dragon shouldn’t be able to live on after its brain &lt;br /&gt;
was destroyed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is that thing…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shivering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon has not yet fallen and Eco was still hanging in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next moment, the wound on the head started regenerating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as ifs the wound itself is another living being.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the wound was healed, the dragon returned to its original looks but its eyes looked even more menacing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, it swung its tail.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After seeing it using high class magic, Ash was surprised to see it change its style to physical attacks. It seems that Rebecca too, was &lt;br /&gt;
also caught off guard by it which led her to being slow in her reactions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca shouted in surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it was just a simple physical attack, the buildings behind the dragon were demolished like toy bricks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, they could only pray that the people inside the buildings could escape safely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Curses…!’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash clenched his teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could watch the dragon turn the city in ruins as a bystander.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Ash thought of a single person. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Milgauss, the masked man.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the day he met him in the forest, the still cog had been connected and started spinning. However, it was his instinct that told him &lt;br /&gt;
that. There was never a single proof.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What in the world is that dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once he heard the familiar voice, Ash was brought back to his sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, he saw that Silvia had arrived at the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Silvia saw the weird dragon, she fell on her backside and was shivering in fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately came to her side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Get a hold of yourself! Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though Ash was shouting loudly, Silvia never answered. Seeing such a supernatural sight had caused her to lose all her sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that instant, a flying dragon appeared on top of St Durham Square. It was obviously a Maestro since it had silvery white fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash! Bring the Princess as far away as you can!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a familiar voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was in charge of the accounts in the student council and also one of Ash’s few friends.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Max!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Leave this to me!... Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max wasn’t able to finish his sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon seeing that a new opponent had appeared immediately gave out a loud roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it released its ball of light with purple electric.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Arian!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Max’s command, Arianrhod immediately cast its defense magic. Though it managed to reduced the strength of the light ball, still it &lt;br /&gt;
had hit and fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Originally, a dragon shouldn’t be able to fly with such a build. It’s wings are only for decoration purposes. It was magic itself that &lt;br /&gt;
enables it to fly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he saw Arianrhod fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For it to even bring down Arianrhod with just a single hit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Arianrhod had no longer any magic to defend against the second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca who foresaw that ordered Cú Chulainn to glide down in the area in front of Max and Arianrhod. Without delaying a single moment, &lt;br /&gt;
she cast her defense magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the defending party, Rebecca had totally lost her mobility.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the worst situation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only choice left is to wait for the Holy Dragners of Lautreamont to arrive. But could the town people really hold on until then?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the entire town were already used to the peaceful life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For example, the entire strength of the security office was just hunting rifles and wooden batons. For offices where they have dragner &lt;br /&gt;
working there could only be found in the big cities.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was approaching Rebecca slowly. It probably thought of Rebecca as first to be removed as a target.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time the weird dragon took a step, the earth shook and the beautiful tiles turned into rubbles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as if it was a moving hill. Numerous tentacles had appeared right now and were gripping on Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aahhh! What the hell is this thing trying to do!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco continued to struggle. Even though she lost all her mobility, she still had decided that she is not going to ever give up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s it. I must save Eco.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After all, Eco is Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She is none other than Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is me… Am I able to do it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash questioned himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An answer flashed through his mind. It gave Ash shivers.  But still, it is a gamble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the instant, Ash remembered Eco enjoying her crepe happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on, it still hasn’t reached that stage yet… Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were still many nice things in this word that Eco knew nothing of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was not going to let her die like this before teaching her everything. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally made up his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will protect this city. Everybody. And also Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yet, there was still one more problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash needs Silvia’s cooperation to make his plan success.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama! Please get a hold of yourself!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He shouted towards Silvia who was still sitting on the ground in shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Silvia’s expression was still blank and continued to shiver. It was as if she is a totally different person from her usual &lt;br /&gt;
majestic self.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t joke with me…. What kind of a Princess are you! Where is the usual family motto! In such times shouldn’t you prove to us what &lt;br /&gt;
exactly is a royalty made of!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash lifted his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will apologize first! Sorry!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And he gave Silvia a slap on the face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sound was clear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ash?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was staring at Ash dumbstrucked. At least her thoughts were now focused. Although her red cheek was hurting, she had finally calmed&lt;br /&gt;
down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama, I had a request. Please summon Lancelot immediately and bring me with you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Bring you? Where to?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was pointing at the moving dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To be more specific, it was above the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately Silvia knew what he was thinking right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Definitely not! Are you even thinking properly!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s anger raises and stood up suddenly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Good, this is great. This is the Silvia that I knew of.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 006-007.jpg|thumb|&#039;&#039; Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted &lt;br /&gt;
to the dragon: “Your opponent is me!” &#039;&#039;]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted to the dragon:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Your opponent is me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strictly speaking, Ash didn’t even know if the dragon could even notice his voice. Basically the reason for him to shout was to keep his thoughts &lt;br /&gt;
from wavering. Still, the dragon did stop its footsteps.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It turned its head slowly and glared at both Ash and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia facial expression changed immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m alright. Princess-sama please summon Lancelot immedi…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could finish his sentence, the dragon shot a ray of light at them. It was definitely a different type of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash only understood that a strong energy shot pass the area above his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He raised his head in terror only to find out that the building behind him was crumbling. The three storey building behind him experienced &lt;br /&gt;
a direct hit from the attacking magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
How high exactly is the temperature need to melt debris of the building? Before Ash could even think about it, the building had crumbled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pile of wreckage was falling towards Ash and Silvia like a waterfall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the spur of the moment, Ash tried to protect Silvia. He could only shut his eyes and pray.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 16===&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey…! Until when are you going to stop acting in such manner?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s cold voice had given him the push to open his eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash though that he was buried under the pile of wreckage, but-.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt the wind blowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am flying…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia were in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then Ash realized that he was riding on Lancelot’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seems like Silvia had summoned Lancelot in the nick of time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The streets down below looked far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even St Durham Square looked miniature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge body that occupied a quarter of its space still exists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem is Ash was grabbing on to Silvia who was holding the reins from behind and his right hand was even grabbing on to her breast.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The soft feeling made him lost his calm. Since just now where the building started to crumble, his thought had always been blank.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t loosen your grip! You may fall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s warning made him calm down his thoughts and he started apologizing to Silvia. However, he continued grabbing on her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Obviously Ash had also shifted the position of his right hand. It was probably that he was thinking too much but somehow Silvia’s face had &lt;br /&gt;
turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, the dragon released its second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot in return roared loudly and cast its defense magic. A huge amount of pressure could be felt. Yet, Lancelot remained unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just as expected.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash praised.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This kind of level is child’s play for Lancelot. Back to the main point… Are you sure you want to do this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, please bring me to the appointed location. It must be none other than me to execute it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… Then I can only have faith in you. Lancelot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ooooon.” Under Silvia’s order, Lancelot roared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were gliding downwards towards the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The third and the fourth wave of attack were released but Lancelot avoided all of them with an amazing speed without even activating its &lt;br /&gt;
defence magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The distances between both parties were getting shorter until their entire fields of vision were covered by the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking for Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had prepared himself for the worst possible situation, where Eco was swallowed whole by the dragon. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Until now, this is the only chance where he can save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made up his mind and stood on Lancelot. To keep his balance, he held on to Silvia’s shoulder. Silvia remained silent while allowing him &lt;br /&gt;
to do so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The countdown begins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Ten, nine, eight, seven…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were getting closer to the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Three, two, one…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot flew pass the weird body in a very close distance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped towards the wall of grey furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a ‘Bump’ Ash landed safely. However, he slipped and nearly fell off but managed to cling to the furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon felt something on its head and was pissed. It shook its head vigorously. For that short moment, Ash felt like he was going to &lt;br /&gt;
fall off anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He crawled with all his might until he finally reached the space in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thought there are still many places that could be considered, it was his instinct that told Ash that this was the best place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With both of his foot on stable ground, Ash immediately stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, he thought about the feeling of his first ride on a dragon. Basically the situation was the same as yesterday where a &lt;br /&gt;
young dragon lost control. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A newborn Starda had gone rampage because its master had mistakenly fed it with Ansal Tea.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when the Grooms were in a fix trying to keep the situation under control, Ash who had just passed by, by a chance jumped onto the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He just had a hunch that he was able to do it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, he received a good amount of scolding from the school’s director even though he managed to calm the dragon down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s right, that young dragon was called- Lancelot.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That’s right. I totally forgot about it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled wryly. The Maestro that Silvia was riding on and the drunken Strada fitted perfectly in his memories.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He finally realized why Silvia was obsessed comparing herself to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash gained his confidence. Since he was able to calm Lancelot down, this weird dragon should not be a problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s begin…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Through his feet, he forced his conscious into the dragon like growing tree roots and spoke to the dragon gently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From now onwards, I am your master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon stopped its footsteps in reply to Ash’s words. Although it still continued growling, at the least it had stopped moving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s it. This is how it should be.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was smiling from the bottom of his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was thinking of giving it one more push, the dragon swung its head upwards like a trebuchet. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who was not prepared for this was thrown out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just moments before knocking into a building, Lancelot flew to his rescue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Phew… Saved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat on Lancelot and was just behind Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have never seen an idiot like you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia scolded while she was holding Lancelot’s reins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just a little more I could have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking with a serious tone. There was not even a hint of him joking. Silvia who had turned speechless looked just like a &lt;br /&gt;
graceful woman from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash said made sense. He was going to ride it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 17===&lt;br /&gt;
“Haaa… Haaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco looked pale. She was hurt by her inability to break free due to her lack of strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… For a descendant of a mighty dragon…. To lose to a low born dragon…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was provoking the dragon…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thrown out and had made a nice curve with it but was saved by Lancelot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is he trying to do?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was horrified.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash was doing was reckless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right. Ash was trying to tame this weird dragon by riding it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there is to be a single error, Ash will be squashed like a bug.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! What are you doing? Why don’t you run away!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who could endure it no longer shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! I will save you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash replied while sitting on Lancelot’s back. He seemed confident judging from his tone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That sentence had made her realized that Ash tried to save her instead of running away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was struggling to escape the tentacles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But the more she struggled, the tighter their grips became.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco, the dragon’s belly split open.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On both of the sides of the belly were aligned with row of sharp fine teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like an insect eating plat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It must have been a bad joke.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned pale.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Numerous tentacles appeared and Eco was swallowed into the mouth that looked like the gates of hell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she almost lost conscious, she could barely hear Ash’s cry&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 18===&lt;br /&gt;
“It seems that you have woken up, my sleeping beauty.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The bewitching voice had woken Eco up and she hurriedly looked around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A mysterious room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The floor was laid by square tile of black and white alternating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beside the four walls were statues that had not been completed. An incomplete human bodies. Incomplete beasts. Models of castle and &lt;br /&gt;
shrines. And also transports that Eco had never seen before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco who was sitting on the bed was a suspicious lady. The lady was sitting on an antique chair lazily. Her brilliant red dress looked extra conspicuous in the monochrome room.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 205.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the lady’s head were horns of an adult dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the Dragon Workshop. Also, I am called Navi.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Navi…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You just have to take me as another personality that is responsible to teach the immature you… Don’t you think that this is great?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t really understand. Also, what’s with your appearance?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting uneasy since the first time she saw Navi.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her looks, hair style and skin colour were exactly like Eco’s. The only difference is that Navi was a few years older.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hee hee. Are you worrying about my body? This design is based on a five years older version of you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wh-What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Still, this is just an assumption. You just may not grow up this well. Especially your breast.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi purposely put emphasis on the breast and deliberately shook them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad for being made fun of..&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph! It is not like bigger is better!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course, even the shape is important. But for you… Worrying about the size should be your main concern.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a detestable woman! I will squash you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Now lets us stop this useless talk as he is going to die if we let him continue what he was doing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a single wave from her right arm, a crystal ball appeared. A high concentration of lights was released by it and a projection of Ash &lt;br /&gt;
struggling with the weird looking opponent could be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He is still reckless!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking up towards the screen which was the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In a first look, this is not a bad idea. After all he was born with that gift to ride any kind of dragons. However, this opponent is too &lt;br /&gt;
much for him to handle. He had no chance of winning against that Necromancia.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Necromancia?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. It is a dragon that died once but was resurrected by human technology.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk! What should we do…? There is nothing in my ability to help him.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was saddened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, do you know why a holy dragon is called a Maestro.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was puzzled by the sudden question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before the existence of the secret agreement of Albion, the holy dragons were craft workers. This dragon workshop was built by a group of &lt;br /&gt;
great Maestros. The Ark is only one of the many things created by the Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi was trying to say.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are telling me that he is lacking an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good answer. And of course the only person who can present him with the Ark is only you as his Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… How can I…? That’s it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco remembered her conversation with Ash in St Druham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Hmm, if it is the blueprint for the Ark, I have the access to it.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-If that’s the case, can you use the blueprint… To create an Ark?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Are you crazy! That’s is nothing but an imitation.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it is an imitation, it is still an Ark. Certainly, Eco&#039;s pride does not allow her to make a copy from her ancestor, but this &lt;br /&gt;
was an emergency.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco accessed the Dragweiss immediately and focused her thoughts. Without delay, the projection on the ceiling started changing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice either.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since year 10 of A.S.B where the secret agreement of Albion was made, there were many blueprints left by the dragons. Apart from the Arks &lt;br /&gt;
that were worn by humans, there were also those that were made as a trial.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The total amount of blueprints easily exceeds a thousand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was disappointed after read the blueprints.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every single blueprint was full of details and even copying may become a difficult task.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come on! How am I to copy this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was feeling troubled, the thought of St Durham’s Statue flash pass.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She instantly summoned St Durham’s Ark’s blueprint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Time of production	Year 846 A.S.B/ Month of Libra/ 2nd day.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Name of knight		Durham Lautreamont &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Ark Weapon		Magic sword Caliber&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to the present, the design and structure five hundred years ago was simpler.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is this Ark, I should be able to do it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You’re naïve.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why? Supposing I had no experience in making an Ark, I still inherit the basic knowledge. So what are you even-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It just doesn’t work that way. An Ark is an armour that was custom made for its knight. If you just make a copy of a previous work, he &lt;br /&gt;
won’t be able to wear it. If you force it on him, it may even endanger his life.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What! Then this isn’t even an option to begin with!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hehe. When did I mention that? The Dragweiss had collected a huge amount of blueprints since the old times. It is possible to select &lt;br /&gt;
parts of the armour that fits him from this amount of blueprints.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By shaking a crystal, an infinite amount of blueprints appeared on the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Could it be that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi means.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We will select parts of the armour that fits him and reorganized them.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, can I do it? For starters, how am I going to know if the parts suit him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was worrying about the most important part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before an Ark was made, it requires that data of the person wearing it. First is the height and then follow by a mountain full of &lt;br /&gt;
information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara. If you are talking about his data, I already have it here with me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled cheekily touched Eco’s forehead with the crystal ball. In an instant, all the information in the crystal ball flowed into &lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… Is his data?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was able to construct a three dimensional structure using the huge amount of information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco blushed. Ash image in her mind was stark naked. Every single detail on his body was clearly recorded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-A perfect data…. But how did this data get into your hands?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I was expecting something similar to this to happen. Just before you were born, I sneaked into his dream. Actually I finish collecting my &lt;br /&gt;
data in just a night but since he is too cute, I had been doing that for a whole week.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How dare you toy with my pet dog!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi was laughing in front of the angry Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see that someone is jealous.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-There is no way that I-I….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so? But why are you blushing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am gonna squash you!... Erm, this is not the right time and place to argue!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit. So let’s begin.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi slowly stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know whether I am capable of doing it but… this is the only choice left!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally made up her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 19===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it had been three times, Ash never gave up. On the other hand, he was saved by Lancelot every single time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucky for him, the grey dragon had Lancelot locked on as its target. Every single attack was directed towards Lancelot which in turn, &lt;br /&gt;
reduced the amount of destruction towards the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, there is a limit to the amount of magic that Lancelot possesses. In truth, it flying speed had been greatly reduced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is at its limit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood her frustration from her words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. This time will be the final!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia signal Lancelot to change its direction and dive down towards the middle of the square. Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tell me that is not true…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was suddenly swallowed into the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in dismay.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are not able to make it in time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was eaten whole by that monster right in front of Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!... It&#039;s my fault for being weak…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t give up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia reminded Ash who felt that he was going to break apart in despair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She may still be alive! If you give up at this moment, she will definitely die for sure!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately kept his cool. Silvia was right. If not because of she was holding the reins with both hands, she is sure to give him a &lt;br /&gt;
slap on the face like what he did to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, the Seikoku on his left arm started hurting. It was the same feeling as the time where Eco was kidnapped by Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reaction from the Seikoku made him felt relief.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This proofs that his link with Eco had not yet been cut off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yeah… I mustn’t give up yet. Princess-sama! Please bring me to where the monster is!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again, Lancelot started diving downwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 20===&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me a break! Why can’t I get it right!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was shouting in desperation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The opponent that Ash was battling was a Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its element is ‘dark’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Naturally, the Ark that she is going to present to Ash should have the ‘light’ element in it. It had been a common knowledge since the &lt;br /&gt;
ancient times that light can conquer darkness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…! Just as expected, this is impossible…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sitting on her knees in disappointment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Tears were dripping from her eyes. It was the first time Eco ever cried from the feeling of regret.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Don’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Eco heard something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The owner of the sound was none other than Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it him…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco lifted her head up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was still continuing his fight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While fighting against the dragon, he was calling out to Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“I will save you! I still believe that you are still alive! That is why… That is why, you mustn&#039;t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These were not spoken by words. They were spoken through the Astral Flow that connects the dragon and its breeder. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She felt warm from the bottom of her heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco knew from where this warm came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Druing her time as an Orphan, Eco had always been inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She could never forget about this warm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was going against the odds, Ash never ran away from anything.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He even dare face such a monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For how many times had he stood on the dragon’s head and for how many times had he been thrown out. Right now, his clothes were like rags &lt;br /&gt;
and there were many obvious bruise and wounds on his body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, his eyes never stop glittering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco clenched her fists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Unforgivable!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s it. Ash was fighting for her sake and her pride doesn&#039;t allow her to stay still while waiting to be saved.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… It is totally unforgivable… That is why…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her tired body was once again filled with magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her overflowing amounts of magic crystallized outside of her body and were sparkling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco never once expect herself to have such a large amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her field of vision widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could not keep herself from smiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Almete, Gorjal, Peto… Espaldar……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought the amount of blueprints in the Dragweiss is abnormally large, the Eco right now had the ability to handle all of them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Brafoneras, Faldaje… Escarcelas……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In among the parts that suits Ash, Eco selects the ones with light element and combined them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Bufetas, Hombreras, Brazales… Codales….., Antebrazos……. Manoplas……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to those who create the Ark from scraps, Eco’s actions may seem detestable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could never be able to object for shaming the tradition and placing a curse on her ancestral.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Quijotes… Guardas… Grebas…… Escarpes……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However to Eco, it did be a worst sin to just be a bystander and witness all the fun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco no longer hesitates.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With mixed emotions, she had chosen the final part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“-Espolón!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, Eco had opened the gate that leads to a brand new world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 21===&lt;br /&gt;
No matter how badly he failed, he had lost count of the number of times he returned. Right now, he was lying on Lancelot’s back in anguish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pain was so immersed that he could no longer feel his limbs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is really at its limit. This will be the last chance we have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s voice was obviously shaking. They really must succeed. The moment Lancelot used up all its magic and can no longer fly, everything &lt;br /&gt;
that was done will be in vain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan will be in ruins and Eco will definitely die.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It will be impossible to save all the refuges unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… What should I do…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was in a pinch…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“You are the one who shouldn’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s voice was heard in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco? Eco! You are still alive!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had been sometime since she was swallowed by the dragon but Ash could clearly hear her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Isn’t that obvious! No matter what I do, I can never look for a substitute for my useless pet dog, so just take this as a gift.”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Take what?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next instant, Ash was surrounded by dazzling lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His eyes’ widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An outline slowly appeared in the light and transformed into a brilliant armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Isn’t that an… Ark! It is godly…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia squeaked when she turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had a strange feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a heavy looking armour but it doesn’t feel that way.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps it was the strong amount of magic that removed the weight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though he just wore it, he could feel an overflowing amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“With this… I can never lose.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled confidently and spoke facing Eco who was inside the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you Eco! I had received your feelings!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, Eco replied with a scold.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“D-Don’t joke with me! That is just a mimic! Not an original! I have never thought of presenting you with it at all!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was certainly full of objections.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go, Princess- sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had been equipped with the Ark was full of spirits.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia didn’t waste a single moment and ordered Lancelot to dive down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it had used up most of its magic, it still answered Ash and Silvia’s call by raising its speed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking to her from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… What is it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is a good dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What does that have to do with this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why you should never again try to ride on another dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Are you an idiot! What are you saying at a time like this…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the best time to tell you this. You had Lancelot who is the best Pal. So, what is the thing that you are craving for?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I… Definitely knew that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot made a great roar in reply to Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are getting faster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge grey body was getting closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now’s the time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt that his body had blend into the wind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After drawing out a curve in the air, Ash landed on the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks to the Ark, Ash could even stand on the dragon without clinging to its fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could even feel the dragon’s body heat through the armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at this moment, Ash was one with the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be wrong. The Ark had pushed Ash’s gift to its maximum potential.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From his feet, his consciousness was growing into the dragon like roots.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If Ash was to be described as a tree, then the dragon is the earth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash could feel the dragon’s rejecting feeling in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It doesn’t matter whether you are god or even the devil himself…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was like a tower in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For what I know, every dragon will bound to be ridden by me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, there was a change in the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its folded wings were suddenly flapping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was flying towards the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 22===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Seems like we had stepped into an ambush…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss sighed when he saw the Necromancia flying away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was the person controlling the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge sword in his hands was not only the switch, it was also the controller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Milgauss was never successful in making the Necromancia fly but that boy had it proved to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, Milgauss was dead calm. It was just as expected.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was sweating when she looked at Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were cold sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy who was riding the Necromancia away from the city is THAT BOY.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had never reported to Milgauss about their meeting in the streets. She didn’t expect the boy to appear right there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Where exactly did I meet that boy before…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was trembling from that single sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, whatever.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luckily, MIlgauss never question any further.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The experiment ended with a failure, but we still obtain some useful results. That boy and also… that girl.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Girl?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was confused. Did he mean Rebecca Randall the Ark Dragner?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or is it Princess Silvia who was flying on Lancelot?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However she was wrong.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t the Necromancia capture a girl? The one with horns. She is probably the one who presented the boy with the Ark. Even though she &lt;br /&gt;
looks human… She might be descendant of a dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I never…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss had no intention of speaking anymore. He silently kept the huge sword and gazed at Anya through the mask.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will retreat for now.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya knelt down immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 23===&lt;br /&gt;
“I did it…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon spread it wings and flew up towards the sky with Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was getting higher and higher and further away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, Ansarivan town, the plains beside and Fianna Forest looked like toys.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was all according to his plan. First he had to bring this dangerous dragon away to ensure to safety of the townspeople.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could understand the dragon’s thought through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The muzzy thoughts suddenly turned clear. If felt as if the Ark had translated the dragon’s feeling into words that Ash understands.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was anger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hatred too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And also- Love.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see. You also had a master in the past.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash didn’t know where this dragon came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He only knew that this was just a normal dragon that grew up in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it told Ash its wish through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood the sad wish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Necromancia? Something that disobey the logic of this world? Do you really want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It once again assured Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It trusted as like it did to its master.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you really sure that you want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia was asking for Ash to kill it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the only way out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… what about Eco after I killed you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was worried about killing the Necromancia because Eco was still inside the Necromancia. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After knowing what Ash thinking was, the dragon reassured him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ermm… Can I really trust you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia nodded its head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It promised to protect Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Alright. Leave everything to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he had made up his mind, an image of a sword appeared in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the Ark was created hastily, Ash still had obtained the same power as an Ark Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Similar to Rebecca’s Gáe Bolg, every Ark Dragner must possess an Ark weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was glowing and an immense amount of magic flowed out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The details of the Ark Weapon were circulating inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a sword. A sword with light as its element.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Following the information, Ash chanted the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Appear! The sword that was graced by the light! Please lend me all your powers that are able to repent darkness…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The area on Ash’s forehead was flooding with light.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A tremendous amount of magic was flowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A huge sword that was taller than Ash appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Aix-les-Bains!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After lifting Aix-les-Bains easily, Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuoooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was falling. Starting from the dragon’s head to its belly, the sword that wields light slashed through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon split into two.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sword transformed into silvery lights and cut through its bones and flesh.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The tough body of the dragon burst into parts like a paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The destroyed body turned into grey particles and was blown away by the winds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Eco was thrown up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was probably thrown up by the dragon before the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was diving at Eco’s direction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was also accelerating using the magic of the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was not even a hint of fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stretched out his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco stretched out hers too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both of them were close, but yet so far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pressure from the strong wind seemed to be able to cut through skin but Ash still shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made a kick in the air by releasing the magic in the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco once again stretched out her arms further after being called.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was the first time Eco call his name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fingers met.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then they felt the weight on their palms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now they were grabbing each other’s hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not wanting Eco to leave his side again, Ash made a pull.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was embracing his chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While hugging the delicate body, Ash could feel her body heat. He had decided to land on the plains below.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With the protection from the Ark, they remain unharmed even after falling from a few hundreds of meters from above.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dark cloud in Ansarivan had disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the horizon, the sun appeared once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We did it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he smiled, the Ark broke into light particles and disappeared. Similarly, Aix-les-Bains which was in his belt had also disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as Eco had said, this was just hastily made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it did actually manage to save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you, Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Its nothing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco turned to a side. She really hasn’t changed at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he started smiling, his smile turned into horror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… What’s with your fist?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her fist was bleeding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Surely it was hurt when she was caught by the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-This is nothing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash held her hand and licked her wound. It was a usual practice in Ash’s hometown when children hurt themselves.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It may be obvious to Ash but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad and started rampaging.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! It is just for disinfection, disinfection I say!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who turned embarrassed bit his neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! This is not a joke! I might even die…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was probably tired finally calmed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting uneasy but Eco was already fast asleep. He showed sign of relieved and smile bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A boy who can ride any dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Some corrections should be made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or at least until he found a way to handle Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Dark Gray Invasion ~A.S.B.1365.5~&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2|Chapter 2]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354061</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_3&amp;diff=354061"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T14:53:23Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 6 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 3 - Necromancia&#039;s Attack==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
The month of Aries had ended and it was the arrival of the month of Taurus.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem concerning Eco&#039;s lodging was put on hold and no decision had been made yet because of the incident where Angela had become a teacher in just a flash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In short, Eco was still sleeping on Ash&#039;s bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem they were facing was, Apollo House which was the dormitory where Ash was staying at is a male&#039;s dorm. Furthermore, Eco is an extremely beautiful girl as long as she kept her mouth shut.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And Ash was staying with such a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was obvious some weird rumours would emerge among the students who were living in Apollo House.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
The class room of the first year advanced course.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When school was about to dismissed, Raymond walked towards Ash&#039;s table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yo, Ash. Why don’t we go and have some fun since we are free?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, I have to go to the student council’s office.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Student council…? Why?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err, the president asked for me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had informed Ash to find a free time to visit the student council’s office about a week ago. Since Eco had gotten used to the campus &lt;br /&gt;
life, it should be about time for him to make his visit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it true? I think Rebecca Nee-san should have many questions for you. Or many she wants to blame you for something… Just by thinking…&lt;br /&gt;
Haaa… Haaa.” &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have nothing to say to you…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err… did &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039; goes well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash asked while Raymond pushed his face nearer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond was looking totally serious.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Aren’t you teaching Eco on the bed?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Raymond had ended his sentence, the entire class turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was looking at Ash with suspicious eyes. Everyone in the academy knew that Ash’s pal was born as a beautiful girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t say something that will make people misunderstood! Don’t you know that Eco is a dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Raymond smile sinisterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Right, anyway I knew that you don’t even have the guts to do &#039;&#039;it&#039;&#039;.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then just don’t say something that will make people misunderstood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haha… Could it be that you are the one who was being taught?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because Raymond who had hit the bull’s eye with just a guess, Ash was a little taken aback but he dare not speak back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
The student council office was located at the highest floor of the academy’s centre tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gulped when he was standing in front of the grand door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From a long time ago, Ansarivan’s student council had a huge power. They not only dealt with the academy’s council but they also have the right &lt;br /&gt;
of speech in the city council. According to some rumours, the student council president’s power is superior to the mayor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please enter.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before he even knocked, the student council president’s voice could be heard. This made Ash tremble a little.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for interrupting.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He timidly opened the door and walked into the office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was crossing her arms while standing by the window that was at the far end of the room. There wasn’t another soul in this room. When he &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that they were alone, Ash who had felt uneasy from the start was now sweating nervously.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahhh, Ash. You finally came!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca turned around and stared at Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With her marble statue like beauty together with her crimson coloured hair, it let out an amazing feeling. Even her body proportion outshone &lt;br /&gt;
other people. Her curves were perfect and not even her uniform could hide it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca Randall who had received the Ark-Dragner title was not only well known in Ansarivan. Her name was widely spread in the entire Knight &lt;br /&gt;
Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even in the well known Holy Dragners of Lautreamont had only one in a ten of their members who received the title Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from that, the requirements to obtain the title Ark-Dragner is very strict.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fuu. Don’t be shy. Just take a seat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-Yes…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat at a corner of the sofa, frightened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca sat beside Ash without even a second thought. He smelled something refreshing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was uneasy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was nervous because of their close distance where they can feel each other’s breath. Since there was also a sofa located right opposite, &lt;br /&gt;
logically speaking, Rebecca should have sat there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Rebecca showed a playful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To get to know another person better, sitting side by side is the best choice, this is common knowledge for dating.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Is it…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Young man, you must remember it. Next time, if you are on a date, remember not to sit opposite of her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, dates or whatever… It is still a far away dream.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was blushing in embarrassment while Rebecca unexpectedly was enjoying that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… In another words, no one had noticed your true value yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“True value?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If for me, I still haven’t determined how good of a man you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly stopped smiling and moved towards the main topic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In short, I am here to discuss the things regarding Eco with you… Saying that, what is she doing when you are in class? You can’t just keep &lt;br /&gt;
her in the man’s dormitory right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, Cosette is helping me with that. I don’t think that it will be a problem.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the kidnapping incident a few days ago had ended, Ash had told Cosette his trouble when they were chit chatting. Cosette immediately &lt;br /&gt;
volunteered to help take care of Eco. Since Costte also had nothing to do when Silvia was attending classes, she can accompany Eco in Ash’s &lt;br /&gt;
place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only think he worried about was whether Eco will accept Cosette. Until today, it seemed like there was no such problem. In front of &lt;br /&gt;
Cosette, Eco was always acting mature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Cosette huh? There won’t be a problem if it is her. I had met Cosette a few times before and she is not someone to be underestimated.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So Rebecca-san also thinks so?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile because he was thinking something bad about Cosette.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Umm… It is said that when the Paladin sent Princess Silvia to Ansarivan, about a hundred maids and guards were sent together.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! It must be troublesome…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Princess of course had gone against the Paladin’s will. In the end, because the Paladin insisted, she brought Cosette alone along with &lt;br /&gt;
her. Judging from that, Cosette is something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Back to the topic, you are also something.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was looking at him sharply until he started to sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you talking about?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When had you started to have this close relationship with Cosette?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s beautiful face was getting closer. The refreshing smell was getting stronger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Err…About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being asked something unexpected, Ash’s head started spinning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How dare you hide something from me? It isn’t good you know. By the way, you are not thinking that Rebecca Randall is someone simple &lt;br /&gt;
right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s face was getting closer and closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought there was a faint hint of a smile by her lips, her eyes were not smiling at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Alright! Please promise me that… Don’t tell anyone about this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, I guess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca nodded and moved her head backwards back to her original position.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash took a deep breath and told her everything about the incident where Eco had been kidnapped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
The seventh dragon house was specially built for Maestros. Apart from Rebecca’s Cú Chulainn, there were four more Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Take it slowly, there are many more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Lancelot was gulping down the thickly sliced meat, Silvia smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Normally, jobs like feeding, preparing the beds, balancing the nutrients, cleaning… were done by the groom of the dragon house. The breeders &lt;br /&gt;
on the other hand just need to focus their thoughts on studying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However Silvia had always taken care of Lancelot on her own.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyday, she will always visit the dragon house five times. She will feed it on her own, clean the dragon house and even give Lancelot a bath. &lt;br /&gt;
If Lancelot felt itchy, she will sure to be there to give a scratch on that spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Silvia’s care, Lancelot who was born as a Strada had grown into a beautiful Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her achievement was acknowledged and she had received the title Dragner in the young age of fourteen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The title Dragner can only be received by a breeder whose Pal is a Maestro. It had been a tradition in the Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Silvia was never satisfied with her current achievement. Her aim was to become a ‘Great Dragner’. Just the title Dragner could &lt;br /&gt;
never satisfy her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright Lancelot… Next will be an Ark-Dragner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia patted Lancelot after she spoke out her thought. Its silvery white fur was tick and felt nice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Silvia pressed her hands against her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s proof of a Breeder the Seikoku was at the middle of her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her memories when she was seven came into her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To obtain an orphan from the mother dragon, Silvia had entered Albion Forest alone. However, she injured her leg and was crying while standing. &lt;br /&gt;
She left the palace with the thought of she will definitely become a breeder but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then there was a young boy who reached out to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Like Silvia, the young guy was here on the same day for the Orphan Ceremony.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-I will give you a piggyback while we look for mother dragon together.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s heart beat increased when she thought about the guy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If not for his help, Silvia would never have become a Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… I had made a promise with him. I will become a great knight. If I did anything that should not be done by an owner, I want you &lt;br /&gt;
to scold me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadly, Lancelot only had its eyes on the meat and was not bothered by Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk, what a child you are.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia shook her head and gave a wry smile. Although it had become a Maestro, it was still a young dragon. Compare to Cú Chulainn, its body &lt;br /&gt;
size was definitely smaller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Speaking of that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was thinking about Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only student who dared to challenge Silvia Lautreamont.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, Silvia had won the match but she didn’t have the feeling of victory. On the other hand it can be said as a losing feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had given Silvia a help on the race’s position arrangement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She clearly understood her attitude of looking down on her enemy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only that she had never thought that such a despicable method will be used. If not for Ash who made use of the chance, Silvia would not be &lt;br /&gt;
able to win.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash Blake… I have never seen such an irregular guy. He could even ride on other people’s Pal as he liked which is out of common knowledge. In the &lt;br /&gt;
end, what is the trick he was using-?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Silvia was mumbling, there was a cry of help from outside of the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon has gone mad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash had told her everything, Rebecca sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… For such a thing to happen. Angela-sensei is also a troublesome person. She is one of the best in the continent in dragon researching.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had never thought that teacher could be such a great person…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is a total dragon maniac. She had thought of becoming a Dragner since she was still a child. In the end, she was not selected in the &lt;br /&gt;
Orphan Ceremony…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will never hand an orphan to her if I am the mother dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Perhaps not being selected had left her with traumas until today. However, Angela-sensei’s skills and knowledge are the real stuff. Lets observe her for the time being.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Observe…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t hide his sad looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it is possible, he doesn’t want to have anything to do with her for a second time…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right! There is one more thing about Eco. It is about when you are in the forest and you said that you had encountered some uninvited &lt;br /&gt;
guest.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash with a ‘Hah’ lifted his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Many things had happened after Eco was born and he had forgotten about it. The suspected to be Empire’s soldier was lurking around in the &lt;br /&gt;
Knight Country territory. This is not something to be overlooked.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In the end, just who are those two?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The masked man called Milgauss with an extraordinary temperament.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl who wanted to have Ash killed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… ‘Milgauss’ should be a nickname. It doesn’t look like an Empire’s surname. Perhaps he could be the Empire’s agent. If that’s the case, &lt;br /&gt;
this is not a problem that a mere student could solve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had never thought of Rebecca as a ‘mere student’, but he chose to keep this thought to himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, I will pass your message to the peace keepers’ office. However, if the masked man is from the Empire’s army, I am afraid that the &lt;br /&gt;
peace keepers will also be helpless.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she remained calm, the way she had spoken was terrifying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It should be alright, right? Ansarivan is an academy for breeders and not a military school. It shouldn’t be targeted by the Empire.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We are not the military’s backup. The paths that a Breeder can take is not only limited to joining the Knight corps or the dragon elite troops. What’s more, Lautreamont Knight Country was built with the rules that no dragons were allowed in the military. However, it is still the truth that &#039;&#039;&#039;THAT WAR&#039;&#039;&#039; had changed Lautreamont Knight Country and Ansarivan.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-That war. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the ‘Xenoglavia War’ that was triggered fifty two years before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Lautreamont Knight Country was established, it was the first time that the dragons were sent to war.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It all begins when the Zepharos Empire’s armies from the north attacked Chevron Kingdom’s territory in the south.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Empire’s armies were armed with many mechanical weapons and had a huge amount of destruction force. In just a short moment, Chevron’s &lt;br /&gt;
Royal Knights that was said to be strongest mounted troops in the whole continent was wiped out. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Chevron’s king who was worried sent a secret messenger to Lautreamont Knight Country.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, the dragons who were not involved in any wars for four hundred and fifty years flew towards the battle field once again to save &lt;br /&gt;
their allies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Holy Dragners of Lautreamont led by the Paladin himself joined the battle and the Empire’s armies that had suffered great causality were &lt;br /&gt;
forced to retreat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, the Kingdom and the Empire signed a truce.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To the Empire, Ansarivan was not only a place for the military backup, but also a factory that produces mass destructions weapons. In another &lt;br /&gt;
words, it is a military base. Just by judging from this, it is highly possible that Ansarivan is their target for the preparation for the next &lt;br /&gt;
war.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that Ash had turned pale, Rebecca smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t have to be surprised, Ash. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That… It is you, Rebecca-san.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That&#039;s it. Cú Chulainn and I will protect Ansarivan at all cost. That is why I want you to join us.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Even me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes, even you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca pressed forward and their shoulders were touching each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you not want to join the student council?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked by the unexpected invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible! Since all the student council members are Dragners.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So one cannot join the student council if they are not a Dragner? I don’t remember such rules. It was just by chance that it looked like that &lt;br /&gt;
in this year.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I heard from every person around you that you are called as ‘The Boy Who Can Ride Any Dragon’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that exaggeration is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You don’t have to act humble. Even I could not ride on another person’s Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before anyone noticed, they are at the distance where their nose could touch. Rebecca’s beauty was drawing closer.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 149.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash suddenly noticed that Rebecca’s palm was on his knee.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s body heat could be felt by Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s heart was at the verge of exploding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be exact, I want you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can you please think about it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, but… If I… The student council-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At this moment, as if helping Ash who was getting anxious, the bell rang. Compare to the normal bells, this bell doesn’t sound stable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from the continuous ringing of the bell, it should be the emergency bell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Level two emergency state…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca had recognized the meaning of the bell in just a short time and moved towards the side of the window. Ash too was taking a peep &lt;br /&gt;
outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The ‘level two emergency state’ in Ansarivan means that a certain dragon had caused havoc and had flown out from the dragon house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The entire school ground could be seen from the student council office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, a Strada was running amok. Its body was small and it looked as if it was just born days before. It still couldn’t spread its &lt;br /&gt;
wings let alone flying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca gave a wry smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa, this happens usually during this time of year. It will end in a short while.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected of the student council president Rebecca, she was calm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few grooms had arrived at the scene and had the dragon surrounded with nets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragons are living things with high intelligence, however they are also short tempered. Especially during the times when they were young, it &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
was not unusual for them to turn mad because of some small matters. Even their owners could do nothing about it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course all the grooms working in the dragon house had undergone special training to handle such situation. Just as Rebecca had said, the &lt;br /&gt;
incident could be settled in a short moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash himself had lost interest in the incident and wanted to leave the window side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca suddenly shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who arrived at the scene jumped on the young dragon that had gone mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She looked like she was trying to suppress the young dragon with her own power. Her actions doesn’t match her usual self for it was a &lt;br /&gt;
foolhardy decision.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from their owner who they acknowledged, the dragons will never allow anyone to ride on their back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Silvia was trying her best to just cling on the dragon’s back. She was in a fix because she could be thrown out anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s action had obviously caused trouble to the grooms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is she an idiot! What is princess-sama trying to pull…?!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is most probably because of her ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash couldn’t understand what Rebecca was saying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From what I can see, Her Highness is a perfectionist. No matter what kind of losing it is, she hates it. When there is a classmate who can &lt;br /&gt;
ride any dragon exist, she was burning with the ambition to surpass you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just because of such things…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash frowned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To Her Highness, it was never ‘Just because of such things’.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… If that’s the case, I will go and help her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There is no need for that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The voice that hurts like a whip forced Ash to stop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is true that you have some unusual talent. However, are you confident enough that you will be able to suppress the young dragon and at the &lt;br /&gt;
same time prevent Her Highness from getting hurt?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“About that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s sharp words had made Ash speechless. If it was to calm down the young dragon, Ash himself was more than enough.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Ash doesn’t have to confidence to guarantee to be able to save Silvia without getting her hurt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, what she we do…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I had said it just before. Who do you think that the Ansarivan’s student council president is?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Rebecca humped onto the window frame. Her red hair that looked like it was on fire was dancing with the winds. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on…! Rebecca-san? What do you think-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will end this quickly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, Rebecca disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca jumped down from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked and took a peek downwards from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Answer my summon…Cú Chulainn!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Out of a sudden, there was a twist in the space beneath Rebecca and Cú Chulainn appeared majestically.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she had landed safely on Cú Chulainn’s back, she spoke strictly:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“In my name Rebecca Randall, present me the Ark you created!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn roared in respond to Rebecca’s summon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was light surrounding Rebecca’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her uniform that she had worn until just now had dissolved in the sea of lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a short time, her naked body was exposed. However, because of the excessive brightness, Ash was unable to look at her clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next time Ash opened his eyes, Rebecca’s body was already surrounded by a dazzling knight’s armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was just like a knight from the legends looked godly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is… the Ark!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had heard before about it in the rumours but today was the first time he witnessed it with his own eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was the proof of an absolute loyalty from a Maestro to its owner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment a Dragner received an Ark from his Pal, he will be known as an Ark-Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Whoosh!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cú Chulainn’s huge body had flew up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong wind pressure nearly had Ash who was standing by the window blown off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s scream was heard from down below. She was floating in mid air as if she was sent flying by a chariot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash leaned his body out from the window frame and shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just before Silvia lands on the ground, Cú Chulainn accelerating downwards. In Ash eyes, Cú Chulainn was like teleporting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Cú Chulainn was again flying upwards, Rebecca had caught Silvia&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash, Her Highness is in your care!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could even respond to it, Rebecca had her eyes poised at the student council’s office’s window and threw out Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the distance was not even two meters, but to throw a country’s princess, it was not at all normal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in surprise and caught Silvia. They were in the so called ‘Princess carry’ situation and he must stand firm no matter what.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Ash&#039;s arms, Silvia had lost her consciousness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even under such situation, Ash’s heart was beating rapidly. His left hand that was supporting Silvia’s lower half was touching something soft &lt;br /&gt;
and elastic. Also, the was a flower like fragrance coming from her dazzling golden hair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, he heard Rebecca’s spell coming from outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;&amp;quot;Appear… The certain hit magic spear…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The was a flash in respond to Rebecca’s spell and an enormous spear had appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the Ark-Weapon that only an Ark-Dragner could use.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An Ark was not just simply an armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was stored with strong magic and it comes with a one and only Ark-Weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Gáe Bolg!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Ash’s eyes, Rebecca swung the magic spear Gáe Bolg!&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong magic transformed into a ray of light and was shot down onto the ground. There was a small explosion on the ground beside the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging young dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there was a slight mistake, the young dragon will definitely die. However, it was Rebecca that we were talking about. The shock from the &lt;br /&gt;
explosion had caused the young dragon to faint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a while since Rebecca had the young dragon suppressed, Silvia woke up while lying in Ash’s arms. When she found out that she was carried by Ash-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wha…! What are you doing…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was blushing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa! Don’t move around! I can’t hold on any longer!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he warned, Silvia fell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was glaring at Ash with tears in her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I warn you that you will fall! Anyway why did you do that? You would have been dead &lt;br /&gt;
if not because of Rebecca’s help!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… Don’t even understand how it feels!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment she shouted, tears were dripping from her eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To hide her crying looks, Silvia turned around and ran out from the student &lt;br /&gt;
council’s office.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the matter, Princess-sama…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash mumbled. Next, there was a voice coming from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry. It is my duty to deal with the Princess.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, Rebecca who had changed back into her uniform was sitting on the &lt;br /&gt;
window frame and was with a smile full of confidence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
The next day after the young dragon’s incident was a school holiday.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had again accompanied Eco to Ansarivan City. In truth, Ash wanted to pass &lt;br /&gt;
his time in the dorm, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The crepes are calling out to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With this reason alone, Ash went out with Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, let’s hunt down the crepe stall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After passing by the main door that separates the academy and the city, Eco &lt;br /&gt;
immediately dragged Ash with her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Does a food made by a stupid and ignorant human being taste that well?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sh-Shut up! It is the humans that are stupid and ignorant! The crepes had &lt;br /&gt;
nothing to do with this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned red when she replied to Ash’s tease and she continued to march &lt;br /&gt;
on forward. Eco’s respond made Ash felt a little bad… Maybe he should reflect &lt;br /&gt;
on that a little. Ash chased after Eco’s small back and knocked into someone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash just lost his balance for just a moment but the other person had fell on the &lt;br /&gt;
ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry, it was my bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately held out his hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… Me too. Because I am careless…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person answering was a girl at Ash’s age range. There was also a flower &lt;br /&gt;
basket by her feet. The combination of her black hair and her oat colour skin &lt;br /&gt;
was very striking. Her worrisome looks together with her exotic face gave a &lt;br /&gt;
special feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment she saw Ash, her face stiffen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Y-You…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her eyes widen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is there anything… On my face?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The girl grabbed the flower basket and flee. In a short moment, she managed to &lt;br /&gt;
blend into the crowd.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All the pedestrians beside was looking at Ash with the eyes that list him &lt;br /&gt;
as a pervert.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That’s not the case! I did nothing at all!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he explained to the people around him, Ash left the place as if him was &lt;br /&gt;
running away from something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Running away after looking at a person’s face, what a rude child she is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While cursing, he arrived at the crepe stall. Although she doesn’t even had any &lt;br /&gt;
money with her, Eco was calling out to the stall keeper just like a regular customer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me one Ansal Crepe!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
Anya who was the girl who pretended to be the flower seller was breathing heavily while hiding in an alley where there is no sign of other life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Previously, the moment she saw the guys face, she thought she had seen a ghost.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Last month, the guy who should have been dead was walking on the streets leisurely. Just that had given her a great shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;He should have been dead.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He had fallen into a pit less ravine and it will be impossible for him to be unscathed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It should have been more logical if it is another guy with the same looks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, that’s not it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be a mistake. That face, that voice, that tone… He was the one Anya met and killed in the forest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;If that’s the case, why is he alive?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to logic, the chances for him to be able to survive were zero.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it was still the truth that he was alive. She had seen it with her own eyes, it was undoubtable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was surprising for the guy not to recognize Anya. However, thinking carefully, during that time, Anya had a mask on her face and she was &lt;br /&gt;
wearing her Tantalos battle suit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, no matter how you look at it, right now, Anya was just a flower seller. It was understandable if Ash couldn’t recognize &lt;br /&gt;
her. That is her only life saver.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What should I do…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That day, when she had returned back to Milgauss from the ravine, Anya had thought that it was impossible for the guy to survive so she &lt;br /&gt;
reported with ‘He was terminated’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss only replied with a ‘Thanks for the hard work’. Apart from that, he didn’t ask the specifics. To Milgauss, that guy was not at all &lt;br /&gt;
important.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was lost. Should she change the report that she had told Milgauss?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-The guy who fell into the ravine was actually still alive.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only until today she was going to show her report to Milgauss, that’s ridicules.&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the problem was not that simple.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For some time, Anya felt that there was a thorn that was piercing her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the time when the cliff was falling, the guy had given Anya a push. Thanks to that, it was not Anya who fell down the cliff.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even at the moment he was fated to die, he had chosen to save Anya.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To Anya who had spent her life living in the mountains, she couldn’t understand any of his actions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If the guy uses her as a stepping stone and saved himself, she could at least understand that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In Anya’s village, there were many people who acted that way. From another perspective, if they are not tough enough, they mustn’t think about &lt;br /&gt;
surviving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya mumbled while she was staring at the basket of flowers blankly.&lt;br /&gt;
Her mind was in a mess. If she did not meet up with the guy, she won’t have to face any trouble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, if I was born as a flower seller… Will I be happier?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya suddenly turned angry and her flower basket fell on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She won’t allow herself to think about stupid stuffs for even a single moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stomped on the flowers that had scattered on the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am an idiot! I had already decided to follow Milgauss-sama! Being besides Milgauss-sama is my source of happiness!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Anya was shouting out to her own self, the bell that signified noon rang. It was about time for her to return to Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
The noon bell had rung.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash and Eco arrived at St Durham square after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco immediately took a bite of the vanilla flavoured crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Because she was not allowed to buy the ansal flavoured crepe, Eco didn&#039;t seem happy after leaving the crepe stall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Vanilla is also not bad!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes glittered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s good to hear.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thankful for the vanilla flavoured crepe from the bottom of his heart. With just a mere fifty Glorins in exchange for a smile, it was worth the price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm, a holiday like this is not bad at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While Eco ate the vanilla flavoured crepe as if she was in heaven, Ash looked around the entire square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In addition to the locals, there were many tourists. They should be tourist from Chevron Kingdom that was located adjacent to the Knight’s country. &lt;br /&gt;
Although they were the same race as the Knight Country’s citizens, they could be differentiated by their speech pattern and their clothing design.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, why are they gathering there?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco asked after she finished her crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course they are there to look at the sacred statue.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking at ‘St Durham’s statue’ from afar. It was one of the most important cultural properties in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Whose statue… Is that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The first Paladin, Durham Lautreamont. He was a historical figure dating to five hundred years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The armour on the statue… Isn’t it like an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was proud of Eco for her to be this sharp.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You knew it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. The blue print for the Ark was kept in the Dragweiss.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, using that blueprint, could you make an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco was glaring at him and Ash was shrinking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot? That will be just a mimic. The blueprint design passed down by ancestral-sama is only intended as a reference. The exact thing could never be re-created.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so… Now I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash believed everything she said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So, Eco, you will create an Ark for me, no? Before that, you should first become a Maestro- Ouch!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His foot was stomped on by Eco and made him jump around in pain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash barked back however Eco’s face was unexpectedly red. She was acting shy and was avoiding Ash&#039;s sight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What happened?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Quit joking! Why would I… As the owner make an Ark for my pet dog? Isn’t that illogical!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Eco ran off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then, Ash remembered his past lessons.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;To the dragons, to present their owner with the Ark also bears the important meaning of ‘Giving their everything to their owner.’&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
No wonder Eco denied it with her face red. At the same time, Eco was a little cute at that moment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, wait for me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled and chased after Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 10===&lt;br /&gt;
They had been walking until Eco stopped her steps in front of a café that was facing St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The café was called Essarois. It is famous for its herbal teas and is especially popular in among the girls. The designs of its interior are also stylish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shop is always full of couples during the weekends. For Ash who had never dated before is a must avoid spot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By looking through the glass window, even at that moment, the shop was full of couples.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sighed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just in case, there is something that I would like to make sure… Are you interested in such shops?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a nice smell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sniffing around. Although she looked like a girl, she is totally like a young dragon when she was doing so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally noticed the sweet smell coming from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Isn’t this Ansal! No, definitely not!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the shop is famous for its herbal tea, of course Ansal tea would also be on the menu. Naturally, Eco who is a dragon would also react to it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuh… Why bother. Don’t you know that Ansal is in the cultural of the dragons and it is the so called taste of an adult dragon.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about! You are still a young dragon! Do you even want to repeat the previous incident again!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What happened previously?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Great! So you don’t remember anything after you became drunk! I guess all the more we should just forget about this conversation! From now &lt;br /&gt;
on, you are forbid to go near any Ansal till you become an adult!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh! I won’t forgive you! I won’t allow such thing to happen!…Nnnn!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly squeaked and bend her body down. She was rubbing her thighs against each other as if she was trying to endure from using the &lt;br /&gt;
toilet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Unn…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco embraced his chest. Even though he had his clothes on, he could still feel Eco’s hot breath clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, don’t tell me that… You had gotten yourself drunk just from the smell?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa… Haa… Please… My chest is tightening.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes had turned wet and her cheeks had turned red. Her entire body was heating up. Ash felt like he was hugging a massive pile of &lt;br /&gt;
flame.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What a troublesome shop!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His priority is to bring Eco away from this shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If such a thing continues, Ash feared that he could not remain calm. Just in case is he was spotted in a place like this by his &lt;br /&gt;
schoolmates…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, isn’t that Ash? Doesn&#039;t he look lovey dovey!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, it happens that it was Rebecca who was talking from behind. Besides, there was also a girl who was standing behind Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shuddering. Again, he had prepared himself to face Silvia’s iron fist, but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps she was still troubled by yesterday’s young dragon’s incident, she was hiding behind Rebecca and remained silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 11===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To go to a place where the Ansal is absent, Rebecca brought the gang to the Dragon Fang public restaurant in an alley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is… Dragon Fang?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was slightly disappointed because he thought that Rebecca would bring them to a classy restaurant.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Dragon Fang is a restaurant for the public that provides good food with low price.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm. It is a good restaurant. I have no complains on its quality and quantity. Also, it is half price for the student council members.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So I see…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a lively shop full of laborers with well built bodies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since there is just an empty table for four, Rebecca sat together with Silvia while facing Ash and Eco on the other side of the table.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Namely, Scarlet Empress and Ice Blue Princess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The two great beauties of the academy were sitting together with Ash. If they are spotted by Raymond or the rest, it would be natural if &lt;br /&gt;
they died in a fit.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned her head to a side since she don’t intend to even utter a word. She was definitely still shadowed by yesterday’s incident. &lt;br /&gt;
Even though he felt like comforting her, however he had his hands full with Eco. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fyunn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco still looked like she was not fully awakened yet. Since that’s the case, he tried feeding her a few sips of water.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Rebecca ordered a three people’s sets, she smiled wryly at Ash and Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“To be frank, you had never failed to impress me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, you don’t have to apologize. Rather than that, I am actually enjoying myself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Enjoy…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was distressed and heartbroken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, remember to be careful and beware of the Ansal herb. Next time, it is better for you not to get close to Essarois. Though the Ansal Tea there is of top quality, it is still too early for Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will keep that in mind.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash answered, no one spoke a word. The reason was caused by none other than Silvia. She had kept her mouth shut for whole time &lt;br /&gt;
caused the people around her to become nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That being said… It is rare to see Rebecca-san together with Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, it was me who invited her out.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the incident of the young dragon had ended yesterday, Rebecca had indicated “ I will take care of the Princess herself.” However, it &lt;br /&gt;
seems that what is happening today had nothing to do with yesterday’s promise. It is also a surprise that Silvia would accept Rebecca’s &lt;br /&gt;
invitation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it was an order from the student council president, Silvia is still the country’s princess. She could have rejected the offer anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca smiled cheekily and took out a piece of paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you still remember the ticket for the one day date? The attached prize for the dragon riding festival. I must fulfill my promise and &lt;br /&gt;
Silvia had her duty to perform as the winner.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh… Now I remember.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now it had started to make sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had totally forgotten about it. The winner in the dragon riding festival, could have a day’s date with Rebecca.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the stubborn Silvia, the words ‘Duty of the winner’ is definitely the irresistible sure kill words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Together with yesterday’s problem, the princess had her mind crowded with many problems. Though I did try my best to help her, she had &lt;br /&gt;
been this way since the start.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Rebecca was regretting this, she still managed to squeeze out a cheerful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry for the wait.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the moment, the waitress had arrived with their dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 12===&lt;br /&gt;
“I am back, Milgauss-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was enjoying the full view of Ansarivan, in the clock tower. With his mantle waving in the direction of the wind, he looked like &lt;br /&gt;
a veteran solider.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was in the disguised of a flower girl while Milgauss himself was dressed up as a mercenary.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 173.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was very silent on the top floor of the clock tower of the old shrine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the noisy streets looked as if they were from another world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Gazing at Milgauss back from behind, Anya thought that he was an ‘Unpredictable man…’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The shrine that was facing St Durham Square and indeed very old. Usually it was not open to visitors. In addition to problem that was cause &lt;br /&gt;
by technical errors, the renovations for this shrine could be continued and since then, it had remained closed for ten years.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Moreover, the security was light and anyone could break into the shrine after breaking open the lock at the back door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who knew this information is none other than Milgauss. Even when it is only information that only the locals knew of, Milgauss &lt;br /&gt;
treated it as if it was obvious to anyone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had always been curious of Milgauss&#039;s origin since the beginning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was a military man in the Empire’s army, his movement had always been graceful. It even felt like he was born in a noble &lt;br /&gt;
family. Even his pronunciations are beautiful and are fluent in both the Chevron language and Empire’s language.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How are the streets?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss’s question brought Anya back to her sense. Even though he was looking at her coldly through the mask, it still made Anya nervous.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from Milgauss and Anya, there was not a third person in the clock tower.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though they are still on the job, Anya was a little disappointed. She certainly could not show the girly side of her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was peaceful on the streets. Nobody is thinking about any wars.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan is a lively city. Anya had initially thought that the city that teaches breeders should be filled with killing intends. Yet, not &lt;br /&gt;
even a hint of war could be felt from this city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When she was walking on the streets in disguised as a flower girl, Anya found out something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To the residents of Ansarivan,  the dragons are called ‘lovely beasts’ and not a military weapon. Ansarivan is never the so called &lt;br /&gt;
“military base for dragon training’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. In this street, not even a single soul thinks that dragons are military weapons. Ansarivan is a very friendly city.&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss spoke in a nostalgic tone but it only lasted for a second.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However, Anya, there is no meaning behind the friendliness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss took a step forward and there was a coffin like box next to his feet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss silently opened the lid of the box. There is no corpse but a single sword in it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is not a normal sword. It was a broad sword with the size of a grown man.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like a typical zanbatou&amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;斬馬刀a type of long sword&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt; from the ancient drawings but its blade is black and its hilt was &lt;br /&gt;
decorated with beautiful jewels just like a refined masterpiece. With a closer look, they were bright dragon crystals.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss lifted the huge black sword and chanted the incantation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a little while, the clear blue sky was covered by dark clouds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 13===&lt;br /&gt;
Saute duck, Beef fillet cooked in wine, spare ribs, vegetable and mushroom soup, walnut bread…. All of the dishes were served one after another and they took away Ash’s attention.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The smell of the gravy and spices were stimulating his appetite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco reacted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once she found out about the smells of the foods, Eco had snapped out from the drunken state. Eco who cares for only crepes is after all, still a dragon. Her eyes were nailed to the meat dishes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry about the amount, just enjoy yourself.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Rebecca could finish her sentence, she had already started stuffing herself with the duck. The skin was roasted nicely and its gravy &lt;br /&gt;
was dripping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mmm… This is the first time that I had tasted such a nice meat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s eyes were glittering from being touched had her sight on the beef. She just simply took a piece of the beef with the fork and gave it a bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Funnn...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The beef seems to be very tasty since Eco looked as if she was in cloud nine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was also happy just by looking at her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, Silvia was working her knife and fork silently. Whenever Ash and her eyes met, she would glare at him to keep him &lt;br /&gt;
away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just then, Ash remembered what Rebecca had told him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;In my opinion, the princess is a perfectionist. She had always wanted to be the first. When she met a classmate who can ride any dragons, &lt;br /&gt;
she will take you as her rival.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In another words, the reason she tried to suppress the young dragon on her own is because of none other than Ash’s fault.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash made up his mind and spoke to Silvia:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Princess-sama… Is it really my fault?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know what you mean by that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her sharp glare pierced his forehead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am talking about yesterday’s incident… The way you acted yesterday isn’t really like you at all.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately, Silvia’s cheeks had turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Don’t be too full of yourself! Why would I even do it because of-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, a loud bang came from outside.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sudden thunderstruck had shocked Silvia. She was covering her ears with both her arms and was shaking tremendously. No one would ever &lt;br /&gt;
thought that she had this side to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a weird weather...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had a bad feeling about this and looked out from the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The once clear sky was now covered by thick black clouds. The darkness outside made it hard to imagine that it was still noon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… That’s not a good sign.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was still eating suddenly stood up. Her face sank was staring intently at the sky outside of the window.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ignoring Ash’s call, Eco ran out from the shop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 14===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ashes to ashes, dust to dust. Appear! Child of magic technique. Thou shall be…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same moment Milgauss finished the incantation, under the sky filled with dark clouds, a change was happening on the streets.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A dragon appeared in the middle of St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s… A Necromancia...!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya sub-consciously speaks of the word that should never be spoken of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Letters of blood red colour appeared on the surface of the huge sword that Milgauss was holding. They were words of an ancient language &lt;br /&gt;
that Anya could not understand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked as if blood were actually flowing out from the sword itself. The cloud had become thicker and sounds of the thunders had become &lt;br /&gt;
more and more frequent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia- A dragon that was resurrected using ashes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though she had heard about it before from Milgauss, it was still her first time seeing it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Summon the Necromancia and analyze its combat strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With that, determine whether it could be used in actual combat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the main purpose for the infiltration. Ansarivan is the selected location for the experiment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It is like a hammer that smashes off the previous peaceful atmosphere.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This situation made Anya who just finished her investigation in the town bite her lips.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It made her think about her homeland that was full of blood and destruction a few years ago.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-But…. This is war.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya reassured herself and clenched her fist while looking at Milgauss from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 15===&lt;br /&gt;
The group went chasing after Eco in the alleys had finally arrived at St Durham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square was in a mess.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The locals and the tourists were standing still like statues.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when they should be running away for their own sake, everyone just remain still and stare at the monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What is that thing!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he entered the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge beast was landing on the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that… A Dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its entire body is covered with fur and which made it looked similar to a Maestro.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, though it looked like a Maestro, its body fur was deep grey in colour and it smelled bad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Its body is rotting…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gasped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apart from that, its body size was surprisingly huge.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Square that can hold thousands of people and right now had a quarter of it being occupied by a sole dragon. If it lifted its head up, it &lt;br /&gt;
height should be around the same height as the towers around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A roar that made people shivers was heard under the dark sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It sounds like hundreds of flutes not being blown uniformly. The sound was so terrible that it could even wake up the dead.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The loud roar was followed was a strong gust that managed to topple the St Durham’s Statue in the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In a little while, the entire square was filled by a rotten smell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only right now the people started running for their lives. While confronting with such a supernatural situation, the situation was no &lt;br /&gt;
longer under control. Although the Ansarivan’s security tried their best, it was obvious that they are lacking man power.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Followed by sounds of agonizing cries for help, many helpless people were continuously being pushed down. Even the customers in the &lt;br /&gt;
shops facing the Square were running out one by one.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The base for the St Durham Statue was in rubbles and the stone statue itself was lying on the ground. Eco was standing beside the statue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco was the dragon that brought all the troubles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is she even thinking!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was panicking and was trying to drag her back. However, he was blocked by the rest of the tourist who were running for their lives.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly removed her Beret and showed her horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems that she was trying to show that she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Refrain yourself, you lowly beast! Don’t you know who I am! Don’t you know that there are many excellent shops in this street?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, the entire square turned still because of her loud voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her imposing attitude touched Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even if it is just a little, after all, that weird thing is still a dragon and just maybe it understood Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon’s gaze slowly turned towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For just a moment, they made eye contact with each other. But suddenly there were tentacles appearing from its body and was attacking Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted but the tentacles continued to wrap around Eco’s body and her four limbs and she was now hanging in mid air. Her uniform were &lt;br /&gt;
torn by the tentacles and her undergarments and skin were exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You! Knock it off!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was useless no matter how she struggled. Also, the more she struggled the tighter the grip of the tentacles became.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 184.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again the dragon roared and showed its pink mouth. A few teeth in its mouth that was arranged nicely dropped off. Only now Ash &lt;br /&gt;
noticed that even its teeth were rotting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn… What should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, a light ball of purple electric appeared in its mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The purple electric light ball was then released followed by another roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Don!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A building facing the square was swallowed by the ball of light and was covered with dust.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Attacking magic…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbstrucked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a high level magic that could only be performed by Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The building that was destroyed was a four story building. The first floor was Café Essarois while it was an apartment from the second &lt;br /&gt;
floor onwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbfounded. Just how many innocent people were involved right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A few moments later, the smoke cleared out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not only the building remains, but also there isn’t even a single causality.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in joy. Rebecca who was riding on Cú Chulainn in her Ark had cast the defense magic and neutralized the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Essarois is a place filled with the dreams of the girls. I as the student council of Ansarivan, I will have it protected until my death.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca’s declaration received cheers from the residents.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Of course, Rebecca wouldn’t let such cheers get over her head and she started reciting the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Appear! The certain hit magic spear!&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The summoned weapon appeared above Rebecca’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The magic spear turned into light particles and was shot towards the loathsome dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh…!?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s eyes widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A new ball of light appeared in front of the dragon and it turned into seven layers of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It even knew defense magic!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gáe Bolg!” pierced through the first layer of shield.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then it continue was also broke apart easily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However it was obvious that it had slowed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time it broke through a layer, a large amount of magic was used up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fourth, the fifth… the sixth was penetrated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was praying while looking at Gáe Bolg’s path.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And then, there was a crack in the seventh shield and it was pierced through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yes!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time when Ash was cheering, Gáe Bolg exploded at the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The flash caused their eyes to be blinded and it was followed by a loud bang.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The thick smoke had the dragon covered.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone was thinking that Rebecca had won.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even the securities that should have led the people to safety were cheering happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then, the smoke started to clear up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Everyone turned silent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The cheers were silent up by a hole in a head caused by the explosion. Even so, the dragon shouldn’t be able to live on after its brain &lt;br /&gt;
was destroyed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is that thing…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shivering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon has not yet fallen and Eco was still hanging in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next moment, the wound on the head started regenerating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as ifs the wound itself is another living being.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the wound was healed, the dragon returned to its original looks but its eyes looked even more menacing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, it swung its tail.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After seeing it using high class magic, Ash was surprised to see it change its style to physical attacks. It seems that Rebecca too, was &lt;br /&gt;
also caught off guard by it which led her to being slow in her reactions.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca shouted in surprise.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it was just a simple physical attack, the buildings behind the dragon were demolished like toy bricks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, they could only pray that the people inside the buildings could escape safely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Curses…!’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash clenched his teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could watch the dragon turn the city in ruins as a bystander.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Ash thought of a single person. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Milgauss, the masked man.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since the day he met him in the forest, the still cog had been connected and started spinning. However, it was his instinct that told him &lt;br /&gt;
that. There was never a single proof.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What in the world is that dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once he heard the familiar voice, Ash was brought back to his sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Turning around, he saw that Silvia had arrived at the Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Silvia saw the weird dragon, she fell on her backside and was shivering in fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately came to her side.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Get a hold of yourself! Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though Ash was shouting loudly, Silvia never answered. Seeing such a supernatural sight had caused her to lose all her sense.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that instant, a flying dragon appeared on top of St Durham Square. It was obviously a Maestro since it had silvery white fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash! Bring the Princess as far away as you can!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a familiar voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was in charge of the accounts in the student council and also one of Ash’s few friends.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Max!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Leave this to me!... Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max wasn’t able to finish his sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon seeing that a new opponent had appeared immediately gave out a loud roar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it released its ball of light with purple electric.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Arian!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under Max’s command, Arianrhod immediately cast its defense magic. Though it managed to reduced the strength of the light ball, still it &lt;br /&gt;
had hit and fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Originally, a dragon shouldn’t be able to fly with such a build. It’s wings are only for decoration purposes. It was magic itself that &lt;br /&gt;
enables it to fly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked when he saw Arianrhod fell towards the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For it to even bring down Arianrhod with just a single hit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Arianrhod had no longer any magic to defend against the second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca who foresaw that ordered Cú Chulainn to glide down in the area in front of Max and Arianrhod. Without delaying a single moment, &lt;br /&gt;
she cast her defense magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Rebecca-san!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the defending party, Rebecca had totally lost her mobility.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is the worst situation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The only choice left is to wait for the Holy Dragners of Lautreamont to arrive. But could the town people really hold on until then?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After the entire town were already used to the peaceful life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For example, the entire strength of the security office was just hunting rifles and wooden batons. For offices where they have dragner &lt;br /&gt;
working there could only be found in the big cities.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was approaching Rebecca slowly. It probably thought of Rebecca as first to be removed as a target.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time the weird dragon took a step, the earth shook and the beautiful tiles turned into rubbles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt as if it was a moving hill. Numerous tentacles had appeared right now and were gripping on Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aahhh! What the hell is this thing trying to do!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco continued to struggle. Even though she lost all her mobility, she still had decided that she is not going to ever give up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s it. I must save Eco.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After all, Eco is Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She is none other than Ash’s Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is me… Am I able to do it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash questioned himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An answer flashed through his mind. It gave Ash shivers.  But still, it is a gamble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at the instant, Ash remembered Eco enjoying her crepe happily.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on, it still hasn’t reached that stage yet… Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were still many nice things in this word that Eco knew nothing of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was not going to let her die like this before teaching her everything. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally made up his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will protect this city. Everybody. And also Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Yet, there was still one more problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash needs Silvia’s cooperation to make his plan success.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama! Please get a hold of yourself!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He shouted towards Silvia who was still sitting on the ground in shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Silvia’s expression was still blank and continued to shiver. It was as if she is a totally different person from her usual &lt;br /&gt;
majestic self.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting mad.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t joke with me…. What kind of a Princess are you! Where is the usual family motto! In such times shouldn’t you prove to us what &lt;br /&gt;
exactly is a royalty made of!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash lifted his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will apologize first! Sorry!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And he gave Silvia a slap on the face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sound was clear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Ash?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was staring at Ash dumbstrucked. At least her thoughts were now focused. Although her red cheek was hurting, she had finally calmed&lt;br /&gt;
down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama, I had a request. Please summon Lancelot immediately and bring me with you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Bring you? Where to?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“There!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was pointing at the moving dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To be more specific, it was above the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Immediately Silvia knew what he was thinking right now.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Definitely not! Are you even thinking properly!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s anger raises and stood up suddenly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Good, this is great. This is the Silvia that I knew of.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 006-007.jpg|thumb|&#039;&#039; Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted &lt;br /&gt;
to the dragon: “Your opponent is me!” &#039;&#039;]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stood in front of Silvia. He took a step forward, took a deep breath and shouted to the dragon:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Your opponent is me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strictly speaking, Ash didn’t even know if the dragon could even notice his voice. Basically the reason for him to shout was to keep his thoughts &lt;br /&gt;
from wavering. Still, the dragon did stop its footsteps.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It turned its head slowly and glared at both Ash and Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia facial expression changed immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you an idiot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I&#039;m alright. Princess-sama please summon Lancelot immedi…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before Ash could finish his sentence, the dragon shot a ray of light at them. It was definitely a different type of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash only understood that a strong energy shot pass the area above his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He raised his head in terror only to find out that the building behind him was crumbling. The three storey building behind him experienced &lt;br /&gt;
a direct hit from the attacking magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
How high exactly is the temperature need to melt debris of the building? Before Ash could even think about it, the building had crumbled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pile of wreckage was falling towards Ash and Silvia like a waterfall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the spur of the moment, Ash tried to protect Silvia. He could only shut his eyes and pray.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 16===&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey…! Until when are you going to stop acting in such manner?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s cold voice had given him the push to open his eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash though that he was buried under the pile of wreckage, but-.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt the wind blowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am flying…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia were in mid air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then Ash realized that he was riding on Lancelot’s back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seems like Silvia had summoned Lancelot in the nick of time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The streets down below looked far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even St Durham Square looked miniature.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge body that occupied a quarter of its space still exists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The problem is Ash was grabbing on to Silvia who was holding the reins from behind and his right hand was even grabbing on to her breast.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The soft feeling made him lost his calm. Since just now where the building started to crumble, his thought had always been blank.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaaaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t loosen your grip! You may fall!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s warning made him calm down his thoughts and he started apologizing to Silvia. However, he continued grabbing on her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Sorry.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Obviously Ash had also shifted the position of his right hand. It was probably that he was thinking too much but somehow Silvia’s face had &lt;br /&gt;
turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, the dragon released its second attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot in return roared loudly and cast its defense magic. A huge amount of pressure could be felt. Yet, Lancelot remained unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just as expected.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash praised.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This kind of level is child’s play for Lancelot. Back to the main point… Are you sure you want to do this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ahh, please bring me to the appointed location. It must be none other than me to execute it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… Then I can only have faith in you. Lancelot!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ooooon.” Under Silvia’s order, Lancelot roared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were gliding downwards towards the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The third and the fourth wave of attack were released but Lancelot avoided all of them with an amazing speed without even activating its &lt;br /&gt;
defence magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The distances between both parties were getting shorter until their entire fields of vision were covered by the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking for Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had prepared himself for the worst possible situation, where Eco was swallowed whole by the dragon. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Until now, this is the only chance where he can save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made up his mind and stood on Lancelot. To keep his balance, he held on to Silvia’s shoulder. Silvia remained silent while allowing him &lt;br /&gt;
to do so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The countdown begins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Ten, nine, eight, seven…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were getting closer to the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
-Three, two, one…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot flew pass the weird body in a very close distance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped towards the wall of grey furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a ‘Bump’ Ash landed safely. However, he slipped and nearly fell off but managed to cling to the furs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon felt something on its head and was pissed. It shook its head vigorously. For that short moment, Ash felt like he was going to &lt;br /&gt;
fall off anytime.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He crawled with all his might until he finally reached the space in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thought there are still many places that could be considered, it was his instinct that told Ash that this was the best place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With both of his foot on stable ground, Ash immediately stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, he thought about the feeling of his first ride on a dragon. Basically the situation was the same as yesterday where a &lt;br /&gt;
young dragon lost control. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A newborn Starda had gone rampage because its master had mistakenly fed it with Ansal Tea.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when the Grooms were in a fix trying to keep the situation under control, Ash who had just passed by, by a chance jumped onto the &lt;br /&gt;
rampaging dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He just had a hunch that he was able to do it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end, he received a good amount of scolding from the school’s director even though he managed to calm the dragon down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;That’s right, that young dragon was called- Lancelot.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…That’s right. I totally forgot about it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled wryly. The Maestro that Silvia was riding on and the drunken Strada fitted perfectly in his memories.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He finally realized why Silvia was obsessed comparing herself to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash gained his confidence. Since he was able to calm Lancelot down, this weird dragon should not be a problem.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s begin…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Through his feet, he forced his conscious into the dragon like growing tree roots and spoke to the dragon gently.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“From now onwards, I am your master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon stopped its footsteps in reply to Ash’s words. Although it still continued growling, at the least it had stopped moving.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s it. This is how it should be.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was smiling from the bottom of his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was thinking of giving it one more push, the dragon swung its head upwards like a trebuchet. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who was not prepared for this was thrown out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just moments before knocking into a building, Lancelot flew to his rescue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Phew… Saved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash sat on Lancelot and was just behind Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I have never seen an idiot like you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia scolded while she was holding Lancelot’s reins.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just a little more I could have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking with a serious tone. There was not even a hint of him joking. Silvia who had turned speechless looked just like a &lt;br /&gt;
graceful woman from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash said made sense. He was going to ride it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 17===&lt;br /&gt;
“Haaa… Haaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco looked pale. She was hurt by her inability to break free due to her lack of strength.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… For a descendant of a mighty dragon…. To lose to a low born dragon…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was provoking the dragon…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was thrown out and had made a nice curve with it but was saved by Lancelot.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is he trying to do?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was horrified.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Ash was doing was reckless.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s right. Ash was trying to tame this weird dragon by riding it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If there is to be a single error, Ash will be squashed like a bug.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! What are you doing? Why don’t you run away!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who could endure it no longer shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! I will save you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash replied while sitting on Lancelot’s back. He seemed confident judging from his tone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That sentence had made her realized that Ash tried to save her instead of running away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was struggling to escape the tentacles.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But the more she struggled, the tighter their grips became.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco, the dragon’s belly split open.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On both of the sides of the belly were aligned with row of sharp fine teeth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like an insect eating plat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It must have been a bad joke.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s face turned pale.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Numerous tentacles appeared and Eco was swallowed into the mouth that looked like the gates of hell.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she almost lost conscious, she could barely hear Ash’s cry&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 18===&lt;br /&gt;
“It seems that you have woken up, my sleeping beauty.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The bewitching voice had woken Eco up and she hurriedly looked around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A mysterious room.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The floor was laid by square tile of black and white alternating.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beside the four walls were statues that had not been completed. An incomplete human bodies. Incomplete beasts. Models of castle and &lt;br /&gt;
shrines. And also transports that Eco had never seen before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right in front of Eco who was sitting on the bed was a suspicious lady. The lady was sitting on an antique chair lazily. Her brilliant red dress looked extra conspicuous in the monochrome room.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 205.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the lady’s head were horns of an adult dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the Dragon Workshop. Also, I am called Navi.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Navi…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You just have to take me as another personality that is responsible to teach the immature you… Don’t you think that this is great?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t really understand. Also, what’s with your appearance?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting uneasy since the first time she saw Navi.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her looks, hair style and skin colour were exactly like Eco’s. The only difference is that Navi was a few years older.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hee hee. Are you worrying about my body? This design is based on a five years older version of you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wh-What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Still, this is just an assumption. You just may not grow up this well. Especially your breast.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi purposely put emphasis on the breast and deliberately shook them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad for being made fun of..&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph! It is not like bigger is better!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course, even the shape is important. But for you… Worrying about the size should be your main concern.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What a detestable woman! I will squash you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Now lets us stop this useless talk as he is going to die if we let him continue what he was doing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a single wave from her right arm, a crystal ball appeared. A high concentration of lights was released by it and a projection of Ash &lt;br /&gt;
struggling with the weird looking opponent could be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He is still reckless!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking up towards the screen which was the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In a first look, this is not a bad idea. After all he was born with that gift to ride any kind of dragons. However, this opponent is too &lt;br /&gt;
much for him to handle. He had no chance of winning against that Necromancia.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Necromancia?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. It is a dragon that died once but was resurrected by human technology.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk! What should we do…? There is nothing in my ability to help him.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was saddened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, do you know why a holy dragon is called a Maestro.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was puzzled by the sudden question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before the existence of the secret agreement of Albion, the holy dragons were craft workers. This dragon workshop was built by a group of &lt;br /&gt;
great Maestros. The Ark is only one of the many things created by the Maestros.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi was trying to say.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are telling me that he is lacking an Ark?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good answer. And of course the only person who can present him with the Ark is only you as his Pal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… How can I…? That’s it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco remembered her conversation with Ash in St Druham Square.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Hmm, if it is the blueprint for the Ark, I have the access to it.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-If that’s the case, can you use the blueprint… To create an Ark?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Are you crazy! That’s is nothing but an imitation.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it is an imitation, it is still an Ark. Certainly, Eco&#039;s pride does not allow her to make a copy from her ancestor, but this &lt;br /&gt;
was an emergency.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco accessed the Dragweiss immediately and focused her thoughts. Without delay, the projection on the ceiling started changing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice either.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since year 10 of A.S.B where the secret agreement of Albion was made, there were many blueprints left by the dragons. Apart from the Arks &lt;br /&gt;
that were worn by humans, there were also those that were made as a trial.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The total amount of blueprints easily exceeds a thousand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was disappointed after read the blueprints.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every single blueprint was full of details and even copying may become a difficult task.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Come on! How am I to copy this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when she was feeling troubled, the thought of St Durham’s Statue flash pass.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She instantly summoned St Durham’s Ark’s blueprint.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Time of production	Year 846 A.S.B/ Month of Libra/ 2nd day.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Name of knight		Durham Lautreamont &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
              Ark Weapon		Magic sword Caliber&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to the present, the design and structure five hundred years ago was simpler.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If it is this Ark, I should be able to do it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You’re naïve.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled coldly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why? Supposing I had no experience in making an Ark, I still inherit the basic knowledge. So what are you even-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It just doesn’t work that way. An Ark is an armour that was custom made for its knight. If you just make a copy of a previous work, he &lt;br /&gt;
won’t be able to wear it. If you force it on him, it may even endanger his life.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What! Then this isn’t even an option to begin with!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hehe. When did I mention that? The Dragweiss had collected a huge amount of blueprints since the old times. It is possible to select &lt;br /&gt;
parts of the armour that fits him from this amount of blueprints.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
By shaking a crystal, an infinite amount of blueprints appeared on the ceiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Could it be that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally understood what Navi means.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. We will select parts of the armour that fits him and reorganized them.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, can I do it? For starters, how am I going to know if the parts suit him?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was worrying about the most important part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before an Ark was made, it requires that data of the person wearing it. First is the height and then follow by a mountain full of &lt;br /&gt;
information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s impossible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ara. If you are talking about his data, I already have it here with me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi smiled cheekily touched Eco’s forehead with the crystal ball. In an instant, all the information in the crystal ball flowed into &lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… Is his data?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was able to construct a three dimensional structure using the huge amount of information.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco blushed. Ash image in her mind was stark naked. Every single detail on his body was clearly recorded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-A perfect data…. But how did this data get into your hands?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I was expecting something similar to this to happen. Just before you were born, I sneaked into his dream. Actually I finish collecting my &lt;br /&gt;
data in just a night but since he is too cute, I had been doing that for a whole week.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How dare you toy with my pet dog!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi was laughing in front of the angry Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see that someone is jealous.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-There is no way that I-I….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is that so? But why are you blushing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am gonna squash you!... Erm, this is not the right time and place to argue!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit. So let’s begin.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Navi slowly stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t know whether I am capable of doing it but… this is the only choice left!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco finally made up her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 19===&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though it had been three times, Ash never gave up. On the other hand, he was saved by Lancelot every single time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lucky for him, the grey dragon had Lancelot locked on as its target. Every single attack was directed towards Lancelot which in turn, &lt;br /&gt;
reduced the amount of destruction towards the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, there is a limit to the amount of magic that Lancelot possesses. In truth, it flying speed had been greatly reduced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is at its limit…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood her frustration from her words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. This time will be the final!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia signal Lancelot to change its direction and dive down towards the middle of the square. Right at that moment…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tell me that is not true…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was suddenly swallowed into the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted in dismay.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are not able to make it in time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was eaten whole by that monster right in front of Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn!... It&#039;s my fault for being weak…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t give up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia reminded Ash who felt that he was going to break apart in despair.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She may still be alive! If you give up at this moment, she will definitely die for sure!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately kept his cool. Silvia was right. If not because of she was holding the reins with both hands, she is sure to give him a &lt;br /&gt;
slap on the face like what he did to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, the Seikoku on his left arm started hurting. It was the same feeling as the time where Eco was kidnapped by Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The reaction from the Seikoku made him felt relief.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This proofs that his link with Eco had not yet been cut off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yeah… I mustn’t give up yet. Princess-sama! Please bring me to where the monster is!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s the spirit!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again, Lancelot started diving downwards.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 20===&lt;br /&gt;
“Give me a break! Why can’t I get it right!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was shouting in desperation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The opponent that Ash was battling was a Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its element is ‘dark’.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Naturally, the Ark that she is going to present to Ash should have the ‘light’ element in it. It had been a common knowledge since the &lt;br /&gt;
ancient times that light can conquer darkness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…! Just as expected, this is impossible…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sitting on her knees in disappointment.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Tears were dripping from her eyes. It was the first time Eco ever cried from the feeling of regret.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Don’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Eco heard something.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The owner of the sound was none other than Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it him…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco lifted her head up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was still continuing his fight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While fighting against the dragon, he was calling out to Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“I will save you! I still believe that you are still alive! That is why… That is why, you mustn&#039;t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
These were not spoken by words. They were spoken through the Astral Flow that connects the dragon and its breeder. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She felt warm from the bottom of her heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco knew from where this warm came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Druing her time as an Orphan, Eco had always been inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She could never forget about this warm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was going against the odds, Ash never ran away from anything.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He even dare face such a monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For how many times had he stood on the dragon’s head and for how many times had he been thrown out. Right now, his clothes were like rags &lt;br /&gt;
and there were many obvious bruise and wounds on his body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, his eyes never stop glittering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“He…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco clenched her fists.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Unforgivable!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That’s it. Ash was fighting for her sake and her pride doesn&#039;t allow her to stay still while waiting to be saved.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right… It is totally unforgivable… That is why…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her tired body was once again filled with magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her overflowing amounts of magic crystallized outside of her body and were sparkling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco never once expect herself to have such a large amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her field of vision widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could not keep herself from smiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Almete, Gorjal, Peto… Espaldar……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even thought the amount of blueprints in the Dragweiss is abnormally large, the Eco right now had the ability to handle all of them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Brafoneras, Faldaje… Escarcelas……”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In among the parts that suits Ash, Eco selects the ones with light element and combined them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Bufetas, Hombreras, Brazales… Codales….., Antebrazos……. Manoplas……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Compare to those who create the Ark from scraps, Eco’s actions may seem detestable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco could never be able to object for shaming the tradition and placing a curse on her ancestral.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Quijotes… Guardas… Grebas…… Escarpes……….”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However to Eco, it did be a worst sin to just be a bystander and witness all the fun.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco no longer hesitates.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With mixed emotions, she had chosen the final part.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“-Espolón!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, Eco had opened the gate that leads to a brand new world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 21===&lt;br /&gt;
No matter how badly he failed, he had lost count of the number of times he returned. Right now, he was lying on Lancelot’s back in anguish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pain was so immersed that he could no longer feel his limbs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is really at its limit. This will be the last chance we have...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia’s voice was obviously shaking. They really must succeed. The moment Lancelot used up all its magic and can no longer fly, everything &lt;br /&gt;
that was done will be in vain.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansarivan will be in ruins and Eco will definitely die.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It will be impossible to save all the refuges unharmed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk… What should I do…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was in a pinch…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“You are the one who shouldn’t give up!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s voice was heard in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco? Eco! You are still alive!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had been sometime since she was swallowed by the dragon but Ash could clearly hear her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Isn’t that obvious! No matter what I do, I can never look for a substitute for my useless pet dog, so just take this as a gift.”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Take what?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The next instant, Ash was surrounded by dazzling lights.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
His eyes’ widened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An outline slowly appeared in the light and transformed into a brilliant armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Isn’t that an… Ark! It is godly…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia squeaked when she turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It had a strange feeling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a heavy looking armour but it doesn’t feel that way.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Perhaps it was the strong amount of magic that removed the weight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though he just wore it, he could feel an overflowing amount of magic.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“With this… I can never lose.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled confidently and spoke facing Eco who was inside the dragon’s belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you Eco! I had received your feelings!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, Eco replied with a scold.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“D-Don’t joke with me! That is just a mimic! Not an original! I have never thought of presenting you with it at all!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was certainly full of objections.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash smiled bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go, Princess- sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had been equipped with the Ark was full of spirits.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia didn’t waste a single moment and ordered Lancelot to dive down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although it had used up most of its magic, it still answered Ash and Silvia’s call by raising its speed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was speaking to her from the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… What is it?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Lancelot is a good dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What does that have to do with this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why you should never again try to ride on another dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Are you an idiot! What are you saying at a time like this…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is the best time to tell you this. You had Lancelot who is the best Pal. So, what is the thing that you are craving for?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I… Definitely knew that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Lancelot made a great roar in reply to Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They are getting faster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge grey body was getting closer.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now’s the time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt that his body had blend into the wind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After drawing out a curve in the air, Ash landed on the dragon’s head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Thanks to the Ark, Ash could even stand on the dragon without clinging to its fur.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He could even feel the dragon’s body heat through the armour.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at this moment, Ash was one with the dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can’t be wrong. The Ark had pushed Ash’s gift to its maximum potential.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
From his feet, his consciousness was growing into the dragon like roots.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If Ash was to be described as a tree, then the dragon is the earth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Ash could feel the dragon’s rejecting feeling in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It doesn’t matter whether you are god or even the devil himself…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was like a tower in between the two horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For what I know, every dragon will bound to be ridden by me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, there was a change in the dragon’s body.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Its folded wings were suddenly flapping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon was flying towards the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 22===&lt;br /&gt;
“…Seems like we had stepped into an ambush…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss sighed when he saw the Necromancia flying away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss was the person controlling the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The huge sword in his hands was not only the switch, it was also the controller.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Milgauss was never successful in making the Necromancia fly but that boy had it proved to him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, Milgauss was dead calm. It was just as expected.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was sweating when she looked at Milgauss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
They were cold sweat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The boy who was riding the Necromancia away from the city is THAT BOY.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya had never reported to Milgauss about their meeting in the streets. She didn’t expect the boy to appear right there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Where exactly did I meet that boy before…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was trembling from that single sentence.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, whatever.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luckily, MIlgauss never question any further.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The experiment ended with a failure, but we still obtain some useful results. That boy and also… that girl.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Girl?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya was confused. Did he mean Rebecca Randall the Ark Dragner?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or is it Princess Silvia who was flying on Lancelot?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However she was wrong.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t the Necromancia capture a girl? The one with horns. She is probably the one who presented the boy with the Ark. Even though she &lt;br /&gt;
looks human… She might be descendant of a dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I never…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Milgauss had no intention of speaking anymore. He silently kept the huge sword and gazed at Anya through the mask.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We will retreat for now.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anya knelt down immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Understood!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 23===&lt;br /&gt;
“I did it…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The grey dragon spread it wings and flew up towards the sky with Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was getting higher and higher and further away from the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right now, Ansarivan town, the plains beside and Fianna Forest looked like toys.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was all according to his plan. First he had to bring this dangerous dragon away to ensure to safety of the townspeople.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could understand the dragon’s thought through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The muzzy thoughts suddenly turned clear. If felt as if the Ark had translated the dragon’s feeling into words that Ash understands.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was anger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Sadness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Hatred too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
And also- Love.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see. You also had a master in the past.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash didn’t know where this dragon came from.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He only knew that this was just a normal dragon that grew up in Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, it told Ash its wish through the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood the sad wish.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Necromancia? Something that disobey the logic of this world? Do you really want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It once again assured Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It trusted as like it did to its master.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you really sure that you want that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia was asking for Ash to kill it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
That is the only way out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But… what about Eco after I killed you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was worried about killing the Necromancia because Eco was still inside the Necromancia. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After knowing what Ash thinking was, the dragon reassured him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ermm… Can I really trust you?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Necromancia nodded its head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It promised to protect Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Alright. Leave everything to me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The moment he had made up his mind, an image of a sword appeared in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although the Ark was created hastily, Ash still had obtained the same power as an Ark Dragner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Similar to Rebecca’s Gáe Bolg, every Ark Dragner must possess an Ark weapon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The Ark was glowing and an immense amount of magic flowed out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The details of the Ark Weapon were circulating inside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a sword. A sword with light as its element.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Following the information, Ash chanted the spells.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Appear! The sword that was graced by the light! Please lend me all your powers that are able to repent darkness…”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The area on Ash’s forehead was flooding with light.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A tremendous amount of magic was flowing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A huge sword that was taller than Ash appeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Aix-les-Bains!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After lifting Aix-les-Bains easily, Ash jumped.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuoooooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was falling. Starting from the dragon’s head to its belly, the sword that wields light slashed through.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dragon split into two.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The sword transformed into silvery lights and cut through its bones and flesh.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The tough body of the dragon burst into parts like a paper.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The destroyed body turned into grey particles and was blown away by the winds.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Kyaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, Eco was thrown up into the sky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was probably thrown up by the dragon before the attack.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was diving at Eco’s direction.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was also accelerating using the magic of the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was not even a hint of fear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash stretched out his arms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco stretched out hers too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both of them were close, but yet so far away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The pressure from the strong wind seemed to be able to cut through skin but Ash still shouted:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He made a kick in the air by releasing the magic in the Ark.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco once again stretched out her arms further after being called.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was the first time Eco call his name.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The fingers met.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then they felt the weight on their palms.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Now they were grabbing each other’s hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Not wanting Eco to leave his side again, Ash made a pull.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was embracing his chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While hugging the delicate body, Ash could feel her body heat. He had decided to land on the plains below.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With the protection from the Ark, they remain unharmed even after falling from a few hundreds of meters from above.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The dark cloud in Ansarivan had disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the horizon, the sun appeared once again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We did it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he smiled, the Ark broke into light particles and disappeared. Similarly, Aix-les-Bains which was in his belt had also disappeared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as Eco had said, this was just hastily made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, it did actually manage to save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you, Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Its nothing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Eco turned to a side. She really hasn’t changed at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when he started smiling, his smile turned into horror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… What’s with your fist?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her fist was bleeding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Surely it was hurt when she was caught by the Necromancia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-This is nothing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you even talking about.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash held her hand and licked her wound. It was a usual practice in Ash’s hometown when children hurt themselves.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It may be obvious to Ash but-&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad and started rampaging.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! It is just for disinfection, disinfection I say!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who turned embarrassed bit his neck.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop! This is not a joke! I might even die…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was probably tired finally calmed down.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting uneasy but Eco was already fast asleep. He showed sign of relieved and smile bitterly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A boy who can ride any dragon?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Some corrections should be made.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Or at least until he found a way to handle Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;Dark Gray Invasion ~A.S.B.1365.5~&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2|Chapter 2]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Epilogue|Epilogue]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_2&amp;diff=354038</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_2&amp;diff=354038"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T14:33:40Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 15 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 2 - The Streets of Ansarivan==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
The news of the number one problem child in the Academy Ash Blake gotten in an accident in the dragon riding festival and his Pal was finally born spread like wild fire.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, his finally born young dragon Eco is a girl with horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just to settle Eco’s problem, there were two main opinions given during the staff’s meeting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
One of the opinions was to send Eco to the dragon house for strict discipline. While the other opinion stated that Eco shouldn’t be sent to the dragon house because she looked like a human.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end of the day, they couldn&#039;t come up with a good solution. That is why all of them agreed on letting Ash took care of Eco in his own room for the mean time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
At the end of the walkway, in the third floor of the Apollo House, &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is my room. Hurry!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he opened the door, he gave Eco a push on her back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Grrrr…. How dare you as a dog to order your master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco turned around and glared at Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t remember becoming your dog at all!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then you can just be my meat slave!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you even know what does that mean?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco crossed her arms and smiled proudly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As usual, she was going to show off her knowledge she get from the Dragweiss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is a slave who provides its hungry owner with its own meat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am not some food!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting uneasy with the Dragweiss but he still shoves Eco into the room and ran in himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then he quickly had the door locked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Students were standing outside along the walls of his room with their ears glue towards the wall. Ash doesn’t even have the strength to chase them off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apollo House is a dormitory for males.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time a beauty with comparable standards to Eco came, there was always a huge uproar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… What a poor looking room.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After giving it a glance, Eco stated her first impression.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I guess this is for today… I am gonna sleep.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Until just moments ago, Ash had been kept held in the infirmary.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he was found in the ravine and was brought back to the academy, he was questioned by three parties, the board of directors, the staff and the student councils. He was now tired in both physically and mentally.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was blocking Ash who was going to jump into the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anything?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since I am your master, this bed is mine.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Where am I supposed to sleep then!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph! You can just sleep on the floor!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You gotta be joking!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am not! If you continue to disobey, I am gonna squash you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was pointing her fingers at Ash. She then removed the shirt that Ash gave her and move towards the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her white skin and curves can be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-Why are you removing them!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately turn aside, his heart was beating none stop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Didn’t I mention it before, that a proper dragon doesn’t need clothes! Can’t I have some freedom during my sleeping time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco angrily answered and moved towards the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zzz… Zzz…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a while, she was already fast asleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her previous glare had turned into pure angel like.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good grief…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash rest himself on the laid out the futon and blanket.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although he was not used to sleeping on the floor, he still couldn’t resist the urge to sleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since it was a holiday on the next day, he doesn’t have to worry about waking up early.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a few moments, Ash was already in a deep sleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
It was midnight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash felt something was in his futon and he woke up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He doesn’t have the luxury to continue sleeping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt as if his heart was going to burst.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! Wake up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before this, Eco had just occupied his bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems weird that she was now squeezing herself into the futon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huff…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was still sleeping was gluing herself to Ash. The feel from her skin also caused his heart beat to speed up. Then, he remembered that Eco was naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Eco was not as sexy as Navi, Navi only appeared in his dreams.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But right now is reality. The softness of her skin and her body heat was not something from a dream could match with.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This looks… Delicious.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sleep talking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;What kind of dream was she actually dreaming…&#039;&#039; Just when Ash was wondering, Ash felt an unknown feeling on his body and he trembled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seemed that Eco had given him a bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was called a nibble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can usually been seen doing by a young dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being nibbled by a Pal was a breeder’s privilege.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time Ash saw his friends being nibbled, he was full of envy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But, this nibble…. Is a little bad for his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although he knew that Eco is a dragon, she still looked like a girl. Right now, Eco was nibbling his chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please…. Stop…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although he asked her to stop, he never really forced it. It doesn’t feel bad being nibble by Eco. No, it even felt great.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, it had ended.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was possible that she was sleeping or even possible that this was a different type of nibble from Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without any reason, Eco’s bite was getting stronger and stronger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uoooo! It hurts! I really hurts!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shivering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was horrified by the thought of being eaten. The word food kept on echoing in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though she looked like a girl, Eco was still a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the worst case scenario, it would even danger his life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuwoooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash pushed Eco to the side with all his might. Her teeth marks were left on his chest. Though there was no bleeding, it would probably take a few days for it to disappear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zzz… Zzz…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without knowing Ash’s troubles, Eco continued to sleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Are days like this going to continue?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;She should really be sent to the dragon house for strict discipline…&#039;&#039; Or at least that was what Ash thought of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
The next morning, Ash was woken up by an unexpected guest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since some times before, there seemed to be someone knocking on the door nonstop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who doesn’t have many friends could only think of Raymond and Max.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can’t I at least have a good rest during my precious weekends…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was mumbling while he was walking towards the entrance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked the instant he opened the door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good morning Ash Blake. You shouldn’t oversleep even if it is a weekend.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was standing at the doorway. Right behind her stood Max who was in charge of the accounts with a sour look.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“P-President! This is the boy’s dormitory!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Say my name.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Being called president is a little too stiff and unnecessary.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ermm… Rebecca-san?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash called out without a second thought which made Rebecca smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… That’s great. I am here for Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am grateful for you to take your trouble to come here.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is not necessary. By the way, how’s Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is still sleeping…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was startled when he turned around and looked at the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hwuaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who had just woke up was rubbing her eyes and sat up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The blanket fall off and her white chest was exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wha-! That’s not the case!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Beast…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max pulled his collar as he was trying to explain the misunderstanding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You beast! Do you even know what you had done!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luckily, Rebecca interfered and stopped Max.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Max! Calm down! They didn’t seemed to be sleeping together since there was a futon on the ground. Am I right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then explain why she is naked!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash started stuttering because of the tone Max was using.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Erm… No, that is… Eco said she is a proud dragon and she does not require any clothes. Apart from that, I don’t have any clothes for her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Just as what I expected. I had brought something for you, don’t worry about it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a glance from Rebecca, Max handed Ash a bag unwillingly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt a little heavy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I gave some clothing to Eco. Though she is a dragon, her appearance is of a girl’s. You can’t expect her to be moving around naked. Just take it as a birthday present from the student council.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-Thank you very much. I am saved…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash lowered his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However, as for the daily needs, you have to buy it yourself. Do you have enough money?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… It is a little tight.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Be it a noble family or a traders family, it had nothing to do with Ash who was born in a small village at the borders.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If that’s the case, you just have to fill in this form and pass it to the management.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The piece of form that Rebecca gave him was used by student to apply for the up taking funds for their Pals.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Strictly speaking, this is only used to apply for the riding equipment… Well, Eco should be a special case. Then, there is one more thing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly Rebecca turned serious. Though she still maintained her statue like beauty, her muscle was all tensed up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Actually this morning, it had been decided in the staff meeting that Dr.Cornwell was asked by the academy to examine Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
‘Huh! By saying Dr.Cornwell you are saying she is that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She owned a laboratory in Ansarivan City and held the highest authority in dragon research. Ash had never seen her before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. She is that famous person. Since she was always busy, the date to examine Eco had not been decided yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. No worries, I will take care of Eco until the time.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s serious expression made Rebecca smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good answer. One more thing, after you are done with everything, please drop by the student council’s office. I had many things that I want to ask you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… I will be waiting for you then.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca left with a smile while being followed by Max.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
“Try putting this on…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While trying to avoid looking at Eco’s body with the sun right at her back, he handed her the bag.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly turned angry.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I mention it before? I will get into trouble if you don’t at least put on some clothes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm. Are you trying to say that you are not pleased with my body?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco walk approaching Ash while being fully naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was panicking and immediately turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why I had told you that it is a common knowledge to wear clothes in the human society. Anyway, don’t you feel cold with nothing on?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph. This sunny day is like a give for me who had just been born. It is not necessarily for me to-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that instant, a yellow butterfly that had lost its way flew into the room and landed on Eco’s nose.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s nose twitched.’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A…. A….Achoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a cute sneeze.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strong winds were created from her sneeze. Ash was blown up and bang into the ceiling like a frog being ran over.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ouch! It is just like a dragon’s sneeze…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had just crawled up found that he lost the bag. After a quick search, he found out that Rebecca’s belongings were scattered all round the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To his surprised, Eco was actually holding one.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Cute.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like she seemed to have interest in it since she was at that age.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
Just like what he hoped for, Eco had put on the clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The clothes give by Rebecca was a cute dress that has a similar design to the school’s uniform.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Regardless of the collar ribbon or the puff sleeve, it matches Eco perfectly. As for  the beret it can be used to cover up Eco’s horn.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, her boots were stylish and the size fitted perfectly. Ash was amazed at how sharp Rebecca was.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco doesn’t seem dissatisfied when she was looking at the mirror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Not a bad design from a dumb human.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was relieved.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nnn. By the way, is this Ansarivan, the academic city?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was surprised by the sudden question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“According to the Dragweiss, there should be many shops on the streets of Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That right.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was starting to admire the Dragweiss. It seemed that Eco inherited a huge amount of knowledge. It would be perfect if they didn’t have any knowledge on those weird stuffs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…eets.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? What did you just say?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I say… I will allow you to bring me to look around the streets!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco turned aside with her cheeks blushing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile. It seemed that Eco want him to bring her for a walk in the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though the Dragweiss may be useful, it still doesn’t feel safe walking on the streets alone. The reason she didn’t ask Ash directly has probably to do with her honour as a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright then, even a dragon needs a walk.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t say it like you are bringing a dog for a walk!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“O-Ouch!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash almost fainted from being punched right in the belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
After claiming two thousands Eccles for the up taking of his Pal from the management, Ash brought Eco to the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Two thousand Eccles is equivalent to a month worth of job pay of a government official. Of course this was the first time he held such a large amount of money.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is Ansarivan…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was amazed the moment she stepped into the streets. Even though she had knowledge regarding this, still, the real thing never failed to amaze her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The amount of people increased the moment they entered the main street. Since today was also a holiday, most of the people were students.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On both sides of the streets were stalls and the street was full of the smells of foods.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gurrrrr…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco’s stomach gave a loud growl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All the pedestrians around were shocked. Nothing least could be expected from a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco blushed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It is not like I have any choice. I haven’t even taken my breakfast yet!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could understand why she was embarrassed about her stomach rumbling while she can walk around naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yeah right, I almost forgotten…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had not taken any breakfast because of Rebecca’s visit. All of a sudden, Ash started to feel hunger too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was puffing her checks in protest to Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon must eat five time a day, don’t you know that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I heard about it during my years in the basic class… But is that really a necessity?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s obvious!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking at Eco’s small body frame in disbelieve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The daily cost is going to increase…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What did you just say?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, nothing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mm… What’s that? What a nice smell!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was pointing at a stall. A noisy group of girls of Ash’s age were gathering there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s a crepe stall.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What’s that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Is it not recorded in the Dragweiss?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is just a food. There is no need to purposely access the Dragweiss. It requires magic to make a search!’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… Crepe is a popular dessert in Ansarivan. Do you want to have a try?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basically, dragons are omnivores. They shouldn’t have any problems eating crepes. At least that was what Ash thought.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were three girls before them and Ash and Eco were queuing up at the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it our turn yet?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We need to be patient. It is bad to cut queue.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph… Looks like we don’t have a choice. However, since they have the guts to make a dragon wait, it better be good or else I will have this store crushed.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That doesn&#039;t sounds good…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly Ash felt that someone was staring at him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is there anything?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco asked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nothing. I just thought that I felt someone staring at us.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? It is impossible for someone looking at us in such streets.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… I don’t think that I have enough confidence to say that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since ages ago, Ash&#039;s intuition had always been sharp.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it was not because of that, he wouldn&#039;t be able to spot Milgauss in the forest. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… It must have been my imagination.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He had become oversensitive due to that incident.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that moment, the girl standing right in front of him had ordered an Ansal flavored crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a moment a rose-like smell filled the air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It made them hungrier.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I think I am going to have an Ansal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After taking a look at the price list, an Ansal crepe cost about a hundred Glorins. While the rest cost only fifty Glorines. Although it was a little expensive, with the money he received for up taking a Pal, this is nothing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What about you, Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without any reason, was straightening her chest proudly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu, of course it is Ansal. It is the etiquette of a dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…It seems so.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The so called Ansal was a high quality herb that was produced in Ansarivan. Apart from the usual use as spice, it was also loved by the &lt;br /&gt;
dragons. To them, it was similar to cigarettes and booze to humans.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally it was Ash and Eco’s turn.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Two Ansal crepes please.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After receiving the orders, the shopkeeper roasted the batter with an amazing speed. When it was almost done, the shopkeeper place some pale green coloured cream on it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The area surrounding them was full of the smell of Ansal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking at the shopkeeper in amaze. Ash’s heart skipped a beat for a moment when he saw Eco with a look of curiosity.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Stop! Eco is a dragon…&#039;&#039; Ash hurriedly reminded himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
There was a public bench not far away from the store. Since it was empty, both Ash and Eco sat on it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mmm…mmm…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was eating her crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nnn… It is delicious!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank god. The store is now safe from being crushed.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t joke with me! Whoever dare to lay a finger on it have to go through me first!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Anyway, I think only you have to ability to crush it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a few seconds, Eco finished her crepe completely. She seemed to be not satisfied with it and was eying Ash’s.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since he was surprised by Eco’s eating speed, Ash haven’t even taken a single bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa… Guess I don’t have a choice. Wanna have a bite?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can I?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, I can&#039;t bear seeing you with that kind of face.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was overjoyed when Ash handed her his crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her innocent looks while eating the crepe was like a small animal. Ash suddenly felt like he was feeding his pet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After eating, tightening her fist and declared:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It had been decided! This will be my meal!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is just for dessert. You have to eat meat if you are a dragon! Or else you won’t grow!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How dare a mere dumb human like you order me! Have you forgotten that I am your owner…. Aaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco was blushing and was panting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… are you alright?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“M-My body…. It is hot…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was suddenly embracing Ash with watery eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Their limbs were rubbing against each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could feel Eco body heat through the clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… What are you doing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-No more… I can’t….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco pushed forward.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could feel her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then, Eco started licking his the area around his collar. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash turned numb from being licked by her soft and warm tongue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“….Eco? What is happening?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please… Do something… I-I can’t…. No more…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was getting confused, the rosy lips was approaching him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beneath the lips were pearl like teeth. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were smells of Ansal mixed in within her hot breath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be that…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could only think of the only explanation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is caused by the Ansal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansals were loved by dragon. To them, Ansal were like tobacco and booze in the human world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though she was born with the look of a girl, at the same time she is also a young dragon. It seemed that it was bad to her if she took in a huge amount of Ansal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! P-Pleaese…. I beg you!”&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 091.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huff…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was approaching him like an animal in heat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If this were to be left alone, they will be caught for disrupting the peace of the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mama, what are both of them doing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t look! Just keep moving!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, glares from the people around were piercing him. Although Ash felt like running away right at this moment, he couldn’t even stand up from being held tightly by Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, someone was standing beside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you thinking….? Doing something as shameless as this in the public!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The scold shocked Ash. It sounded familiar. No, it doesn’t just sound familiar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected, he saw Princess Silvia her royal highness herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The enemy of women shall face the hammer of death! This is my family motto!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An iron fist that had enough force to break a rock swung at his face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
“With this, you should be alright.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who took care of Eco was Silvia’s maid, Cosette Shelley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since she herself was quite a famous person in the academy, Ash knew a little about her. Even though they were on the streets, Cosette was wearing the palace’s maid attire. Quite a number of people were looking at her out of curiosity.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco started to regain her sense after drinking the water given to her by Cosette who had gotten it from a nearby shop. According to &lt;br /&gt;
Cosette, the Ansal will be diluted if a huge amount of water was drunk.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huff…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although her checks were still red, at least she could finally sit still. Ash breathe a sigh of relieve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you, Cosette-san. You really help me there…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tee Hee, you are welcome.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk. I am surprise that you fed a young dragon Ansal! What had you learn in class!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia scolded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t Princess-sama fed the newborn Lancelot with Ansal Tea too?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t talk about the past!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was blushing. It seems she too had the same experience.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Before that, why was she born in the form of a human and not a dragon? It had become a rumor in the entire academy.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? I didn’t knew that Princess-sama who don’t even have a friend would be interested in gossip.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was blushing again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Be quiet! I-I had not interest in any kind of gossip. Cosette was always talking about all kinds of things, it was just by chance that I heard it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu… Every time I mention about Ash-sama, didn’t you become excited?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-Never!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In truth, everyone knew that Silvia was always alone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She would make everyone nervous with just her presence alone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It happened not because of her status as a Princess. Alright, it is probably one of the reasons. However, the main reason was because of her stubbornness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, doesn’t everything turned out well. At least you had found Ash-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After being pointed out by Cosette, not only her checks, even her ears were red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you talking about! I did not come to the streets on purpose just to search for him!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, alright. We will take what you said as the truth. Heehee...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Cosette looked like an honest person at a first glance, she was actually a bully. Silvia was almost in tears.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t Princess-sama have something to say to Ash-sama? Please don’t worry about me. I will turn around and face the other side.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don&#039;t joke with me! Even when you are facing the other side, you will still try to listen!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu. That is the duty of a maid. Just take me as the statue of Venus at the end of a street.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Venus! You look more like the reincarnation of Mórrígan herself!” &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;The Morrígan(&amp;quot;phantom queen&amp;quot;) is a figure from Irish mythology who appears to have been considered a goddess of battle, strife, and sovereignty&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Eco’s nose twitched.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A…Aa….Achoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A cute sneeze.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Fshoos.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A strong wind was created in front of Eco and it had flipped up Silvia’s skirt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was white and laced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the knots on both sides of her waist were all imprinted in Ash’s mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“String…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t look!”&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 096.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Silvia’s iron fist was going to knock into Ash’s face, Eco made her move.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stretched her arms from under Ash’s armpits and stopped Silvia. It seemed to be a reaction only possessed by dragons. It seemed that she was no longer drunk.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was surprised that Eco protected him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia asked in a cold voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You on the other hand. What are you trying to do when you are just a dumb human. This person’s master is no other than me. The only person in this world who can punish him is me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What kind of logic is that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco and Silvia were confronting each other as if Ash was unrelated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph… Whatever.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was the first one who backed off. She lowered her fist and turned around. Her golden hair looked dazzling while being blown by the air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash Blake! I have only one thing to tell you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned around facing them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That is… What I had told you previously was wrong.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“During that time, I lost my temper. In truth, your Pal was born successfully.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who was embarrassed had her sight wandering around. At one moment when her sight and Ash’s connected, she immediately looked away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that, Cosette was grinning with a hand in front of her mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-In another words… Err… How should I put this… I will take back what I said. Admitting one’s fault is one of my family’s motto!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Silvia left.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then I too will take my leave.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After announcing her leave, Cosette gracefully waved her skirt and left following Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s mind turned blank after being suddenly apologized to.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Like master, like dragon, maybe it died long ago!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
During that time, Ash challenged Silvia just to make her take back her words. Since he lost the race, he didn’t think it is necessary for her to apologize. Furthermore, he was no longer haunted by her words since Eco was born safely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Silvia still insisted on apologizing even though she was the winner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… She would definitely be the most popular person in the entire academy if she had always acted this way.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash grinned. The next moment, he felt pain on both sides of his cheeks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seemed that Eco was squeezing the both sides of his checks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-Heho?(E-Eco)?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was glaring at him with a half-opened eye.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be that… You have some special feeling for that female? Or is that you have forgotten that I am your master?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“F-Forry…(S-Sorry…).”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If he ever tried to object, he feared that his face would be squashed. Thus, Ash apologized.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 10===&lt;br /&gt;
After buying Eco’s daily needs, Ash was standing in front of a public toilet with both of his hands full of grocery bags. Eco had mentioned that she needed to use the toilet and that is why Ash was standing there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How long is she going to make me wait!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She had entered the toilet for some time and had no sign of her coming out. To make it worst, Ash could take a peek since it was the ladies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is it? Please don’t bother me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you interested in the ladies?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. If I am allowed, I would even enter and take a good look...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So you are this kind of a person… It was wrong of me to think highly of you, Ash Blake!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately came back to his sense. Who exactly was the person who was talking to him?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, the moment he turned around, he was kicked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ouch! What the hell are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash regretted what he just said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What the hell are you doing…? Yeah, right. That was what I was going to ask you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person in front of Ash was not some stranger. Right now, she was scolding with her arm crossed. Her golden hair at this moment looked like a lion.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As usual, Cosette was following Silvia from behind and was smiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why were you standing around suspiciously in front of the ladies? You look like a total pervert no matter how I look at you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… It is just that Eco had not come out from the toilet yet and I am a little worried. That all is what I was thinking. Nothing apart from that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why don’t you mention it earlier? I will take a look in your stead if you are okay with it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was grateful for Cosette’s help.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please do!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go, Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me too?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Helping those in need is the responsibility of a royal. That’s is from the proud family motto of the Lautreamont Knight Family.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I knew that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was in shock when the driving seat was taken away from her by Cosette. She then hurriedly entered the ladies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 11===&lt;br /&gt;
Moments later, Silvia and Cosette returned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We didn’t see Eco but in exchange, we found this on the floor.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Silvia was holding was Eco’s beret.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… This is definitely Eco’s hat. But why?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Eco entered the toilet, Ash had been standing all along at the entrance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He will defiantly see her if she had walked out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Apart from the hat, we also collected these.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette who was standing beside Silvia showed him a handkerchief.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Collected?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Inside the handkerchief were sparkling powders.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In my opinion, it should be the powders of a Bright Dragon crystal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A Bright Dragon Crystal is the crystallization of the dragon’s magic. At the same time, it was used to activate the Oracle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With borrowing the powers from the Bright Dragon Crystal, humans were unable to use magic. In the first place, it was the dragons that brought magic into this continent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was possible that someone kidnapped Eco with the use of the oracle.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was full of shivers when he heard Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why I kept on having the feeling of someone peeping at us.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Really? Then the culprit must have been targeting Eco since the start.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn! Just why…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop panicking! Try thinking what you had learned in class.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was staring at him with her ice blue eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The bond between the breeder and his dragon will not break this easily. Even if you can’t see it, there is the Astral flow.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course I knew that. It is just that what am I suppose to do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If she is a Maestro, you just have to summon her… But it will be impossible for a newborn. In another world, you have to go to her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But how the hell am I to know where she was!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why you must stop panicking. As a breeder, you should have a Seikoku branded on your skin given to you by the mother dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash certainly has the Seikoku branded on his left arm. Unfortunately, he had lost his memories of the meeting with the mother dragon. But, of course this is not a good time to discuss that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tell me what should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Seikoku is not just a mere tattoo. It is the door for the Astral Flow.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“By the way… During the time when Eco was born, I certainly remember that my Seikoku reacted.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Put your thoughts on remembering that feeling. Then call out to Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally knew what she was asking him to do.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will give it a try. Thank you, Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia blushed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-No need for that! Dragons are holy beasts that symbolized our country. It is my duty to help those who are in need!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After saying, she turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette was grinning from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s begin.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash rolled up his sleeve and removed his bandage. The sight of his Seikoku gave Silvia a shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That is your seikoku?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It seems so…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had always hated his Seikoku. If it is possible, he wouldn’t even want anyone to know about it. But, right now, it is an emergency.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What should we do next?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is hard to describe this in words…. First, focus your thoughts on the Seikoku. Then, think strongly about Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This seems to be overly abstract. Are you sure about this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice. The Seikoku was the product of magic. It would be impossible to describe it using a human language since the beginning.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, anyway… I will give it a go!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under the sight of both Silvia and Cosette, Ash lifted his left arm and held his left wrist with his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Next, he focused his thoughts on the Seikoku on his left arm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could somehow feel the Seikoku being heated up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please… Tell me Eco’s location…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a few mumbles, Ash was thinking only about Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since he was seven, Eco who was in his body had never left his side even once.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco should had born earlier, had overslept for an extra three years.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, Ash had always been waiting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was looked down upon, he had always been waiting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was finally born. Although it was unexpected and there were many unexplained stuff going on, still there was one obvious truth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco is his Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Answer me, please…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Ash’s Seikoku had turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The magic from the Seikoku had taken the form of a butterfly. It seemed to be leading Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The location should be where Eco was.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Comapre to Ash who was over the moon, Silvia and Cosette seemed confused.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What do you see?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seemed that Silvia and Cosette were unable to see the butterfly formed from his Seikoku. First, Ash don’t have the time to explain to them and secondly, he did not know how to put this into words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am heading to where Eco is!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash started chasing after the butterfly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! It is dangerous to go there alone! I will go with you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will follow Princess-sama even if we are heading to hell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please don’t speak off such unlucky stuff!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was not bothered by any of them and continued to chase after the butterfly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 12===&lt;br /&gt;
The butterfly that was formed from magic could easily fly pass humans. Ash and the rest were avoiding the other pedestrian while they were running along the alley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The butterfly had finally arrived at an isolated corner of the eastern district. It was a mansion built in the middle of a huge land. &lt;br /&gt;
Since it was old, it looked like a haunted house. It had not yet been confirmed whether there is anyone staying there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Are you sure that Eco was here?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was shocked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who was usually full of confidence had turned pale.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Seikoku had certainly showed us this place.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, you don’t look good at all.  Could it be that…. You are scared?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though Ash was just fooling around, Silvia overly responded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Imposible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was obvious that Silvia was lying. Although she doesn’t look like it, she was actually very timid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Anyway, we can only depend on the Seikoku’s lead. In the worst case scenario, I just have to summon Lancelot and have this place burnt down.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu. This is more like it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, it is bad to summon Lancelot in the middle of the streets! Cosette-san, please don’t encourage her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when they were arguing, the butterfly flew into the house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was right, right now, they could only depend on the Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wait for me, Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash pushed open the metal door. ‘Crrrreeek’ comes the sound for the rust rubbing against each outher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once they stepped into the garden, Silvia turned shocked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every certain distant was a stone slab. It looked as if it was a magic circle. At the top of the stone slab was a Bright Dragon Crystal. &lt;br /&gt;
All of them were glittering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although they were unclear of its usage, it seemed to be able to activate the Oracle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“These stone slabs certainly looked weird.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash too had stopped his tracks and was looking at the stone slabs. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For a rundown looking house to posses such a huge amount of bright dragon crystal, it certainly doesn’t look natural. You usually have to have a huge amount of money to buy this amount of Bright Dragon Crystal… I have a bad feeling. First, let us check the background of the owner of this house…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We don’t have time for that. We must first save Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash rejected her suggestion and rushed in. It is not that Silvia’s suggestion was wrong. It was just that they don’t have the time to do any investigation before they found about Eco’s condition.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-Hold on! W-Wait for me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected, Silvia who was timid hurriedly chase after Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 13===&lt;br /&gt;
Being shone under the familiar warm light, Eco woke up with a yawn.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She still remembered that she was in the toilet of the shopping district and was going to wash her hands. Her memories after that were blank.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After realizing in what kind of a situation she was in, Eco was horrified.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What is the meaning of this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was lying down facing the ceilings while she was being tired up. Apart from her knee socks, she was stark naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The tools that were used to tie her up were made from strong materials. Eco couldn’t move an inch even after she tried with her entire might.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is happening…?’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was not even a single window. The sources of lights were from lamps powered by Bright Dragon Crystals. Eco was probably familiar with this kind light because she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the area around her were many medical tools. The bookshelves by the walls were also stuffed full with documents.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was a dragon model that was being placed on a table. It was not just a model but also a specimen. It doesn’t feel good looking at it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Where am I?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, a door was opened slowly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How do you feel?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person by the door was a woman wearing a spectacle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Who are you? How dare you to do such a thing to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see that you are in a high spirit. I like it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s threat was useless against the woman.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 113.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;‘Clank! Clank!’&#039;&#039;It was the sounds of her heels when she approached Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is really unbelievable that a dragon was born in the form of a human.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What did you say?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The woman’s words had caught Eco’s attention. It seemed that she kidnapped her while knowing that she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What actually was the dragon thinking? For them to send a young dragon like you into this world?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How am I to know!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The woman had become more curious.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Did you really not know? Didn’t you share the memories of your dragon ancestral? According to the ancient documents, such a thing happens.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you are talking about the Dragweiss, then to further disappoint you, I can’t access it on my own yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see. So, I just have to question your body directly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Hic…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly the woman’s hand started to move.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was a silver flash right in front of Eco’s nose.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a closer look, the thing that pierced the wall was a scalpel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Don’t tell me that…. You…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The woman replied naturally while taking out a second scalpel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Dissection is the basic for biology.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 14===&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was running on the corridor where its floor had started creaking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time they saw a spider or a rat, Silvia would give a squeak. Although Ash would like to look at her while she was making those looks, his priority was to save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ever since just moments before, a change occurred in his Seikoku on his left arm. It was getting hotter and lights started glowing. Though all the windows in the house were sealed up, thanks to the lights from his Seikoku, they were able to see clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally, the Seikoku led them to a door that led to the basement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked sturdy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was wandering whether he should try calling out or bang in, Silvia made her move.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Move to a side! I will have it blow open!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who turned pale took a few steps back. Silvia took out a red Bright Dragon Crystal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Crimson Ex-Breath!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time the Bright Dragon Crystal glows, a power was shot at the door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a loud bang, the door blast opened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted the moment he entered the room. Because it was excessively done by Silvia, dark smokes appeared all over the place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was worried that Eco was injured by it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally the smoke cleared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What a rude bunch of brats.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Standing right in front of Ash was a lady in white.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her spectacles made her look like someone knowledgeable. As for her age, she looked like she was around twenty five. Also, she was &lt;br /&gt;
wearing a white lab coat which made her look like a doctor or a researcher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right behind her was Eco lying stark naked while being tied up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing to my Pal!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was full of rage when he saw Eco lying in that condition.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was almost in tears when she saw Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are late! Untie me this instant!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry…. Why am I apologizing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad but since she was tied up, Ash couldn’t feel her imposingness. On the other hand, her looks made it bad for Ash’s heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After moving his sight away from Eco, Ash was glaring at the women in white.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the meaning of this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am just performing my duties given by the academy. Alright, I admit that my method is a little too forceful.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The woman answered calmly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Duties given by the academy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was being confused, Silvia who was standing behind him suddenly shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is… Dr.Angela Cornwell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had heard rumors that the professor had a laboratory in the city… Never in my entire life had I ever thought that it is located in this kind of a place.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You must be kidding…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Doctor, I had always been a fan of your thesis.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia took a step forward and shook hands with Angela in the same way she would have treat a country’s guest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is my honor, your highness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela who answered without hesitating had somehow loosen the tension.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was staring at her with his mouth wide open.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Dr.Angela Cornwell.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a name he had heard from Rebecca that morning itself. She was a highly rated scholar whom was asked by the academy to examine Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Rebecca had mentioned that she was busy and it may require some time before she could examine Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since everything was written on Ash’s face, Angela smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I always receive many boring request from the academy. Though at first I was not at all interested in this at all…. My motivation gushed out when I heard that a dragon was born in the form of a human. I had been spying at both of you since this morning.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It appears that the feeling of someone spying on them that Ash had was from Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since you just received your request from the academy in the morning… How did you manage to spot us?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash-kun, I had always been noticing you. Aren’t you the Breeder who doesn’t have a Pal? At the same time, aren’t you also the genius who can ride on any dragon? It is you who didn’t knew that you are famous through the school.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… Wait! Hold on!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was overjoyed when he was praised by a beautiful adult woman. However, he regained his sense immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No matter what the reasons are, what you are doing is kidnapping! On the other hand, what are you trying to do with that scalpel!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course for dissecting.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela answered as if it was a natural thing to do.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Dissecting! Are you serious!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. Even if it is a dragon, we would have to dissect it if we want to know more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…You disappoint me! Eco is going home with me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he declared, Ash moved towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I won’t allow that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela blocked right in front of Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What are you trying to do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How you I let such an interesting sample walk away easily. Also… Apart from her, there is another thing that caught my interests.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela was staring at Ash’s Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Shit…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then Ash remembered that he had forgotten that his Seikoku was exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So that’s a Seikoku huh? Until today, I had seen many Breeder’s Seikoku, but something like that is a first time for me. Can I take a closer look?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Absolutely not! You don’t even know the reason why I tried so hard to hide this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Ash was enrolled in the academy, there were many students who noticed his abnormal Seikoku and treated him like a monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In truth, to the rest of the people, it looked like an ill omen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… You are afraid of your own Seikoku.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That&#039;s not true!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash cheeks were getting hot. Just as Angela had said, Ash was afraid of his own Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Don’t ignore me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s call had averted his attention away from his Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was still being tied.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, please move aside!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then we will have Her Highness to decide this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was troubled because the topic was suddenly shifted to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-About this… I can more or less know how the professor feels. Since Eco was undeniably a special dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“As expected from Her Highness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her words made Angela smile. However Silvia still continued to speak.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, dragons are holy beasts that symbolized our country. I will not allow you to dissect her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although her explanations seemed to be slightly off topic, Ash was still thankful for that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… How disappointing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, Ash felt that the air in the room had turned sticky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama, please stay alert! Angela is well known for doing what it takes to make her research a success.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she was speaking in a calm tone, Cosette’s face had gotten serious. She stood in front of Silvia and was facing Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“... Not bad for just a maid.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela’s facial expression had changed. Killing intents were gushing out from behind the two lenses.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Professor…. Don’t try anything rash. I can summon Lancelot anytime.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That doesn’t bother me at all. Why don’t you give it a try?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fine with me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was holding her Bright Dragon Crystal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In the name of Silvia Lautreamont! Lancelot! Answer my summon!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was just only the sound of her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ten seconds had passed, twenty seconds had passed… A minute had passed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Nothing had happened at all. The room was full of silent. Ash was hoping for Lancelot to make a magnificent appear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How is this possible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was speaking out her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Have you not notice? This mansion is being protected in an Oracle field.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be those stone slabs in the garden…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela gave a victorious smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Correct. That device was used to create a barrier by using the Oracle. No matter what you do, as long as you are in this room, Lancelot will never arrive. This device was normally used to prevent any break in.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Prevent any break in? Then the reason that we are able to enter easily is…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just as expected from Her Highness herself. When I found out about the both of you, I had the device shut off.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then way of Angela’s speech had become crueler.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama… This person is dangerous. We have to leave this place even if we are forced to use Ash-san as a meat shield.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am a shield!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Cosette said was bothering Ash and he made a comment on it, then he immediately turned around facing Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you sure that you want to do this? You will be charged for treason by just pointing your knife at Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So? Even a Princess shall not bother with my research.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Seems like we have to resolve this by force.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While she was speaking, she activated the Oracle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Crimson Ex-Breath!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a shout, a flash came from her Bright Dragon Crystal and then it was followed by a bang.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While trying to keep himself from being blown away from the blast, Ash grumbled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I think you over did this! Even with all this, she is still a professor that be considered as the country’s treasure!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice! This magic itself is hard to control!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Both of you, don’t you think that this is not a right time to argue?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who had interrupted the both of them was unexpectedly Cosette. She was staring at the pile of smoke.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Impossible…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbstrucked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You thought that you could win by using Oracle?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela remains standing even after the smoke had cleared. Apart from her lab coat being torn and smoked, she was totally fine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash noticed her bracelet had a black stone on it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was not just a normal rock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from it special radiance, it should be a Bright Dragon Crystal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now that I think of it, the professor was famous for using the Oracle…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela smiled at Silvia as if she was pitting her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is too late. I will not allow you to leave this place until I am done with dissecting her. &#039;&#039;Dark Mother Lullaby&#039;&#039;!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After she had summoned the Oracle, a flash came from the Bright Dragon Crystal on her bracelet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, there was also a change on the floor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beautiful patterns started to appear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… A magic circle.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia lost her balance right after she cursed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette who tried to help Silvia had also lost her balance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… What is this…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s legs too had started to betray him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although his consciousness still remains, with just a little push, he would be baited by the Oracle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is a magic circle drawn using the powder of a Bright Dragon Crystal. We won’t be able to learn this in the academy. But…. How do you manage to remain conscious?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela was looking at Ash with looks of unbelievable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing! If you fall asleep right now… I will never forgive you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was shouting even when she had turned pale white.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s tone was still being haughty. But considering Ash had fallen and she was going to be dissect, it was understandable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Ba-dump!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s Seikoku was burning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash Seikoku was glowing with red colour similar to yesterday when Eco was born. Right now, it looked like a burning torch.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked from the amount of heat burning on his left arm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was no longer sleepy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the first time, Angela’s face looked shaken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be that… Eco’s magic was sent through the Astral Flow…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anyway, Angela seems to notice the change of Ash’s left arm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No matter what…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash swung his left arm the same moment he stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The winds created had blown off the magic circle. At the same time, Angela’s bracelet was destroyed and the black Bright Dragon Crystal broke into pieces.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It can’t be!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela who was always calm was definitely shaken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Return my Pal right at this moment!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While ignoring Angela who was stunned, Ash move towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong binding tools were broken by Ash in just a blink of an eye.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“*Sob*… You are late!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was freed was hugging Ash while complaining. Then she started crying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was an unexpected development for Ash and he started panicking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the time being, Ash tried comforting her by patting her back. But just as he touched her bare back…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hic…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was probably that Ash’s fingers were cold or Eco’s body was over sensitive, her body jerked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… How dare a pet like you dare to touch me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again Eco swung her fist and Ash was knocked against the wall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 15===&lt;br /&gt;
Time flew pass. Without noticing, it was already four in the evening.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After leaving the laboratory, the four of them were heading back to the dormitory.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was tired of crying was sleeping peacefully on Ash’s back. Her face looked like an angel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good grief, what a bad day… Sorry for involving you even though it was our problem.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry about it. It was Princess-sama who chose to save Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette who was walking side by side with Ash was smiling. Although she too was carrying Silvia who was fast asleep, her footsteps were steady.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just like Eco, Silvia who was always acting strict looked just like angel after she was fast asleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Cosette, are you alright?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash had saved Eco, she immediately stood up. Since Silvia had yet to be woken up, it signifies that Angela’s was using a strong magic. However, Cosette doesn’t seem to be affected at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
During the entire time, it was Cosette who found Eco’s clothes, Cosette who coaxed Eco and Cosette who help Eco put on her clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it was Ash, he would be panicking all along in the laboratory.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu. That is because I am a maid.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is just because of this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette was always replying him with a smile that could even ward off evil. Even Angela’s anger was soothed by her smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash-san I actually have a favour to ask.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What the matter?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please keep today’s incident a secret. It is because…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aaah… Alright.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood what Cosette was trying to say.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To save Eco, Silvia had trespassed Angela’s mansion and was put to sleep from an Oracle. It is be a disgrace to the royal family.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. Though it is a pity that I am unable to announced Angela’s bad doing, I still think that she had gotten what she deserved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Ash smiles, Cosette burst out into laughter.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When she found out that her Oracle was useless against Ash-sama, she was in a shock. During that time, Ash-sama looked great.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s heart was beating nonstop since this was the first time he was praised by a girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s not it. During that time, I was only thinking of saving Eco. Putting that aside, have you been watching the whole incident?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if she was trying to hide something, Cosette just replied with a playful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Once again, a woman who is full of secrets…&#039;&#039; Ash thought so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 16===&lt;br /&gt;
The second day.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Something happened out of Ash’s expectation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even before the first period, the students were silenced by a woman in white who entered the classroom.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash and Silvia shouted at the same time. Everyone around was staring at them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The lady stood on the podium and smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am Angela Cornwell. I came here in replace of your previous Sebastian-sensei who had retired.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What the…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There should be one more year before Sebastian-sensei reached his retirement age. This should be the work of Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to the academy, it is an honour to be able to hire a person like Angela as a teacher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You can call me ‘Angela-sensei’.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia were staring at Angela with their mouth opened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“S-She never learns…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since their teacher was suddenly changed into a beautiful lady, while being led by Raymond, all of the boys in the class were cheering except Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Needless to say, Angela was still targeting Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please take care of me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Angela was glaring at Ash with her eagle like eyes with a cold smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;My Baby Dragon ~A.S.B.1365.4~&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 1|Chapter 1]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3|Chapter 3]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_2&amp;diff=354037</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_2&amp;diff=354037"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T14:18:44Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 14 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 2 - The Streets of Ansarivan==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
The news of the number one problem child in the Academy Ash Blake gotten in an accident in the dragon riding festival and his Pal was finally born spread like wild fire.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, his finally born young dragon Eco is a girl with horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just to settle Eco’s problem, there were two main opinions given during the staff’s meeting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
One of the opinions was to send Eco to the dragon house for strict discipline. While the other opinion stated that Eco shouldn’t be sent to the dragon house because she looked like a human.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end of the day, they couldn&#039;t come up with a good solution. That is why all of them agreed on letting Ash took care of Eco in his own room for the mean time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
At the end of the walkway, in the third floor of the Apollo House, &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is my room. Hurry!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he opened the door, he gave Eco a push on her back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Grrrr…. How dare you as a dog to order your master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco turned around and glared at Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t remember becoming your dog at all!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then you can just be my meat slave!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you even know what does that mean?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco crossed her arms and smiled proudly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As usual, she was going to show off her knowledge she get from the Dragweiss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is a slave who provides its hungry owner with its own meat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am not some food!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting uneasy with the Dragweiss but he still shoves Eco into the room and ran in himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then he quickly had the door locked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Students were standing outside along the walls of his room with their ears glue towards the wall. Ash doesn’t even have the strength to chase them off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apollo House is a dormitory for males.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time a beauty with comparable standards to Eco came, there was always a huge uproar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… What a poor looking room.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After giving it a glance, Eco stated her first impression.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I guess this is for today… I am gonna sleep.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Until just moments ago, Ash had been kept held in the infirmary.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he was found in the ravine and was brought back to the academy, he was questioned by three parties, the board of directors, the staff and the student councils. He was now tired in both physically and mentally.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was blocking Ash who was going to jump into the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anything?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since I am your master, this bed is mine.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Where am I supposed to sleep then!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph! You can just sleep on the floor!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You gotta be joking!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am not! If you continue to disobey, I am gonna squash you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was pointing her fingers at Ash. She then removed the shirt that Ash gave her and move towards the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her white skin and curves can be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-Why are you removing them!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately turn aside, his heart was beating none stop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Didn’t I mention it before, that a proper dragon doesn’t need clothes! Can’t I have some freedom during my sleeping time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco angrily answered and moved towards the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zzz… Zzz…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a while, she was already fast asleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her previous glare had turned into pure angel like.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good grief…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash rest himself on the laid out the futon and blanket.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although he was not used to sleeping on the floor, he still couldn’t resist the urge to sleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since it was a holiday on the next day, he doesn’t have to worry about waking up early.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a few moments, Ash was already in a deep sleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
It was midnight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash felt something was in his futon and he woke up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He doesn’t have the luxury to continue sleeping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt as if his heart was going to burst.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! Wake up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before this, Eco had just occupied his bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems weird that she was now squeezing herself into the futon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huff…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was still sleeping was gluing herself to Ash. The feel from her skin also caused his heart beat to speed up. Then, he remembered that Eco was naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Eco was not as sexy as Navi, Navi only appeared in his dreams.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But right now is reality. The softness of her skin and her body heat was not something from a dream could match with.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This looks… Delicious.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sleep talking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;What kind of dream was she actually dreaming…&#039;&#039; Just when Ash was wondering, Ash felt an unknown feeling on his body and he trembled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seemed that Eco had given him a bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was called a nibble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can usually been seen doing by a young dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being nibbled by a Pal was a breeder’s privilege.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time Ash saw his friends being nibbled, he was full of envy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But, this nibble…. Is a little bad for his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although he knew that Eco is a dragon, she still looked like a girl. Right now, Eco was nibbling his chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please…. Stop…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although he asked her to stop, he never really forced it. It doesn’t feel bad being nibble by Eco. No, it even felt great.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, it had ended.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was possible that she was sleeping or even possible that this was a different type of nibble from Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without any reason, Eco’s bite was getting stronger and stronger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uoooo! It hurts! I really hurts!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shivering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was horrified by the thought of being eaten. The word food kept on echoing in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though she looked like a girl, Eco was still a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the worst case scenario, it would even danger his life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuwoooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash pushed Eco to the side with all his might. Her teeth marks were left on his chest. Though there was no bleeding, it would probably take a few days for it to disappear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zzz… Zzz…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without knowing Ash’s troubles, Eco continued to sleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Are days like this going to continue?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;She should really be sent to the dragon house for strict discipline…&#039;&#039; Or at least that was what Ash thought of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
The next morning, Ash was woken up by an unexpected guest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since some times before, there seemed to be someone knocking on the door nonstop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who doesn’t have many friends could only think of Raymond and Max.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can’t I at least have a good rest during my precious weekends…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was mumbling while he was walking towards the entrance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked the instant he opened the door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good morning Ash Blake. You shouldn’t oversleep even if it is a weekend.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was standing at the doorway. Right behind her stood Max who was in charge of the accounts with a sour look.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“P-President! This is the boy’s dormitory!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Say my name.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Being called president is a little too stiff and unnecessary.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ermm… Rebecca-san?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash called out without a second thought which made Rebecca smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… That’s great. I am here for Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am grateful for you to take your trouble to come here.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is not necessary. By the way, how’s Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is still sleeping…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was startled when he turned around and looked at the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hwuaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who had just woke up was rubbing her eyes and sat up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The blanket fall off and her white chest was exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wha-! That’s not the case!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Beast…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max pulled his collar as he was trying to explain the misunderstanding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You beast! Do you even know what you had done!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luckily, Rebecca interfered and stopped Max.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Max! Calm down! They didn’t seemed to be sleeping together since there was a futon on the ground. Am I right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then explain why she is naked!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash started stuttering because of the tone Max was using.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Erm… No, that is… Eco said she is a proud dragon and she does not require any clothes. Apart from that, I don’t have any clothes for her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Just as what I expected. I had brought something for you, don’t worry about it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a glance from Rebecca, Max handed Ash a bag unwillingly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt a little heavy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I gave some clothing to Eco. Though she is a dragon, her appearance is of a girl’s. You can’t expect her to be moving around naked. Just take it as a birthday present from the student council.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-Thank you very much. I am saved…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash lowered his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However, as for the daily needs, you have to buy it yourself. Do you have enough money?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… It is a little tight.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Be it a noble family or a traders family, it had nothing to do with Ash who was born in a small village at the borders.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If that’s the case, you just have to fill in this form and pass it to the management.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The piece of form that Rebecca gave him was used by student to apply for the up taking funds for their Pals.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Strictly speaking, this is only used to apply for the riding equipment… Well, Eco should be a special case. Then, there is one more thing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly Rebecca turned serious. Though she still maintained her statue like beauty, her muscle was all tensed up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Actually this morning, it had been decided in the staff meeting that Dr.Cornwell was asked by the academy to examine Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
‘Huh! By saying Dr.Cornwell you are saying she is that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She owned a laboratory in Ansarivan City and held the highest authority in dragon research. Ash had never seen her before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. She is that famous person. Since she was always busy, the date to examine Eco had not been decided yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. No worries, I will take care of Eco until the time.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s serious expression made Rebecca smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good answer. One more thing, after you are done with everything, please drop by the student council’s office. I had many things that I want to ask you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… I will be waiting for you then.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca left with a smile while being followed by Max.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
“Try putting this on…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While trying to avoid looking at Eco’s body with the sun right at her back, he handed her the bag.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly turned angry.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I mention it before? I will get into trouble if you don’t at least put on some clothes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm. Are you trying to say that you are not pleased with my body?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco walk approaching Ash while being fully naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was panicking and immediately turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why I had told you that it is a common knowledge to wear clothes in the human society. Anyway, don’t you feel cold with nothing on?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph. This sunny day is like a give for me who had just been born. It is not necessarily for me to-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that instant, a yellow butterfly that had lost its way flew into the room and landed on Eco’s nose.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s nose twitched.’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A…. A….Achoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a cute sneeze.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strong winds were created from her sneeze. Ash was blown up and bang into the ceiling like a frog being ran over.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ouch! It is just like a dragon’s sneeze…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had just crawled up found that he lost the bag. After a quick search, he found out that Rebecca’s belongings were scattered all round the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To his surprised, Eco was actually holding one.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Cute.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like she seemed to have interest in it since she was at that age.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
Just like what he hoped for, Eco had put on the clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The clothes give by Rebecca was a cute dress that has a similar design to the school’s uniform.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Regardless of the collar ribbon or the puff sleeve, it matches Eco perfectly. As for  the beret it can be used to cover up Eco’s horn.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, her boots were stylish and the size fitted perfectly. Ash was amazed at how sharp Rebecca was.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco doesn’t seem dissatisfied when she was looking at the mirror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Not a bad design from a dumb human.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was relieved.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nnn. By the way, is this Ansarivan, the academic city?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was surprised by the sudden question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“According to the Dragweiss, there should be many shops on the streets of Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That right.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was starting to admire the Dragweiss. It seemed that Eco inherited a huge amount of knowledge. It would be perfect if they didn’t have any knowledge on those weird stuffs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…eets.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? What did you just say?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I say… I will allow you to bring me to look around the streets!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco turned aside with her cheeks blushing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile. It seemed that Eco want him to bring her for a walk in the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though the Dragweiss may be useful, it still doesn’t feel safe walking on the streets alone. The reason she didn’t ask Ash directly has probably to do with her honour as a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright then, even a dragon needs a walk.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t say it like you are bringing a dog for a walk!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“O-Ouch!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash almost fainted from being punched right in the belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
After claiming two thousands Eccles for the up taking of his Pal from the management, Ash brought Eco to the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Two thousand Eccles is equivalent to a month worth of job pay of a government official. Of course this was the first time he held such a large amount of money.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is Ansarivan…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was amazed the moment she stepped into the streets. Even though she had knowledge regarding this, still, the real thing never failed to amaze her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The amount of people increased the moment they entered the main street. Since today was also a holiday, most of the people were students.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On both sides of the streets were stalls and the street was full of the smells of foods.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gurrrrr…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco’s stomach gave a loud growl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All the pedestrians around were shocked. Nothing least could be expected from a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco blushed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It is not like I have any choice. I haven’t even taken my breakfast yet!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could understand why she was embarrassed about her stomach rumbling while she can walk around naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yeah right, I almost forgotten…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had not taken any breakfast because of Rebecca’s visit. All of a sudden, Ash started to feel hunger too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was puffing her checks in protest to Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon must eat five time a day, don’t you know that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I heard about it during my years in the basic class… But is that really a necessity?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s obvious!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking at Eco’s small body frame in disbelieve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The daily cost is going to increase…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What did you just say?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, nothing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mm… What’s that? What a nice smell!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was pointing at a stall. A noisy group of girls of Ash’s age were gathering there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s a crepe stall.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What’s that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Is it not recorded in the Dragweiss?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is just a food. There is no need to purposely access the Dragweiss. It requires magic to make a search!’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… Crepe is a popular dessert in Ansarivan. Do you want to have a try?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basically, dragons are omnivores. They shouldn’t have any problems eating crepes. At least that was what Ash thought.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were three girls before them and Ash and Eco were queuing up at the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it our turn yet?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We need to be patient. It is bad to cut queue.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph… Looks like we don’t have a choice. However, since they have the guts to make a dragon wait, it better be good or else I will have this store crushed.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That doesn&#039;t sounds good…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly Ash felt that someone was staring at him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is there anything?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco asked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nothing. I just thought that I felt someone staring at us.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? It is impossible for someone looking at us in such streets.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… I don’t think that I have enough confidence to say that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since ages ago, Ash&#039;s intuition had always been sharp.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it was not because of that, he wouldn&#039;t be able to spot Milgauss in the forest. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… It must have been my imagination.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He had become oversensitive due to that incident.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that moment, the girl standing right in front of him had ordered an Ansal flavored crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a moment a rose-like smell filled the air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It made them hungrier.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I think I am going to have an Ansal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After taking a look at the price list, an Ansal crepe cost about a hundred Glorins. While the rest cost only fifty Glorines. Although it was a little expensive, with the money he received for up taking a Pal, this is nothing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What about you, Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without any reason, was straightening her chest proudly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu, of course it is Ansal. It is the etiquette of a dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…It seems so.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The so called Ansal was a high quality herb that was produced in Ansarivan. Apart from the usual use as spice, it was also loved by the &lt;br /&gt;
dragons. To them, it was similar to cigarettes and booze to humans.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally it was Ash and Eco’s turn.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Two Ansal crepes please.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After receiving the orders, the shopkeeper roasted the batter with an amazing speed. When it was almost done, the shopkeeper place some pale green coloured cream on it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The area surrounding them was full of the smell of Ansal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking at the shopkeeper in amaze. Ash’s heart skipped a beat for a moment when he saw Eco with a look of curiosity.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Stop! Eco is a dragon…&#039;&#039; Ash hurriedly reminded himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
There was a public bench not far away from the store. Since it was empty, both Ash and Eco sat on it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mmm…mmm…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was eating her crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nnn… It is delicious!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank god. The store is now safe from being crushed.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t joke with me! Whoever dare to lay a finger on it have to go through me first!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Anyway, I think only you have to ability to crush it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a few seconds, Eco finished her crepe completely. She seemed to be not satisfied with it and was eying Ash’s.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since he was surprised by Eco’s eating speed, Ash haven’t even taken a single bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa… Guess I don’t have a choice. Wanna have a bite?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can I?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, I can&#039;t bear seeing you with that kind of face.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was overjoyed when Ash handed her his crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her innocent looks while eating the crepe was like a small animal. Ash suddenly felt like he was feeding his pet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After eating, tightening her fist and declared:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It had been decided! This will be my meal!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is just for dessert. You have to eat meat if you are a dragon! Or else you won’t grow!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How dare a mere dumb human like you order me! Have you forgotten that I am your owner…. Aaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco was blushing and was panting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… are you alright?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“M-My body…. It is hot…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was suddenly embracing Ash with watery eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Their limbs were rubbing against each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could feel Eco body heat through the clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… What are you doing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-No more… I can’t….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco pushed forward.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could feel her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then, Eco started licking his the area around his collar. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash turned numb from being licked by her soft and warm tongue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“….Eco? What is happening?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please… Do something… I-I can’t…. No more…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was getting confused, the rosy lips was approaching him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beneath the lips were pearl like teeth. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were smells of Ansal mixed in within her hot breath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be that…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could only think of the only explanation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is caused by the Ansal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansals were loved by dragon. To them, Ansal were like tobacco and booze in the human world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though she was born with the look of a girl, at the same time she is also a young dragon. It seemed that it was bad to her if she took in a huge amount of Ansal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! P-Pleaese…. I beg you!”&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 091.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huff…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was approaching him like an animal in heat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If this were to be left alone, they will be caught for disrupting the peace of the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mama, what are both of them doing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t look! Just keep moving!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, glares from the people around were piercing him. Although Ash felt like running away right at this moment, he couldn’t even stand up from being held tightly by Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, someone was standing beside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you thinking….? Doing something as shameless as this in the public!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The scold shocked Ash. It sounded familiar. No, it doesn’t just sound familiar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected, he saw Princess Silvia her royal highness herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The enemy of women shall face the hammer of death! This is my family motto!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An iron fist that had enough force to break a rock swung at his face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
“With this, you should be alright.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who took care of Eco was Silvia’s maid, Cosette Shelley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since she herself was quite a famous person in the academy, Ash knew a little about her. Even though they were on the streets, Cosette was wearing the palace’s maid attire. Quite a number of people were looking at her out of curiosity.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco started to regain her sense after drinking the water given to her by Cosette who had gotten it from a nearby shop. According to &lt;br /&gt;
Cosette, the Ansal will be diluted if a huge amount of water was drunk.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huff…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although her checks were still red, at least she could finally sit still. Ash breathe a sigh of relieve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you, Cosette-san. You really help me there…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tee Hee, you are welcome.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk. I am surprise that you fed a young dragon Ansal! What had you learn in class!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia scolded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t Princess-sama fed the newborn Lancelot with Ansal Tea too?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t talk about the past!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was blushing. It seems she too had the same experience.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Before that, why was she born in the form of a human and not a dragon? It had become a rumor in the entire academy.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? I didn’t knew that Princess-sama who don’t even have a friend would be interested in gossip.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was blushing again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Be quiet! I-I had not interest in any kind of gossip. Cosette was always talking about all kinds of things, it was just by chance that I heard it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu… Every time I mention about Ash-sama, didn’t you become excited?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-Never!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In truth, everyone knew that Silvia was always alone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She would make everyone nervous with just her presence alone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It happened not because of her status as a Princess. Alright, it is probably one of the reasons. However, the main reason was because of her stubbornness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, doesn’t everything turned out well. At least you had found Ash-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After being pointed out by Cosette, not only her checks, even her ears were red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you talking about! I did not come to the streets on purpose just to search for him!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, alright. We will take what you said as the truth. Heehee...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Cosette looked like an honest person at a first glance, she was actually a bully. Silvia was almost in tears.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t Princess-sama have something to say to Ash-sama? Please don’t worry about me. I will turn around and face the other side.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don&#039;t joke with me! Even when you are facing the other side, you will still try to listen!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu. That is the duty of a maid. Just take me as the statue of Venus at the end of a street.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Venus! You look more like the reincarnation of Mórrígan herself!” &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;The Morrígan(&amp;quot;phantom queen&amp;quot;) is a figure from Irish mythology who appears to have been considered a goddess of battle, strife, and sovereignty&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Eco’s nose twitched.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A…Aa….Achoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A cute sneeze.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Fshoos.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A strong wind was created in front of Eco and it had flipped up Silvia’s skirt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was white and laced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the knots on both sides of her waist were all imprinted in Ash’s mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“String…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t look!”&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 096.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Silvia’s iron fist was going to knock into Ash’s face, Eco made her move.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stretched her arms from under Ash’s armpits and stopped Silvia. It seemed to be a reaction only possessed by dragons. It seemed that she was no longer drunk.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was surprised that Eco protected him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia asked in a cold voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You on the other hand. What are you trying to do when you are just a dumb human. This person’s master is no other than me. The only person in this world who can punish him is me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What kind of logic is that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco and Silvia were confronting each other as if Ash was unrelated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph… Whatever.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was the first one who backed off. She lowered her fist and turned around. Her golden hair looked dazzling while being blown by the air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash Blake! I have only one thing to tell you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned around facing them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That is… What I had told you previously was wrong.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“During that time, I lost my temper. In truth, your Pal was born successfully.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who was embarrassed had her sight wandering around. At one moment when her sight and Ash’s connected, she immediately looked away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that, Cosette was grinning with a hand in front of her mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-In another words… Err… How should I put this… I will take back what I said. Admitting one’s fault is one of my family’s motto!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Silvia left.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then I too will take my leave.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After announcing her leave, Cosette gracefully waved her skirt and left following Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s mind turned blank after being suddenly apologized to.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Like master, like dragon, maybe it died long ago!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
During that time, Ash challenged Silvia just to make her take back her words. Since he lost the race, he didn’t think it is necessary for her to apologize. Furthermore, he was no longer haunted by her words since Eco was born safely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Silvia still insisted on apologizing even though she was the winner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… She would definitely be the most popular person in the entire academy if she had always acted this way.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash grinned. The next moment, he felt pain on both sides of his cheeks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seemed that Eco was squeezing the both sides of his checks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-Heho?(E-Eco)?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was glaring at him with a half-opened eye.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be that… You have some special feeling for that female? Or is that you have forgotten that I am your master?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“F-Forry…(S-Sorry…).”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If he ever tried to object, he feared that his face would be squashed. Thus, Ash apologized.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 10===&lt;br /&gt;
After buying Eco’s daily needs, Ash was standing in front of a public toilet with both of his hands full of grocery bags. Eco had mentioned that she needed to use the toilet and that is why Ash was standing there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How long is she going to make me wait!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She had entered the toilet for some time and had no sign of her coming out. To make it worst, Ash could take a peek since it was the ladies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is it? Please don’t bother me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you interested in the ladies?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. If I am allowed, I would even enter and take a good look...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So you are this kind of a person… It was wrong of me to think highly of you, Ash Blake!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately came back to his sense. Who exactly was the person who was talking to him?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, the moment he turned around, he was kicked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ouch! What the hell are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash regretted what he just said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What the hell are you doing…? Yeah, right. That was what I was going to ask you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person in front of Ash was not some stranger. Right now, she was scolding with her arm crossed. Her golden hair at this moment looked like a lion.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As usual, Cosette was following Silvia from behind and was smiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why were you standing around suspiciously in front of the ladies? You look like a total pervert no matter how I look at you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… It is just that Eco had not come out from the toilet yet and I am a little worried. That all is what I was thinking. Nothing apart from that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why don’t you mention it earlier? I will take a look in your stead if you are okay with it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was grateful for Cosette’s help.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please do!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go, Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me too?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Helping those in need is the responsibility of a royal. That’s is from the proud family motto of the Lautreamont Knight Family.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I knew that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was in shock when the driving seat was taken away from her by Cosette. She then hurriedly entered the ladies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 11===&lt;br /&gt;
Moments later, Silvia and Cosette returned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We didn’t see Eco but in exchange, we found this on the floor.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Silvia was holding was Eco’s beret.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… This is definitely Eco’s hat. But why?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Eco entered the toilet, Ash had been standing all along at the entrance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He will defiantly see her if she had walked out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Apart from the hat, we also collected these.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette who was standing beside Silvia showed him a handkerchief.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Collected?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Inside the handkerchief were sparkling powders.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In my opinion, it should be the powders of a Bright Dragon crystal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A Bright Dragon Crystal is the crystallization of the dragon’s magic. At the same time, it was used to activate the Oracle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With borrowing the powers from the Bright Dragon Crystal, humans were unable to use magic. In the first place, it was the dragons that brought magic into this continent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was possible that someone kidnapped Eco with the use of the oracle.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was full of shivers when he heard Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why I kept on having the feeling of someone peeping at us.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Really? Then the culprit must have been targeting Eco since the start.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn! Just why…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop panicking! Try thinking what you had learned in class.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was staring at him with her ice blue eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The bond between the breeder and his dragon will not break this easily. Even if you can’t see it, there is the Astral flow.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course I knew that. It is just that what am I suppose to do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If she is a Maestro, you just have to summon her… But it will be impossible for a newborn. In another world, you have to go to her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But how the hell am I to know where she was!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why you must stop panicking. As a breeder, you should have a Seikoku branded on your skin given to you by the mother dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash certainly has the Seikoku branded on his left arm. Unfortunately, he had lost his memories of the meeting with the mother dragon. But, of course this is not a good time to discuss that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tell me what should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Seikoku is not just a mere tattoo. It is the door for the Astral Flow.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“By the way… During the time when Eco was born, I certainly remember that my Seikoku reacted.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Put your thoughts on remembering that feeling. Then call out to Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally knew what she was asking him to do.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will give it a try. Thank you, Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia blushed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-No need for that! Dragons are holy beasts that symbolized our country. It is my duty to help those who are in need!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After saying, she turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette was grinning from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s begin.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash rolled up his sleeve and removed his bandage. The sight of his Seikoku gave Silvia a shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That is your seikoku?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It seems so…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had always hated his Seikoku. If it is possible, he wouldn’t even want anyone to know about it. But, right now, it is an emergency.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What should we do next?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is hard to describe this in words…. First, focus your thoughts on the Seikoku. Then, think strongly about Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This seems to be overly abstract. Are you sure about this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice. The Seikoku was the product of magic. It would be impossible to describe it using a human language since the beginning.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, anyway… I will give it a go!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under the sight of both Silvia and Cosette, Ash lifted his left arm and held his left wrist with his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Next, he focused his thoughts on the Seikoku on his left arm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could somehow feel the Seikoku being heated up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please… Tell me Eco’s location…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a few mumbles, Ash was thinking only about Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since he was seven, Eco who was in his body had never left his side even once.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco should had born earlier, had overslept for an extra three years.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, Ash had always been waiting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was looked down upon, he had always been waiting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was finally born. Although it was unexpected and there were many unexplained stuff going on, still there was one obvious truth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco is his Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Answer me, please…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Ash’s Seikoku had turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The magic from the Seikoku had taken the form of a butterfly. It seemed to be leading Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The location should be where Eco was.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Comapre to Ash who was over the moon, Silvia and Cosette seemed confused.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What do you see?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seemed that Silvia and Cosette were unable to see the butterfly formed from his Seikoku. First, Ash don’t have the time to explain to them and secondly, he did not know how to put this into words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am heading to where Eco is!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash started chasing after the butterfly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! It is dangerous to go there alone! I will go with you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will follow Princess-sama even if we are heading to hell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please don’t speak off such unlucky stuff!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was not bothered by any of them and continued to chase after the butterfly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 12===&lt;br /&gt;
The butterfly that was formed from magic could easily fly pass humans. Ash and the rest were avoiding the other pedestrian while they were running along the alley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The butterfly had finally arrived at an isolated corner of the eastern district. It was a mansion built in the middle of a huge land. &lt;br /&gt;
Since it was old, it looked like a haunted house. It had not yet been confirmed whether there is anyone staying there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Are you sure that Eco was here?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was shocked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who was usually full of confidence had turned pale.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Seikoku had certainly showed us this place.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, you don’t look good at all.  Could it be that…. You are scared?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though Ash was just fooling around, Silvia overly responded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Imposible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was obvious that Silvia was lying. Although she doesn’t look like it, she was actually very timid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Anyway, we can only depend on the Seikoku’s lead. In the worst case scenario, I just have to summon Lancelot and have this place burnt down.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu. This is more like it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, it is bad to summon Lancelot in the middle of the streets! Cosette-san, please don’t encourage her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when they were arguing, the butterfly flew into the house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was right, right now, they could only depend on the Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wait for me, Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash pushed open the metal door. ‘Crrrreeek’ comes the sound for the rust rubbing against each outher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once they stepped into the garden, Silvia turned shocked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every certain distant was a stone slab. It looked as if it was a magic circle. At the top of the stone slab was a Bright Dragon Crystal. &lt;br /&gt;
All of them were glittering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although they were unclear of its usage, it seemed to be able to activate the Oracle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“These stone slabs certainly looked weird.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash too had stopped his tracks and was looking at the stone slabs. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For a rundown looking house to posses such a huge amount of bright dragon crystal, it certainly doesn’t look natural. You usually have to have a huge amount of money to buy this amount of Bright Dragon Crystal… I have a bad feeling. First, let us check the background of the owner of this house…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We don’t have time for that. We must first save Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash rejected her suggestion and rushed in. It is not that Silvia’s suggestion was wrong. It was just that they don’t have the time to do any investigation before they found about Eco’s condition.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-Hold on! W-Wait for me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected, Silvia who was timid hurriedly chase after Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 13===&lt;br /&gt;
Being shone under the familiar warm light, Eco woke up with a yawn.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She still remembered that she was in the toilet of the shopping district and was going to wash her hands. Her memories after that were blank.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After realizing in what kind of a situation she was in, Eco was horrified.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What is the meaning of this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was lying down facing the ceilings while she was being tired up. Apart from her knee socks, she was stark naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The tools that were used to tie her up were made from strong materials. Eco couldn’t move an inch even after she tried with her entire might.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is happening…?’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was not even a single window. The sources of lights were from lamps powered by Bright Dragon Crystals. Eco was probably familiar with this kind light because she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the area around her were many medical tools. The bookshelves by the walls were also stuffed full with documents.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was a dragon model that was being placed on a table. It was not just a model but also a specimen. It doesn’t feel good looking at it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Where am I?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, a door was opened slowly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How do you feel?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person by the door was a woman wearing a spectacle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Who are you? How dare you to do such a thing to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see that you are in a high spirit. I like it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s threat was useless against the woman.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 113.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;‘Clank! Clank!’&#039;&#039;It was the sounds of her heels when she approached Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is really unbelievable that a dragon was born in the form of a human.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What did you say?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The woman’s words had caught Eco’s attention. It seemed that she kidnapped her while knowing that she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What actually was the dragon thinking? For them to send a young dragon like you into this world?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How am I to know!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The woman had become more curious.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Did you really not know? Didn’t you share the memories of your dragon ancestral? According to the ancient documents, such a thing happens.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you are talking about the Dragweiss, then to further disappoint you, I can’t access it on my own yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see. So, I just have to question your body directly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Hic…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly the woman’s hand started to move.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was a silver flash right in front of Eco’s nose.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a closer look, the thing that pierced the wall was a scalpel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Don’t tell me that…. You…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The woman replied naturally while taking out a second scalpel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Dissection is the basic for biology.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 14===&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was running on the corridor where its floor had started creaking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time they saw a spider or a rat, Silvia would give a squeak. Although Ash would like to look at her while she was making those looks, his priority was to save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ever since just moments before, a change occurred in his Seikoku on his left arm. It was getting hotter and lights started glowing. Though all the windows in the house were sealed up, thanks to the lights from his Seikoku, they were able to see clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally, the Seikoku led them to a door that led to the basement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked sturdy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was wandering whether he should try calling out or bang in, Silvia made her move.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Move to a side! I will have it blow open!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who turned pale took a few steps back. Silvia took out a red Bright Dragon Crystal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Crimson Ex-Breath!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time the Bright Dragon Crystal glows, a power was shot at the door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a loud bang, the door blast opened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted the moment he entered the room. Because it was excessively done by Silvia, dark smokes appeared all over the place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was worried that Eco was injured by it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally the smoke cleared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What a rude bunch of brats.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Standing right in front of Ash was a lady in white.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her spectacles made her look like someone knowledgeable. As for her age, she looked like she was around twenty five. Also, she was &lt;br /&gt;
wearing a white lab coat which made her look like a doctor or a researcher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right behind her was Eco lying stark naked while being tied up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing to my Pal!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was full of rage when he saw Eco lying in that condition.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was almost in tears when she saw Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are late! Untie me this instant!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry…. Why am I apologizing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad but since she was tied up, Ash couldn’t feel her imposingness. On the other hand, her looks made it bad for Ash’s heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After moving his sight away from Eco, Ash was glaring at the women in white.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the meaning of this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am just performing my duties given by the academy. Alright, I admit that my method is a little too forceful.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The woman answered calmly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Duties given by the academy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was being confused, Silvia who was standing behind him suddenly shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is… Dr.Angela Cornwell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had heard rumors that the professor had a laboratory in the city… Never in my entire life had I ever thought that it is located in this kind of a place.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You must be kidding…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Doctor, I had always been a fan of your thesis.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia took a step forward and shook hands with Angela in the same way she would have treat a country’s guest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is my honor, your highness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela who answered without hesitating had somehow loosen the tension.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was staring at her with his mouth wide open.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Dr.Angela Cornwell.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a name he had heard from Rebecca that morning itself. She was a highly rated scholar whom was asked by the academy to examine Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Rebecca had mentioned that she was busy and it may require some time before she could examine Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since everything was written on Ash’s face, Angela smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I always receive many boring request from the academy. Though at first I was not at all interested in this at all…. My motivation gushed out when I heard that a dragon was born in the form of a human. I had been spying at both of you since this morning.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It appears that the feeling of someone spying on them that Ash had was from Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since you just received your request from the academy in the morning… How did you manage to spot us?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash-kun, I had always been noticing you. Aren’t you the Breeder who doesn’t have a Pal? At the same time, aren’t you also the genius who can ride on any dragon? It is you who didn’t knew that you are famous through the school.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… Wait! Hold on!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was overjoyed when he was praised by a beautiful adult woman. However, he regained his sense immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No matter what the reasons are, what you are doing is kidnapping! On the other hand, what are you trying to do with that scalpel!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course for dissecting.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela answered as if it was a natural thing to do.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Dissecting! Are you serious!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. Even if it is a dragon, we would have to dissect it if we want to know more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…You disappoint me! Eco is going home with me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he declared, Ash moved towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I won’t allow that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela blocked right in front of Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What are you trying to do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How you I let such an interesting sample walk away easily. Also… Apart from her, there is another thing that caught my interests.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela was staring at Ash’s Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Shit…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then Ash remembered that he had forgotten that his Seikoku was exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So that’s a Seikoku huh? Until today, I had seen many Breeder’s Seikoku, but something like that is a first time for me. Can I take a closer look?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Absolutely not! You don’t even know the reason why I tried so hard to hide this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Ash was enrolled in the academy, there were many students who noticed his abnormal Seikoku and treated him like a monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In truth, to the rest of the people, it looked like an ill omen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… You are afraid of your own Seikoku.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That&#039;s not true!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash cheeks were getting hot. Just as Angela had said, Ash was afraid of his own Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Don’t ignore me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s call had averted his attention away from his Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was still being tied.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, please move aside!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then we will have Her Highness to decide this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was troubled because the topic was suddenly shifted to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-About this… I can more or less know how the professor feels. Since Eco was undeniably a special dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“As expected from Her Highness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her words made Angela smile. However Silvia still continued to speak.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, dragons are holy beasts that symbolized our country. I will not allow you to dissect her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although her explanations seemed to be slightly off topic, Ash was still thankful for that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… How disappointing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, Ash felt that the air in the room had turned sticky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama, please stay alert! Angela is well known for doing what it takes to make her research a success.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she was speaking in a calm tone, Cosette’s face had gotten serious. She stood in front of Silvia and was facing Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“... Not bad for just a maid.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela’s facial expression had changed. Killing intents were gushing out from behind the two lenses.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Professor…. Don’t try anything rash. I can summon Lancelot anytime.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That doesn’t bother me at all. Why don’t you give it a try?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fine with me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was holding her Bright Dragon Crystal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In the name of Silvia Lautreamont! Lancelot! Answer my summon!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was just only the sound of her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ten seconds had passed, twenty seconds had passed… A minute had passed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Nothing had happened at all. The room was full of silent. Ash was hoping for Lancelot to make a magnificent appear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How is this possible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was speaking out her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Have you not notice? This mansion is being protected in an Oracle field.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be those stone slabs in the garden…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela gave a victorious smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Correct. That device was used to create a barrier by using the Oracle. No matter what you do, as long as you are in this room, Lancelot will never arrive. This device was normally used to prevent any break in.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Prevent any break in? Then the reason that we are able to enter easily is…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just as expected from Her Highness herself. When I found out about the both of you, I had the device shut off.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then way of Angela’s speech had become crueler.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama… This person is dangerous. We have to leave this place even if we are forced to use Ash-san as a meat shield.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am a shield!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Cosette said was bothering Ash and he made a comment on it, then he immediately turned around facing Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you sure that you want to do this? You will be charged for treason by just pointing your knife at Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So? Even a Princess shall not bother with my research.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Seems like we have to resolve this by force.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While she was speaking, she activated the Oracle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Crimson Ex-Breath!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a shout, a flash came from her Bright Dragon Crystal and then it was followed by a bang.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While trying to keep himself from being blown away from the blast, Ash grumbled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I think you over did this! Even with all this, she is still a professor that be considered as the country’s treasure!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice! This magic itself is hard to control!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Both of you, don’t you think that this is not a right time to argue?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who had interrupted the both of them was unexpectedly Cosette. She was staring at the pile of smoke.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Impossible…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbstrucked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You thought that you could win by using Oracle?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela remains standing even after the smoke had cleared. Apart from her lab coat being torn and smoked, she was totally fine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash noticed her bracelet had a black stone on it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was not just a normal rock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from it special radiance, it should be a Bright Dragon Crystal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now that I think of it, the professor was famous for using the Oracle…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela smiled at Silvia as if she was pitting her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is too late. I will not allow you to leave this place until I am done with dissecting her. &#039;&#039;Dark Mother Lullaby&#039;&#039;!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After she had summoned the Oracle, a flash came from the Bright Dragon Crystal on her bracelet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, there was also a change on the floor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beautiful patterns started to appear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… A magic circle.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia lost her balance right after she cursed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette who tried to help Silvia had also lost her balance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… What is this…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s legs too had started to betray him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although his consciousness still remains, with just a little push, he would be baited by the Oracle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is a magic circle drawn using the powder of a Bright Dragon Crystal. We won’t be able to learn this in the academy. But…. How do you manage to remain conscious?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela was looking at Ash with looks of unbelievable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing! If you fall asleep right now… I will never forgive you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was shouting even when she had turned pale white.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s tone was still being haughty. But considering Ash had fallen and she was going to be dissect, it was understandable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Ba-dump!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s Seikoku was burning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash Seikoku was glowing with red colour similar to yesterday when Eco was born. Right now, it looked like a burning torch.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked from the amount of heat burning on his left arm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was no longer sleepy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the first time, Angela’s face looked shaken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be that… Eco’s magic was sent through the Astral Flow…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anyway, Angela seems to notice the change of Ash’s left arm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No matter what…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash swung his left arm the same moment he stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The winds created had blown off the magic circle. At the same time, Angela’s bracelet was destroyed and the black Bright Dragon Crystal broke into pieces.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It can’t be!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela who was always calm was definitely shaken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Return my Pal right at this moment!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While ignoring Angela who was stunned, Ash move towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong binding tools were broken by Ash in just a blink of an eye.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“*Sob*… You are late!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was freed was hugging Ash while complaining. Then she started crying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was an unexpected development for Ash and he started panicking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the time being, Ash tried comforting her by patting her back. But just as he touched her bare back…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hic…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was probably that Ash’s fingers were cold or Eco’s body was over sensitive, her body jerked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… How dare a pet like you dare to touch me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again Eco swung her fist and Ash was knocked against the wall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 15===&lt;br /&gt;
Time flew pass. Without noticing, it was already four in the evening.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After leaving the laboratory, the four of them were heading back to the dormitory.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was tired of crying was sleeping peacefully on Ash’s back. Her face looked like an angel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good grief, what a bad day… Sorry for involving you even though it was our problem.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry about it. It was Princess-sama who chose to save Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette who was walking side by side with Ash was smiling. Although she too was carrying Silvia who was fast asleep, her footsteps were steady.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just like Eco, Silvia who was always acting strict looked just like angel after she was fast asleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Cosette, are you alright?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash had saved Eco, she immediately stood up. Since Silvia had yet to be woken up, it signifies that Angela’s was using a strong magic. However, Cosette doesn’t seem to be affected at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
During the entire time, it was Cosette who found Eco’s clothes, Cosette who coaxed Eco and Cosette who help Eco put on her clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it was Ash, he would be panicking all along in the laboratory.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu. That is because I am a maid.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is just because of this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette was always replying him with a smile that could even ward off evil. Even Angela’s anger was soothed by her smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash-san I actually have a favour to ask.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What the matter?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please keep today’s incident a secret. It is because…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aaah… Alright.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood what Cosette was trying to say.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To save Eco, Silvia had trespassed Angela’s mansion and was put to sleep from an Oracle. It is be a disgrace to the royal family.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. Though it is a pity that I am unable to announced Angela’s bad doing, I still think that she had gotten what she deserved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Ash smiles, Cosette burst out into laughter.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When she found out that her Oracle was useless against Ash-sama, she was in a shock. During that time, Ash-sama looked great.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s heart was beating nonstop since this was the first time he was praised by a girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s not it. During that time, I am only thinking of saving Eco. Putting that aside, have you been watching the whole incident?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if she was trying to hide something, Cosette just replied with a playful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Once again, a woman who is full of secrets…&#039;&#039; Ash thought so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 16===&lt;br /&gt;
The second day.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Something happened out of Ash’s expectation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even before the first period, the students were silenced by a woman in white who entered the classroom.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash and Silvia shouted at the same time. Everyone around was staring at them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The lady stood on the podium and smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am Angela Cornwell. I came here in replace of your previous Sebastian-sensei who had retired.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What the…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There should be one more year before Sebastian-sensei reached his retirement age. This should be the work of Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to the academy, it is an honour to be able to hire a person like Angela as a teacher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You can call me ‘Angela-sensei’.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia were staring at Angela with their mouth opened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“S-She never learns…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since their teacher was suddenly changed into a beautiful lady, while being led by Raymond, all of the boys in the class were cheering except Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Needless to say, Angela was still targeting Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please take care of me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Angela was glaring at Ash with her eagle like eyes with a cold smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;My Baby Dragon ~A.S.B.1365.4~&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 1|Chapter 1]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3|Chapter 3]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_2&amp;diff=354036</id>
		<title>Talk:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_2&amp;diff=354036"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T14:10:26Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;Is this complete now? It seems to be more complete then then 20% suggests. --[[User:Bilagaana|Bilagaana]] ([[User talk:Bilagaana|talk]]) 16:09, 14 April 2014 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This sentence seems to lack a certain proper sense &amp;quot;With borrowing the powers from the Bright Dragon Crystal, humans were unable to use magic.&amp;quot; Should it not be &amp;quot;were able&amp;quot; or &amp;quot;without&amp;quot;? [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 09:10, 17 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_2&amp;diff=354030</id>
		<title>Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 2</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_2&amp;diff=354030"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T13:35:54Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: /* Part 4 */&lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;==Chapter 2 - The Streets of Ansarivan==&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 1===&lt;br /&gt;
The news of the number one problem child in the Academy Ash Blake gotten in an accident in the dragon riding festival and his Pal was finally born spread like wild fire.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, his finally born young dragon Eco is a girl with horns.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just to settle Eco’s problem, there were two main opinions given during the staff’s meeting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
One of the opinions was to send Eco to the dragon house for strict discipline. While the other opinion stated that Eco shouldn’t be sent to the dragon house because she looked like a human.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the end of the day, they couldn&#039;t come up with a good solution. That is why all of them agreed on letting Ash took care of Eco in his own room for the mean time.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 2===&lt;br /&gt;
At the end of the walkway, in the third floor of the Apollo House, &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is my room. Hurry!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he opened the door, he gave Eco a push on her back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Grrrr…. How dare you as a dog to order your master.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco turned around and glared at Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I don’t remember becoming your dog at all!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then you can just be my meat slave!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Do you even know what does that mean?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco crossed her arms and smiled proudly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As usual, she was going to show off her knowledge she get from the Dragweiss.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is a slave who provides its hungry owner with its own meat.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am not some food!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was getting uneasy with the Dragweiss but he still shoves Eco into the room and ran in himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then he quickly had the door locked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Students were standing outside along the walls of his room with their ears glue towards the wall. Ash doesn’t even have the strength to chase them off.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Apollo House is a dormitory for males.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time a beauty with comparable standards to Eco came, there was always a huge uproar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… What a poor looking room.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After giving it a glance, Eco stated her first impression.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I guess this is for today… I am gonna sleep.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Until just moments ago, Ash had been kept held in the infirmary.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he was found in the ravine and was brought back to the academy, he was questioned by three parties, the board of directors, the staff and the student councils. He was now tired in both physically and mentally.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was blocking Ash who was going to jump into the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anything?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since I am your master, this bed is mine.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Where am I supposed to sleep then!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph! You can just sleep on the floor!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You gotta be joking!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am not! If you continue to disobey, I am gonna squash you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was pointing her fingers at Ash. She then removed the shirt that Ash gave her and move towards the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her white skin and curves can be seen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-Why are you removing them!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately turn aside, his heart was beating none stop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Didn’t I mention it before, that a proper dragon doesn’t need clothes! Can’t I have some freedom during my sleeping time!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco angrily answered and moved towards the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zzz… Zzz…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a while, she was already fast asleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her previous glare had turned into pure angel like.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good grief…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash rest himself on the laid out the futon and blanket.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although he was not used to sleeping on the floor, he still couldn’t resist the urge to sleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since it was a holiday on the next day, he doesn’t have to worry about waking up early.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a few moments, Ash was already in a deep sleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 3===&lt;br /&gt;
It was midnight.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash felt something was in his futon and he woke up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He doesn’t have the luxury to continue sleeping.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He felt as if his heart was going to burst.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! Wake up!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Before this, Eco had just occupied his bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seems weird that she was now squeezing herself into the futon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huff…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was still sleeping was gluing herself to Ash. The feel from her skin also caused his heart beat to speed up. Then, he remembered that Eco was naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Eco was not as sexy as Navi, Navi only appeared in his dreams.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But right now is reality. The softness of her skin and her body heat was not something from a dream could match with.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This looks… Delicious.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was sleep talking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;What kind of dream was she actually dreaming…&#039;&#039; Just when Ash was wondering, Ash felt an unknown feeling on his body and he trembled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seemed that Eco had given him a bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was called a nibble.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It can usually been seen doing by a young dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Being nibbled by a Pal was a breeder’s privilege.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time Ash saw his friends being nibbled, he was full of envy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
But, this nibble…. Is a little bad for his heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although he knew that Eco is a dragon, she still looked like a girl. Right now, Eco was nibbling his chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please…. Stop…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although he asked her to stop, he never really forced it. It doesn’t feel bad being nibble by Eco. No, it even felt great.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, it had ended.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was possible that she was sleeping or even possible that this was a different type of nibble from Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without any reason, Eco’s bite was getting stronger and stronger.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uoooo! It hurts! I really hurts!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shivering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was horrified by the thought of being eaten. The word food kept on echoing in his mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even though she looked like a girl, Eco was still a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the worst case scenario, it would even danger his life.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uuwoooo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash pushed Eco to the side with all his might. Her teeth marks were left on his chest. Though there was no bleeding, it would probably take a few days for it to disappear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Zzz… Zzz…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without knowing Ash’s troubles, Eco continued to sleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Are days like this going to continue?&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;She should really be sent to the dragon house for strict discipline…&#039;&#039; Or at least that was what Ash thought of.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 4===&lt;br /&gt;
The next morning, Ash was woken up by an unexpected guest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since some times before, there seemed to be someone knocking on the door nonstop.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who doesn’t have many friends could only think of Raymond and Max.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can’t I at least have a good rest during my precious weekends…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was mumbling while he was walking towards the entrance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked the instant he opened the door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good morning Ash Blake. You shouldn’t oversleep even if it is a weekend.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca was standing at the doorway. Right behind her stood Max who was in charge of the accounts with a sour look.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“P-President! This is the boy’s dormitory!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Say my name.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Being called president is a little too stiff and unnecessary.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ermm… Rebecca-san?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash called out without a second thought which made Rebecca smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… That’s great. I am here for Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am grateful for you to take your trouble to come here.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is not necessary. By the way, how’s Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is still sleeping…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was startled when he turned around and looked at the bed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hwuaa…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who had just woke up was rubbing her eyes and sat up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The blanket fall off and her white chest was exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wha-! That’s not the case!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Beast…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Max pulled his collar as he was trying to explain the misunderstanding.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You beast! Do you even know what you had done!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Luckily, Rebecca interfered and stopped Max.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Max! Calm down! They didn’t seemed to be sleeping together since there was a futon on the ground. Am I right?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then explain why she is naked!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash started stuttering because of the tone Max was using.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Erm… No, that is… Eco said she is a proud dragon and she does not require any clothes. Apart from that, I don’t have any clothes for her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Just as what I expected. I had brought something for you, don’t worry about it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a glance from Rebecca, Max handed Ash a bag unwillingly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It felt a little heavy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I gave some clothing to Eco. Though she is a dragon, her appearance is of a girl’s. You can’t expect her to be moving around naked. Just take it as a birthday present from the student council.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-Thank you very much. I am saved…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash lowered his head.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“However, as for the daily needs, you have to buy it yourself. Do you have enough money?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… It is a little tight.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Be it a noble family or a traders family, it had nothing to do with Ash who was born in a small village at the borders.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If that’s the case, you just have to fill in this form and pass it to the management.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The piece of form that Rebecca gave him was used by student to apply for the up taking funds for their Pals.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Strictly speaking, this is only used to apply for the riding equipment… Well, Eco should be a special case. Then, there is one more thing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly Rebecca turned serious. Though she still maintained her statue like beauty, her muscle was all tensed up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Actually this morning, it had been decided in the staff meeting that Dr.Cornwell was asked by the academy to examine Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
‘Huh! By saying Dr.Cornwell you are saying she is that…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She owned a laboratory in Ansarivan City and held the highest authority in dragon research. Ash had never seen her before.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. She is that famous person. Since she was always busy, the date to examine Eco had not been decided yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. No worries, I will take care of Eco until the time.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s serious expression made Rebecca smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good answer. One more thing, after you are done with everything, please drop by the student council’s office. I had many things that I want to ask you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Understood…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… I will be waiting for you then.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Rebecca left with a smile while being followed by Max.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 5===&lt;br /&gt;
“Try putting this on…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While trying to avoid looking at Eco’s body with the sun right at her back, he handed her the bag.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco suddenly turned angry.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t I mention it before? I will get into trouble if you don’t at least put on some clothes.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm. Are you trying to say that you are not pleased with my body?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco walk approaching Ash while being fully naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was panicking and immediately turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why I had told you that it is a common knowledge to wear clothes in the human society. Anyway, don’t you feel cold with nothing on?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph. This sunny day is like a give for me who had just been born. It is not necessarily for me to-”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that instant, a yellow butterfly that had lost its way flew into the room and landed on Eco’s nose.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s nose twitched.’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A…. A….Achoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a cute sneeze.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Strong winds were created from her sneeze. Ash was blown up and bang into the ceiling like a frog being ran over.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ouch! It is just like a dragon’s sneeze…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who had just crawled up found that he lost the bag. After a quick search, he found out that Rebecca’s belongings were scattered all round the ground.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To his surprised, Eco was actually holding one.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Cute.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked like she seemed to have interest in it since she was at that age.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 6===&lt;br /&gt;
Just like what he hoped for, Eco had put on the clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The clothes give by Rebecca was a cute dress that has a similar design to the school’s uniform.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Regardless of the collar ribbon or the puff sleeve, it matches Eco perfectly. As for  the beret it can be used to cover up Eco’s horn.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On the other hand, her boots were stylish and the size fitted perfectly. Ash was amazed at how sharp Rebecca was.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco doesn’t seem dissatisfied when she was looking at the mirror.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Not a bad design from a dumb human.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was relieved.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nnn. By the way, is this Ansarivan, the academic city?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was surprised by the sudden question.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“According to the Dragweiss, there should be many shops on the streets of Ansarivan.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That right.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was starting to admire the Dragweiss. It seemed that Eco inherited a huge amount of knowledge. It would be perfect if they didn’t have any knowledge on those weird stuffs.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…eets.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? What did you just say?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I say… I will allow you to bring me to look around the streets!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco turned aside with her cheeks blushing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash gave a wry smile. It seemed that Eco want him to bring her for a walk in the town.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though the Dragweiss may be useful, it still doesn’t feel safe walking on the streets alone. The reason she didn’t ask Ash directly has probably to do with her honour as a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright then, even a dragon needs a walk.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t say it like you are bringing a dog for a walk!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“O-Ouch!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash almost fainted from being punched right in the belly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 7===&lt;br /&gt;
After claiming two thousands Eccles for the up taking of his Pal from the management, Ash brought Eco to the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Two thousand Eccles is equivalent to a month worth of job pay of a government official. Of course this was the first time he held such a large amount of money.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is Ansarivan…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was amazed the moment she stepped into the streets. Even though she had knowledge regarding this, still, the real thing never failed to amaze her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The amount of people increased the moment they entered the main street. Since today was also a holiday, most of the people were students.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
On both sides of the streets were stalls and the street was full of the smells of foods.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Gurrrrr…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco’s stomach gave a loud growl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
All the pedestrians around were shocked. Nothing least could be expected from a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco blushed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It is not like I have any choice. I haven’t even taken my breakfast yet!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could understand why she was embarrassed about her stomach rumbling while she can walk around naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Yeah right, I almost forgotten…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had not taken any breakfast because of Rebecca’s visit. All of a sudden, Ash started to feel hunger too.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was puffing her checks in protest to Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A dragon must eat five time a day, don’t you know that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I heard about it during my years in the basic class… But is that really a necessity?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s obvious!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was looking at Eco’s small body frame in disbelieve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The daily cost is going to increase…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What did you just say?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, nothing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mm… What’s that? What a nice smell!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was pointing at a stall. A noisy group of girls of Ash’s age were gathering there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s a crepe stall.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What’s that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? Is it not recorded in the Dragweiss?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is just a food. There is no need to purposely access the Dragweiss. It requires magic to make a search!’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… Crepe is a popular dessert in Ansarivan. Do you want to have a try?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Basically, dragons are omnivores. They shouldn’t have any problems eating crepes. At least that was what Ash thought.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were three girls before them and Ash and Eco were queuing up at the back.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is it our turn yet?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We need to be patient. It is bad to cut queue.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph… Looks like we don’t have a choice. However, since they have the guts to make a dragon wait, it better be good or else I will have this store crushed.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That doesn&#039;t sounds good…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly Ash felt that someone was staring at him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Is there anything?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco asked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nothing. I just thought that I felt someone staring at us.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? It is impossible for someone looking at us in such streets.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… I don’t think that I have enough confidence to say that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since ages ago, Ash&#039;s intuition had always been sharp.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it was not because of that, he wouldn&#039;t be able to spot Milgauss in the forest. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… It must have been my imagination.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He had become oversensitive due to that incident.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right at that moment, the girl standing right in front of him had ordered an Ansal flavored crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a moment a rose-like smell filled the air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It made them hungrier.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I think I am going to have an Ansal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After taking a look at the price list, an Ansal crepe cost about a hundred Glorins. While the rest cost only fifty Glorines. Although it was a little expensive, with the money he received for up taking a Pal, this is nothing.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What about you, Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Without any reason, was straightening her chest proudly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu, of course it is Ansal. It is the etiquette of a dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…It seems so.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The so called Ansal was a high quality herb that was produced in Ansarivan. Apart from the usual use as spice, it was also loved by the &lt;br /&gt;
dragons. To them, it was similar to cigarettes and booze to humans.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally it was Ash and Eco’s turn.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Two Ansal crepes please.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After receiving the orders, the shopkeeper roasted the batter with an amazing speed. When it was almost done, the shopkeeper place some pale green coloured cream on it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The area surrounding them was full of the smell of Ansal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Uwaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking at the shopkeeper in amaze. Ash’s heart skipped a beat for a moment when he saw Eco with a look of curiosity.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Stop! Eco is a dragon…&#039;&#039; Ash hurriedly reminded himself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 8===&lt;br /&gt;
There was a public bench not far away from the store. Since it was empty, both Ash and Eco sat on it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mmm…mmm…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was eating her crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Nnn… It is delicious!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank god. The store is now safe from being crushed.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t joke with me! Whoever dare to lay a finger on it have to go through me first!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… Anyway, I think only you have to ability to crush it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In just a few seconds, Eco finished her crepe completely. She seemed to be not satisfied with it and was eying Ash’s.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since he was surprised by Eco’s eating speed, Ash haven’t even taken a single bite.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Haa… Guess I don’t have a choice. Wanna have a bite?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Can I?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, I can&#039;t bear seeing you with that kind of face.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was overjoyed when Ash handed her his crepe.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her innocent looks while eating the crepe was like a small animal. Ash suddenly felt like he was feeding his pet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After eating, tightening her fist and declared:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It had been decided! This will be my meal!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is just for dessert. You have to eat meat if you are a dragon! Or else you won’t grow!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How dare a mere dumb human like you order me! Have you forgotten that I am your owner…. Aaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Eco was blushing and was panting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… are you alright?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“M-My body…. It is hot…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was suddenly embracing Ash with watery eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Their limbs were rubbing against each other.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could feel Eco body heat through the clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey… What are you doing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-No more… I can’t….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco pushed forward.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could feel her chest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then, Eco started licking his the area around his collar. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“-!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash turned numb from being licked by her soft and warm tongue.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“….Eco? What is happening?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please… Do something… I-I can’t…. No more…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was getting confused, the rosy lips was approaching him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beneath the lips were pearl like teeth. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There were smells of Ansal mixed in within her hot breath.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be that…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could only think of the only explanation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This is caused by the Ansal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ansals were loved by dragon. To them, Ansal were like tobacco and booze in the human world.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though she was born with the look of a girl, at the same time she is also a young dragon. It seemed that it was bad to her if she took in a huge amount of Ansal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco! P-Pleaese…. I beg you!”&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 091.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huff…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was approaching him like an animal in heat.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If this were to be left alone, they will be caught for disrupting the peace of the city.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Mama, what are both of them doing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t look! Just keep moving!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, glares from the people around were piercing him. Although Ash felt like running away right at this moment, he couldn’t even stand up from being held tightly by Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, someone was standing beside Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What are you thinking….? Doing something as shameless as this in the public!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The scold shocked Ash. It sounded familiar. No, it doesn’t just sound familiar.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected, he saw Princess Silvia her royal highness herself.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The enemy of women shall face the hammer of death! This is my family motto!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
An iron fist that had enough force to break a rock swung at his face.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 9===&lt;br /&gt;
“With this, you should be alright.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who took care of Eco was Silvia’s maid, Cosette Shelley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since she herself was quite a famous person in the academy, Ash knew a little about her. Even though they were on the streets, Cosette was wearing the palace’s maid attire. Quite a number of people were looking at her out of curiosity.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco started to regain her sense after drinking the water given to her by Cosette who had gotten it from a nearby shop. According to &lt;br /&gt;
Cosette, the Ansal will be diluted if a huge amount of water was drunk.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huff…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although her checks were still red, at least she could finally sit still. Ash breathe a sigh of relieve.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Thank you, Cosette-san. You really help me there…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tee Hee, you are welcome.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tsk. I am surprise that you fed a young dragon Ansal! What had you learn in class!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia scolded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t Princess-sama fed the newborn Lancelot with Ansal Tea too?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t talk about the past!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was blushing. It seems she too had the same experience.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Before that, why was she born in the form of a human and not a dragon? It had become a rumor in the entire academy.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh? I didn’t knew that Princess-sama who don’t even have a friend would be interested in gossip.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was blushing again.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Be quiet! I-I had not interest in any kind of gossip. Cosette was always talking about all kinds of things, it was just by chance that I heard it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu… Every time I mention about Ash-sama, didn’t you become excited?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-Never!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In truth, everyone knew that Silvia was always alone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She would make everyone nervous with just her presence alone.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It happened not because of her status as a Princess. Alright, it is probably one of the reasons. However, the main reason was because of her stubbornness.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, doesn’t everything turned out well. At least you had found Ash-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After being pointed out by Cosette, not only her checks, even her ears were red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you talking about! I did not come to the streets on purpose just to search for him!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Alright, alright. We will take what you said as the truth. Heehee...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although Cosette looked like an honest person at a first glance, she was actually a bully. Silvia was almost in tears.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Didn’t Princess-sama have something to say to Ash-sama? Please don’t worry about me. I will turn around and face the other side.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don&#039;t joke with me! Even when you are facing the other side, you will still try to listen!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu. That is the duty of a maid. Just take me as the statue of Venus at the end of a street.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Venus! You look more like the reincarnation of Mórrígan herself!” &amp;lt;ref&amp;gt;The Morrígan(&amp;quot;phantom queen&amp;quot;) is a figure from Irish mythology who appears to have been considered a goddess of battle, strife, and sovereignty&amp;lt;/ref&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, Eco’s nose twitched.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A…Aa….Achoo!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A cute sneeze.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Fshoos.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A strong wind was created in front of Eco and it had flipped up Silvia’s skirt.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was white and laced.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Also, the knots on both sides of her waist were all imprinted in Ash’s mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“String…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t look!”&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 096.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Silvia’s iron fist was going to knock into Ash’s face, Eco made her move.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She stretched her arms from under Ash’s armpits and stopped Silvia. It seemed to be a reaction only possessed by dragons. It seemed that she was no longer drunk.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was surprised that Eco protected him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia asked in a cold voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You on the other hand. What are you trying to do when you are just a dumb human. This person’s master is no other than me. The only person in this world who can punish him is me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What kind of logic is that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco and Silvia were confronting each other as if Ash was unrelated.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmph… Whatever.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was the first one who backed off. She lowered her fist and turned around. Her golden hair looked dazzling while being blown by the air.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash Blake! I have only one thing to tell you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia turned around facing them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That is… What I had told you previously was wrong.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“During that time, I lost my temper. In truth, your Pal was born successfully.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who was embarrassed had her sight wandering around. At one moment when her sight and Ash’s connected, she immediately looked away.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing that, Cosette was grinning with a hand in front of her mouth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-In another words… Err… How should I put this… I will take back what I said. Admitting one’s fault is one of my family’s motto!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After that, Silvia left.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then I too will take my leave.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After announcing her leave, Cosette gracefully waved her skirt and left following Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s mind turned blank after being suddenly apologized to.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Like master, like dragon, maybe it died long ago!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
During that time, Ash challenged Silvia just to make her take back her words. Since he lost the race, he didn’t think it is necessary for her to apologize. Furthermore, he was no longer haunted by her words since Eco was born safely.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Silvia still insisted on apologizing even though she was the winner.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hmm… She would definitely be the most popular person in the entire academy if she had always acted this way.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash grinned. The next moment, he felt pain on both sides of his cheeks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seemed that Eco was squeezing the both sides of his checks.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-Heho?(E-Eco)?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was glaring at him with a half-opened eye.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be that… You have some special feeling for that female? Or is that you have forgotten that I am your master?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“F-Forry…(S-Sorry…).”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If he ever tried to object, he feared that his face would be squashed. Thus, Ash apologized.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 10===&lt;br /&gt;
After buying Eco’s daily needs, Ash was standing in front of a public toilet with both of his hands full of grocery bags. Eco had mentioned that she needed to use the toilet and that is why Ash was standing there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How long is she going to make me wait!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She had entered the toilet for some time and had no sign of her coming out. To make it worst, Ash could take a peek since it was the ladies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is it? Please don’t bother me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you interested in the ladies?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course. If I am allowed, I would even enter and take a good look...”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So you are this kind of a person… It was wrong of me to think highly of you, Ash Blake!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huh?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash immediately came back to his sense. Who exactly was the person who was talking to him?&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Unfortunately, the moment he turned around, he was kicked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ouch! What the hell are you doing!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash regretted what he just said.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What the hell are you doing…? Yeah, right. That was what I was going to ask you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person in front of Ash was not some stranger. Right now, she was scolding with her arm crossed. Her golden hair at this moment looked like a lion.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As usual, Cosette was following Silvia from behind and was smiling.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why were you standing around suspiciously in front of the ladies? You look like a total pervert no matter how I look at you.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No… It is just that Eco had not come out from the toilet yet and I am a little worried. That all is what I was thinking. Nothing apart from that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Why don’t you mention it earlier? I will take a look in your stead if you are okay with it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was grateful for Cosette’s help.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please do!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s go, Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me too?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Helping those in need is the responsibility of a royal. That’s is from the proud family motto of the Lautreamont Knight Family.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I knew that!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was in shock when the driving seat was taken away from her by Cosette. She then hurriedly entered the ladies.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 11===&lt;br /&gt;
Moments later, Silvia and Cosette returned.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We didn’t see Eco but in exchange, we found this on the floor.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Silvia was holding was Eco’s beret.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… This is definitely Eco’s hat. But why?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since Eco entered the toilet, Ash had been standing all along at the entrance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He will defiantly see her if she had walked out.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Apart from the hat, we also collected these.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette who was standing beside Silvia showed him a handkerchief.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Collected?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Inside the handkerchief were sparkling powders.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In my opinion, it should be the powders of a Bright Dragon crystal.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
A Bright Dragon Crystal is the crystallization of the dragon’s magic. At the same time, it was used to activate the Oracle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With borrowing the powers from the Bright Dragon Crystal, humans were unable to use magic. In the first place, it was the dragons that brought magic into this continent.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It was possible that someone kidnapped Eco with the use of the oracle.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was full of shivers when he heard Silvia.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why I kept on having the feeling of someone peeping at us.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Really? Then the culprit must have been targeting Eco since the start.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Damn! Just why…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Stop panicking! Try thinking what you had learned in class.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She was staring at him with her ice blue eyes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The bond between the breeder and his dragon will not break this easily. Even if you can’t see it, there is the Astral flow.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course I knew that. It is just that what am I suppose to do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If she is a Maestro, you just have to summon her… But it will be impossible for a newborn. In another world, you have to go to her.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But how the hell am I to know where she was!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That is why you must stop panicking. As a breeder, you should have a Seikoku branded on your skin given to you by the mother dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash certainly has the Seikoku branded on his left arm. Unfortunately, he had lost his memories of the meeting with the mother dragon. But, of course this is not a good time to discuss that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Tell me what should I do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Seikoku is not just a mere tattoo. It is the door for the Astral Flow.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“By the way… During the time when Eco was born, I certainly remember that my Seikoku reacted.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Put your thoughts on remembering that feeling. Then call out to Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash finally knew what she was asking him to do.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will give it a try. Thank you, Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia blushed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“N-No need for that! Dragons are holy beasts that symbolized our country. It is my duty to help those who are in need!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After saying, she turned around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette was grinning from behind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Let’s begin.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash rolled up his sleeve and removed his bandage. The sight of his Seikoku gave Silvia a shock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That is your seikoku?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It seems so…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash had always hated his Seikoku. If it is possible, he wouldn’t even want anyone to know about it. But, right now, it is an emergency.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What should we do next?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is hard to describe this in words…. First, focus your thoughts on the Seikoku. Then, think strongly about Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This seems to be overly abstract. Are you sure about this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice. The Seikoku was the product of magic. It would be impossible to describe it using a human language since the beginning.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Well, anyway… I will give it a go!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Under the sight of both Silvia and Cosette, Ash lifted his left arm and held his left wrist with his right hand.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Next, he focused his thoughts on the Seikoku on his left arm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash could somehow feel the Seikoku being heated up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please… Tell me Eco’s location…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a few mumbles, Ash was thinking only about Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since he was seven, Eco who was in his body had never left his side even once.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco should had born earlier, had overslept for an extra three years.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even so, Ash had always been waiting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even when he was looked down upon, he had always been waiting.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was finally born. Although it was unexpected and there were many unexplained stuff going on, still there was one obvious truth.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco is his Pal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Answer me, please…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly, Ash’s Seikoku had turned red.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The magic from the Seikoku had taken the form of a butterfly. It seemed to be leading Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The location should be where Eco was.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see it!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Comapre to Ash who was over the moon, Silvia and Cosette seemed confused.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What do you see?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It seemed that Silvia and Cosette were unable to see the butterfly formed from his Seikoku. First, Ash don’t have the time to explain to them and secondly, he did not know how to put this into words.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am heading to where Eco is!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash started chasing after the butterfly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hold on! It is dangerous to go there alone! I will go with you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I will follow Princess-sama even if we are heading to hell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please don’t speak off such unlucky stuff!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was not bothered by any of them and continued to chase after the butterfly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 12===&lt;br /&gt;
The butterfly that was formed from magic could easily fly pass humans. Ash and the rest were avoiding the other pedestrian while they were running along the alley.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The butterfly had finally arrived at an isolated corner of the eastern district. It was a mansion built in the middle of a huge land. &lt;br /&gt;
Since it was old, it looked like a haunted house. It had not yet been confirmed whether there is anyone staying there.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Are you sure that Eco was here?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was shocked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia who was usually full of confidence had turned pale.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“The Seikoku had certainly showed us this place.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-I see.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey, you don’t look good at all.  Could it be that…. You are scared?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Though Ash was just fooling around, Silvia overly responded.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-Imposible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was obvious that Silvia was lying. Although she doesn’t look like it, she was actually very timid.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-Anyway, we can only depend on the Seikoku’s lead. In the worst case scenario, I just have to summon Lancelot and have this place burnt down.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu. This is more like it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No, it is bad to summon Lancelot in the middle of the streets! Cosette-san, please don’t encourage her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when they were arguing, the butterfly flew into the house.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was right, right now, they could only depend on the Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Wait for me, Eco!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash pushed open the metal door. ‘Crrrreeek’ comes the sound for the rust rubbing against each outher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What in the world is that?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once they stepped into the garden, Silvia turned shocked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every certain distant was a stone slab. It looked as if it was a magic circle. At the top of the stone slab was a Bright Dragon Crystal. &lt;br /&gt;
All of them were glittering.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although they were unclear of its usage, it seemed to be able to activate the Oracle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“These stone slabs certainly looked weird.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash too had stopped his tracks and was looking at the stone slabs. &lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“For a rundown looking house to posses such a huge amount of bright dragon crystal, it certainly doesn’t look natural. You usually have to have a huge amount of money to buy this amount of Bright Dragon Crystal… I have a bad feeling. First, let us check the background of the owner of this house…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“We don’t have time for that. We must first save Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash rejected her suggestion and rushed in. It is not that Silvia’s suggestion was wrong. It was just that they don’t have the time to do any investigation before they found about Eco’s condition.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-Hold on! W-Wait for me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As expected, Silvia who was timid hurriedly chase after Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 13===&lt;br /&gt;
Being shone under the familiar warm light, Eco woke up with a yawn.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
She still remembered that she was in the toilet of the shopping district and was going to wash her hands. Her memories after that were blank.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After realizing in what kind of a situation she was in, Eco was horrified.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“W-What is the meaning of this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was lying down facing the ceilings while she was being tired up. Apart from her knee socks, she was stark naked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The tools that were used to tie her up were made from strong materials. Eco couldn’t move an inch even after she tried with her entire might.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is happening…?’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was looking around.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was not even a single window. The sources of lights were from lamps powered by Bright Dragon Crystals. Eco was probably familiar with this kind light because she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In the area around her were many medical tools. The bookshelves by the walls were also stuffed full with documents.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was a dragon model that was being placed on a table. It was not just a model but also a specimen. It doesn’t feel good looking at it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Where am I?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that moment, a door was opened slowly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How do you feel?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person by the door was a woman wearing a spectacle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Who are you? How dare you to do such a thing to me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I can see that you are in a high spirit. I like it.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s threat was useless against the woman.&lt;br /&gt;
[[Image:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi v1 113.jpg|thumb]]&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;‘Clank! Clank!’&#039;&#039;It was the sounds of her heels when she approached Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is really unbelievable that a dragon was born in the form of a human.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What did you say?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The woman’s words had caught Eco’s attention. It seemed that she kidnapped her while knowing that she is a dragon.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What actually was the dragon thinking? For them to send a young dragon like you into this world?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How am I to know!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The woman had become more curious.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Did you really not know? Didn’t you share the memories of your dragon ancestral? According to the ancient documents, such a thing happens.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“If you are talking about the Dragweiss, then to further disappoint you, I can’t access it on my own yet.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see. So, I just have to question your body directly.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Hic…!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Suddenly the woman’s hand started to move.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was a silver flash right in front of Eco’s nose.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
With a closer look, the thing that pierced the wall was a scalpel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Don’t tell me that…. You…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The woman replied naturally while taking out a second scalpel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Dissection is the basic for biology.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 14===&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was running on the corridor where its floor had started creaking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Every time they saw a spider or a rat, Silvia would give a squeak. Although Ash would like to look at her while she was making those looks, his priority was to save Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ever since just moments before, a change occurred in his Seikoku on his left arm. It was getting hotter and lights started glowing. Though all the windows in the house were sealed up, thanks to the lights from his Seikoku, they were able to see clearly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally, the Seikoku led them to a door that led to the basement.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It looked sturdy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was wandering whether he should try calling out or bang in, Silvia made her move.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Move to a side! I will have it blow open!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Princess-sama?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash who turned pale took a few steps back. Silvia took out a red Bright Dragon Crystal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Crimson Ex-Breath!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time the Bright Dragon Crystal glows, a power was shot at the door.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a loud bang, the door blast opened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco!”’&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash shouted the moment he entered the room. Because it was excessively done by Silvia, dark smokes appeared all over the place.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was worried that Eco was injured by it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Finally the smoke cleared.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What a rude bunch of brats.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Standing right in front of Ash was a lady in white.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her spectacles made her look like someone knowledgeable. As for her age, she looked like she was around twenty five. Also, she was &lt;br /&gt;
wearing a white lab coat which made her look like a doctor or a researcher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Right behind her was Eco lying stark naked while being tied up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing to my Pal!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was full of rage when he saw Eco lying in that condition.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was almost in tears when she saw Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You are late! Untie me this instant!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Sorry…. Why am I apologizing?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was getting mad but since she was tied up, Ash couldn’t feel her imposingness. On the other hand, her looks made it bad for Ash’s heart.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After moving his sight away from Eco, Ash was glaring at the women in white.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What is the meaning of this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am just performing my duties given by the academy. Alright, I admit that my method is a little too forceful.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The woman answered calmly.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Duties given by the academy?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just when Ash was being confused, Silvia who was standing behind him suddenly shouted.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“She is… Dr Angela Cornwell.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I had heard rumors that the professor had a laboratory in the city… Never in my entire life had I ever thought that it is located in this kind of a place.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You must be kidding…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Doctor, I had always been a fan of your thesis.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia took a step forward and shook hands with Angela in the same way she would have treat a country’s guest.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is my honor, your highness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela who answered without hesitating had somehow loosen the tension.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was staring at her with his mouth wide open.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Dr Angela Cornwell.&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was a name he had heard from Rebecca that morning itself. She was a highly rated scholar whom was asked by the academy to examine Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
However, Rebecca had mentioned that she was busy and it may require some time before she could examine Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since everything was written on Ash’s face, Angela smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I always receive many boring request from the academy. Though at first I was not at all interested in this at all…. My motivation gushed out when I heard that a dragon was born in the form of a human. I had been spying at both of you since this morning.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It appears that the feeling of someone spying on them that Ash had was from Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Since you just received your request from the academy in the morning… How did you manage to spot us?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash-kun, I had always been noticing you. Aren’t you the Breeder who doesn’t have a Pal? At the same time, aren’t you also the genius who can ride on any dragon? It is you who didn’t knew that you are famous through the school.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… Wait! Hold on!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was overjoyed when he was praised by a beautiful adult woman. However, he regained his sense immediately.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No matter what the reasons are, what you are doing is kidnapping! On the other hand, what are you trying to do with that scalpel!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course for dissecting.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela answered as if it was a natural thing to do.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“D-Dissecting! Are you serious!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s right. Even if it is a dragon, we would have to dissect it if we want to know more.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…You disappoint me! Eco is going home with me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After he declared, Ash moved towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I won’t allow that.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela blocked right in front of Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…What are you trying to do?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“How you I let such an interesting sample walk away easily. Also… Apart from her, there is another thing that caught my interests.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela was staring at Ash’s Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Shit…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Only then Ash remembered that he had forgotten that his Seikoku was exposed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So that’s a Seikoku huh? Until today, I had seen many Breeder’s Seikoku, but something like that is a first time for me. Can I take a closer look?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Absolutely not! You don’t even know the reason why I tried so hard to hide this!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
When Ash was enrolled in the academy, there were many students who noticed his abnormal Seikoku and treated him like a monster.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
In truth, to the rest of the people, it looked like an ill omen.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I see… You are afraid of your own Seikoku.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“T-That&#039;s not true!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash cheeks were getting hot. Just as Angela had said, Ash was afraid of his own Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hey! Don’t ignore me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s call had averted his attention away from his Seikoku.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was still being tied.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Anyway, please move aside!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Then we will have Her Highness to decide this.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Me?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was troubled because the topic was suddenly shifted to her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“A-About this… I can more or less know how the professor feels. Since Eco was undeniably a special dragon.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“As expected from Her Highness.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Her words made Angela smile. However Silvia still continued to speak.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“But, dragons are holy beasts that symbolized our country. I will not allow you to dissect her!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although her explanations seemed to be slightly off topic, Ash was still thankful for that.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“… How disappointing.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At that instant, Ash felt that the air in the room had turned sticky.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama, please stay alert! Angela is well known for doing what it takes to make her research a success.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although she was speaking in a calm tone, Cosette’s face had gotten serious. She stood in front of Silvia and was facing Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“... Not bad for just a maid.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela’s facial expression had changed. Killing intents were gushing out from behind the two lenses.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Professor…. Don’t try anything rash. I can summon Lancelot anytime.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That doesn’t bother me at all. Why don’t you give it a try?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Fine with me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was holding her Bright Dragon Crystal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“In the name of Silvia Lautreamont! Lancelot! Answer my summon!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There was just only the sound of her voice.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ten seconds had passed, twenty seconds had passed… A minute had passed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Nothing had happened at all. The room was full of silent. Ash was hoping for Lancelot to make a magnificent appear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“H-How is this possible!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia was speaking out her mind.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Have you not notice? This mansion is being protected in an Oracle field.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be those stone slabs in the garden…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela gave a victorious smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Correct. That device was used to create a barrier by using the Oracle. No matter what you do, as long as you are in this room, Lancelot will never arrive. This device was normally used to prevent any break in.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Prevent any break in? Then the reason that we are able to enter easily is…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Just as expected from Her Highness herself. When I found out about the both of you, I had the device shut off.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Then way of Angela’s speech had become crueler.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama… This person is dangerous. We have to leave this place even if we are forced to use Ash-san as a meat shield.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am a shield!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
What Cosette said was bothering Ash and he made a comment on it, then he immediately turned around facing Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Are you sure that you want to do this? You will be charged for treason by just pointing your knife at Princess-sama.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“So? Even a Princess shall not bother with my research.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Seems like we have to resolve this by force.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While she was speaking, she activated the Oracle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;“Crimson Ex-Breath!”&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After a shout, a flash came from her Bright Dragon Crystal and then it was followed by a bang.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While trying to keep himself from being blown away from the blast, Ash grumbled:&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I think you over did this! Even with all this, she is still a professor that be considered as the country’s treasure!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is not like I have a choice! This magic itself is hard to control!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Both of you, don’t you think that this is not a right time to argue?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The person who had interrupted the both of them was unexpectedly Cosette. She was staring at the pile of smoke.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Impossible…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was dumbstrucked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You thought that you could win by using Oracle?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela remains standing even after the smoke had cleared. Apart from her lab coat being torn and smoked, she was totally fine.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s….”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash noticed her bracelet had a black stone on it.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was not just a normal rock.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Judging from it special radiance, it should be a Bright Dragon Crystal.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Now that I think of it, the professor was famous for using the Oracle…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela smiled at Silvia as if she was pitting her.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is too late. I will not allow you to leave this place until I am done with dissecting her. &#039;&#039;Dark Mother Lullaby&#039;&#039;!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After she had summoned the Oracle, a flash came from the Bright Dragon Crystal on her bracelet.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
At the same time, there was also a change on the floor.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Beautiful patterns started to appear.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This… A magic circle.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Silvia lost her balance right after she cursed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Princess-sama…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette who tried to help Silvia had also lost her balance.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Urgh… What is this…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s legs too had started to betray him.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Although his consciousness still remains, with just a little push, he would be baited by the Oracle.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This is a magic circle drawn using the powder of a Bright Dragon Crystal. We won’t be able to learn this in the academy. But…. How do you manage to remain conscious?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela was looking at Ash with looks of unbelievable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What are you doing! If you fall asleep right now… I will never forgive you!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco was shouting even when she had turned pale white.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco’s tone was still being haughty. But considering Ash had fallen and she was going to be dissect, it was understandable.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;-Ba-dump!&#039;&#039;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s Seikoku was burning.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash Seikoku was glowing with red colour similar to yesterday when Eco was born. Right now, it looked like a burning torch.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“This…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash was shocked from the amount of heat burning on his left arm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
He was no longer sleepy.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the first time, Angela’s face looked shaken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Could it be that… Eco’s magic was sent through the Astral Flow…?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Anyway, Angela seems to notice the change of Ash’s left arm.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“No matter what…!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash swung his left arm the same moment he stood up.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The winds created had blown off the magic circle. At the same time, Angela’s bracelet was destroyed and the black Bright Dragon Crystal broke into pieces.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I-It can’t be!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Angela who was always calm was definitely shaken.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Return my Pal right at this moment!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
While ignoring Angela who was stunned, Ash move towards Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The strong binding tools were broken by Ash in just a blink of an eye.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“*Sob*… You are late!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was freed was hugging Ash while complaining. Then she started crying.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Eco…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
This was an unexpected development for Ash and he started panicking.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
For the time being, Ash tried comforting her by patting her back. But just as he touched her bare back…&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Hic…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
It was probably that Ash’s fingers were cold or Eco’s body was over sensitive, her body jerked.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“…Eco?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You… How dare a pet like you dare to touch me!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Once again Eco swung her fist and Ash was knocked against the wall.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 15===&lt;br /&gt;
Time flew pass. Without noticing, it was already four in the evening.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After leaving the laboratory, the four of them were heading back to the dormitory.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Eco who was tired of crying was sleeping peacefully on Ash’s back. Her face looked like an angel.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Good grief, what a bad day… Sorry for involving you even though it was our problem.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Don’t worry about it. It was Princess-sama who chose to save Eco.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette who was walking side by side with Ash was smiling. Although she too was carrying Silvia who was fast asleep, her footsteps were steady.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just like Eco, Silvia who was always acting strict looked just like angel after she was fast asleep.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Cosette, are you alright?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
After Ash had saved Eco, she immediately stood up. Since Silvia had yet to be woken up, it signifies that Angela’s was using a strong magic. However, Cosette doesn’t seem to be affected at all.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
During the entire time, it was Cosette who found Eco’s clothes, Cosette who coaxed Eco and Cosette who help Eco put on her clothes.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
If it was Ash, he would be panicking all along in the laboratory.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu. That is because I am a maid.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“It is just because of this?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Of course.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Cosette was always replying him with a smile that could even ward off evil. Even Angela’s anger was soothed by her smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Ash-san I actually have a favour to ask.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What the matter?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please keep today’s incident a secret. It is because…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aaah… Alright.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash understood what Cosette was trying to say.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
To save Eco, Silvia had trespassed Angela’s mansion and was put to sleep from an Oracle. It is be a disgrace to the royal family.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I understand. Though it is a pity that I am unable to announced Angela’s bad doing, I still think that she had gotten what she deserved.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Seeing Ash smiles, Cosette burst out into laughter.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“When she found out that her Oracle was useless against Ash-sama, she was in a shock. During that time, Ash-sama looked great.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash’s heart was beating nonstop since this was the first time he was praised by a girl.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“That’s not it. During that time, I am only thinking of saving Eco. Putting that aside, have you been watching the whole incident?”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Huhu.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
As if she was trying to hide something, Cosette just replied with a playful smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&#039;&#039;Once again, a woman who is full of secrets…&#039;&#039; Ash thought so.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
===Part 16===&lt;br /&gt;
The second day.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Something happened out of Ash’s expectation.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Even before the first period, the students were silenced by a woman in white who entered the classroom.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Aaaaa!”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Ash and Silvia shouted at the same time. Everyone around was staring at them.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
The lady stood on the podium and smiled.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“I am Angela Cornwell. I came here in replace of your previous Sebastian-sensei who had retired.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“What the…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
There should be one more year before Sebastian-sensei reached his retirement age. This should be the work of Angela.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
According to the academy, it is an honour to be able to hire a person like Angela as a teacher.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“You can call me ‘Angela-sensei’.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Both Ash and Silvia were staring at Angela with their mouth opened.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“S-She never learns…”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Since their teacher was suddenly changed into a beautiful lady, while being led by Raymond, all of the boys in the class were cheering except Ash.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Needless to say, Angela was still targeting Eco.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
“Please take care of me.”&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just as expected, Angela was glaring at Ash with her eagle like eyes with a cold smile.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;quot;My Baby Dragon ~A.S.B.1365.4~&amp;quot; is closed.&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
==References and Translation Notes==&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;references /&amp;gt;&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
{| border=&amp;quot;1&amp;quot; cellpadding=&amp;quot;5&amp;quot; cellspacing=&amp;quot;0&amp;quot; style=&amp;quot;margin: 1em 1em 1em 0; background: #f9f9f9; border: 1px #aaaaaa solid; padding: 0.2em; border-collapse: collapse;&amp;quot;&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
| Back to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 1|Chapter 1]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Return to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi|Main Page]]&lt;br /&gt;
| Forward to [[Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 3|Chapter 3]]&lt;br /&gt;
|-&lt;br /&gt;
|}&lt;br /&gt;
&amp;lt;/noinclude&amp;gt;&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
	<entry>
		<id>https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_1&amp;diff=354023</id>
		<title>Talk:Seikoku no Ryuu Kishi: Volume 1 Chapter 1</title>
		<link rel="alternate" type="text/html" href="https://www.baka-tsuki.org/project/index.php?title=Talk:Seikoku_no_Ryuu_Kishi:_Volume_1_Chapter_1&amp;diff=354023"/>
		<updated>2014-05-17T13:22:07Z</updated>

		<summary type="html">&lt;p&gt;Oddmoonlight: &lt;/p&gt;
&lt;hr /&gt;
&lt;div&gt;Probably should have moved the page without the space instead of copying the text and creating a new page. --[[User:Bilagaana|Bilagaana]] ([[User talk:Bilagaana|talk]]) 15:28, 30 October 2013 (CDT)&lt;br /&gt;
&lt;br /&gt;
Just one small question; Does it really say at the last part &amp;quot;like a Jedi in Return of the Jedi&amp;quot;? [[User:Oddmoonlight|Oddmoonlight]] ([[User talk:Oddmoonlight|talk]]) 08:22, 17 May 2014 (CDT)&lt;/div&gt;</summary>
		<author><name>Oddmoonlight</name></author>
	</entry>
</feed>